Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: The Mummy! - A Tale of the Twenty-Second Century
Author: Webb-Loudon, Jane
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Mummy! - A Tale of the Twenty-Second Century" ***


THE MUMMY!

A TALE OF THE TWENTY-SECOND CENTURY.


By Jane Webb (Mrs. Loudon).


"Why hast thou disquieted me, to bring me up?"
                           I SAM., xxviii. 15.


LONDON: HENRY COLBURN, NEW BURLINGTON STREET.

1827.



TABLE OF CONTENTS.


    INTRODUCTION.

    CHAPTER I.       CHAPTER XVII.
    CHAPTER II.      CHAPTER XVIII.
    CHAPTER III.     CHAPTER XIX.
    CHAPTER IV.      CHAPTER XX.
    CHAPTER V.       CHAPTER XXI.
    CHAPTER VI.      CHAPTER XXII.
    CHAPTER VII.     CHAPTER XXIII.
    CHAPTER VIII.    CHAPTER XXIV.
    CHAPTER IX.      CHAPTER XXV.
    CHAPTER X.       CHAPTER XXVI.
    CHAPTER XI.      CHAPTER XXVII.
    CHAPTER XII.     CHAPTER XXVIII.
    CHAPTER XIII.    CHAPTER XXIX.
    CHAPTER XIV.     CHAPTER XXX.
    CHAPTER XV.      CHAPTER XXXI.
    CHAPTER XVI.     CHAPTER XXXII.


[Transcriber's note: _The Mummy!_ was originally published in three
volumes.  The chapters have been renumbered in this edition, and the
volume breaks indicated (ends of chapters XI and XXIV).]



INTRODUCTION.


I have long wished to write a novel, but I could not determine what it
was to be about. I could not bear any thing common-place, and I did
not know what to do for a hero. Heroes are generally so much alike, so
monotonous, so dreadfully insipid--so completely brothers of one race,
with the family likeness so amazingly strong--"This will not do for
me," thought I as I sauntered listlessly down a shady lane, one fine
evening in June; "I must have something new, something quite out of the
beaten path:--but what?"--ay, that was the question. In vain did I rack
my brains--in vain did I search the storehouse of my memory: I could
think of nothing that had not been thought of before.

"It is very strange!" said I, as I walked faster, as though I hoped
the rapidity of my motion would shake off the sluggishness of my
imagination. It was all in vain! I struck my forehead and called wit
to my assistance, but the malignant deity was deaf to my entreaty.
"Surely," thought I, "the deep mine of invention cannot be worked out;
there must be some new ideas left, if I could but find them." To find
them, however, was the difficulty.

Thus lost in meditation, I walked onwards till I reached the brow of
a hill, and a superb prospect burst upon me. A fertile valley richly
wooded, studded with sumptuous villas and romantic cottages, and
watered by a noble river, that wound slowly its lazy course along,
spread beneath my feet; and lofty hills swelling to the skies, their
summit lost in clouds, bounded the horizon. The sun was setting in all
its splendour, and its lingering rays gave those glowing tints and deep
masses of shadow to the landscape that sometimes produce so magical an
effect. It was quite a Claude Lorraine scene; and more fully to enjoy
it, I entered a hay-field, and seated myself upon a grassy bank. The
day had been sultry; and the evening breeze, as it murmured through the
foliage, felt cool and refreshing. "It is a lovely world," thought I,
"notwithstanding all that cynics can say against it. Our own passions
bring misery upon our heads, and then we rail at the world, though
we only are in fault. Why should I seek to wander in the regions of
fiction? Why not enjoy tranquilly the blessings Heaven has bestowed
upon me?"

I felt too indolent to answer my own question; a delicious stillness
crept over my senses, and the heaving chaos of my ideas was lulled to
repose. A majestic oak stretched its gnarled arms in sullen dignity
above my head; myriads of busy insects buzzed around me; and woodbines
and wild roses, hanging from every hedge, mingled their perfume with
that of the new-mown hay. I reclined languidly on my grassy couch,
listening to the indistinct hum of the distant village, and feeling
that delightful sense of exemption from care, that a faint murmur of
bustle afar off gives to the weary spirit, when suddenly the bells
struck up a joyous peal--the cheerful notes now swelling loudly upon
the ear, then sinking gently away with the retiring breeze, and then
again returning with added sweetness. I listened with delight to their
melody, till their softness seemed to increase; the sounds became
gradually fainter and fainter; the landscape faded from my sight; a
soft languor crept over me: in short, I slept.

It would be of no use to go to sleep without dreaming; and,
accordingly, I had scarcely closed my eyes when, methought, a spirit
stood before me. His head was crowned with flowers; his azure wings
fluttered in the breeze, and a light drapery, like the fleecy vapour
that hangs upon the summit of a mountain, floated round him. In his
hand he held a scroll, and his voice sounded soft and sweet as the
liquid melody of the nightingale.

"Take this," said he, smiling benignantly; "it is the Chronicle of
a future age. Weave it into a story. It will so far gratify your
wishes, as to give you a hero totally different from any hero that
ever appeared before. You hesitate," continued he, again smiling, and
regarding me earnestly: "I read your thoughts, and see you fear to
sketch the scenes of which you are to write, because you imagine they
must be different from those with which you are acquainted. This is a
natural distrust: the scenes will indeed be different from those you
now behold; the whole face of society will be changed: new governments
will have arisen; strange discoveries will be made, and stranger modes
of life adopted. The restless curiosity and research of man will then
have enabled him to lift the veil from much which is (to him at least)
at present a mystery; and his powers (both as regards mechanical agency
and intellectual knowledge) will be greatly enlarged. But even then,
in his plenitude of acquirement, he will be made conscious of the
infirmity of his nature, and will be guilty of many absurdities which,
in his less _enlightened_ state, he would feel ashamed to commit.

"To no one but yourself has this vision been revealed: do not fear to
behold it. Though strange, it may be fully understood, for much will
still remain to connect that future age with the present. The impulses
and feelings of human creatures must, for the most part, be alike
in all ages: habits vary, but nature endures; and the same passions
were delineated, the same weaknesses ridiculed, by Aristophanes,
Plautus, and Terence, as in after-times were described by Shakspeare
and Molière; and as they will be in the times of which you are to
write,--by authors yet unknown.

"But you still hesitate; you object that the novelty of the allusions
perplexes you. This is quite a new kind of delicacy; as authors seldom
trouble themselves to become acquainted with a subject before they
begin to write upon it. However, since you are so very scrupulous, I
will endeavour, if possible, to assist you. Look around."

I did so; and saw, as in a magic glass, the scenes and characters,
which I shall now endeavour to pass before the eyes of the reader.



CHAPTER I.


In the year 2126, England enjoyed peace and tranquillity under the
absolute dominion of a female sovereign. Numerous changes had taken
place for some centuries in the political state of the country,
and several forms of government had been successively adopted and
destroyed, till, as is generally the case after violent revolutions,
they all settled down into an absolute monarchy. In the meantime, the
religion of the country had been mutable as its government; and in
the end, by adopting Catholicism, it seemed to have arrived at nearly
the same result: despotism in the state, indeed, naturally produces
despotism in religion; the implicit faith and passive obedience
required in the one case, being the best of all possible preparatives
for the absolute submission of both mind and body necessary in the
other.

In former times, England had been blessed with a mixed government and a
tolerant religion, under which the people had enjoyed as much freedom
as they perhaps ever can do, consistently with their prosperity and
happiness. It is not in the nature of the human mind, however, to be
contented: we must always either hope or fear; and things at a distance
appear so much more beautiful than they do when we approach them, that
we always fancy what we have not, infinitely superior to any thing we
have; and neglect enjoyments within our reach, to pursue others, which,
like _ignes fatui_, elude our grasp at the very moment when we hope we
have attained them.

Thus it was with the people of England:--Not satisfied with being
rich and prosperous, they longed for something more. Abundance of
wealth caused wild schemes and gigantic speculations; and though
many failed, yet, as some succeeded, the enormity of the sums gained
by the projectors, incited others to pursue the same career. New
countries were discovered and civilized; the whole earth was brought
to the highest pitch of cultivation; every corner of it was explored;
mountains were levelled, mines were excavated, and the globe racked to
its centre. Nay, the air and sea did not escape, and all nature was
compelled to submit to the overwhelming supremacy of Man.

Still, however, the English people were not contented:--enabled to
gratify every wish till satiety succeeded indulgence, they were still
unhappy; perhaps, precisely because they had no longer any difficulties
to encounter. In the meantime, education had become universal, and the
technical terms of abstruse sciences familiar to the lowest mechanics;
whilst questions of religion, politics, and metaphysics, agitated by
them daily, supplied that stimulus, for which their minds, enervated by
over cultivation, constantly craved. The consequences may be readily
conceived. It was impossible for those to study deeply who had to
labour for their daily bread; and not having time to make themselves
masters of any given subject, they only learned enough of all to render
them disputatious and discontented. Their heads were filled with words
to which they affixed no definite ideas, and the little sense Heaven
had blessed them with, was lost beneath a mass of undigested and
misapplied knowledge.

Conceit inevitably leads to rebellion. The natural consequence of
the mob thinking themselves as wise as their rulers, was, that they
took the first convenient opportunity that offered, to jostle these
aforesaid rulers from their seats. An aristocracy was established,
and afterwards a democracy; but both shared the same fate; for the
leaders of each in turn, found the instruments they had made use of to
rise, soon became unmanageable. The people had tasted the sweets of
power, they had learned their own strength, they were enlightened; and,
fancying they understood the art of ruling as well as their quondam
directors, they saw no reason why, after shaking off the control of
one master, they should afterwards submit to the domination of many.
"We are free," said they; "we acknowledge no laws but those of nature,
and of those we are as competent to judge as our would-be masters. In
what are they superior to ourselves? Nature has been as bountiful to
us as to them, and we have had the same advantages of education. Why
then should we toil to give them ease? We are each capable of governing
ourselves. Why then should we pay them to rule us? Why should we be
debarred from mental enjoyments and condemned to manual labour? Are not
our tastes as refined as theirs, and our minds as highly cultivated? We
will assert our independence, and throw off the yoke. If any man wish
for luxuries, let him labour to procure them for himself. We will be
slaves no longer; we will all be masters."

Thus they reasoned, and thus they acted, till government after
government having been overturned, complete anarchy prevailed, and
the people began to discover, though, alas! too late, that there was
little pleasure in being masters when there were no subjects, and that
it was impossible to enjoy intellectual pleasures, whilst each man was
compelled to labour for his daily bread. This, however, was inevitable,
for as perfect equality had been declared, of course no one would
condescend to work for his neighbour, and every thing was badly done:
as, however skilful any man may be in any particular art or profession,
it is quite impossible he can excel in all.

In the meantime, the people who had, though they scarcely knew why,
attached to the idea of equality that of exemption from toil, found to
their infinite surprise, that their burthens had increased tenfold,
whilst their comforts had unaccountably diminished in the same
proportion. The blessings of civilization were indeed fast slipping
away from them. Every man became afraid lest the hard-earned means
of existence should be torn from his grasp; for, as all laws had
been abolished, the strong tyrannized over the weak, and the most
enlightened nation in the world was in imminent danger of degenerating
into a horde of rapacious barbarians.

This state of things could not continue; and the people, finding from
experience that perfect equality was not quite the most enviable
mode of government, began to suspect that a division of labour and a
distinction of ranks were absolutely necessary to civilization; and
sought out their ancient nobility, to endeavour to restore something
like order to society. These illustrious personages were soon found:
those who had not emigrated, had retired to their seats in the country,
where, surrounded by their dependants, and the few friends who had
remained faithful to them, they enjoyed the _otium cum dignitate_, and
consoled themselves for the loss of their former greatness, by railing
most manfully at those who had deprived them of it.

Amongst this number, was the lineal descendant of the late royal
family, and to him the people now resolved humbly and unconditionally
to offer the crown; imagining, with the usual vehemence and
inconsistency of popular commotions, that an arbitrary government must
be best for them, as being the very reverse of that, the evils of which
they had just so forcibly experienced.

The prince, however, to whom a deputation from the people made this
offer, happened not to be ambitious. Like another Cincinnatus, he
placed all his happiness in the cultivation of a small farm, and
had sufficient prudence to reject a grandeur which he felt must be
purchased by the sacrifice of his peace. The deputies were in despair
at his refusal; and they reurged their suit with every argument the
distress of their situation could inspire. They painted in glowing
colours the horrors of the anarchy that prevailed, the misery of the
kingdom and despair of the people; and at last wound up their arguments
by a solemn appeal to Heaven, that if he persisted in his refusal, the
future wretchedness of the people might fall upon his head. The prince,
however, continued inexorable; and the deputies were preparing to
withdraw, when the prince's daughter, who had been present during the
whole interview, rushed forward and prevented their retreat:--"Stay! I
will be your queen," cried she energetically; "I will save my country,
or perish in the attempt!"

The princess was a beautiful woman, about six-and-twenty; and, at
this moment, her fine eyes sparkling with enthusiasm, her cheeks
glowing, and her whole face and figure breathing dignity from the
exalted purpose of her soul, she appeared to the deputies almost as a
supernatural being; and regarding her offer as a direct inspiration
from Heaven, they bore her in triumph to the assembled multitude who
awaited their return: whilst the people, ever caught by novelty, and
desirous of any change to free them from the misery they were enduring,
hailed her appearance with delight, and unanimously proclaimed her
Queen.

The new sovereign soon found the task she had undertaken a difficult
one; but happening luckily to possess common sense and prudence,
united with a firm and active disposition, she contrived in time to
restore order, and to confirm her own power, whilst she contributed
to the happiness of her people. The face of the kingdom rapidly
changed--security produced improvement--and the self-banished nobles
of the former dynasty crowding round the new Queen, she chose from
amongst them the wisest and most experienced for her counsellors, and
by their help compounded an excellent code of laws. This book was open
to the whole kingdom; and cases being decided by principle instead of
precedent, litigation was almost unknown: for as the laws were fully
and clearly explained, so as to be understood by every body, few dared
to act in open violation of them, punishment being certain to follow
detection; and all the agonizing delights of a law-suit were entirely
destroyed, as every body knew, the moment the facts were stated, how it
would inevitably terminate. This renewal of the golden age continued
several years without interruption, the people being too much delighted
with the personal comforts they enjoyed, to complain of the errors
inseparable from all human institutions; whilst the remembrance of what
they had suffered during the reign of anarchy, made them tremble at a
change, and patiently submit to trifling inconveniences to avoid the
risk of positive evils.

This generation however passed away, and with it died, not only the
recollection of the past misfortunes of the kingdom, but also the
spirit of content they had engendered. A new race arose, who, with
the ignorance and presumption of inexperience, found fault with every
thing they did not understand, and accused the Queen and her ministers
of dotage, merely because they did not accomplish impossibilities. The
government, however, was too firmly established to be easily shaken.
The judicious economy of the Queen had filled her treasury with riches;
her prudent regulations had extended the commerce of her subjects to
an almost incredible extent; and her firm and decided disposition made
her universally respected both at home and abroad. The malcontents were
therefore awed into submission, and obliged, in spite of themselves,
to rest satisfied with growling at the government they were not strong
enough to overturn. At this time, however, the Queen died, and the
state of affairs experienced an important change.

It has been before mentioned, that the religion of the country had
altered with its government. Atheism, rational liberty, and fanaticism,
had followed each other in regular succession; and the people found, by
fatal experience, that persecution and bigotry assimilated as naturally
with infidelity as superstition. A fixed government, however, seemed to
require an established religion; and the multitude, ever in extremes,
rushed from excess of liberty to intolerance. The Catholic faith was
restored, new saints were canonized, and confessors appointed in the
families of every person of distinction. These priests, however, were
far from having the power they had possessed in former times. The eyes
of men had been too long opened to be easily closed again. Education
still continued amongst the lower classes; and though, at the time this
history commences, it was going out of fashion with persons of rank,
its influence was felt even by those most prejudiced against it. During
the reign of the late Queen, the minds of the public not having any
state affairs to occupy them, had been directed to the improvement of
the arts and sciences; and so many new inventions had been struck out,
so many wonderful discoveries made, and so many ingenious contrivances
put into execution, that poor nature seemed degraded from her throne,
and usurping man to have stepped up to supply her place.

Before the Queen died, she chose her niece Claudia to succeed her; and
as she enacted that none of her successors should marry, she ordered
that all future queens should be chosen, by the people, from such
female members of her family as might be between twenty and twenty-five
years of age, at the time of the throne's becoming vacant. Every male
throughout the kingdom who had attained the age of twenty-one, was
to have a voice in this election; but as it was presumed it might be
inconvenient to convoke these numerous electors into one place, it was
agreed that every ten thousand should choose a deputy to proceed to
London to represent them, and that a majority of these deputies should
elect the Queen. This scheme, however, though feasible in theory,
seemed likely to present some difficulties when it was to be put in
practice; but of these, the old Queen never troubled herself to think.
She had provided against any immediate disturbance by choosing her own
successor, and she left posterity to take care of itself.

Queen Claudia was one of those _fainéant_ sovereigns of whom it
is extremely difficult to write the history, for the simple but
unanswerable reason, that they never perform any action worthy of
being recorded. However, though she did not do much good, she seldom
did any harm: she thus contrived to escape either violent censure or
applause; and, in short, to get through life very decently, without
making much bustle about it. She continued the same counsellors that
had been employed by her predecessor, appointing the sons, when the
fathers died, to save trouble. She left the laws as she found them for
the same reason; and, in short, she let the affairs of government go on
so quietly, and so exactly in the same routine as before, that for two
or three years after her accession, the people were scarcely aware that
any change had taken place.

The commencement of the year 2126 was, however, marked by symptoms of
turbulence. The malcontents, secretly encouraged by Roderick, King of
Ireland, and suffered to gain strength under the easy sway of Claudia,
rose to arms in different parts of the kingdom; and marching to London,
attempted to seize the person of the Queen. For the moment, the regular
forces of the kingdom seemed paralysed, and the insurgents would have
succeeded in their daring attempt, but for the presence of mind and
valour of Edmund Montagu, a young officer of ancient family, a captain
in the Queen's body-guard, who had the good fortune to rescue his
sovereign.

This circumstance was decisive; the rebels, disappointed in their
hopes, and imperfectly organized, gave way everywhere before the
regular troops, who had now recovered from their stupor; whilst the
Queen, whose gratitude for the timely succour afforded by Edmund
Montagu was unbounded, made him commander of her forces in Germany, and
the youthful hero quitted England to take possession of his post.



CHAPTER II.


High and distinguished as was the favour shown to Edmund Montagu, it
was by no means greater than he deserved. His face and figure were such
as the imagination delights to picture as a hero of antiquity; and his
character accorded well with the majestic graces of his person. Haughty
and commanding in his temper--ambition was his God, and love of glory
his strongest passion; yet his very pride had a nobleness in it, and
his soldiers loved though they feared him.

Very different was the character of his younger brother Edric, whose
romantic disposition and contemplative turn of mind often excited the
ridicule of his friends. As usual, however, in similar cases, the
persecutions he endured upon the subject, only wedded him more firmly
to his own peculiar opinions; which, indeed, he seemed determined
to sustain with the constancy of a martyr; whilst he put on such a
countenance of resolution and magnanimity whenever they were assailed
by jests or raillery, as might have been imagined suitable to an
expiring Indian at the stake. Unfortunately, however, his friends did
not always properly estimate this dignified silence; and their repeated
bursts of laughter grated so harshly in the ears of the youthful
Diogenes, that he became gradually disgusted with mankind. He secluded
himself from society; despised the opinion of the world, because he
found it was against him; and supposed himself capable of resisting
every species of temptation, simply because, as yet, he had met with
nothing adequate to tempt him. Older and more experienced persons have
made the same mistake.

The education of these two young men had been entrusted to tutors of
characters as essentially different as those of their pupils.--Father
Morris, who had had the care of the elder, was an intelligent Catholic
priest, the confessor of the family. Whilst Doctor Entwerfen, who took
charge of the younger, was a worthy inoffensive man, whose passion for
trying experiments was his leading foible; but whose good-nature caused
him to be beloved, even by those to whom his follies made him appear
ridiculous.

Sir Ambrose Montagu, the father of Edmund and Edric, was a widower, and
these two sons constituted his whole family. The worthy Baronet was no
bad representative of what an old English country gentleman always has
been, and of what it still continued, even in that age of refinement.
He was as warm in his feelings as hasty in his temper, and as violent
in his prejudices, as any of his predecessors. In fact, the same causes
must always lead to the same results; and there is something in a
country life that never fails to produce certain peculiar effects upon
the mind.

Sir Ambrose, however, was far superior to the generality of his class,
and amongst innumerable other good qualities, he was an indulgent
master and an affectionate father. His foible, however,--for alas!
where shall we find character without one,--was a desire to show
occasionally how implicitly he could be obeyed. In general, he was easy
to a fault; and it was only when roused by opposition, that the natural
obstinacy of his disposition displayed itself. Edmund was his favourite
son; the early military glory of the youthful hero was flattering to
his parental pride, and his eyes would glisten with delight at the bare
mention of his darling's name.

It was one fine evening in the summer of the year 2126, when Sir
Ambrose Montagu, such as we have described him, was sitting in his
library, anxiously expecting intelligence from the army. To divert his
impatience, he had ordered the attendance of his steward Mr. Davis,
and endeavoured to amuse himself by hearing a report of the affairs of
his farm; whilst Abelard, an old butler, who had been in the Baronet's
service more than forty years, stood behind his master's chair holding
a small tray, on which was placed an elegant apparatus for smoking, and
a magnificent service of malleable glass, made to fold up to a pocket
size, when not in use, containing the baronet's evening refreshment.

Sir Ambrose was above seventy; and his long white hair hung in waving
curls upon his shoulders, as he now sat in his comfortable elastic
arm-chair, leaning one elbow upon the table before him. His features
had been very handsome, and his complexion still retained that look of
health and cleanness, which, in a green old age, is the sure indication
of a well-spent life. His countenance, though intelligent, was unmarked
by the traces of any stormy passions; the cares and troubles of life
seemed to have passed gently over him, and content had smoothed the
wrinkles age might have made upon his brow; whilst the tall thin
figure of Mr. Davis, as he stood reverentially bending forward, his
hat in his hand, and his whole demeanour expressing a singular mixture
of preciseness and habitual respect, contrasted strongly with the
dignified appearance of his master.

The windows of the library opened to the ground, and looked out upon a
fine terrace, shaded by a verandah, supported by trellis-work, round
which, twined roses mingled with vines. Below, stretched a smiling
valley, beautifully wooded, and watered by a majestic river winding
slowly along; now lost amidst the spreading foliage of the trees that
hung over its banks, and then shining forth again in the sun like a
lake of liquid silver. Beyond, rose hills majestically towering to the
skies, their clear outline now distinctly marked by the setting sun, as
it slowly sunk behind them, shedding its glowing tints of purple and
gold upon their heathy sides; whilst some of its brilliant rays even
penetrated through the leafy shade of the verandah, and danced like
summer lightning upon the surface of a mirror of polished steel which
hung directly in face of Sir Ambrose.

"What a lovely evening!" exclaimed the worthy baronet, gazing with a
delighted eye upon the rich landscape before him; "often as I have
looked upon this scene, methinks every time I see it I discover some
new beauty. How finely that golden tint which the sun throws upon the
tops of those trees is relieved by the deep masses of shadow below!"

"It is a fine evening," said Davis, bowing low, "and if your honour
pleases, I think we had better get the patent steam-mowing apparatus in
motion to-morrow. If the sun should be as hot to-morrow as it has been
to-day, I am sure the hay will make without using the burning glass at
all."

"Do as you like, Davis," returned his master, taking his pipe, "you
know I leave these matters entirely to you."

"And does not your honour think I had better give the barley a little
rain? It will be all burnt up, if this weather continues; and if your
honour approves, it may be done immediately, for I saw a nice black
heavy-looking cloud sailing by just now, and I can get the electrical
machine out in five minutes to draw it down, if your honour thinks fit."

"I have already told you I leave these things entirely to you, Davis,"
returned the baronet, puffing out volumes of smoke from his hookah.
"Inundate the fields if you will; you have my full permission to do
whatever you please with them, so that you don't trouble me any more
about the matter."

"But I would not wish to act without your honour's full conviction,"
resumed the persevering steward. "Your honour must be aware of the
aridity of the soil, and of the impossibility that exists of a proper
development of the incipient heads, unless they be supplied with an
adequate quantity of moisture."

"You are very unreasonable, Davis," aid Sir Ambrose; "most of your
fraternity would be satisfied by being permitted to have their own way;
but you----"

"Excuse my interrupting your honour," cried Davis, bowing profoundly;
"but I cannot bear it to be thought that I was capable of persuading
your honour to take any steps, your honour might not thoroughly
approve. Now as to the germinization and ripening----"

"My good fellow!" exclaimed Sir Ambrose, smiling at the energy with
which Davis spoke--his thin figure waving backwards and forwards in the
sunshine, and his earnest wish to convince his master, almost depriving
his voice of its usual solemn and sententious tone. "As I said before,
I give you full and free liberty to burn, dry, or drown my fields, as
you may think fit; empowering you to take any steps you judge proper,
either to germinate or ripen corn upon any part of my estate whatever,
only premising, that in future you never trouble me upon the subject;
and so good night."

This being spoken in a tone of voice Davis did not dare to disobey, he
slowly retired, apparently as much annoyed at having his own way, as
some people are at being contradicted; when suddenly a brilliant flash
of light gleamed on the baronet's polished mirror. "Ah! what was that?"
exclaimed Sir Ambrose, starting up, and dashing his pipe upon the
ground.

He gazed eagerly upon the mirror for a few seconds in breathless
anxiety, bending forwards in a listening attitude, and not daring to
stir, as though he feared the slightest movement might destroy the
pleasing illusion. The flash was repeated again and again in rapid
succession, whilst a peal of silver bells began to ring their rounds
in liquid melody. "Thank God! thank God!" exclaimed the aged baronet,
sinking upon his knees, and clasping his hands together, whilst the big
tears rolled rapidly down his face, "My Edmund has conquered! my Edmund
is safe!"

The faithful servants of Sir Ambrose followed the example of their
master, and for some minutes the whole party appeared lost in silent
thanksgiving; the silver bells still continuing their harmonious
sweetness, though in softer and softer strains, till at last they
gradually died away upon the ear. Sir Ambrose started from his knees
as the melody ceased, and desiring Abelard to summon Edric and Father
Morris, he rushed upon the terrace, followed by Davis, to examine a
telegraph placed upon a mount at little distance, so as to be seen
from one end of it: the light and music just mentioned, being a
signal always given, when some important information was about to be
transmitted.

The sun had now sunk behind the hills, and the shades of evening were
rapidly closing in as the baronet, with streaming eyes, watched, the
various movements of the machine. "One, two, and six!" said he; "yes,
that signifies he has won the battle, and is safe. My heart told me
so, when I saw the signal flash. My darling Edmund!--two, four, and
eight--he has subdued the Germans, and taken the whole of the fine
province of France. Six, six, and four--alas! my failing eyes are
too weak to see distinctly. Davis, look I implore you! The signal is
changing before we have discovered its meaning! For mercy's sake, look
before it be too late! Alas! alas! I had forgotten your eyes are as
feeble as mine own. Oh, Davis! where is Edric? Why is not he here to
assist his poor old father at such a moment as this?"

In the meantime, Edric was, as usual, engaged in those abstract
speculations with Dr. Entwerfen, which now formed the only pleasure of
his existence, and which he pursued with an eagerness that made all the
ordinary affairs of life appear tasteless and insipid. His imagination
had become heated by long dwelling upon the same theme; and a strange,
wild, indefinable craving to hold converse with a disembodied spirit
haunted him incessantly. He had long buried this feverish anxiety in
his own breast, and tried in vain to subdue it; but it seemed to hang
upon his steps, to present itself before him wherever he went, and, in
short, to pursue him with the malignancy of a demon.

"What is the matter with you, Edric?" said Dr. Entwerfen to his pupil,
the day we have already mentioned. "You are so changed, I scarcely know
you, and your eyes have a wild expression, absolutely terrific."

"I am, indeed, half mad," returned Edric, with a melancholy smile;
"and yet, perhaps, you will laugh when I tell you the reason of my
uneasiness. I am tormented by an earnest desire to communicate with
one who has been an inhabitant of the tomb. I would fain know the
secrets of the grave, and ascertain whether the spirit be chained after
death to its earthly covering of clay, condemned till the day of final
resurrection to hover over the rotting mass of corruption that once
contained it; or whether the last agonies of death free it from its
mortal ties, and leave it floating, free as air, in the bright regions
of ethereal space?"

"You know my opinion," said the doctor.

"I do," replied the pupil; "but forgive me if I add--I do not feel
satisfied with it: in fact mine is not a character to be satisfied with
building my faith upon that of any other man. I would see, and judge
for myself."

"I do not blame you," resumed the doctor; "a reasonable being should
believe nothing he cannot prove;--however, to remove your doubts, I am
convinced we have only occasion to step into the adjoining church-yard,
and try my galvanic battery of fifty surgeon power, (which you must
allow is surely enough to re-animate the dead,) upon a body, and
then----"

"Hold! hold!" cried Edric, shuddering. "My blood freezes in my veins,
at the thought of a church-yard:--your words recall a horrible dream
that I had last night, which, even now, dwells upon my mind, and
resists all the efforts I can make to shake it off."

"Tell it to me, then," resumed the doctor; "for when the imagination is
possessed by horrible fantasies, it is often relieved by speaking of
them to another person."

"I thought," said Edric, "that I was wandering in a thick gloomy wood,
through which I had the utmost difficulty to make my way. The black
trees, frowning in awful majesty above my head, twined together in
masses, so as almost to obstruct my path. Suddenly, a fearful light
flashed upon me, and I saw at my feet a horrid charnel house, where the
dying mingled terrifically with the dead. The miserable living wretches
turned and writhed with pain, striving in vain to escape from the mass
of putrescence heaped upon them. I saw their eye-balls roll in agony--I
watched the distortion of their features, and, making a violent effort
to relieve one who had almost crawled to my feet, I shrank back with
horror as I found the arm I grasped give way to my touch, and a
disgusting mass of corruption crumble beneath my fingers!--Shuddering
I awoke--a cold sweat hanging upon my brows, and every nerve thrilling
with convulsive agony."

"Mere visionary terrors," said the doctor. "You have suffered
your imagination to dwell upon one subject, till it is become
morbid.--However, though I do not see any reason why your dream should
make you decline my offer, I will not urge it if it give you pain."

"Is it not strange," continued Edric, apparently pursuing the current
of his own thoughts, "that the mind should crave so earnestly what
the body shudders at; and yet, how can a mass of mere matter, which
we see sink into corruption the moment the spirit is withdrawn from
it, shudder? How can it even feel? I can scarcely analyse my own
sensations; but it appears to me that two separate and distinct spirits
animate the mass of clay that composes the human frame. The one, the
merely vital spark which gives it life and motion, and which we share
in common with brutes, and even vegetables; and the other, the divine
ethereal spirit, which we may properly term the soul, and which is a
direct emanation from God himself, only bestowed upon man."

"You know my sentiments upon the subject," replied the doctor,
"therefore I need not repeat them."

"I know," resumed Edric, "you think the organs of thought, reflection,
imagination, reason, and, in short, all that mysterious faculty which
we call the mind, material; and that as long as the body remains
uncorrupted they may be restored, provided circulation can be renewed:
for that you think the only principle necessary to set the animal
machine in motion."

"Can any thing be more clear?" said the doctor. "We all know that
circulation and the action of the lungs are inseparably connected,
and that if the latter be arrested, death must ensue. How frequently
are apparently dead bodies recovered by friction, which produces
circulation; and inflation of the lungs with air, which restores their
action. If your idea be correct, that the soul leaves the body the
instant what we call death takes place, how do you account for these
instances of resuscitation? Think you that the soul can be recalled to
the body after it has once quitted it? Or that it hovers over it in
air, attached to it by invisible ligatures, ready to be drawn back to
its former situation, when the body shall resume its vital functions?
You cannot surely suppose it remains in a dormant state, and is
reawakened with the body; for this would be inconsistent with the very
idea of an incorporeal spirit."

"Certainly," resumed Edric, "the spirit must be capable of existing
perfectly distinct from the body; though how, I own candidly my
imperfect reason cannot enable me to comprehend."

"I wish you would overcome your childish reluctance to trying an
experiment upon a corpse, as that must set your doubts at rest. For
if we could succeed in re-animating a dead body that has been long
entombed, so that it might enjoy its reasoning faculties, or, as you
call it, its soul in full perfection, my opinion would be completely
established."

"But where shall we find a perfect body, which has been dead a
sufficient time to prevent the possibility of its being only in a
trance?--For even if I could conquer the repugnance I feel at the
thought of touching such a mass of cold mortality, as that presented in
my dream last night, according to your own theory, the organs must be
perfect, or the experiment will not be complete."

"What think you of trying to operate upon a mummy? You know a chamber
has been lately discovered in the great pyramid, which is supposed to
be the real tomb of Cheops; and where, it is said, the mummies of that
great king and the principal personages of his household have been
found in a state of wonderful preservation."

"But mummies are so swathed up."

"Not those of kings and princes. You know all travellers, both ancient
and modern, who have seen them, agree, that they are wrapped merely in
folds of red and white linen, every finger and even every toe distinct;
thus, if we could succeed in resuscitating Cheops, we need not even
touch the body; as the clothing it is wrapped in will not at all
encumber its movements."

"The idea is feasible, and, as you rightly say, if it can be put into
execution, it will set the matter at rest for ever. I should also like
to visit the pyramids, those celebrated monuments of antiquity, whose
origin is lost in the obscurity of the darker ages, and which seem to
have been spared by the devastating hand of time, purposely to perplex
the learned."

"You say right," cried the doctor with enthusiasm. "And who can tell
but that we may be the favoured happy mortals, destined to raise the
mystic veil that has so long covered them? we may be destined to
explore these wonderful monuments--to revive their mummies, and force
them to reveal the secrets of their prison-house. Cheops is said to
have built the great pyramid, and it is Cheops whom we shall endeavour
to re-animate! what then can be more palpable, than that it should be
he who is destined at length to reveal the mystery."

"Every word you utter, doctor, increases my ardent desire to put our
scheme into immediate execution: but how can we accomplish it? How
obtain my father's consent? You know it has long been his intention to
marry me to the niece of his friend the Duke of Cornwall, and you know
how obstinate both he and the duke are."

"Then if you remain in England, it is your intention to marry
Rosabella?"

"I would perish first."

"If that be the case, I confess I do not see the force of your
objection."

"True; for as long as I refuse to marry her, their anger will be the
same, whether I travel or remain in England. In fact, I shall be
happier at a distance than here, where I shall be annoyed by having the
subject constantly recurred to. Yet it pains me to speak upon it to my
father. He has so long cherished the idea of my marriage, and dwelt
upon it so fondly--"

"Then you had better stay,--relinquish all thoughts of scientific
discoveries, and settle contentedly on an estate in the country;
employing your time in regulating your farm, settling the disputes of
your neighbours, and bringing up your children, if you should happen to
have any."

"How can you torment me so?--If you could imagine the struggle in my
bosom, between inclination and duty, you would pity me."

"Do you think your presence necessary to your father's happiness?"

"No--if Edmund be with him, he will never think of me."

"And do you not think--nay, are you not certain, that an union with
Rosabella would make you miserable?"

"It is impossible to doubt it. Her violent temper, and the mystery
which hangs over the fate of her father, which she cannot bear to have
even alluded to, forbid the thought of happiness as connected with her."

"It is strange, so little should be known of her father. I never heard
the particulars of his story."

"No human being knows the whole, I believe, but the duke and my father.
However, I remember to have heard it rumoured when I was a child, that
he had committed some fearful crime, and that he was either executed,
or had destroyed himself."

"Then it is not surprising that it should pain Rosabella to hear him
spoken of. But to return to our subject: your answers have removed the
only doubts that can arise; and after what you have confessed yourself,
I cannot imagine what further hesitation you can feel--"

At this moment they were both startled; and the words were arrested on
the doctor's lips by a gentle tap at the door. It was old Abelard the
butler. Half ashamed of the unphilosophic terror he had evinced, the
doctor felt glad to be able to hide his emotion under the appearance
of anger, and demanded peevishly, what was the matter. "Have I not
told you a hundred times," continued he, "that I do not like to be
interrupted at my studies! and that nothing is more disagreeable than
to have one's attention distracted, when it has been fixed upon an
affair of importance!"

"I do not attempt to controvert the axiom you have just propounded,"
returned Abelard, speaking in a slow precise manner, as though he
weighed every syllable before he drawled it forth: "for undeniable
facts do not admit of contradiction. However, as the message with
which I stand charged at the present moment relates to master Edric,
instead of yourself, I humbly opine, no blame can attach itself to me,
on account of the unpremeditated interruption of which you allege me
culpable."

"And what have you to say to me?" demanded Edric.

"That the worthy gentleman, your respectable progenitor, requests you
instantly to put in exercise your locomotive powers to join him on the
terrace, to the end, that there your superior visual faculties may
afford _soulagement_ to the mental anxiety under which he at present
labours, by aiding him to develop the intelligence conveyed to him by
the telegraphic machine."

"What!" exclaimed Edric, eagerly, and then, without waiting a reply, he
darted forward, and in a few seconds was by the side of his father.

Abelard gazed after him with amazement: "There is something very
astonishing," said he, addressing Dr. Entwerfen, "in the effervescence
of the animal spirits during youth. I labour under a complete
acatalepsy upon the subject; I should think it must arise from the
excessive elasticity of the nerves. Ideas strike--" but here, happening
unfortunately to look up, he too was struck to find Dr. Entwerfen had
vanished with his pupil, and unwilling to waste his eloquence upon the
empty air, he also departed; slowly and solemnly, however, according to
his custom, to join the party assembled on the terrace.



CHAPTER III.


When Edric and Dr. Entwerfen reached Sir Ambrose, they found Father
Morris at his side, explaining with his usual promptness and clearness
the meaning of the different signs of the telegraph.

"My dear Edric," exclaimed Sir Ambrose, throwing himself into the arms
of his son, "my dear, dear Edric! your brother has gained the battle!
The Germans are completely overthrown. He has taken their king, and
several of their princes prisoners; and the fine province of France is
ceded to us entirely!"

"I am rejoiced to hear it," cried Edric, returning his father's embrace
with emotion, "and he, I hope, is safe?"

"I hope so too," replied Sir Ambrose; "though he says nothing of
himself: but you know Edmund: 'Our troops won this,' 'our army gained
that!'--'the soldiers fought bravely!'--he never speaks of himself. To
hear him relate a battle, nobody would imagine he had ever had any
thing to do with it."

"It is too dark to see any more," said Father Morris, who had been for
some time watching the telegraph, and now turned from it in despair;
"the machine is still in motion, but it is too dark for me to decipher
what it means."

The attention of all present was directed to the sky as he spoke. It
was indeed become of pitchy blackness, a general gloom seemed to hang
over the face of nature; the birds flew twittering for shelter, a low
wind moaned through the trees, and, in short, every thing seemed to
portend a storm.

"Had we not better return to the house?" said Dr. Entwerfen, looking
round with something like fear at these alarming indications, for his
heated imagination had not yet quite recovered the effect of the awful
speculations he had so lately been indulging in. "What is that black
spot there? I declare it moves! Good heavens, what can it be?"

"Really, doctor!" returned Abelard, "you provoke the action of my
risible faculties. That opaque body which you perceive at a little
distance, and which seems to have occasioned such a fearful excitement
of your nervous system, is only a living specimen of the corvus genus,
who has probably descended upon earth to search for his vermicular
repast."

"I beg your pardon, Mr. Abelard," rejoined Mr. Davis, speaking with his
usual precision, "but, according to my humble apprehension, you labour
under a slight mistake as to that particular. The feathered biped
that has so forcibly attracted your attention, appears to me, not one
of the corvi, but rather one of the graculi; a variety of extremely
rare occurrence in this vicinity, and which are sometimes called
incendriæ aves, from their unfortunate propensity to put habitations
in combustion, by picking up small pieces of phlogisticated carbon,
and carrying them in their beaks to the combination of straw and other
materials, sometimes piled upon the apex of a house, to defend it from
the inroads of pluviosity."

"It is of no use," sighed Sir Ambrose, still straining his eyes to
endeavour to decipher the movements of the telegraph, the outlines of
which only now appeared, stamped as if in jet, and strongly relieved by
the dark grey sky beyond.

"It is of no use," reiterated Father Morris, and the whole party
were preparing to retire, when suddenly a vivid light flashed upon
them from the hill, and instantly a long line of torches seemed to
stream along the horizon. "He is coming home, but will write more
to-morrow," exclaimed the whole party simultaneously; for all knew well
by experience, the meaning of that signal. "He is coming home, thank
God!" repeated Sir Ambrose, his pallid lips quivering, and every limb
trembling with agitation.

"Look to my father," cried Edric, "he will faint."

"Oh no, no!" repeated Sir Ambrose: "thank God! thank God!"

"Lean upon me, at least," said Edric, affectionately.

Sir Ambrose complied; and, supported by his son, still gazed anxiously
on the torches, their red glare shedding an unnatural light around
them, and making the surrounding darkness only appear still more
intense. Thunder now growled in the distance, and rain began to fall in
large drops; yet still Sir Ambrose gazed upon the torches, and could
not be persuaded to leave the terrace. These wild, fearful looking
lights, gleaming through the tempest, seemed a connecting link between
him and his darling son; and it was not till they were obscured by the
thick heavy rain, and even the outline of the telegraph vanished in the
gathering clouds around, that he could be induced to seek for shelter.

Sir Ambrose slept little that night: the sleep of age is easily broken,
and perhaps the joyful agitation of his spirits had produced a slight
access of fever. He rose with the dawn; and, long before the rest of
his family had descended, summoned Abelard, that he might dispatch him
to inform his most intimate friend the Duke of Cornwall of the news.

"Go," said he, as soon as the drowsy butler made his appearance. "I
am sure the duke feels nearly as great an interest in the success of
Edmund as myself, and will not be displeased if he be disturbed a
little earlier than usual upon such an occasion."

"I obey," replied Abelard. "I will shake off my somnolent propensities,
and speed with the velocity of the electric fluid to the castle of the
noble chieftain."

"Take heed you do not forget your message by the way," repeated Sir
Ambrose, smiling.

"Not all the waters of Lethe could wash such somnifugous tidings from
my memory," replied the butler. "Your honour's words are imprinted upon
the mnemonic organ of my brain; and my sensorium must be divided from
my cerebellum ere they can be effaced."

The Duke of Cornwall had been the intimate friend of Sir Ambrose almost
from infancy. They had been companions at school and at college;
besides which, peculiar circumstances which had happened in their
youth, had linked them together in indissoluble ties. What these
circumstances were, however, no one exactly knew, except the parties
concerned, and they always avoided alluding to them. All that was
generally understood upon the subject, being, that Sir Ambrose had,
in some manner, been instrumental in saving the duke's life; but how,
when, or where, was never clearly explained.

The Duke of Cornwall was of the Royal family of England, and closely
allied to the throne. His father had been brother to that prince who
had so stedfastly refused the crown when it was offered to him by
the ambassadors from the people; and as that prince had left no male
descendants, the duke might be considered as legitimately entitled to
reign. The thought of disturbing by his claims the female dynasty now
established, had, however, never entered into the mind of the duke;
who, with half the sense of his friend Sir Ambrose, possessed, at
least, ten times the obstinacy; and having taken it into his head that
he would marry his daughter Elvira to Edmund Montagu, and his niece
Rosabella to Edric, he turned all his thoughts, plans, and wishes
to the accomplishment of this object, and suffered no other idea to
interfere with it.

Those, however, who were acquainted with the characters of the young
people, thought the duke had quite reversed the natural order of things
by this arrangement; and that the strong mind and haughty spirit of
Rosabella would have suited better with the ambitious Edmund; whilst
the soft yielding disposition and feminine graces of Elvira seemed
to harmonize exactly with the taste of the philosophic Edric. No
persuasions, however, could induce the duke to deviate in the slightest
degree from his design. Like many of the higher classes of society in
those days of universal education, he affected an excessive plainness
and simplicity in his language; so much so, indeed, as sometimes
almost to degenerate into rudeness, in order that it might be clearly
distinguished from the elaborate and scientific expressions of the
vulgar; and when urged upon the subject of these intended marriages, he
would roughly say, "Don't talk to me; there is nothing like a little
contradiction in the married life. If two people were to agree to live
together, who were always of the same opinion, they would die of ennui
in six months. No, no, I'm right, and so they'll find it in the end."

He would then shake his head, and put on such a look of positive
determination, that his friends would generally retire in silence,
feeling it perfectly in vain to attempt to alter his resolution. As to
consulting the inclinations of the young people themselves, the idea
never entered his imagination. "Children don't know what is good for
them," he would reply sharply, if any one presumed to suggest such a
thought, "and it is the duty of parents and guardians to decide in such
matters."

Sir Ambrose, wishing the connection for his sons, and respecting even
the whims of his friend, had as yet never interfered, and the young
people had also appeared silently to acquiesce. Rebellious spirits,
however, were hidden under this apparent calm; and the duke was soon to
learn from experience, that human beings were rather more difficult to
manage than a drove of turkeys, or a flock of sheep; a fact, of which
before he did not seem to have the slightest suspicion.

The duke had already risen, and was in his garden, when the messenger
of Sir Ambrose arrived panting for breath, and quite exhausted by the
velocity which, as he expressed it, he had employed in endeavouring to
execute with the utmost expedition, the implied wishes of his master.
The duke was surprised to see him.--"What brings you out so early,
Abelard?" demanded he.

"Oh, your grace," replied the butler, gasping for utterance, "the haste
I have made has impeded my respiration; and the blood, finding the
pulmonary artery free, rushes with such force along the arterial canal
to the aorta, that--that--I am in imminent danger of being suffocated."

"Pshaw!" said the duke.

"Besides," continued Abelard, "a saline secretion distils from every
pore of my skin, in a serous transudation, from the excessive exertions
I have made use of."

"And what has occasioned these violent exertions?"

"The earnest desire experienced by Sir Ambrose to transmit with all
the expedition possible, to your grace, the intelligence he has just
received of the acquisition of a victory by Master Edmund, in the
hostile territory of Germany."

"Victory!" shouted the duke, "Victory--Rosabella! Elvira! where are
you, girls? Here's tidings to rouse you from your slumbers.--And how is
he, Abelard? Is the brave boy safe himself? God bless him! victory will
be nothing to us, if we are to lose him."

"It occasions me excessive chagrin," replied Abelard, "that I am
totally unable to resolve that interrogatory to your grace's complete
satisfaction. Taciturnity, however, upon some subjects, is, I believe,
generally considered synonymous with prosperity; and, as Master Edmund,
to the best of my credence, conveyed no information relative to his
sanity in the communication made by him to his paternal ancestor, I
humbly opine that there are no reasonable grounds for supposing it
has suffered any material deterioration in consequence of the late
sanguinary encounter in which he has been engaged."

The duke had not patience to wait the conclusion of this speech; but
hobbled away as fast as his infirmities would permit, vociferating for
Elvira and Rosabella, in a voice that might have silenced Stentor;
and Abelard, finding himself alone, was fain to follow his example,
marvelling as he went along, however, at the excessive impatience of
the fiery spirits of the age, which would not permit people to remain
stationary, even to hear, what he called, a compendious replication to
the very questions which they themselves had propounded.

Whatever faults might fall to the share of the Duke of Cornwall, that
of a cold heart was certainly not amongst the number, and the delight
he felt on hearing of Edmund's triumph could not have been greater if
the youthful hero had been his own son. His eyes, indeed, absolutely
sparkled with transport, when he communicated the intelligence to his
niece and daughter; and his tidings were not bestowed upon insensible
ears, for the breasts of both his youthful auditors throbbed with
pleasure at the news, though the causes of their emotions were
different. Elvira had been the idol of Edmund's homage from her
childhood; and she fancied she returned his passion with equal fervour;
but she deceived herself, and love was as yet a stranger to her heart.
Endowed with great beauty and superior talents; accustomed from her
earliest infancy to be worshipped by all around her; surrounded by
flatterers, till even flattery itself had lost its charm, Elvira was
as yet insensible to love; why she was so, we leave to philosophers to
explain; we merely state facts and leave others to draw conclusions.

Rosabella's character was essentially different from that of her
cousin. Passion was the essence of her existence; and her dark eyes
flashed a fire that bespoke the intensity of her feelings. She loved
Edmund, but though she loved him with all that overwhelming violence,
that only a soul like hers could feel, yet she would not have scrupled
to sacrifice even him to her revenge, if she had thought he treated her
with negligence or contempt. She scorned the opinion of the world, and
regarded mankind in general but as slaves, whom she should honour by
trampling beneath her feet. Ambition, however, was her leading passion,
and even her love for Edmund struggled in vain for mastery against
it. This feeling was now highly gratified by the tidings of Edmund's
victory. She triumphed in his glory; and a deeper glow burnt upon her
cheek, from the proud consciousness she felt that she had not placed
her affections upon an unworthy object.

"We have no time to lose, girls," said the duke. "I would not miss
being with Sir Ambrose when he receives his letter, for kingdoms. Here,
Hyppolite! Augustus! get a balloon ready, and let us be off directly.
How tedious these fellows are! They might have removed a church steeple
in the time they have wasted about that balloon."

"If your grace would have a moment's patience," said Hyppolite, holding
the cords of the balloon. But his Grace had no patience; it was an
ingredient Nature had quite forgotten to put into his composition; and,
without waiting for the ascending ladder to be put down, he sprang into
the car in such haste the moment the balloon was brought to the door,
that he was in imminent danger of oversetting it. "So! so!" said he,
"very well! that will do,--and now girls, that you are safely embarked,
we will be off. Hyppolite! you will steer us:--and, Abelard, go you
into the buttery, and let my fellows give you something to eat; you
will want something after your fatigues. There! there, that will do;
don't let us hinder a moment----;" and the rest of his speech was lost
in air, as the balloon floated majestically away.

"It has often appeared very astonishing to me," said Abelard, after
watching the balloon till it was out of sight, "to observe how partial
great people are generally to an aërial mode of travelling; for my
part, I think the pedestrian manner infinitely more agreeable."

"_De gustibus non est disputandum_," replied Augustus, the duke's
footman, to whom this observation was addressed:--"But I think I
observe symptoms of lassitude about you, Mr. Abelard. Will you not
adjourn to the apartment of Mrs. Russel, our housekeeper, to repair
by some alimentary refreshment, the excessive exhaustion you have
sustained in the course of your morning's exertions?"

"Willingly, Mr. Augustus.--I own candidly, I feel the want of a little
wholesome nutrition. I shall, besides, be extremely happy to avail
myself of the opportunity fortune so benignantly presents, of paying my
respects to Mrs. Russel, whom I have not seen these three days."

The worthy housekeeper was equally rejoiced with Abelard at this
instance of fortune's benignity; a sort of sentimental flirtation
having been going on between them for the last thirty years. She
accordingly stroked down her snow-white apron, re-adjusted her mob cap,
and smoothed her grey hairs, which were divided upon her forehead,
with the most scrupulous exactness, before she advanced to welcome
her visitors. "What will you take, my dear Mr. Abelard?" said she, as
soon as he was within hearing; "what can you fancy? I have a delicious
corner of a cold venison pasty in my pantry."

"Words are altogether too feeble to express the transports of my
gratitude at receiving so gracious an accolade, beauteous Eloisa,"
replied the romantic butler; for thus, in allusion to his own name,
was he wont to call her. "But though you had only the rigours of the
Paraclete to invite me to, instead of the comforts of your well-stored
pantry, still would words be wanting to express the feeling of my bosom
on thus again beholding you."

"Spare my blushes!" said Mrs. Russel, casting her eyes upon the ground,
and playing with a corner of her apron. "I feel a roseate suffusion
glow upon my cheeks, as your flattering accents strike upon the
tympanum of my auricular organs."

"Oh, Mrs. Russel!" sighed Abelard, gazing upon her tenderly;--then,
after a short pause, he continued: "As to the aliments with which
your provident kindness would soulage my appetite--though venison be
a wholesome viand, and was reckoned by the ancients efficacious in
preventing fevers, and though the very mention of the savoury pasty
makes the eryptæ, usually employed in secreting the mucus of my tongue,
erect themselves, thereby occasioning an overflow of the saliva, yet
will I deny myself the indulgence, and content myself simply with a
boiled egg, as being more likely to agree with the present enfeebled
state of the digestive organs of my stomach."

"You shall have it instantly," cried Mrs. Russel.

"And will you have the kindness to superintend the culinary arrangement
of it yourself?" rejoined Abelard. "I do not like the albumen too
much coagulated; and I prefer it without any butyraceous oil, simply
flavoured by the addition of a small quantity of common muriate of
soda."

The egg was soon prepared and devoured. "Thank you, thank you! dear
Mrs. Russel," said Abelard; "this refection was most acceptable. I had
felt for some time the gastric juice corroding the coats of my stomach;
and still, though I have now given it some solid substance to act upon,
I think it would not be amiss to dilute its virulence by the addition
of a little fluid. Have you any thing cool and refreshing?"

"I have some bottled beer," replied Mrs. Russel; "but I am afraid the
carbonic acid gas has not been sufficiently disengaged during the
process of the vinous fermentation to render it wholesome; and there is
scarcely any alcohol in the whole composition----"

"That is exactly what I want," said Abelard; "for my physicians have
expressly forbidden stimulants. Provided the gluten that forms the germ
was properly separated in the preparation of the malt, and the seed
sufficiently germinated to convert the fecula into sugar, I shall be
perfectly satisfied."

"I can guarantee the accuracy of its preparation both with regard to
the malt and the beer," repeated Mrs. Russel; and the frothing fluid
soon sparkled in a goblet, to the infinite satisfaction of the thirsty
butler, who, after a hearty draught, vowed nectar itself was never
half so delicious; and that all the gods on Olympus would envy him, if
they could but taste his fare, and see the blooming Hebe that was his
cup-bearer.



CHAPTER IV.


When the balloon of the duke approached the habitation of Sir Ambrose,
its occupiers perceived the worthy baronet walking with hasty strides
towards the mount of the telegraph, which commanded an extensive view
of the surrounding country, followed by Edric and Dr. Entwerfen, who
appeared vainly endeavouring to persuade him to relax a speed so little
suited to his advanced years.

"Talk not to me of going slowly, when I expect news of my darling
Edmund!" exclaimed Sir Ambrose, continuing his rapid pace--his
heart beating with paternal pride, and his countenance beaming with
exultation.

"I am also anxious to hear of my brother," said Edric, "but after the
information we have already received by the telegraphic dispatch, it
appears to me that we have little more to learn of importance."

"Edric, you are not a father, and you can have no idea of a father's
anxiety," replied Sir Ambrose, hurrying on to the mount, as though
he hoped the rapidity of his motion would afford some relief to the
impatience of his mind; whilst the party of the duke, seeing the point
to which he was hastening, opened the valves of their balloon, and made
preparations to descend upon the same spot.

The duke and Sir Ambrose were always glad to meet, but as the present
occasion was one of more than ordinary interest, so they now greeted
each other with more than ordinary pleasure. The duke had always
been warmly attached to Edmund, and his voice actually trembled with
agitation as he exclaimed:--

"Well, my old friend, you see your brave boy is determined to keep us
alive still. Our blood would stagnate in our veins, if he did not give
us a fillip now and then to rouse us. But what does the young rogue say
of himself? I hope he's not wounded?"

"He never mentions himself," replied Sir Ambrose, tears glistening
in his eyes, as he pressed the hand of his friend warmly in his own;
"Edmund loves his country too devotedly to think of either peril or
reward in her service."

"But he shall have a reward!" cried the duke, laughing; "ay and a
fitting one too! Eh, Elvira, what say you?"

Elvira blushed, smiled, and looked down, as young ladies generally do
upon such occasions; whilst Sir Ambrose, who had now reached the summit
of the mount, was too eagerly looking round in every direction to hear
his friend's remark.

In those days, the ancient method of conveying the post having
been found much too slow for so enlightened a people, an ingenious
scheme had been devised, by which the letters were put into balls
and discharged by steam-cannon, from place to place; every town and
district having a piece of _toile metallique_, or woven wire, suspended
in the air, so as to form a kind of net to arrest the progress of the
ball, and being provided with a cannon to send it off again, when the
letters belonging to that neighbourhood should have been extracted:
whilst, to prevent accidents, the mail-post letter-balls were always
preceded by one of a similar description, made of thin wood, with a
hole in its side, which, collecting the wind as it passed along, made a
kind of whizzing noise, to admonish people to keep out of the way.

The mount on which Sir Ambrose now stood, commanded an extensive view,
and the scene it presented was beautiful in the extreme. On one side,
innumerable grass fields, richly wooded, and only divided from each
other by invisible iron fences, appeared like one vast park; whilst, on
the other, the waving corn, its full heads beginning to darken in the
sun, gave a rich glowing tint to the landscape. But Sir Ambrose thought
not of the prospect, he did not even see the murmuring brooks and
shady groves, the smiling vales and swelling hills, that constituted
its beauty; no, his attention was wholly occupied by a small black
spot he had just discovered on the edge of the horizon. In breathless
anxiety, his eyes almost starting from their sockets, he bent eagerly
forwards, gazing on this small and at first almost imperceptible speck.
It gradually grew larger and larger--it rapidly approached! and in a
few seconds a slight noise buzzed through the air, as the long-expected
balls whizzed past him.

Sir Ambrose's agitation was excessive; with trembling limbs and livid
lips, he hurried to the nearest station, which luckily was close at
hand, and round which several of his household were assembled, in their
impatience to hear the news. Sir Ambrose could not speak, but the
person whose province it was to sort the letters guessed his errand,
and opening the bag held forth the ardently expected treasure. Gasping
for breath, Sir Ambrose eagerly attempted to take it, but his hands
were unequal to the task, the violence of his emotion overpowered him,
and after a short, but fruitless struggle, he fell senseless on the
ground.

The confusion produced by this unexpected incident, was indescribable.
The old duke walked up and down, wringing his hands, and exclaiming,
"What shall we do? What will become of us?" whilst the rest of the
party endeavoured to give assistance to Sir Ambrose.

"Parental affection," said Davis, who had an unfortunate propensity for
making long speeches precisely at the moment when nobody was likely to
attend to him, "Parental affection has been universally allowed by all
writers, both ancient and modern, to be one of the strongest passions
of the soul, and the most exalted instances might be produced of the
surprising energy of this universal sentiment."

"For Heaven's sake help me to raise my father," cried Edric: "Give him
air, or he will die!"

"Patience," continued Davis, "is necessary in all things, and is
perhaps one of the most useful and estimable qualities of life. It
enables us to bear, without shrinking, the bitterest evils that can
assail us. Without patience, philosophy would never have made those
wonderful discoveries that subjugate nature to our yoke."

"Fetch me some water," exclaimed Edric, "or he will expire before your
eyes."

"It appears to me," said a labourer, who had been mending a steam
digging-machine in a neighbouring field, and who now stood leaning upon
his work, and looking on gravely at all that passed, without attempting
to offer the least assistance;--"It appears to me that it would be
highly improper to administer the aqueous fluid in its natural state of
frigidity, under the existing circumstances. The present suspension of
animation under which Sir Ambrose labours, is evidently occasioned by
want of circulation. Now, as it is the property of hot liquors, rather
than cold ones, to supply the stimulant necessary for the reproduction
of circulation, I opine that hot water would answer the purpose better
than cold."

In the mean time Father Morris had brought some water from a
neighbouring fountain, and throwing it on the patient's face, Sir
Ambrose opened his eyes: for some moments he stared wildly around him,
but, as soon as he began to recollect what had passed, he implored
Father Morris to give him his ardently desired letter.

"You are not yet equal to reading it," said Father Morris
compassionately; "I fear the exertion will be too much for you."

"Oh give it me! give it me," exclaimed the poor old man; "if a spark of
mercy remain in your soul, do not keep me in this agony!"

It was impossible to resist the tone of real anguish that accompanied
these words, as Father Morris put the letter into his hands.--Sir
Ambrose took it eagerly; though he trembled so, that he could scarcely
break the seal. At last, he tore it open and gazed at its contents, but
he could not read a word; he dashed away his tears, and rubbed his eyes
impatiently--all was in vain--the writing was still illegible--"Read!
read!" cried he, in a voice trembling with agitation, "For Heaven's
sake, read!--will no one have pity on me?"

Father Morris took the letter, and read it aloud, whilst Sir Ambrose
sate--his eyes raised to Heaven, his hands clasped together, and
the tears rolling down his aged cheeks, listening to his words, and
drinking in every syllable. After giving a circumstantial account of
the battle, and assuring his father that he had not been wounded,
Edmund proceeded thus. "The Queen has written me a letter of
approbation in her own hand, and has been graciously pleased to signify
her intention of honouring me with a triumphal entry into London;
she has likewise conferred upon me letters of nobility. The goodness
of my sovereign makes a deep impression upon my breast; but for the
rest, I assure you that neither the applauses of the multitude, nor
the privilege of writing Lord before my name, can afford a moment's
satisfaction to a heart that pants only for the pleasure of seeing
again those most dear to it; nor shall I enjoy my triumph unless those
I love be present to give it zest."

"I congratulate you, my dear patron!" exclaimed Father Morris, as soon
as he had finished; "I congratulate you from my inmost soul!"

"Go to his triumph!" exclaimed the duke, rubbing his hands in
ecstasy; "Yes, yes, that we will; won't we, my old friend? God bless
him! I'm glad he is not hurt, though. And so, you see, in spite of
all his glory, he can't be happy without us. How prettily he says
that!--'Not all the approbation of my sovereign, the praises of the
people'--nor--nor--what is it? I don't remember the exact words, but
I know the sense was, that he couldn't be happy without us, and, God
bless him! I'm sure I'm as happy as he can be, at the thought of seeing
him."

Sir Ambrose could not reply, but the tears ran down his aged cheeks
like rain, as his heart breathed a silent offering of thanksgiving to
the Almighty Being who had thus bestowed victory upon his son; and his
lips murmured some inarticulate sounds of transport; whilst Elvira and
Rosabella mingled their tears with his, for joy often becomes painful
and seeks for a relief like grief.

The party now slowly returned to the mansion of Sir Ambrose, so
completely occupied in discussing Edmund's letter, as to be totally
unaware that Edric had not accompanied them; yet such was the case. The
youthful philosopher's heart had swelled almost to bursting, as he had
listened to the reading of his brother's letter, and he now rushed into
a thick wood, shelving down to a romantic stream, which formed part of
the pleasure-grounds of Sir Ambrose.

Almost without knowing where he was going, Edric plunged amongst the
trees, and threw himself upon a grassy bank under their shade, upon
the border of the rivulet. The gentle murmuring of the water, gave a
delightful sense of refreshing coolness, particularly agreeable from
the burning heat of the day; and Edric lay, his eyes fixed upon the
sparkling waves as they danced in the sunbeams, with both his hands
pressed firmly upon his throbbing temples, endeavouring in vain to
analyze the new and strange emotions that struggled for mastery in his
bosom. By degrees he became more calm; and though his heart still beat
with feelings he could not quite explain, he felt soothed by the softly
gliding streamlet; and the stormy passions of his breast seemed lulled
to tranquillity as one hand fell carelessly down by his side, and the
other merely supported the head it no longer constrained.

It was not envy that occasioned Edric's emotions; but shame and
indignation burnt in his bosom when he recollected that he was wasting
his days in comparative obscurity, whilst his brother, only a few years
older than himself, was ennobling the name bequeathed to him by his
ancestors.

"And cannot I also become famous?" thought he, his heart swelling with
emulation. "Though I abhor the profession of a soldier, are not other
ways open to me of attaining eminence? Why should I not exert myself?
I will remain in indolence no longer. I, too, will prove myself worthy
of my forefathers, and show the world that the exalted blood of the
Montagus has not degenerated in my veins!" His eyes sparkled with the
thought, and he half raised himself, as though eager to put it into
immediate execution. A moment's reflection, however, restored him to
himself, and he could not help smiling at his own folly. "And yet I
call myself a philosopher," thought he: "Alas! alas! how little do we
know ourselves; and after all, the pursuit of knowledge is the only
employment worthy of a man of sense: the transitory applause of the
multitude, it is beneath him to accept. Nature is the goddess I adore;
and if it should be granted to me to explore her secrets, I shall be
the happiest of mankind. But why should I pass my life in anxious
cravings never destined to be realized? The events of to-day have only
proved yet more clearly the little value my society is of to my father.
Were I absent, I should soon be forgotten. Why then should I not travel
and satisfy these restless wishes that gnaw at my heart and poison
every pleasure? I was not born to rest contented with the dull routine
of domestic life, and I detest hypocrisy: I will seek my father; and,
explaining my real sentiments, break off this hated marriage and set
off for Egypt immediately."

Satisfied with this resolution, Edric rose and walked hastily
towards his father's mansion, with all that inward vigour which the
consciousness of having made up one's mind is certain to bestow; and
which, perhaps, is one of the most agreeable sensations that can be
experienced by the human mind, as that of suspense or indecision is
undoubtedly one of the most unpleasant.

Edric found his father and the duke busily engaged in consulting upon
their intended journey, which was an event in both their lives; for
as, since the universal adoption of balloons, journeys were performed
without either trouble or expense, the rich had lost all inducement to
undertake them, and it was rare for a man of rank to quit his family
mansion unless he had some post at court.

"I have a palace in London," said the duke, "which I hope you will make
your home; though it has been so long unused that I doubt whether it
will be fit for your reception."

"Do not distress yourself about making arrangements for my family,"
replied Sir Ambrose; "for you know I have a brother living in London,
and though we have not seen each other for years, I think upon such an
occasion as this I ought to forget all animosity, and visit him, if he
will receive me."

"True," rejoined the duke; "I never thought of that: but you are quite
right. Though he did make a foolish marriage, the ties of blood are too
strong to be easily shaken off, and this is an excellent opportunity
for a reconciliation."

"Another thing also weighs with me," continued Sir Ambrose: "you know
that though I was so much hurt at his marriage, I was in some measure
the cause of it."

"You the cause of it!" exclaimed the duke, in excessive surprise.

"You know," resumed Sir Ambrose, "my brother was always a bookworm;
and the last time I visited him, I found him so uncomfortable, and his
domestic affairs so dreadfully neglected, that I advised him to get an
active managing woman to act as housekeeper. He did so, and in twelve
months made her--Mrs. Montagu."

"I always thought your brother was too learned to know any thing
useful, and too clever to be able to take care of himself; but I own I
never suspected him of being such a fool as to marry."

"Perhaps I was a greater one than himself in resenting his conduct, for
I believe they get on very well. Mrs. Montagu does not want sense."

"I do not doubt her abilities, or that she was extremely well fitted
for her original station; but very different qualities are required
in the wife of Mr. Montagu from those which were suited to his
housekeeper."

"I know it; and also that there is perhaps nothing more difficult
than for a person in her situation to preserve the medium between
affectation and vulgarity. However, I am told that though Mrs.
Montagu cannot quite divest herself of the pedantry she acquired at a
charity-school in her youth; and though she still talks as learnedly
as if she had never ventured beyond the precincts of the kitchen; yet,
that she makes my brother a good wife, and they say her daughter Clara
is a charming girl."

"I can imagine nothing good springing from such a source."

"Prejudice! my dear duke, sheer prejudice!"

"Well, well, I will say no more about it; for, as you justly say, if
Mrs. Montagu makes your brother a good wife, and he is happy with her,
I don't see any right any body else has to trouble himself about the
matter: and so, as I don't like quarrels in families, I think you are
quite right in wishing to see your brother. However, if they do not
make you comfortable, I hope you'll remember you have another friend,
and so we'll now wish you good day: come, girls!"

And the old duke trotted off, followed by his fair companions. Edric's
heart throbbed violently when he found himself alone with his father;
the moment was arrived he had been so ardently wishing for, and yet
he was silent. He had scarcely had patience to wait the end of his
father's conference with the duke; and whilst it had lasted, he had
been arranging and re-arranging a thousand times in his mind, the
phrases he meant to make use of; yet now they seemed to have all
vanished from his memory, and he stood gazing through the open window,
his mind feeling a perfect chaos, and without being able to recollect
one single word of what he had determined to say. Sir Ambrose, in the
mean time, felt perfectly happy, and in the buoyancy of his spirits
tapped his son upon the shoulder.

"What all amort! Sir Knight of the Woeful Countenance," said he; "Come,
come! I will have no gloomy looks to-day. But, heyday! what is the
matter with you, Edric? You don't smile--are you unhappy? You look as
if you had something upon your mind."

"I have something upon my mind, my dear father," said Edric, solemnly;
"and something that I wish to communicate to you." He stopped when
he had said this, but Sir Ambrose did not reply, and, for some
minutes, neither spoke. At length, Edric broke the pause, which
had been one of perfect agony to him, and, speaking very fast, he
exclaimed, "Yet I don't know why I should hesitate. It is that I do
not love Rosabella--that I never can marry her--that I should be
entirely miserable even to think of it--and, that this is my fixed and
unalterable determination."

"Heyday!" cried Sir Ambrose; "what is all this? Not marry Rosabella!"

"Never; no tortures should induce me! I am convinced she would make
me wretched," continued Edric, hurrying through what he meant to say.
"Our tempers don't assimilate. We should both be miserable. I should be
very sorry to cause either you or the duke a moment's uneasiness--very
sorry--I would die first! But to marry Rosabella would be worse than
dying a thousand deaths--we should be the most wretched of human
beings, and you would be unhappy at seeing me so."

"Mercy on me!" cried Sir Ambrose, heaving a deep sigh, and feeling
almost out of breath at the volubility of his son. "I thought you dumb
just now, but I see that you can use your tongue fast enough when
the subject pleases you. Not marry Rosabella! Is the boy mad? Is she
not young, beautiful, and highly accomplished? What would you have,
I wonder? You certainly must be out of your senses to refuse such a
woman; and one too, so superior to yourself, in rank and fortune."

"In fortune I allow her to be superior; but I think the mystery
attached to the name of her father, more than compensates for any
difference of rank."

"Don't talk about what you can't understand. Duke Edgar is dead, and
his faults should be buried with him; besides, it is hard the girl
should suffer for the sins of her father."

"What were those sins, my dear Sir? I have often heard them darkly
hinted at, as something almost too dreadful to mention; but I never
heard the particulars."

"Edric," said Sir Ambrose, solemnly, "if you have the least regard for
my feelings, or entertain any duty for me as a son, never again advert
to that subject. Circumstances there are relating to it, of a deep,
awful, and mysterious nature, with which I am well acquainted, but
which I have taken a solemn oath never to reveal. Never speak of them
again; the bare remembrance makes me shudder--oh! would to Heaven I
could forget them!"

"I am very sorry, Sir, that my question was such as to give you pain:
but rest assured that my curiosity shall never again annoy you."

"I am not angry with you, Edric. You could not know the feelings your
question would create in my bosom, and it was natural you should wish
to know something of the father of your intended wife. However, think
no more of him. Consider the present duke as your future father-in-law;
and if possible forget that such a person as Duke Edgar ever existed."

"You forget, Sir," said Edric, firmly but respectfully, "that I have
before declared my determination never to marry Rosabella."

"Nonsense!" rejoined his father, "you don't know what you are talking
about. The world would call me as mad as yourself if I were to let you
act so foolishly: besides, what would the duke say?"

"To speak candidly, Sir, that is what principally annoys me; for I
trust that your good sense and affectionate disposition will soon
enable _you_ to see the affair in its proper light."

"That is to say, you think I am an old fool, and that you can coax me
to any thing you please. But you shall find your error. You shall learn
I will not be coaxed; I will be obeyed. You shall marry Rosabella, or
you shall leave my house."

"My dear father!" said Edric, attempting to take Sir Ambrose's hand.

"Away, Sir!" cried his father, shaking him off, "obedience far
outweighs words. If I am your dear father, you will act in compliance
with my wishes; and if you do not, it is a mockery to call me 'dear.'"

"I cannot marry Rosabella."

"Was ever such obstinacy!--such folly! The world will think you
distracted."

"I care not for the world!" cried Edric, impatiently.

"Youth like!" returned his father. "It is very strange no one will
be contented to take experience at second-hand. They must buy it for
themselves, and sometimes pay very dear for it before they profit by
its lessons. You talk like a child, Edric: when you get a little older,
you will find practice and theory very different things. You say you
despise the world: but you are wrong, the world must not be despised;
nay more, it ought not to be even slighted. As long as you live in it,
you must conform to its opinions: it is ridiculous to think otherwise.
I don't like to hear people say they don't care for the world; the
world must be cared for; and when people pretend to scorn it, it is
generally because they are aware they have done something to make it
scorn them."

"But, my dear father! you would not wish me to sacrifice my conscience
to its dictates."

"And pray, Sir, what has your conscience to do with the matter in
question?"

"Should I not sacrifice it by marrying a woman I feel I could never
love? In my opinion, nothing can be more sacred than the marriage vow;
and with what feelings could I enter into this solemn engagement in
the presence of Almighty God, calling upon him to witness it, when I
knew my heart was at variance with my words? My soul would recoil with
horror at such blasphemy."

"You talk about your conscience, Edric,--but should you not rather say
your inclinations? The person of Rosabella does not please your fancy,
I suppose; and to gratify a capricious whim, you would destroy the
happiness of your father, and ruin your own prospects for ever."

"It is not of the person of Rosabella that I complain, my dear
father;--I allow her to be beautiful as a Venus, and that her talents
even exceed her personal charms: but when I see her large black eyes
flashing fury, and her rosy lips curved into an expression of indignant
scorn, I forget her beauty, and think only of the fearful passions of
her soul."

"Your objections are futile, Edric; at any rate, they are of no avail.
You must marry her--I am sorry it is against your inclination, but I
will not have my authority disputed:--besides, the disappointment to
the duke would be dreadful. It was but this morning that he proposed,
that as soon as you and Edmund should marry, I should give up my estate
to you, and he his to your brother, whilst we two old folks should
retire to the cottage on the hill; and pass the remainder of our lives
in contemplating with rapture the happiness of our children."

"I own the duke is so obstinate--"

"So, you have discovered that, have you? Well, you are right there; for
when he has taken a fancy into his head, no arguments can turn him from
his point. But there is a difference between obstinacy and firmness.
Now, though I am not obstinate like the duke, you shall find I can be
firm, Edric. However, as I have always been an indulgent father, I do
not wish to decide hastily now, and I give you a week to make up your
mind: at the expiration of which time you shall marry Rosabella or quit
my house for ever. No reply, young man, I will not hear a word. Begone;
leave me now, and in a week's time let me know your decision."

It was in vain to attempt a reply; and Edric left his father's presence
oppressed by that strange, mysterious presentiment of evil, which, like
a fearful cloud, dark, gloomy, and impenetrable, sometimes hangs upon
our thoughts, foreboding horrors; though so dimly and indistinctly,
that, like all the gigantic phantoms we sometimes fancy through the
mist of twilight, their terrors seem increased tenfold by the very
uncertainty that half shrouds them from our sight. Mingled with
these feelings, however, was one of wild, unearthly joy. Driven from
his father's house, he would be free to travel--his doubts might be
satisfied--he might, at last, penetrate into the secrets of the grave;
and partake, without restraint, of the so ardently desired fruit of the
tree of knowledge. Nothing would then be hidden from him. Nature would
be forced to yield up her treasures to his view--her mysteries would be
revealed, and he would become great, omniscient, and god-like. His mind
filled with a chaos of thoughts like these, which he strove in vain to
arrange, and which seemed to swell his brain almost to bursting, Edric
involuntarily strolled again into the wood he had so lately quitted,
and again throwing himself upon the banks of the murmuring stream, he
was soon lost in a reverie.



CHAPTER V.


In the mean time, different emotions were agitating violently the
bosoms of the two lovely heiresses of the duke. When they reached the
castle, each of them retired to her separate apartment to ruminate
upon what had passed. Confidence did not exist between them, for
confidence requires congeniality of mind, and those of the fair cousins
were essentially different. Each princess, however, had a favourite
attendant, or rather a companion, in whose bosom she was in the habit
of pouring her thoughts; and, on their arrival at the castle, they
parted immediately, equally eager to find their respective confidants,
and inform them of all that had happened. Marianne had been the
attendant of Rosabella from her childhood; and haughty as the Princess
naturally was, she was, like many other haughty people, completely
the slave of her servant. Marianne was perfectly aware of her power,
and she occasionally used it tyrannically: on the present occasion,
however, she was really alarmed at the glowing cheeks, sparkling eyes,
and agitated frame of Rosabella, and asked, with an appearance of deep
interest, if she were ill.

"In mind, though not in body," replied Rosabella, throwing herself upon
a sofa, and hiding her face in both her hands. "Oh, Marianne! what a
wretch I am!"

"What is the matter?" asked the _suivante_.

"He loves her! he adores her!" cried Rosabella, starting from her couch
and traversing the room rapidly. "Curses on her beauty! O that a look
of mine could wither it! or that she could feel the burning fire that
rages here!" Then stopping suddenly, she gazed upon her attendant with
the wildness of a maniac, and, pressing her hand firmly against her
side, threw herself again upon her couch, exclaiming, "Oh, Marianne!
why am I not beloved like Elvira?"

"And are you certain that she is beloved?"

"Certain!" reiterated Rosabella, wringing her hands; "Alas! alas! would
I were not so certain; but can I doubt the evidence of my senses? This
day--this very day! I saw Father Morris put a letter into her hands,
which was enclosed in that addressed to Sir Ambrose. I saw a blush
of conscious pleasure glow upon her cheeks as she perused it, and I
could have stabbed her to the heart,--yes, and exulted in her dying
agonies--triumphed in her groans. Oh, Marianne! is it not extraordinary
that one so great, so noble, and so exalted as Edmund, can love such a
poor, weak, feeble being as Elvira? But she loves him not; at least not
as he should be loved. She is incapable of it."

"I wonder Father Morris gave her the letter."

"He could not help it, Marianne. It fell from its enclosure when Sir
Ambrose tore it open; but she saw it fall. I even saw her eye rest upon
the address; Father Morris merely picked it from the ground, and placed
it in her hands."

"I thought he would not have given it to her voluntarily."

"No; I think not. I believe the father is my friend, though I own
sometimes it appears strange to me, Marianne, that he should seem to
prefer my interest to that of every one else, when so many ties bind
him to Sir Ambrose's family, and so few to me: nay, though I am often
peevish and unreasonable with him, he never is offended, and appears to
remain still as warmly attached to me as before:--I cannot account for
it."

"He has ties that bind him to you that you know not of," said Marianne,
in a low, under voice; "he was your father's friend."

"Was he?" cried Rosabella, eagerly; "then perhaps he may enable me to
clear off the shade that has so long hung upon my father's name. By
heaven! neither the gratification of my love nor of my revenge would
give me half the pleasure."

"You had better not ask him," said Marianne, in the same low,
mysterious tone; "you can learn nothing upon that subject which it
would give you pleasure to hear." Then changing her voice, she added,
"But what said Edric to the news of his brother's glory?"

"I know not--I care not! Ice itself cannot be colder than Edric. When
we met, and he offered his hand to greet me, his touch seemed to freeze
my very veins. Cold, prudent, calculating, and cautious, he has all the
vices of age without its excuses:--I hate him!"

"You do not then, I suppose, long for the moment when you are to become
his bride?" asked the companion, with a sarcastic smile.

"Long for it, Marianne?" cried Rosabella, starting from her couch, and
clasping her hands together with energy--"long for it! No; if all other
resources fail, death shall free me before the hated moment arrives."
And as she spoke, Rosabella walked up and down the room, in a state of
violent agitation.

"But your uncle?" resumed Marianne.

"My uncle!" repeated Rosabella, stopping short, "yes, yes; my uncle
is positive--and I--a poor dependant, and in his power. But even
that shall not control my will. Poor and dependant as I am--I am
free; and sooner would I labour for my bread, sooner would I perish
in the streets, or endure unheard of torments, than live in a palace
surrounded by crowds of adoring slaves, if the price were that I must
call Edric husband."

Marianne, satisfied with the ease with which she found she could play
upon the feelings of her mistress, now touched a chord that thrilled to
softer emotions.

"I can never believe," said she, "that a mind so noble as that of
Edmund, can long remain in the thraldom of Elvira. When he comes to
know her better, and to feel the feebleness of her soul, he must
despise her."

"Ah! do you think so?" cried Rosabella eagerly. "But you deceive
yourself, Marianne; Edmund is so blinded that he fancies her very
faults perfections."

"But that blindness cannot last for ever, and when it wears off,
disgust must ensue."

"Oh, Marianne, if it were so!" exclaimed Rosabella; and, sitting down,
she rested her elbows on her knees, and pressed her hands against her
beating forehead, concealing her face and remaining apparently lost in
meditation. Marianne did not disturb her. She was aware that she had
given her active imagination a theme to work upon, and she left her to
enjoy it; tranquilly resuming her usual avocations without seeming to
notice her abstraction.

Whilst this scene was passing in the apartment of Rosabella, Elvira was
informing her confidant, Emma, who had been her governess and remained
her companion, of the pleasure she had experienced from hearing of
the success of Edmund, and from the tenderness of his letter. "How I
wish I could love him as he deserves," said she, "but, alas, I fear
it is not in my nature. I can scarcely even comprehend what he thinks
I ought to feel, and the violence of his manner terrifies me beyond
expression. Is it not extraordinary, Emma, that this passion, which
seems so universally extended throughout all nature, should be alone a
stranger to my breast--that I alone, should be debarred from feeling
its influence? Edmund complains of my coldness; and I feel that he
has reason to do so. I feel that his love is different from mine: I
esteem and respect him; I have even a sincere friendship for him, and
no one values his worth more than I; I should also be very sorry if any
misfortune were to befall him; but this is all, and I do not think I am
capable of feeling more for any one."

"Indeed you deceive yourself," replied Emma; "I am sure a heart so kind
and affectionate as yours is capable of love. Do not marry Lord Edmund;
I am certain you do not love him as you will love one day: and if a day
should arrive, when you feel a real passion, what will be your horror
at the recollection of the sacred ties which bind you to one who is
indifferent to you. I shudder at the thought."

"And so should I, Emma; but that it is impossible such an event can
happen. If I were married to Edmund, I never could love another, even
if my nature were susceptible of the passion: a fact I much doubt."

Emma shook her head incredulously. "Oh!" sighed she; "how little do you
know of love!"

"I know more of it than you imagine. In my opinion, people would never
fall in love, if they had abundance of other thoughts to occupy their
minds. They would marry, of course: but that, as every body knows, is
quite a different thing."

"Then you disbelieve in love entirely?"

"Not entirely; but I think what is generally called love is the
offspring of idleness. When people have nothing to do, particularly
if they happen to have warm imaginations, they amuse themselves by
picturing an idol of perfection. This they endow with all kinds of
virtue probable and improbable; and they are enchanted with the
fantasy, because it is their own creation. They soon find a face or
figure that pleases them, and to this they attach the charms they had
before given their imaginary idol--no matter whether they accord or
not. When people are what is called in love, they are like persons
in green spectacles, they see every thing of a colour that does not
really belong to it. Marriage, however, lifts up the magic veil, and
displays the real faults and imperfections of each individual. The
self-deluded mortals then find out their mistake, though too late; and
start back aghast at the appalling spectre that presents itself, crying
out bitterly against deception; whilst, in fact, they have been only
deceiving themselves."

"You reason admirably; but it is only from the head, not the heart. If
you had ever felt, you would perceive the fallacy of your arguments."

"I think not; for I am convinced the experience of ninety-nine
persons out of a hundred would confirm what I say, if they could but
be persuaded to avow their real sentiments. This, however, they are
always, in such cases, very reluctant to do, as no one likes to own
himself deceived."

"And do you think all love is like that you have been speaking of?"

"Heaven forbid!--No--no, Emma, do not imagine I am such a heretic as to
deny the existence of true love. I only think it is very difficult to
be met with. That it does exist, I firmly believe; but few, very few
are the bosoms that are capable of feeling it."

"Now I agree with you perfectly. I thought you could not mean all you
before asserted."

"Excuse me, Emma, I did mean what I said. But I did not then speak of
real love; I spoke only of the passion, or rather fancy, that usurps
its name. Real, pure, undefiled love is that absorbing affection that
prefers another's happiness to its own; that devotion that would sink
unknown to the grave, to procure another's happiness; that seeks not
its own gratification, but would sacrifice all the world can give,
to promote the welfare of another; that can taste of no pleasure and
partake of no delight, unless it be participated by the beloved object,
and even then, joys in his satisfaction more than in its own. This is
what I call love. I can imagine such a passion, though I shall never
feel it. However, that it _may_ be felt I am firmly convinced: though
even you must acknowledge, it is rare to find it."

"Alas! my dear mistress!" said Emma, sighing heavily. "Every word
you utter, convinces me you deceive yourself. For God's sake, do not
marry Lord Edmund. You could have no idea of the romantic feelings you
describe, if your heart were not open to receive them. Lord Edmund does
not----"

"Hush! hush, Emma!" exclaimed Elvira, playfully interrupting her. "It
is of no use. Say what we will, like most people that argue, we are
sure to remain of the same opinion when we have done. I don't believe
anybody ever yet was convinced by words; we must wait for facts,
and, _en attendant_, suppose we consult upon what dress will be most
becoming for us to wear at the approaching ceremony."

Emma gladly consented; and the princess and her companion were soon
involved in a maze of ribbons, crapes, gauzes, silks and satins, from
which it would be quite in vain for me to attempt to extricate them.

When Edric next saw his father, after the partial explanation that
had taken place between them, he was excessively surprised to find
him behave exactly as usual. The youthful philosopher was rather
disconcerted at this conduct, which completely deranged all his
speculations. In the course of his meditations in the grove, he had
magnanimously made up his mind to endure every species of persecution
rather than submit in the slightest degree to alter his opinions; and
such is the strange and whimsical inconsistency of the human mind,
that he was actually disappointed when he found there appeared little
prospect of his heroic resolutions being called into practice.

It may seem strange to those who are feelingly convinced of the
substantial comforts of an hospitable mansion and well supplied table,
that any one should be found quixotic enough to lament that he had
lost the chance of being deprived of them; but Edric's was the age of
romance. His life had hitherto passed in one dull monotonous round,
and the prospect of bustle and adventure has, in such cases, most
irresistible charms. He also knew nothing of the world; and was almost
as ignorant of the real evils of life, as the French princess, who,
hearing that some persons had died of hunger, wondered at their folly,
and said that for her part, rather than be famished, she would eat
bread and cheese. Thus, as we said before, Edric was rather chagrined
than delighted, when his father greeted him the morning after their
conference as affectionately as before, and very amicably proposed that
as soon as breakfast was ended, they should take a walk together to the
castle of the duke.

Unwilling to vex his father needlessly by refusing, and yet fearful
of compromising his firmness, by appearing to accede to what might be
treachery on the part of his opponents, our young philosopher gave a
rather ungracious assent to this proposition, and remained apparently
absorbed in meditation during the whole walk. They found the duke
extremely busy. Like many other people who have few real affairs to
occupy them, he was quite delighted with any thing that seemed to
promise a little bustle, and was firmly resolved to make the most of
it. He was then giving orders for an illumination, and a public dinner
to his tenants; bell-ringing, speech-making, and a variety of other
things, we have really neither time nor patience to enumerate. Busy as
he was, however, he was glad to see our friends, and greeted them most
cordially.

"You are come in the very nick of time," said he: "I was just upon the
point of sending for you. Do you know, Sir Ambrose, it has struck me
that this triumph of Edmund's will be an admirable opportunity for his
marriage; ay, and for yours too, Edric. What say you, Sir Ambrose?"

"Oh! of course I can have no objection."

"And of course," resumed the Duke, "I do not suppose the young men can
have any. What do you say, Edric?"

But Edric did not speak: for, to own the truth, he did not exactly know
what to say.

"Edric is so delighted, that it has deprived him of the power of
utterance," observed the baronet, rather maliciously, perceiving the
duke grow impatient.

"I trust your grace will excuse me," said Edric, at length recovering
himself; "but----but----"

"But what?" said the duke, impatiently.

"I thought," resumed Edric, with considerable hesitation, "that your
grace did not intend that the princesses should marry--till--till they
had passed the age that would render--that is to say, that does render
them eligible candidates for the throne.--"

Edric did not express himself very clearly; as he was not altogether
certain of what he was saying. The duke, however, heard enough to put
him into a passion.

"So I did," exclaimed he, "I know that perfectly; but I have altered my
mind, I tell you: Claudia isn't above thirty, and she's likely to live
these fifty years,--so it is of no use waiting for her death. Besides,
I should like to see my children married before I die. I am getting
old; and anxiety in these respects increases with declining years."

"Then my anxiety ought to be greater than yours, duke, for I am the
eldest," said Sir Ambrose.

"By a couple of years, at least," returned the duke, laughing, "for I
suppose that is about the difference in our ages. But you don't answer
me, Edric. Do you think you have eloquence enough to persuade your
mistress to relinquish the prospect of a throne in your behalf?"

"I would not wish her to make any sacrifice upon my account," replied
Edric.

"Confound such coldness! why, when I was a young man, my heart would
have beat like a pendulum in perpetual motion at such a proposition. Go
to her, man! and try your fortune.--

    'She is a woman, therefore to be wooed;
    She is a woman, therefore to be won;'

or rather what, perhaps, will be better, I will send for her here, and
tell her my will. Egad! I have a mind to surprise Edmund, and let you
grace his triumph as bride and bridegroom."

"Rosabella would never consent to such a proposition," exclaimed Edric,
willing to postpone the dreaded explanation as long as possible.

"I think not," resumed the duke, "if you woo her with that face.
However, you need not distress yourself, as you will have nothing to
say till you get to the altar. I'll take all the rest upon myself, and
I've a notion I shall prove the better suitor. I know women well, and
how to manage them. I'll defy any woman in the world to have a will of
her own whilst she is in my custody. I know how to quiet them and bring
them round. You shall see how I will manage Rosabella. She won't have a
word to say for herself. Here Augustus, tell the Princess Rosabella I
wish to speak with her."

"Hold!" cried Edric, "I cannot allow you to send for the princess till
I have first explained my real sentiments----"

"Nonsense!" said the duke. "However, I see there is no occasion to
send for her; for yonder she comes. I will meet her and explain my
sentiments, and then it will be quite time enough to talk about yours."

So saying, he broke from Edric, who attempted to detain him; and
advanced to meet Rosabella.

"Good God!" exclaimed Edric, "what will become of me? this obstinate
old man will tell her, I wish our union: and for worlds, I would not
mortify the proud spirit of Rosabella, by publicly declining her hand.
What shall I do? I must request a private interview, and throwing
myself upon her mercy, persuade her to reject me."

"Then you still persist in your determination," said Sir Ambrose. "I
had hoped my kindness in appearing to forget what passed yesterday, had
disposed you to comply with my wishes. However, since you seem inclined
to adhere to your resolution, you cannot be surprised that I should
follow your example, and I can only repeat, that if you do not marry
Rosabella, you know the alternative."

"I do," said Edric, firmly; "and I am prepared to meet it."

In the mean time, the duke had met Rosabella, and had evidently begun
to declare his wishes to her, for the colour had fled from her cheeks,
and her eyes were cast upon the ground, whilst her strongly compressed
lips, as she walked silently by his side, showed that it was with
infinite difficulty that she controlled her feelings sufficiently to
hear him with patience.

"In short," said the duke, as they drew near Sir Ambrose and his son,
"I have fixed upon the day after to-morrow for your wedding, and,
though I own the time is somewhat short to make preparations, you must
be satisfied to have your wedding clothes after your marriage instead
of before, which I should think need not make much difference. So now
all you'll have to do, will be to tell your cousin; and the day after
to-morrow your name will be Montagu."

"And do you know of whom you are disposing so unceremoniously?" asked
Rosabella, raising her brilliant eyes from the ground, and fixing them
upon him with a look of proud scorn. The duke shrunk involuntarily from
the withering glance, which seemed to fall upon him with the fabled
power of that of the basilisk.

"Of whom I am disposing?" stammered he, unconsciously repeating her
words, "Of whom I am disposing? Why, of my niece, to be sure," he
continued, arranging with difficulty his scattered ideas. "You are my
niece, are you not?"

"Yes," returned Rosabella, "unfortunately _I am_ your niece; and I
blush for an uncle who does not scruple to abuse so barbarously the
last legacy bequeathed to him by an unfortunate brother. Yes, my lord
duke, I am your niece--your protégée--your dependant. I am not ashamed
to own that I owe my daily bread to your bounty; but notwithstanding
all this, I am not aware that I am your slave, nor do I think the
pecuniary obligations I am under to you, sufficient to give you the
right of disposing of me as an article of furniture, or a beast of
burthen."

"You mistake the matter entirely, Rosabella," said the duke; "I do not
wish to hurt your feelings."

"Do you think, then, that I am formed of stone or iron, that I am to be
told to marry when and where you list, without having my inclinations
consulted or my affections gained? Look at the bridegroom for whom you
destine me. Certainly I must be insensibility itself to resist such
overwhelming ardour."

"You are right, Rosabella," replied the duke; "he is enough to provoke
a stone. I admire your spirit; a woman should not unsought be won, and
he, I own, looks as if he expected you to go down upon your knees, and
beg him to accept of your hand."

"You are mistaken," returned Edric, now taunted into the necessity of
avowing himself, in spite of his former resolutions; "it is not merely
coldness that dictates my conduct. I should have explained myself
before, had you permitted it, though I would willingly have spared the
princess this public declaration. However, as I am now forced to avow
my real sentiments, I openly and solemnly protest, that no torments
shall ever force me to become the husband of Rosabella. I am sorry----"

"Spare your pity, Sir," said the princess, haughtily, and interrupting
him--"I, at least, have no occasion for it; for know, that I too would
sooner experience a thousand deaths than become your wife. Nothing but
the respect I owe my uncle has prevented my declaring my sentiments
sooner."

"And only my affection for my father kept me silent."

"What a considerate pair! and how highly we ought to feel obliged
to them!" said the duke, ironically. "And pray, if your respect and
affection permit you to answer the question, what may it be your high
will and pleasure to intend doing now?"

"Whatever you please," replied both Edric and Rosabella, almost at the
same instant.

"Dear me! how amazingly condescending! So, as long as you are permitted
to have your own way, we may have the honour of suggesting plans for
your approbation whenever we please. How astonishingly kind! I am
afraid we shall never be able to show ourselves properly grateful, Sir
Ambrose."

"This irony, my lord," said Edric, firmly, "is unworthy both of
yourself and us. I will allow that you and my father have both reason
to be displeased with our conduct, as it has disappointed hopes
which you have long cherished; but permit me to say, that if you had
expressed your displeasure in serious, manly, and open terms as he
did, it would have been much more befitting your high rank and the
importance of the subject, than the taunting irony you have thought
proper to make use of."

"Schooled too! by St. Wellington!" exclaimed the duke. "Upon my word,
these are fine times, when a man of my age and rank is to be lectured
by a beardless stripling!"

"I did not mean to offend your grace," said Edric; "and I am sorry the
violence of my feelings compelled me to use language unbefitting my
youth, and disrespectful to an old and valued friend of my father."

"Say no more, young man," replied the duke, "apologies only double an
offence. If such are your sentiments, I would rather you declared than
concealed them, as I think even insolence preferable to hypocrisy.
However, after what has passed, I can never meet you amicably again,
and I shall even avoid entering the house of my friend, Sir Ambrose,
whilst you remain in it." This was spoken with dignity, and a majestic
firmness of tone. The duke's voice, however, trembled a little as he
continued--"I shall be sorry to lose the society of my old friend, and
I should be equally sorry to induce him to desert you, but I cannot
willingly expose myself to insult; and I must accordingly decline all
farther intercourse with your family."

"Decline all farther intercourse with our family!" exclaimed Sir
Ambrose. "This from you, duke! And Edmund! my darling Edmund! is he to
suffer for the faults of his brother?"

"How do you know that the loss of my daughter would make him suffer?"
asked the duke, sneeringly. "Perhaps when the moment came for me to
give her to him, he too would make a bow, and humbly asking my pardon,
beg leave to decline the honour. Oh! curse such politeness!"

"My dear duke, I would answer for Edmund with my life. He adores
Elvira, and loves you as a father. You, too, have always _professed_ to
love him--"

"And so I do. Didn't I rejoice like an old fool at his triumph? Didn't
I determine to give my daughter, and bestow my estate upon him? And
were not these proofs of love?"

"They were, they were! my dear friend! and, as he has never done
any thing to offend you, why should not your favourable intentions
continue? Why should you punish him on account of this ungrateful
idiot, whom I renounce for ever."

"Oh, my father! my dear father!" exclaimed Edric; "do not say for ever!"

"Yes, for ever! I repeat," resumed Sir Ambrose. "Begone and let me
never see you more. I told you yesterday my determination, and as you
have chosen to incur the penalty, you must take the consequence. Come,
my friend," continued he, taking the arm of the duke, "let us leave him
to his own reflections. Thank God! we are none of us answerable for the
faults of our children; and it would indeed be sad, if you and I were
to break a friendship that has lasted half a century, on account of the
childish folly of an inconsiderate boy!"

"It would, indeed," returned the duke; "and it would have broken my
heart to have quarreled with my darling Edmund. Yet, it is hard, at my
time of life, to be disappointed in one's fondest hopes."

And as he walked away with Sir Ambrose, the tears actually streamed
down his cheeks. Both Edric and Rosabella were affected, but, wisely
considering that they could say nothing likely to allay the storm, they
remained silent till the old men had gradually disappeared.



CHAPTER VI.


When Sir Ambrose and the duke thus withdrew, Edric and Rosabella were
left alone together, and remained for some moments in perfect silence,
for both felt keenly the awkwardness of their situation. After standing
for some time looking as foolish as their enemies could reasonably
desire, Edric bowed, and would have made good his retreat, but
Rosabella stopped him.

"Let us be friends, Edric," said she, smiling and holding out her hand,
"though we are no longer lovers."

Edric took the offered hand, and involuntarily pressed it to his lips.
"Upon my word, you improve!" continued Rosabella gaily; "I declare I
never saw such an instance of gallantry from you before, during the
whole course of our courtship!"

Edric smiled as he replied, "If you knew the burthen that has been
taken from my mind by the explanation of this morning--"

"Hush! hush!" cried Rosabella laughing, "Now you have spoiled all
again. I was afraid your gallantry was too great to be lasting."

"I acknowledge," replied Edric, joining in her mirth, "that it is not
very polite in me to rejoice in being freed from your chains: but I am
no flatterer, and--and--"

"A truce with apologies," exclaimed Rosabella; "as my uncle very justly
observed just now, they only make the matter worse. The case is simply
this: you and I were not suited for each other; we found it out, and
we are both glad to be released from ties that we discovered were
incompatible with our happiness. 'Can any thing be more clear?' as Dr.
Entwerfen says. You, I presume, are going to travel, and to gratify
your natural love of variety and wish to acquire information; whilst
I, poor unfortunate damsel that I am, must remain at home and wear the
willow, till I am fortunate enough to meet with a swain who has the
penetration to discover my charms."

"And most ardently do I hope that it may soon be the case!" said Edric,
astonished at her affability, and feeling more kindly disposed towards
her than he had ever done before. "You are right in supposing I wish
to travel; but, alas! I have not now the power. My father is too much
offended to afford me the means; and without money--"

"Travelling is far from agreeable," interrupted Rosabella, smiling: "is
not that what you would say? Why not apply to Father Morris, then; he
can, and I am sure, will help you. For myself, I am powerless, except
as far as giving advice."

"Your advice, however, is excellent," replied Edric, regarding her with
still increasing amazement; "and I assure you I will follow it to the
letter. I never thought of applying to the reverend father, though I
now feel it is the best thing I can do."

"Why then do you look at me so incredulously?" continued Rosabella; "I
can have no motive for deceiving you; and yet you look as suspicious as
though you thought I had. I own my behaviour towards you is changed;
but remember the different circumstances in which I am now placed.
Formerly I feared even to speak to you, lest my words should be deemed
an encouragement of the pretensions I supposed you to entertain to
my hand. Now that we are both free, that reason no longer exists;
and besides, I feel grateful to you for declaring your sentiments so
openly, and thus saving me from my uncle's displeasure. 'Can any thing
be more simple?' as your friend Dr. Entwerfen would say."

Notwithstanding Rosabella's apparent openness, however, and the
plausible reasons she gave for her conduct, Edric could not divest
himself of the idea that she wished to get him out of the kingdom as
speedily as possible, for some other motives than those she thought
proper to avow. There likewise appeared some mystery in her speaking
so confidently of the assistance of Father Morris; for as the duke's
family had a regular confessor, Father Murphy, it seemed strange that
Rosabella should have an intercourse with any other priest, beyond that
required by the common forms of society; and so slight an intimacy
could scarcely warrant the positive assertion she had made use of.
Edric, however, was too anxious to avail himself of any opportunity
that offered of proceeding to Egypt, to trouble himself with long
investigation of the subject; and when he quitted Rosabella, he
proceeded in search of Father Morris as a matter of course, and almost
without any volition of his own.

The suite of rooms appropriated to Father Morris in the mansion of
Sir Ambrose was in a wing partly detached from the main dwelling; and
thither Edric bent his steps. As he approached, however, to his great
surprise he heard a sound of blows followed by deep groans. Knowing
that it was the hour of dinner for the domestics, and that none of
the other inmates of the mansion were at home but the friar and
himself, he could not at first account for this strange and fearful
noise; but finding, as he advanced, the sounds proceeded from the
inner chamber of the priest, where no one but himself ever ventured,
he soon became satisfied that Father Morris was performing a penance
of self-flagellation; and as it was deemed impious to interrupt a
penitence, he seated himself quietly in the outer chamber, waiting the
priest's leisure; wondering, however, to himself, what crime so holy
a man could possibly have committed, that could require so severe an
expiation.

When Father Morris made his appearance, it was with his usual downcast
eyes and composed look. He expressed his astonishment at seeing Edric,
but made no allusion to the penance he had just been performing, and
listened with a cold unmoved aspect to Edric's communication.

"Then I am to understand," said he, when it was finished, "that you are
like the prince we were reading of the other day, in a book we found in
your tutor's library. You cannot be happy because you have never been
miserable; and you are going to plunge into all the cares and troubles
of the world, merely to learn how to enjoy retirement."

"Not exactly so, father;" rejoined Edric; "I have two other
motives,--the anger of my father, and the earnest tormenting wish I
before confessed to you, of diving into the secrets of the grave."

"And how is that to be accomplished by your leaving England?"

"I wish to try to resuscitate a mummy."

"The scheme is wild, vague, and impracticable."

"Not if Dr. Entwerfen's hypothesis be true. For, supposing the souls
of the ancient Egyptians to be chained to their bodies, and to be
remaining in them in a torpid state,--it is very possible that by
employing so powerful an agent as galvanism, re-animation may be
produced. I have already seen some wonderful instances of the vivifying
power of the machine; and as the Egyptians took care to preserve the
bodies of their dead quite entire, probably from the idea I have just
alluded to,--I think the mummies are the best subjects we can possibly
fix upon for our experiments."

"The ancient Egyptians did not imagine the souls of their dead remained
in the bodies, but that they would return to them after the expiration
of a certain number of years; so that your hypothesis, as far as it
rests upon their opinions, falls to the ground."

"Do not call it my hypothesis," returned Edric, "it is that of Dr.
Entwerfen; my own opinion is decidedly different--for I cannot imagine
any idea of death that does not imply a separation between the body and
soul. The subject, however, is curious; to me highly interesting; and
I own, candidly, there are many mysteries connected with it, which it
would give me the highest satisfaction to have explained."

"And these mysteries, which have vainly excited the speculation of the
learned since the commencement of the world, you think your journey to
Egypt will enable you to unravel," said Father Morris, with a sardonic
sneer. Edric felt irritated at his manner, and replied warmly:--

"I am not presumptuous, father; but as even you must allow, man is
often but a blind instrument in the hands of fate, it is possible
that the racking desire I feel to explore these mysteries may be an
impulse from a superior power, and a proof that I am destined to be
the mortal agent of their revelation to man. Egypt is a country rich
in monuments of antiquity; and all historians unite in declaring her
ancient inhabitants to have possessed knowledge and science far beyond
even the boasted improvements of modern times. For instance, could we
attempt to erect stupendous buildings like the pyramids, where enormous
masses are arranged with geometrical accuracy, and the labours of man
have emulated the everlasting durability of nature? Are we even capable
of conceiving works so majestic as those they put in execution? No;
assuredly not. In every point they surpassed us."

"Even in their religion?" asked Father Morris sarcastically.

"No," returned Edric; "every scheme of religion falls infinitely below
the divine perfection of Christianity; but as Christianity was not
in the times we are speaking of, revealed, it cannot be denied that
the Egyptians made some approach to wisdom even in their devotions.
They worshipped Nature, though they disguised her under the symbols
of her attributes, and gratified the vulgar taste by giving them
tangible objects to represent ideas too sublime for their unenlightened
comprehension. That they entertained the divine idea of a resurrection,
and of rewards and punishments in a future life, is evident, not
only from their favourite fable of the Phœnix, and the use they made
of the now hackneyed image of the Butterfly; but by the care they
bestowed upon the preservation of the body; their mournings for the
loss of Osiris, and rejoicings when he was found; and the kind of
trial to which they subjected the human corpse after death, when, if
serious crimes were alleged, and proved against it, it was denied the
rites of sepulture, and left to rot, unlamented. Then, can any modern
institutions excel the wisdom of the laws enacted by the Pharaohs?
or can any modern magnificence equal that displayed in the cities
of Memphis and Thebes? And since this will hardly be disputed, what
country can be more fitting than that once so highly favoured, to be
the scene of the most important discovery ever made by Man? Deride
me if you will; I feel a superior power inspires my wishes. I feel
irresistibly impelled forward. I feel called upon to act by a force
far superior to my own, and I will obey its dictates. You smile, and
secretly ridicule my projects; but remember that excessive incredulity
sometimes savours as strongly of folly as credulity itself, and that
both are alike injurious to the progress of science."

"I do not doubt it," said Father Morris, with provoking coldness;
"though it must certainly be allowed not to be the prevailing foible
of the present day. However, without staying to discuss that point at
present, I humbly suggest, that, as I happen unfortunately to be rather
pressed for time, it may be as well to condescend to bestow a few
minutes' attention upon the best human means of enabling you to fulfil
the high destinies that await you in Egypt--as, notwithstanding the
imperious nature of the impulse that invites you there, I presume you
are aware that the vulgar agency of money will be necessary, as well as
the scientific one of galvanism."

The feelings of Edric were too highly wrought to bear this irony; and,
snatching up his hat, he rushed out of the room, casting a look of
indignation at the priest, who vainly endeavoured to stop him. Maddened
by the conflicting emotions that struggled in his bosom, and disgusted
alike with himself, Father Morris, and all the world, Edric hurried on,
totally unaware which way he was going, till his career was stopped
by his coming suddenly and violently in contact with another person,
who was running equally heedlessly with himself, but in an opposite
direction. Both recoiled some paces from the shock, and Edric found, to
his surprise, it was Abelard whom he had greeted so unceremoniously.
Curiosity to know what could have occasioned the abstraction of
the worthy butler, (he being generally remarkable for his peculiar
attention to matters of ceremony,) diverted the thoughts of Edric
from himself, and he, for the moment, forgot his own woes, whilst he
inquired into those of Abelard.

"Alas! alas!" said the old man, shaking his grey head, whilst the tears
streamed in torrents down his wrinkled cheeks, "that I should ever have
lived to see this day! Oh, Master Edric! how could you irritate your
respectable progenitor? Alas! alas! I feel my lachrymal gland suffused
almost to overflowing, whenever the recollection of what has passed
shoots across my piamater."

"For Heaven's sake! tell me what is the matter!"

"Oh dear! oh dear!" sobbed the unhappy butler, "that such longevity
should have been granted me only that I might see so promising a young
gentleman turned out of doors."

"Tell me the worst; though, indeed, I now fear I comprehend your
meaning but too well."

"Sir Ambrose commands that you depart immediately, and never enter
again into the mansion of your paternal ancestors."

"What will become of me!" exclaimed Edric, clasping his hands together,
and raising his eyes to Heaven; then, after a short pause, he added
more composedly, "Well, come what will, I am resigned. Fate urges me
onward with irresistible violence, and I feel it would be in vain to
attempt to combat against her dictates. I, at least, am prepared to
execute her will."

"But where will you go?" sobbed Abelard. "You will want money and
friends. Alas! alas! that I should ever see the son of my old master
stand in need of pecuniary assistance!"

"He but repeats the words of Father Morris," said Edric; "and yet how
differently his doubts affect me. The irony of the priest drove me to
despair, but the grief of this old man soothes my wounded spirit. He
surely loves me."

These words were uttered in so faint a key, that the name of Father
Morris only caught the ear of Abelard, and he replied:

"I don't like Father Morris, and I never did; though it is now twenty
years since he first entered the family, and though I have never seen
any thing in him to censure particularly, throughout the entire of that
long period, yet my aversion remains undiminished. I suppose it must be
a natural antipathy, and that the pores of my body don't assimilate in
shape with the atoms that emanate from his."

"He drove me almost to madness," said Edric.

"I am not surprised at that," returned Abelard; "for I know he can take
a fiendlike pleasure in tormenting. He can employ the most provoking,
tantalizing expressions, and yet preserve the same soft, smooth voice,
and keep his palebræ half closed, and his visual organs fixed upon the
ground. Indeed, I never saw the iris of his eyes dilated in my life;
and then he has such a manner of raising his supercilia, curving his
nose, and drawing down his depressor anguli oris when he listens to any
one or replies to them, as to give the expression of a perpetual sneer
to his saturnine countenance."

Edric's own recent personal experience bore testimony only too forcibly
to the justice of those remarks; and as the wounded man shrinks from
the slightest touch, so did Edric find the words of Abelard jar
upon his nerves; as turning away from him to hide his emotions, he
encountered the earnest gaze of Father Morris himself.

"Why do you appear astonished?" said the priest, smiling. "You are an
infant, Edric; you quarrel with your best friends, and then appear
surprised that you do not find them as capricious as yourself. You
fancy you are very angry with me, for instance, and yet I am not
conscious of having done any thing to offend you. Was it a crime to
attempt to moderate an enthusiasm that I feared might mislead you?
was it a fault to warn you against the dangers of a world of which
as yet you know so little? No, no; I am confident your own reason
and excellent good sense will acquit me, if you will but suffer them
to act. Your imagination is too vivid, Edric; it sweeps away all
before it, like a torrent. If you would view things calmly, you would
perceive your folly. The world will teach you wisdom. Go then, travel;
experience personal privations and evils of every description, that you
may learn to enjoy the pleasures that even now lie within your grasp,
but which you spurn from you with contempt. So true it is that we never
learn the real value of any blessing till we have experienced the
misery that attends its privation."

"If this be the case," replied Edric, soothed in spite of himself,
by the insinuating manner of the monk, "why should my feelings be an
exception to the general rule? And since all our pleasures acquire a
new zest by the force of contrast, and mine have long since lost all
relish, is it not even wisdom to try the effect of change?"

"And yet it seems a folly," said Father Morris, in his smooth,
plausible, hypocritical voice, with his eyes again fixed upon the
ground, "to incur a certain evil in the hope of attaining an uncertain
good."

Edric started, and fixed his eyes upon him, with an expression the monk
well understood; and, not wishing again to provoke him past endurance,
he continued in a different tone: "But it is useless for age to preach
lessons of prudence to youth, and as your father says, every one must
purchase his own experience; so we will now, if you please, change the
subject to that of making preparations for your journey. You are still
determined to visit Egypt, I suppose?"

"It is my most ardent wish."

"Return then to your own apartment, and by to-morrow all shall be ready
for your departure."

"He must not enter the house!" said Abelard; "alas! alas! that I
should live to say it! Sir Ambrose has forbidden him even to cross the
threshold."

"Can you not remain concealed in the apartment of Dr. Entwerfen?" asked
Father Morris, after a short pause; "no one enters there but himself;
and one of the windows looks upon this terrace, so that you may reach
it unobserved; Abelard, I am confident, will not betray you; and I will
accompany you, as I wish to consult with the doctor respecting your
intended voyage."

Edric hastily assented, and bidding Abelard an affectionate adieu, he
and Father Morris easily climbed through the window that led to the
adytum of Dr. Entwerfen, whilst Abelard, clasping his hands together,
exclaimed as he retired, "God bless him! Well, he shall not want for
pecuniary assistance at any rate, if Mr. Davis and I can help it; that
is one comfort."

When Edric and Father Morris entered the study of Dr. Entwerfen, they
found him engaged in what, certainly considering his age and station,
seemed a very extraordinary amusement. He was apparently dancing a
hornpipe, drawing his heels together, and alternately rising and
sinking like a clown in a pantomime, twisting his face, in the mean
time, into the most hideous grimaces.

"What is the matter?" cried Edric and Father Morris, both at the same
instant, gazing at him with surprise.

"I--I--I am galvanized," cried the doctor, in a piteous tone; nodding
his head with a sudden jerk, that seemed to threaten every instant to
throw it out of its socket; and then, suddenly starting, he kicked out
one leg horizontally, and twirled round upon the other with an air of
an opera dancer.

"How did it happen?" cried Edric, excessively shocked at the unnatural
contrast exhibited between the doctor's serious countenance, and
involuntary antics.

"I can't--exactly--tell," replied the doctor, bolting forth his words
with difficulty, and still swimming, grinning, and capering, to the
inexpressible horror of his companions, till by degrees his grimaces
subsided, and he was enabled at last to stand tolerably steady. He
now informed his friends, that trying some experiments with his
galvanic battery, he had unfortunately operated upon himself; and in
his turn listened to their account of what had passed between Edric
and Sir Ambrose. Instead of expressing sorrow, however, when he found
his pupil had quarrelled with his father, the doctor's eyes sparkled
with joy--"Then you must inevitably travel," exclaimed he. "We shall
visit the pyramids, we shall animate the mummies, and we shall attain
immortality."

There was something in this violent expression of the doctor's
transports that did not quite harmonize with Edric's feelings,
especially as he fancied he perceived a satirical smile lurking round
the lips of Father Morris.

"When shall you be ready to set off?" asked he abruptly.

"To-morrow, if you will," replied the doctor. "I have foreseen this
result some time, and I have been preparing every thing accordingly. I
never knew a young Englishman in my life, Father Morris, who was not
fond of travelling. The inhabitants of other countries travel for what
they can get, or what they hope to learn; but an Englishman travels
because he does not know what to do with himself. He spares neither
time, trouble, nor money; he goes every where, sees every thing; after
which, he returns--just as wise as when he set out. Not that I blame
curiosity--no--I admire it above all things!--it is that which has led
to all the great discoveries that have been made since the creation of
the world, and it is that which now impels us to explore the pyramids."

Edric looked excessively annoyed at the conclusion of this speech, and,
to change the subject, hastily asked the doctor, if he thought his
galvanic battery powerful enough for the experiment they meant to try
with it.

"Powerful!" exclaimed the doctor; "why I feel it even now tingling to
my fingers' ends. I should think, Sir, the effect it has had upon me is
a sufficient proof of the force of the machine."

"Undoubtedly!" replied Father Morris; "nay, if we are to judge by that,
I only tremble lest you should animate the pyramids as well as the
mummies, and you must allow it would be an awkward sight to see them
come tumbling and slipping along the plain."

"Sir!" said the doctor, staring at him.

"Do you intend visiting any other country than Egypt?" asked Father
Morris, fearful he had gone too far, and wishing, for reasons he did
not openly avow, not to offend his companions.

"I should like to see India," said the doctor; "some black-letter
pamphlets in my possession, allude to its being once governed by an old
woman; and as the regular historians make no mention of the fact, I
should like to see what traditions I could gather respecting it on the
spot. The religion of the ancient Hindoos, before they were converted
to Christianity, has been said to have resembled that of the ancient
Egyptians; by comparing the monuments of both, one might be made to
illustrate the other. I should also like, before we quit Africa, to see
the celebrated court of Timbuctoo. I have long been in correspondence
with a learned pundit there, who has communicated to me some of the
most sublime discoveries."

"The whole of the interior of Africa must be interesting," observed
Father Morris, "particularly the rising states on the banks of the
Niger. It is generally instructive as well as amusing to watch the
birth and struggles of infant republics; and to remark first how fast
the people encroach, and then the governors. Whilst the rulers are
weak, they are always liberal; but their exalted sentiments in general
decrease in exact proportion as they become powerful."

"In short," resumed the doctor, "I would willingly traverse the whole
world; I know but one country that I should dislike to visit."

"And which is that?" asked Edric.

"America," replied the doctor. "I have no wish to have my throat
cut, or my breath stopped by a bowstring. I have a perfect horror of
despotic governments."

"Then how do you endure the one we live under?" asked Father Morris.

"The case is quite different," returned the doctor. "With us, the
spur of despotism is scarcely felt; and the people, being permitted
occasionally to think and act for themselves, are not debased and
brutalized as the slaves of absolute power are in general. Despotism,
with us, is like a rod which the schoolmaster keeps hung up in sight
of his boys, but which he has very seldom any occasion to make use of.
From such despotism as that of the Americans, however, Heaven defend
us!"

"Amen!" said Edric; "for, as we are happy now, we should be idiots to
desire a change."

"What an unphilosophical sentiment!" exclaimed the doctor: "I am really
quite shocked that you, Edric, should utter such a speech. What an
abominable doctrine! Remember, that if you once allow innovation to be
dangerous, you instantly put a stop to all improvement--you absolutely
shut and bolt your doors against it. Oh! it is horrible, that such a
doctrine should be ever broached in a civilized country. You could not
surely be aware of what you were saying?"

"To-morrow," said Father Morris, addressing Edric, and without noticing
the indignation of the learned doctor, "you must proceed to town, where
you can remain at the house of a friend of mine, till you are ready for
your voyage to Egypt. I would not, however, advise you to stay long
before you go there; for, as your father intends visiting London in a
day or two, you might meet, and the consequences, be unpleasant. I have
already dispatched a carrier-pigeon to advise my friend, Lord Gustavus
De Montfort, of your arrival; he, I am sure, will give you a hearty
welcome, and not only afford you the shelter of his house, but afford
you all the assistance in his power, to enable you to make preparations
for your journey; for which purpose, also, I will take care to supply
you with money. No thanks," continued he, stopping Edric, who was
about to speak, "I detest them. If you really feel obliged to me, you
will prove it by remaining silent. I must leave you now, as my longer
absence might create suspicion. Adieu! God bless you! A balloon will
wait for you to-morrow morning, at the corner of the wood. The doctor
will, of course, accompany you. I think you may safely rest here
concealed till then. Once more, adieu!"

"Now Father Morris is gone," said Doctor Entwerfen to his pupil, "I
have a treat for you. I will show you a curious collection of ballads,
all of which are at least three hundred years old, which a friend of
mine picked up in London for me the other day, and sent me down this
morning by the stage-balloon. They are all of the genuine rag paper,
a certain proof of their antiquity; for, you know, the asbestos paper
we now use has not been invented more than two hundred years. But you
shall see them: follow me."

So saying, the doctor trotted off to his library, that paradise of
half-forgotten volumes, most of which had been accidentally saved from
their well-merited destination of covering over butter, and wrapping
up cheese, to be drawn from the dust and obscurity in which they had
lain for centuries, to ornament the shelves of Doctor Entwerfen; and
whose authors, if they could have taken a peep upon earth, and beheld
them, would have been quite astonished to find themselves immortal.
Entering this emporium of neglected learning, the doctor hastily
advanced to a table, on which lay his newly acquired treasures, and
holding them up, exclaimed, "Look, Edric, how beautifully dirty the
paper is; no art could counterfeit this dingy hue. This sooty tinge is
the genuine tint of antiquity. You know, Edric, in ancient times, the
caloric employed in culinary purposes, and indeed for all the common
usages of life, was produced by the combustion of wood, and of a black
bituminous substance, or amphilites, drawn from the bowels of the
earth, called coal, of which you may yet see specimens in the cabinets
of the curious. As these substances decomposed, or rather expanded, by
the force of heat, the attraction of cohesion was dissolved, and the
component parts flew off in the shape of smoke or soot. This smoke,
rising into the air, was dispersed by it, and the minute particles, or
atoms, of which it was composed, falling and resting upon every thing
that chanced to be in their way, produced that incomparable dusky hue,
which the moderns have so often tried, though in vain, to imitate. I
beg your pardon, Edric, for using such vulgar language to express what
I wished to say, but really, treating upon such a subject, I did not
know how to explain myself elegantly."

"Oh! I understood you very well, Sir. After all, the only true use of
language is to convey the ideas of one person to the understanding of
another; and, provided that end be attained, I really do not see that
it is of any consequence what words we make use of."

"True, Edric dear! you make very just observations sometimes. Well,
but the ballads; I was going to show you my treasures,--my jewels! as
the Roman lady said of her children. Look what beautiful specimens
these are! A little torn here and there, and with a few of the lines
illegible--but genuine antiques. I'll warrant every one of them above
three hundred years old. Look, it is real linen paper; you may tell it
by the texture; and then the spelling, see what a number of letters
they put into their words that were of no use. Look at the titles
of them. Here is the 'Tragical end of poor Miss Bailey'--and here
'Cherry Ripe'--and 'I've been roaming.' Here is 'The loves of Captain
Wattle and Miss Roe'--and here are 'Jessy the flower of Dumblane,' and
'Dunois the brave.' But this is my Phœnix--here is what will be the
envy of collectors! here is my invaluable treasure. This, I believe,
is absolutely unique, and that I am so blest as to possess the only
copy extant. The date is wanting, but the manners it describes are so
unpolished, that I should almost think it might be traced back to the
times of the aboriginal Britons.--Thus it begins:--

    'At Wednesbury there was a cocking,
      A match between Newton and Scroggins;
    The nailers and colliers left work,
      And to Spittle's they all went jogging.
             Tol de rol lol.'

I used to be very much puzzled at this burthen, which is one of
frequent recurrence in ancient songs. At first, I thought it a relic
of some language now irrevocably lost. Then it struck me, it might be
an invocation to the deities of the aborigines. In short, I was quite
perplexed, and knew not what to think, when a learned friend of mine
hit upon an idea the other day, which seems completely to solve the
difficulty. He suggests that it was an ancient manner of running up and
down the scale; and that 'Tol de rol lol' had the same signification
as 'Do re mi fa;'--which solution is at once so simple and ingenious,
that I am sure you, as well as myself, must be struck by it. I here
omit a few stanzas, in which the author enumerates his heroes exactly
in the Homeric manner. The names are so barbarous, that I am afraid of
loosening my teeth in pronouncing them:--

    'There was plenty of beef at the dinner,
      Of a bull that was baited to death;
    Bunny Hyde got a lump in his throat,
      Which had like to have stopt his breath.'

What a beautiful simplicity there is in that last line,

    'Which had like to have stopt his breath.'

Oh, we moderns have nothing equal to it!--

    'The company fell in confusion,
      To see this poor Bunny Hyde choke,
    So they hurried him down to the kitchen,
      And held his head over the smoke.'

"This develops a curious practice of antiquity. You know, Edric, I
explained to you just now the manner in which combustion was formerly
effected, and the causes of the production of what was called smoke.
I own, however, it seems a strange way of reviving a half-suffocated
man, to hold his head over smoke, which, being loaded, as I said
before, with innumerable atoms of all sorts and sizes, would, one might
think be more likely to impede respiration than restore it. The fact,
however, is undoubted; and it not only affords a curious illustration
of the manner of the ancients, but is of itself a strong proof of the
authenticity of the ballad; for such an idea never could have entered
the head of a modern. To return to poor Hyde--

    'One gave him a kick o' th' stomach,
      And another a thump o' th' brow,
    His wife cried throw him i' th' stable,
      And he will be better just now.'

This unfeeling conduct of his wife does not say much in commendation
of the ladies of those times. Here follows an hiatus of several
stanzas: I find, however, by a word or two here and there, that they
celebrated the exploits of two gallic heroes:--

      'The best i' th' country bred;
    The one was a brassy-wing black,
      And the other a dusky-wing'd red.'

These unfortunate victims of the cruelty of man seem both to have
perished. There is a stanza, however, before this catastrophe, which
seems to relate to the combat.

    'The conflict was hard upon each,
      Till glossy-wing'd blacky was choked,
    The colliers were nationally vex'd,
      And the nailers were all provoked.'

This passage seems very obscure: 'Nationally' is evidently a sign of
comparison, but I cannot say I ever saw it employed before. It is,
however, another proof of the amazing antiquity of the ballad. After
this, it appears that the people broke in upon the ring, and both cocks
were crushed to atoms. I don't know whether you are acquainted with the
manner in which these gallic combats were conducted, Edric. A kind of
amphitheatre was formed, upon which the birds were pitted one against
the other, whence the name cock-pit. The combatants were armed with
large iron spurs, and the victor generally left his rival dead upon the
field. The ballad proceeds:--

    'The cock-pit was near to the church,
      As an ornament to the town;
    One side was an old coal-pit,
      And the other was well gorsed round.'

Gorse was a kind of heath or furze.

    'Peter Hadley peep'd through the gorse,
      In order to see the cocks fight;
    Spittle jobb'd his eye out with a fork,
      And said, "Blast you, it sarves you right."'

This is very spirited and expressive, though the false quantities
render it difficult to read.

    'Some folks may think this is strange,
      Who Wednesbury never knew,
    But those who have ever been there,
      Won't have the least doubt but it's true.

    For they are all savage by nature,
      And guilty of deeds that are shocking,
    Jack Baker he whack'd his own feyther,
      And so ended the Wednesbury cocking.'"

"It is very fine certainly," said Edric, who was half asleep.

"Upon my word," returned the doctor, "I don't think you have heard a
single word I have been saying."

"Oh! yes, I have," replied Edric, "every syllable. It was about a man
killing his own father, and putting his eyes out with a fork."

"Eh?" cried the doctor, somewhat annoyed at this unequivocal proof that
though his words might have struck upon the auricular organs of his
pupil, they had not reached his brains. The exclamation of the doctor
restored Edric to his senses, and he began to apologize.

"I am really very sorry," said he, "but you must excuse my inattention.
Sometimes, you know, the mind is not in tune for literary discussions,
even when proceeding from the most eloquent lips. This is my case at
the present moment. My mind is so occupied by the important change that
has just taken place in my affairs, that, I own, even your learning and
eloquence were thrown away upon me."

"If that be the state of your mind," replied the doctor, with chagrin,
"it is of no use to show you any more of my literary treasures; else
I have some of matchless excellence. Here is a letter addressed to
Sheridan, a witty writer of comedies, in the eighteenth century, which
has never been opened,--and here is a tailor's bill of the immortal
Byron, which may possibly never have been looked at. But here is the
most inestimable of my relics. Look, at least, at this. This piece
of paper, covered carelessly with irregular strokes and lines, was
once in the possession of that enchanting, that inimitable novelist
of the nineteenth century, generally distinguished in the works of
contemporary writers by the mysterious title of 'The Great Unknown!'
See, here is half the word 'Waverley,' written upon it, and doubtless
all these other irregular marks and scratches proceeded directly from
his pen. I confess, Edric, I never contemplate this relic of genius
without a feeling of reverence, and almost of awe. 'Perhaps,' say I to
myself, when I look at it, 'when these letters were formed, the first
idea had but just arisen in the mind of the author of those immortal
works, which were afterwards destined to improve and delight mankind.
Perhaps, at that very moment gigantic thoughts were rushing through
his brain, and a variety of new ideas opening their treasures to his
imagination.' Oh, there is something in the mere random stroke of the
pen of a celebrated character, inexpressibly affecting to the mind;--it
carries one back to the very time when he lived--it seems to make one
acquainted with him, and to let us into the secrets of his inmost
thoughts. But I see you are not attending to me, Edric!"

"I am very sorry--another time I should be happy--but now--I cannot.
However, when we return, perhaps--"

"It may be then too late," said the doctor, with solemnity; and locking
up his cabinet, he led the way back to his common sitting-room, in high
dudgeon.



CHAPTER VII.


The morning after the events just recorded, as Mr. Montagu, the brother
of Sir Ambrose, was sitting at the breakfast-table with his wife and
daughter, they were all startled by the unexpected arrival of a letter
from Sir Ambrose. "Bless me!" cried Mr. Montagu, moved for once to
forget his usual habits of indifference--"I do believe it is a letter
from my brother."

"Your brother!" screamed Mrs. Montagu, starting up to examine it, and
in her agitation overturning a patent steam coffee-machine, by which
coffee was roasted, ground, made, and poured out with an _ad libitum_
of boiling milk and sugar, all in the short space of five minutes.
"Oh!" continued she--"I am scalded to death!"

"I hope not, my dear," said Mr. Montagu, calmly taking up his letter,
and carefully examining it on all sides without opening it. "Yes,"
continued he, "it is indeed from my brother, and I hope it contains no
ill news, for I do not perceive any signs of mourning about it." And so
saying, he very tranquilly laid his letter again upon the table, and
recommenced sipping his coffee.

"La! papa, hadn't you better open your letter and read it?" asked
Clara, who was busily employed in assisting her mother.

"Ah!" resumed Mr. Montagu. "True! I never thought of that--I think I
had." Then again taking the letter in his hand, he broke the seal and
gave it to Clara to read.

"And do you think my daughter is to leave me when I am in this
miserable condition, Mr. Montagu, to read letters from your brother,
Mr. Montagu--a man who has always treated me with such disrespect, Mr.
Montagu,--and I half scalded to death!"

"I am sure I'm very sorry, my dear," began Mr. Montagu.

"Oh, spare your sorrow," exclaimed his wife--"for I'm sure you don't
care one single straw about me. You're a cruel man--"

"Hadn't I better read the letter?" asked Clara, trembling at the
thought of the domestic sparring she saw about to ensue.

"Yes, yes! read, my dear," said her father, glad of any pretext to
avert the coming storm: for though he seldom disturbed himself about
any thing, provided his study was not swept oftener than once a month,
and he was not obliged to submit to the insupportable fatigue of
arranging his ideas in the tense form, necessary for conversation; he
had yet a most inconceivable horror of his wife's fluency of tongue,
thus affording a striking proof of the ingratitude of mortals, who
often ungraciously find fault with the very things for which they have
most occasion to be thankful; as it must be allowed that nothing could
really be more convenient for a man of a taciturn disposition, than to
have a wife who could manage to talk at once for him and herself too.

Notwithstanding the encouragement of her father, Clara, however, still
paused, looking with a timid eye towards her mother, for that lady's
permission to begin. Curiosity struggled powerfully with anger in
the breast of Mrs. Montagu for some minutes; but at last the former
prevailed, and with a nod she permitted Clara to read. She immediately
began as follows:--

"MY DEAR BROTHER."

"Humph," observed Mrs. Montagu, "his last letter began--_Sir_. He's
getting wonderfully civil, I think."

"Pshaw!" exclaimed her husband.

Clara continued,--"I am happy to inform you, that my dear Edmund has
gained a glorious victory."

"And what is that to us, I should like to know?" said Mrs. Montagu:
"for my part, I have too much pride to trouble myself about people, who
don't trouble themselves about me."

Clara went on.--"We are all coming up to London, to be present at a
grand triumph the Queen is going to give him; and thinking it a pity
there should be a misunderstanding----"

"Ah! what's that, child?" exclaimed Mr. Montagu, laying down a problem
which he had been studying ever since she began.--"Read that again,
Clara."

"And thinking it a pity there should be a misunderstanding any longer
existing between you and me, we being both fast approaching to the
grave, I intend, with your and Mrs. Montagu's permission----"

"Mrs. Montagu's permission!" cried the delighted Mrs. Montagu; "are you
quite sure he says that, Clara?" and she pressed over her daughter's
shoulder to ascertain the joyful fact. "Well, well, I do declare he
really does says so. Look, my dear, there it is,--'Mrs. Montagu's
permission.' He never called me Mrs. Montagu before. God bless him! a
nice old gentleman! I am sure I shall be very glad to see him and his
brave son, too. Only think, my dear! what an honour it is to have a
hero in one's family! Read on, Clara; I feel quite interested to know
all the particulars of my nephew's victory. You know, he is my nephew,
Mr. Montagu, as well as yours, as I am your wife, and he is your own
brother's son; so, read on, Clara, and let us know all about him."

Clara obeyed the moment her mother gave her an opportunity. "I intend,
with your and Mrs. Montagu's permission, to take the opportunity of
visiting you. I remain, with kind remembrances to Mrs. Montagu and my
niece, to whom I long to be introduced, your affectionate brother,

"AMBROSE MONTAGU."

"Very well," said Mr. Montagu, "I shall be very glad to see him;
I always loved my brother, and I was quite sorry when we were not
friends."

"Here is a postscript," resumed Clara, and she read:

"I quite forgot to inform you, that the Queen has conferred a title
upon my son, and that I shall have to present him to you as Lord
Edmund."

"I am very glad to hear it," exclaimed the gratified uncle.

"And so am I," reiterated his wife. "My nephew, Lord Edmund Montagu. I
wonder when they will be here: I must set about making preparations for
them immediately. Strike the kitchen automaton, Clara, to summon all
the domestic assistants together, that I may give my orders. Dear me!
what a bustle I am in."

In one corner of the room stood a kind of organ, by playing certain
notes upon which, intimation was given in the lower regions of what was
wanted in the parlour; the organ having long tubes communicating with
the kitchen, through which the sound was conveyed. Clara accordingly
sat down, and by striking a few chords, soon assembled all the
domestics of her father.

"I expect company," said Mrs. Montagu, with an air of excessive
consequence. "My brother-in-law, Sir Ambrose Montagu, and my nephew,
Lord Edmund Montagu, are coming to stay with us during a triumph,
with which her most gracious Majesty the Queen intends to honour Lord
Edmund, my nephew. When did my brother-in-law, Sir Ambrose, say that he
and my nephew, Lord Edmund, intended coming, Mr. Montagu? Clara, look
at Sir Ambrose's letter. 'I intend,' says he, addressing Mr. Montagu,
'with your and Mrs. Montagu's permission, to be with you on such a
day,' but I forget what day he mentions."

"He does not say which day," replied Clara, consulting the letter.

"Well, at any rate, it will be very soon," resumed Mrs. Montagu;
"and we must prepare accordingly. You know, the connexions of my
brother-in-law, Sir Ambrose, are very high, and I do not doubt but
his intimate friend, the Duke of Cornwall, will call to see him--nay,
perhaps, he may dine at my table with the two princesses, his daughter
and niece. Indeed there's no knowing, but, perhaps, even her most
gracious Majesty the Queen may condescend to enter my humble doors.
Do you hear, all of you?--you must all be attentive. You Angelina, as
cook, will have the most upon your hands--remember, nothing can be too
plain for great people. Fricassees and ragouts are only devoured by the
_canaille_."

"I am instructed of that, Ma'am," replied Angelina, a great, fat,
bonny-looking cook,--"but I flatter myself I know how to concoct
dishes----"

"That is the very thing I want to avoid," interrupted her mistress. "It
is the fashion now for great people to have only one dish, and that
as plainly cooked as possible. I have been told by a friend of mine,
who got a peep at the great dinner the Queen gave the other day to
the foreign ambassadors, that there was nothing in the world upon the
table, but a huge round of boiled beef, and a great dish of smoking
potatoes, with their jackets on."

"Well, Ma'am," returned Angelina, "I will rally both my physical
and mental energies to afford you all the satisfaction in my power;
notwithstanding which, I am free to confess, that, in my opinion, the
gastronomic science is now cruelly neglected, and that I do not think
the digestive powers of the stomach can be properly excited from their
dormant state by such unstimulating food as that you mention. Besides,
the muscular force of the stomach must be strained to decompose such
solid viands, and I should think the diaphragm seriously injured--"

"You, Alphonso," continued Mrs. Montagu, addressing the footman, and
cruelly interrupting the learned harangue of the cook, "must have
a new suit of livery. In the mean time, arrange properly the best
drawing-room, and clean the pictures. There is a fine large painting of
one of the old English artists, over the door, the colours of which are
quite faded; I am afraid you have used something improper to clean it."

"Indeed, Madam," returned Alphonso, "I think the fault is in the
picture itself. It did not dry well originally; I don't think the oil
that was used in its composition had the carbon and hydrogen mingled in
proper proportions. You know, Madam, that oil in general has an amazing
affinity for oxygen, and absorbs it rapidly; now, though the oil of
this picture has been exposed for years to the action of the common
atmospheric air, yet it has never thickened properly into a concrete
state."

"Eustace! you, as butler, must take care not to bring any variety of
wines to the table: nothing is drunk now but port and sherry; and even
they are going out of fashion. Have plenty of strong ale, however, and
porter, for they are now reckoned the most elegant liquors for the
ladies."

"I shall do my utmost endeavour to obey your injunctions, Madam," said
Eustace, bowing respectfully, "but I cannot imagine that any species of
corn, even if it have undergone the vinous fermentation, can produce a
liquid so agreeable to the palate, as well as conducive to the sanity
of the body, as the juice of the grape."

"And you, Evelina and Cecilia," continued Mrs. Montagu, addressing her
housemaids, "must superintend the arrangement of the dormitories: let
the air out of the beds and re-inflate them--examine the elastic spring
mattresses--mend the gossamer curtains--sweep the velvet carpets, and
take care the tubes for withdrawing the decomposed air, and admitting
fresh, are in proper order;--also, clean out the baths attached to each
chamber, and take care there is an abundant supply of water."

"I am told that ablution in the common aqueous fluid is becoming more
fashionable than any medicated baths," said Evelina, "and that some
people of rank actually use a composition of alkali and oil to remove
the pulverous particles that may have lodged upon their epidermis in
the course of the day."

"I fear from the commands you have issued, Madam," rejoined Cecilia,
"that you were oblivious of the alteration that has been effected in
the superior dormitory. The air there is no longer changed by means
of tubes--but there is a fan-feather ventilator fixed in the ceiling,
which by its gentle undulations occasions a free circulation of the
aëriform fluid; I do not think, however, that it is quite adequate to
supply the place of the tubes; as upon entering the room the other
morning, I perceived a strong sensation of azote, and I am confident
that the proportion of nitrogen more than trebled that of oxygen in the
air contained in the whole apartment."

"I am sorry for that," said Mrs. Montagu, "as it is the best
sleeping-room: however, as it is too late to change it, we must do
the best we can; and so go all of you and attend to my directions,
for I should be very sorry to have my brother-in-law Sir Ambrose, and
my nephew Lord Edmund, put to any inconvenience, during their sojourn
in my dwelling; to say nothing of the great and noble guests who may
perchance also honour the mansion with their presence."

Whilst this bustle was taking place in the house of Mr. Montagu,
Edric and his tutor were on their way to London. It was with infinite
difficulty, however, the doctor could be persuaded to set off without
alarming the family; for, again and again, he would return to survey
the treasures he was leaving behind, and the moment Edric thought he
had him safe, he would recollect some indispensable requisite for their
journey, and hurry back again to find it. At last they were fairly
started, and a favourable wind blew them rapidly towards London. Edric
had never seen this vast metropolis, and his astonishment and delight,
when its magnificent palaces, its superb streets, its public buildings,
its theatres, and its churches, broke upon him, was quite beyond
description. His transports and exclamations, indeed, at length became
so violent, as quite to annoy the learned doctor.

"If you feel such rapture at the sight of London," said he, peevishly,
"I suppose you will be reluctant to quit it; and I dare say you already
repent having proposed to travel."

"Oh! what is that?" cried Edric, without attending to him, as, lost in
amazement, he saw a house in the suburbs gently slide out of its place,
and glide majestically along the road, a lady at one of the windows
kissing her hand to some one in another house as she passed. "Do my
eyes deceive me, or does that house move?"

"Certainly it does," replied the doctor. "Did you never see a moving
house before? You must have heard of them at any rate, for nothing can
be more common. It certainly is convenient, when one wants to go into
the country for a few weeks, to be able to take one's house with one:
it saves a great deal of trouble in packing, and permits one to have
all one's little conveniences about one. You see there are grooves in
the bottom of the houses that just fit on the iron railways; and as
they are propelled by steam, they slide on without much trouble. It
does not answer, however, with any but small houses, for large ones
can't well be made compact enough. However, you must postpone your
admiration of that, as well as of the other wonders of London, for
here we are at Lord Gustavus's door. What a noble mansion! is it not?
This street, Edric, is called the Strand, and is the most fashionable
in London; because it adjoins the Queen's favourite palace at Somerset
House."

"Is that the palace?" said Edric. "It seems a noble pile of building."

"The gardens are fine," replied the doctor; "but as they are thrown
open to the public, and nothing is paid for admission, it is reckoned
vulgar to walk in them. You English do not like any thing you do not
pay for; but more of this hereafter. We must now prepare to pay our
respects to our noble host."

Lord Gustavus de Montfort received them very kindly, but Edric found
something in his voice and manners excessively forbidding. He had a
pompous disagreeable manner of speaking, with a nasal accent so strong,
that it was absolutely torture to Edric, whose sense of hearing was
uncommonly fine, to listen to him. He had also a conceited dictatorial
way of delivering his opinion, which Edric thought extremely
unpleasant. He generally commenced his speeches with "Thinking as I
think, and as I am positive every one who hears me must think, or at
least ought to think;" and this exordium formed an epitome of his
character; as he was firmly persuaded that every one who differed in
the slightest degree from his opinion, was decidedly wrong, whilst
the possibility of his ever being mistaken himself never entered his
imagination. His father had been one of the counsellors of the late
Queen, and his eldest brother having declined to take the father's
place upon his death, Lord Gustavus had been appointed to it. Thus he
was really a person of some consequence in the state; and though his
being so was quite a matter of chance, arising from the circumstances
above-mentioned and the indolence of the Queen, he affected to regard
it as a matter of personal favour to himself, and endeavoured to
persuade his hearers that the affairs of government could not possibly
go on without him. Knowing his foible of wishing to be thought of
importance in the realm, and feeling the want of a leader of rank, some
of the discontented spirits of the kingdom had endeavoured to gain him
over to their party; and though Lord Gustavus was strictly loyal, and
even particularly fond of talking of her gracious Majesty the Queen,
and boasting of the confidence she placed in him, yet his vanity could
not altogether resist the able attacks made upon it by the rebels.
He wavered, he began to talk of reform, and to mingle boasts of his
popularity amongst the people, with those he had before indulged in, of
enjoying the favour of his sovereign. Thus he hung upon the balance,
ready to incline to either side, according to the circumstances that
time or chance might produce.

"I am extremely happy," said he, as he advanced to meet his guests,
"that my worthy and respected friend Father Morris has procured me
the honour of such illustrious visitors. The holy father has informed
me of the sublime purpose that animates your bosoms and leads you to
traverse realms of air, to explore the hitherto undiscovered secrets of
the grave. His partiality for me has also led him to imagine that my
humble means may perchance prove conducive to so great an end, and he
has requested me to give you all the assistance in my power to promote
the gigantic objects you have in view. Thus you may rest assured, no
efforts shall be wanting on my part to fulfil his wishes, and as,
though insignificant in myself, I am so happy as to be honoured by
the protection and favour of her Majesty the Queen, my most gracious
sovereign; and also as my feeble attempts to promote the public good
have been rewarded by the gratitude of the people; it may perchance
be in my power to serve you; and in the mean time I hope you will do
me the honour to partake of such hospitality as my humble mansion can
afford." So saying, Lord Gustavus led the way through a sumptuous suite
of rooms, to one where an elegant cold collation was laid out, of
which he invited his guests to partake. Nothing could be more splendid
than the furniture and embellishments of this apartment. The rooms
were hung with crimson silk, trimmed with gold; valuable paintings
decorated the walls; statues of inestimable price filled each corner,
and magnificent mirrors increased tenfold the magic of the scene. Lord
Gustavus secretly enjoyed the astonishment and admiration painted upon
the countenances of his guests; and whilst he openly affected to talk
of his "poor house," and his "humble attempts to entertain them,"
&c. his heart covertly exalted in the grandeur around him, and his
eyes sparkled with pleasure at the effect he saw it produced upon the
strangers. Nothing makes one so much disposed to be in a good humour
with the world, as being in a good humour with oneself; and nothing
is so certain to produce that delightful sensation, as to see what we
possess excite the admiration of others. Thus, as the flattery conveyed
by looks far outweighs that expressed by words, and as the looks of
Edric and the doctor unequivocally declared their sentiments, Lord
Gustavus was quite enchanted with his visitors, and spared no pains to
render them equally happy as himself. He ordered a large apartment to
be prepared for the doctor, that he might make his arrangements for
the intended Egyptian expedition quite at his ease; he commanded his
servants to obey his directions implicitly, and he directed tradesmen
to supply every thing that might be wanted at his own expense.

Having thus given the doctor _carte blanche_, he next turned his
attention to Edric, and, finding it was his first visit to London,
volunteered to show him all the wonders of that immense metropolis,
which then, spreading enormously in every direction, seemed like the
fabled monster of the Indians, to stretch its enormous arms on every
side and swallow up all the hapless villages which were so unfortunate
as to fall within its reach.

In the mean time, Sir Ambrose had begun to repent, though secretly, of
the unwarrantable severity with which he had treated his son. It is a
trite though undeniable observation, that we never know the real value
of any possession till we have lost it; and thus Sir Ambrose, though
he had thought nothing of the respectful and dutiful attentions of his
son, whilst he was in the habit of constantly receiving them, now felt
their want, and regretted bitterly the ill-timed harshness that had
deprived him of them for ever. Still, however, he was too obstinate to
own he had been wrong; and though he knew that by recalling his son
he should restore his lost happiness, he, like many other persons in
similar situations, most magnanimously determined to persist in being
miserable.

The Duke of Cornwall was quite astonished, and even indignant, at what
he termed the inconsistency of his friend. "How can you be so weak as
still to regret the loss of that peevish boy?" said he, as, on the
second morning after Edric's departure, he entered the library of Sir
Ambrose, attended by his confessor, Father Murphy. "Depend upon it,
it is bad policy; for patience robs care of its bitterest sting, as
this holy father says. You often preach that doctrine to me, don't
you, Father Murphy?" Father Murphy was an Irishman, and gifted with a
rich brogue, which, aided by his comely figure, round rosy face, and
little laughing black eyes, gave a peculiar raciness to every thing he
said. He had not long filled the office he then held, and though he
had been recommended to it, on the death of the duke's late confessor,
by Father Morris, yet no two human beings could be more different than
he and that reverend personage. Father Murphy, indeed, was a general
favourite, and the whole household of the duke concurred in thinking
him quite a nonpareil of a priest; for, as he was not very fond of
doing penance himself, so he was not very rigid in imposing it upon
others, and consequently he and his penitents were always upon the best
terms imaginable. In short, he seemed especially designed by Nature to
be good friends with all the world; and on his side he certainly did
the utmost not to thwart the beneficent old lady's kind intentions.

He now smiled good-humouredly at the duke's question, and replied,
"Och! and is it me ye're quoting from, yere Grace? And where's the
use of that, pray? when ye know I'm just here and ready to quote for
myself."

"If all your observations are as good as that the duke has just
repeated," said Sir Ambrose, "I don't know any body that might be
quoted from with more advantage."

"Sure! and is it of myself ye're saying that?" asked Father Murphy, "for
if ye are, ye never made a better spach in all your life; only there's
a little mistake if ye think the observation ye're talking of came out
of my own head, for it didn't do any such thing."

"Do not be alarmed," said Father Morris, who now approached, and who
spoke with his usual satirical sneer: "No one who knows you will ever
suspect you of any thing so atrocious."

"Good-nature and integrity are sometimes more than equivalent to
brilliant talents," said Sir Ambrose bitterly.

"True," rejoined Father Morris, in one of his softest, most insinuating
tones; "but they become inestimable when united, as in the example
before us:" bowing to Father Murphy as he spoke. Sir Ambrose turned,
and looked earnestly at the tall thin figure of the monk as he stood
before him, his arms crossed upon his breast, and his head, as usual,
bent towards the ground, but he did not speak. A short pause ensued,
which was broken by the duke's suddenly exclaiming, "Did you not say
Dr. Entwerfen has gone off with Edric?"

"Certainly, I did."

"Then, depend upon it, the whole was a planned thing. They have taken
some wild scheme into their heads, and they are gone to execute it."

"Impossible!" exclaimed Sir Ambrose.

"I see no impossibility in the business," resumed the duke. "I think
the case is clear. They did not know how to get off decently; and so
Edric pretended to quarrel with you and me, to give the thing a face."

"I cannot fancy Edric guilty of such meanness," cried Sir Ambrose
passionately.

"I don't think the matter admits of a single doubt. But what do you
think on the subject, Father Morris?"

"Men devoted to austere professions like myself," replied the priest,
without raising his eyes from the ground, "know but little of what is
passing in the world. Thus, though my body be no longer shrouded in the
gloom of a cloister, my mind remains still too much abstracted from the
busy scenes around me, for me to be a competent judge of the effect of
human passions."

"Och, then, ye are very right to say nothin' about them," cried Father
Murphy; "for though I'm in a passion every day of my life, I nevher
know what to say when I begin to talk of it. And so I jist think it's
the wisest way to holdth my tongue."

Neither Sir Ambrose nor the duke made any reply; and after settling
that they should commence their journey on the following morning, they
separated.



CHAPTER VIII.


The journey of the duke and Sir Ambrose to London had nothing in it to
distinguish it from hundreds of other journeys, and they did not meet
with a single adventure worthy of being recorded.

It happened by one of those singular coincidences in real life, which
would be called improbable in a novel, that Mr. Montagu's mansion
adjoined that of the duke, Mrs. Montagu having, like most of the
_parvenu_ genus, a most violent _penchant_ for the neighbourhood of the
great; perhaps, in the hope that gentility might be infectious, and
that she might catch a little by being near it. Both houses were in the
Strand, which was, as we have before stated, in those days the most
fashionable part of London, and both had beautiful gardens shelving
down to the Thames.

Mrs. Montagu received her brother-in-law with all that awkward
overstrained civility, with which persons raised above their original
grade in society, generally endeavour to show their respect to those
whom they consider as their superiors; whilst Mr. Montagu welcomed him
with warm affection, and presented his daughter Clara to her uncle with
all the fondness of a parent.

Clara Montagu well deserved his partiality, for she was a charming
girl; and her light fairy form and animated features seemed to realize
all that poets feign of Hebe. Sir Ambrose was delighted with her,
and half his dislike of the mother banished, as he contemplated the
budding charms of the daughter. It was well he had such an antidote,
for poor Mrs. Montagu, in her over-anxiety to render herself agreeable,
contrived to be most excessively annoying to him. Perhaps, indeed,
there are few things more troublesome than this vulgar attempt at
politeness, and the good temper of the baronet was almost exhausted ere
he retired for the night.

Abelard, who had accompanied his master to town, and who often
officiated as groom of the chamber, assisted him to undress, and, as
usual with servants in those days, took the liberty of giving his
opinion freely of their hostess. Sir Ambrose felt no interest in his
remarks, but he did not check them, as he hoped, after he had exhausted
this theme, he might turn the conversation upon Edric. The baronet was
indeed excessively anxious to hear some news of his son, though he was
by far too proud to make any inquiries respecting him.

"So you really think Mrs. Montagu disagreeable, Abelard," said Sir
Ambrose.

"She is a perfect nuisance, your honour, to all civilized society. Why,
I have observed her all day, and I verily believe she has never left
your honour for ten minutes, nor ever ceased for more than half an hour
at a time, pressing your honour to eat."

"True," said Sir Ambrose, laughing, "one would think she took me for a
slave, and wanted to feed me up fat before she sent me to market to be
sold."

"Then she is so curious and inquisitive," resumed Abelard. "When she
saw me bow to Master Edric just now, she was quite in a fever to know
who he was; but I would not satisfy her."

"Master Edric!" exclaimed the baronet. "What, then! have you seen my
son?"

"Yes, your honour, and it startled me so that it made me raise the
adnatæ of my visual organs like one of the anas genus when the
clouds are charged with electric fluid; and my heart leaped from its
transverse position on my diaphragm, and seemed to stick like a great
bone right across my œsophagus."

"How did he look?" asked Sir Ambrose. "Not that I feel the slightest
anxiety respecting him. No--no, his own conduct has quite precluded
that."

"He was in a balloon, and when he saw me, he wrote something on a piece
of paper with a pencil, and threw it down, desiring me to give it to
your honour."

"Where is it?" cried Sir Ambrose, endeavouring to conceal his anxiety.

Abelard searched his pockets, and opened a large pocket-book, which
he carefully examined, but in vain. "I am afraid I have lost it, your
honour. No; here--here it is. Yes,--no. These are some verses of my
own, in the acromonogrammatic style, only every line begins with the
same _word_ with which the last ended, instead of the same letter.
Shall I read them to your honour?"

Sir Ambrose groaned in the spirit, and the unmerciful Abelard, taking
that for a token of assent, deliberately unfolded the paper, and read
as follows:--


    "ON LOVE.

    "Of all the powers in Heaven above,
    Above all others, triumphs Love:
    Love rules the soul--the heart invades,
    Invades the cities and the shades.
    Shades form no shelter from its power,
    Power trembles in his courtly bower.
    Bower of beauty--art thou free?
    Free thou art not--nor canst thou be!
    Be every other class released,
    Released from love, thy woe's increased;
    Increased by all the weight of care,
    Care flowing from complete despair."


"Humph!" said Sir Ambrose.

"I hope your honour is pleased with this little effusion of my Muse?"

"Oh yes, it is very fine, Abelard."

"And your honour thinks it well turned, and well expressed."

"Excellently! only I own I don't understand why despair comes in the
last line."

"Despair--despair: oh! to rhyme with care, your honour."

"That reason is unanswerable," returned Sir Ambrose, smiling.--"And
so you are quite sure you have lost Edric's note!--Not that it is of
the least consequence, as nothing he could say, can possibly alter my
opinion of his conduct; but, if you had had it--I thought I might as
well have read it, to avoid the imputation of obstinacy."

"It is irrevocably gone, your honour."

"Well then, good night; and, if you should see Edric again, you may as
well tell him the fate of his note;--for, shamefully as he has behaved,
I would not give him reason to accuse me of obstinacy."

This was the second time the baronet had made the same observation;
and ill-natured people might have said--but what do the remarks of
ill-natured people signify to us? We hope all our readers will be
good-natured ones, and as they will assuredly put the best possible
construction upon Sir Ambrose's conduct, we will not be so malicious as
to suggest an evil one.

Edric was exceedingly agitated by his encounter with Abelard; and,
feeling convinced his father was in town, he determined to delay
his journey no longer, as his dread of meeting him was excessive.
He therefore resolved to seek his tutor, and, if he found him still
inclined to procrastinate, to set off without him. On reaching the
doctor's chamber, however, he found half his anger converted into
laughter at the ludicrous situation of the poor philosopher, who,
surrounded as he was on every side by a crowd of tradesmen clamorous
for orders, looked something like Mercury encircled by a tribe of
discontented ghosts upon the banks of the Styx.

"Yes, yes, Mr. Jones," said he; "I see you understand me. The coats
are to be those woven in machines, where the wool is stripped off the
sheep's back by one end, and the coat comes out completely made, in the
newest fashion, at the other."

"Very well, Sir," said Mr. Jones, wagging his ears in token of assent;
for in those days of universal education, even the muscles of the head
were trained to perform functions which in former days it was only
supposed possible they _might_ attain: "You are quite right, Sir,--no
person of fashion ever wears any thing else now."

"Oh, Edric!" cried the doctor, "I shall be ready to attend to you
directly;--and so, Mrs. Celestina, you must make the soup, if you
please, water-proof; and you, Mr. Crispin, must have the boots ready to
dissolve, at a moment's notice. Oh, dear! oh, dear, what a perplexity
I am in, my head is going just like a steam-boat, at the rate of sixty
miles an hour!"

"Upon my word, doctor," said Edric, looking round in dismay, "if we are
to take half the things assembled here, I do not know where we shall
find a balloon large enough and strong enough even to raise us from the
ground."

"I will show you one," replied the doctor, mysteriously; and solemnly
drawing forth from his bosom a key, which appeared to have been
suspended by a ribbon from his neck, he slowly opened, with great
difficulty, a secret drawer in his escritoire, and produced from its
inmost recesses a small bottle of Indian rubber. The gravity of the
doctor's manner, and the length of time that he had employed in this
operation, had excited Edric's curiosity, and he burst into a violent
and uncontrollable fit of laughter when he saw the result.

"What is the matter, Edric?" asked the doctor, with the utmost
solemnity; "what can be the occasion of this unceremonious and
ill-timed levity?"

"Parturient mountains, my dear doctor," replied Edric, still
laughing,--"you know the rest."

"Ridicule, Edric," said the doctor gravely, "is by no means the test
of truth. Fools often,--nay, generally, laugh at what they cannot
understand, and when I shall have explained the motives of my conduct,
I trust you will feel ashamed of your present weak and unseasonable
mirth.

"Caoutchouc, Edric, is a substance capable of astonishing dilation and
contraction; whilst the peculiar elasticity and tenacity of its fibres
give it a strength and solidity, very rare in bodies when in a state
of extreme tension. There are several very extraordinary phenomena
relating to elastic bodies, which I am happy to have an apposite
opportunity of explaining to you." (Edric yawned.) "You know, elastic
substances have the power of wonderfully resisting a force which would
annihilate solids, apparently infinitely stronger than themselves, as a
feather-bed will repulse a cannon-ball that would penetrate with ease
through a thick table. Now the reason for this is clear: the elastic
body has the power of summoning all its forces to its assistance, for
the effect of a blow may be traced even to its remotest extremity;
whereas the solid substance can only oppose its enemy by the mere
resistance of the identical part struck."

"Certainly," said Edric, striving to suppress a yawn; "nothing can be
more clear."

"Nothing," resumed the doctor. "I was sure you would admire the force
of my reasoning; indeed, I see the excess of your admiration in the
involuntary yawns in which you have been indulging. On some occasions,
Edric, man shakes off the artificial restraints of society, and breaks
forth into the full freedom of honest and unsophisticated nature:--thus
it was with you, Edric. In ancient times, the extension of the jaws
was held synonymous with the extension of the understanding, and the
opening of the mouth and eyes was considered as the greatest possible
sign of pleasure that could be given. In the works of an ancient
author, whose poetry was doubtless once esteemed very fine, since it is
now quite unintelligible, we find the following passage:--

    'And Hodge stood lost in wide-mouth'd speculation.'

Again,

    'His eyes and mouth the hero open'd wide.'

--And divers others, which----"

"We will leave till a more convenient opportunity, if you please," said
Edric, interrupting him. "At present, do favour me for five minutes
with your attention. We cannot take all these things."

"Why not?" asked the doctor, gazing at his pupil with surprise; "for my
part, I do not think we can dispense with a single article."

"These cloaks," said Edric, "and those hampers, for instance, cannot be
of the slightest use."

"I beg your pardon," returned the doctor. "The cloaks are of asbestos,
and will be necessary to protect us from ignition, if we should
encounter any electric matter in the clouds; and the hampers are filled
with elastic plugs for our ears and noses, and tubes and barrels of
common air, for us to breathe when we get beyond the atmosphere of the
earth."

"But what occasion shall we have to go beyond it?"

"How can we do otherwise? Surely you don't mean to travel the whole
distance in the balloon? I thought, of course, you would adopt the
present fashionable mode of travelling, and after mounting the
seventeen miles or thereabouts, which is necessary to get clear of the
mundane attraction, to wait there till the turning of the globe should
bring Egypt directly under our feet."

"But it is not in the same latitude."

"True; I did not think of that! Well, then," sighing deeply, "I suppose
we must do without the hamper?"

"Certainly; and without those boxes and bottles too, I hope."

"Oh no! we can't do without those. Those bottles contain my magic
elixir, that cures all diseases merely by the smell:--a new idea that.
You know it has been long discovered, that the whole materia medica
might be carried in a ring, and that all the instruments of surgery
might be compressed into a walking-stick. But the idea of sniffing
health in a pinch of snuff is, I flatter myself, exclusively my own."

"Very likely; but we cannot be encumbered with your panaçea in our
aërial tour."

"Then that box contains my portable galvanic battery; that, my
apparatus for making and collecting the inflammable air; and that, my
machine for producing and concentrating the quicksilver vapour, which
is to serve as the propelling power to urge us onwards, in the place of
steam; and these bladders are filled with laughing gas, for the sole
purpose of keeping up our spirits."

"The three first will be useful," said Edric; "but I will positively
have no more."

"Adieu! adieu! then, my precious treasures!" exclaimed the doctor,
looking sorrowfully around: "Dear offspring of my cares! children of my
mind! and must I leave you to some rude hand, which, heedless of your
inestimable worth, may scatter your beauties to the winds? Alas! alas!"

"Breakfast is ready, and my lord is waiting!" interrupted the shrill
voice of one of Lord Gustavus's servants.

"Then we must go!" said the doctor; and the rest of his pathetic
lamentation remained for ever buried in his own bosom.

Lord Gustavus was already seated when they entered the room, with
two gentlemen, whom he introduced to our travellers as Lord Noodle
and Lord Doodle. These noble lords were both counsellors of state as
well as their illustrious host, and had attained that high honour in
exactly the same way, viz. they had both succeeded their respective
fathers. It is not easy to be very diffuse in their description, as
they were members of that honourable and numerous fraternity, who
never take the trouble of judging for themselves, but contentedly
swim with the stream, whichever way it may flow, and have nothing
about them to distinguish them in the slightest degree from the crowd.
Lord Gustavus was at present their leading star, and they might very
appropriately be termed his satellites. Thus, when any new idea was
started, they cautiously refrained from giving an opinion till they
found what _he_ thought of it:--they would then look wise, shake their
heads, and say, "Exactly so!" "Certainly!" "Nobody can doubt it!"
or some of those other convenient _ripieno_ phrases, which fill up
so agreeably the pauses in the conversation, without requiring any
troublesome exertion of the mental powers of either the hearer or the
speaker. These gentlemen had now visited Lord Gustavus, for the purpose
of accompanying him and Edric to the Queen's levee, and as soon as
they had taken breakfast, the whole party, with the exception of Dr.
Entwerfen, proceeded to court.

When arrived there, however, they found the Queen had not yet
risen. "Her Majesty is late this morning," observed Lord Maysworth,
a gentleman loaded with orders and decorations, addressing Lord
Gustavus:--"I am not surprised," said his lordship, "for her most
gracious Majesty told me the other day, that she has slept badly for
some time."

"Which, of course, caused you great grief?" asked Dr. Hardman, a
little, satirical-looking gentleman in a bob-wig.

"Thinking as I think," said Lord Gustavus gravely, "and as I am sure
every one here must think, or at least ought to think, her Majesty's
want of sleep is a circumstance of very serious importance."

"Oh! very!" exclaimed Lord Noodle, shaking his head. "Most assuredly!"
cried Lord Doodle, shaking his.

"Why?" demanded the doctor; "of what possible consequence can it be to
her subjects, whether her Majesty sleeps soundly or has the night-mare?"

"Of the greatest consequence," replied Lord Gustavus solemnly.

"Nothing can be greater!" echoed his satellites.

"Well!" observed Lord Maysworth, "for my part, I am such a traitor as
to think we might exist, even if the Queen did not sleep at all."

"Or if she slept for ever," rejoined the doctor significantly.

"Oh, fie!" cried Lord Gustavus; "what would become of us, if the great
sun of the political hemisphere were to set!"

"We must watch the rising of another, I suppose," said Lord Maysworth.

"Yes," continued Dr. Hardman: "and then the energies of the people
would be roused. They want awakening from their present slumber--they
have slept too long under the paralyzing effects of tyranny. The
government wants reform; corruption has eaten into its root, and it
must be eradicated ere England can be free, or its people happy. Would
to Heaven I might live to aid in the glorious struggle; that I might
see the people assert their rights, and the fiend, Despotism, sink
beneath their blows."

"I have ever admired," said Lord Maysworth, "the high integrity and
fine principles of the worthy doctor, which have not only obtained
for him the applause of England, but the admiration of Europe. The
courage, wisdom, and purity of his mind cannot be too highly extolled;
and all who know him concur in calling him the firm and devoted friend
of mankind. I also have been an humble supporter of plans of economy
and retrenchment; and it was I who had the honour of suggesting to the
council the other day, that an humble petition should be presented to
her Majesty, requesting her respectfully to order a diminution of the
lights in her saloon, proving incontestably, that there were, at least,
six more than were absolutely necessary."

"Thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one here must think,"
began Lord Gustavus,--but ere he had time to finish his exordium, the
folding doors at the back of the audience chamber were thrown open, and
the Queen appeared, sitting upon a gorgeous throne, and surrounded by
the officers of her household all splendidly attired.

The usual ceremonies then took place:--Claudia smiled graciously on
Edric, as he kissed her hand, and inquired when he intended to depart.
Edric informed her on the morrow; when, condescending to express
regret, and desiring to see him on his return, she wished him an
agreeable voyage, and dismissed him.

During their ride home, Lord Gustavus could talk of nothing but the
graciousness of the Queen, upon which he was still expatiating, when
the balloon stopped; and Edric, who, though he felt grateful for her
kindness, was annoyed by hearing so much said of it, hastened to leave
him as soon as he possibly could with propriety. On his road to his
own apartment, however, he heard a strange and fearful noise, like the
voice of some one screaming in an agony of rage and pain, which seemed
to proceed from the chamber appropriated to his learned tutor; and he
was going there to ascertain the cause, when the agitated form of the
unfortunate philosopher burst upon him.

Sad, indeed, was the condition in which this splendid ornament of the
twenty-second century now presented himself before the eyes of his
astonished pupil. His face glowed like fire; his hat was off, and water
streamed from every part of his body till he looked like the effigy of
a water deity in a fountain.

"Here is management!" cried he, as soon as his rage permitted him to
speak; "here is treatment for one devoted to the service of mankind!
But I will be revenged, and centuries yet to come, shall tremble at my
wrath."

In this manner he continued, and being too much occupied in these awful
denunciations, to be able to give any information as to what calamity
had brought him into this unseemly plight, it will be necessary to go
back a little to explain it for him.

When Dr. Entwerfen left the breakfast-room of Lord Gustavus, which
he did not do till a considerable time after the rest of the party
had quitted it, he was so absorbed in meditation that he did not know
exactly which way he was going; and, happening unfortunately to turn
to the right when he should have gone to the left, to his infinite
surprise he found himself in the kitchen, instead of his own study.

Absent as the doctor was, however, his attention was soon roused by the
scene before him. Being, like many of his learned brotherhood, somewhat
of a gourmand, his indignation was violently excited by finding the
cook comfortably asleep on a sofa on one side of the room, whilst the
meat intended for dinner, a meal it was then the fashion to take about
noon, was as comfortably resting itself from its toils on the other.
The chemical substitute for fire, which ought to have cooked it, having
gone out, and the cook's nap precluding all reasonable expectation
of its re-illumination, the doctor's wrath was kindled, though the
fire was not, and in a violent rage he seized the gentle Celestina's
shoulder, and shook her till she woke.

"Where am I?" exclaimed she, opening her eyes.

"Any where but where you ought to be," cried the doctor, in a fury.
"Look, hussy! look at that fine joint of meat, lying quite cold and
sodden in its own steam."

"Dear me!" returned Celestina, yawning, "I am really quite unfortunate
to-day! An unlucky accident has already occurred to a leg of mutton
which was to have formed part of today's aliments; and now this piece
of beef is also destroyed. I am afraid there will be nothing for dinner
but some mucilaginous saccharine vegetables, and they, most probably,
will be boiled to a viscous consistency."

"And what excuse can you offer for all this?" exclaimed the doctor, his
voice trembling with passion.

"It was unavoidable;" replied Celestina, coolly; "whilst I was copying
a cast from the Apollo Belvedere this morning, having unguardedly
applied too much caloric to the vessel containing the leg of mutton,
the aqueous fluid in which it was immersed, evaporated, and the viand
became completely calcined. Whilst the other affair--"

"Hush, hush!" interrupted the doctor; "I cannot bear to hear you
mention it. Oh, surely Job himself never suffered such a trial of his
patience! In fact, _his_ troubles were scarcely worth mentioning, for
he was never cursed with learned servants!"

Saying this the doctor retired, lamenting his hard fate in not having
been born in those halcyon days when cooks drew nothing but their
poultry; whilst the gentle Celestina's breast panted with indignation
at his complaint. An opportunity soon offered for revenge; and seeing
the doctor's steam valet ready to be carried to its master's chamber,
she treacherously applied a double portion of caloric: in consequence
of which, the machine burst whilst in the act of brushing the doctor's
coat collar, and by discharging the whole of the scalding water
contained in its cauldron upon him, reduced him to the melancholy state
we have already mentioned.

The fear of the ridicule attached to this incident, in a great measure
reconciled the doctor to Edric's project of a speedy departure, and the
following morning they bade adieu to Lord Gustavus, and, stepping into
their balloon, sailed for Egypt.



CHAPTER IX.


No event of any importance occurred to our travellers in the course
of their aërial voyage. They were too well provided with all kinds
of necessaries to have any occasion to rest by the way, and in
an incredibly short space of time they were hovering over Egypt.
Different, however, oh! how different from the Egypt of the nineteenth
century, was the fertile country which now lay like a map beneath
their feet. Improvement had turned her gigantic steps towards its once
desert plains; Commerce had waved her magic wand; and towns and cities,
manufactories and canals, spread in all directions. No more did the
Nile overflow its banks: a thousand channels were cut to receive its
waters. No longer did the moving sands of the Desert rise in mighty
waves, threatening to overwhelm the way-worn traveller: macadamized
turnpike roads supplied their place, over which post-chaises, with
anti-attritioned wheels, bowled at the rate of fifteen miles an hour.
Steamboats glided down the canals, and furnaces raised their smoky
heads amidst groves of palm-trees; whilst iron railways intersected
orange groves, and plantations of dates and pomegranates might be seen
bordering excavations intended for coal pits. Colonies of English and
Americans peopled the country, and produced a population that swarmed
like bees over the land, and surpassed in numbers even the wondrous
throngs of the ancient Mizraim race; whilst industry and science
changed desolation into plenty, and had converted barren plains into
fertile kingdoms.

Amidst all these revolutions, however, the Pyramids still raised their
gigantic forms, towering to the sky; unchanged, unchangeable, grand,
simple, and immoveable, fit symbols of that majestic nature they were
intended to represent, and seeming to look down with contempt upon the
ephemeral structures with which they were surrounded; as though they
would have said, had utterance been permitted to them--"Avaunt, ye
nothings of the day. Respect our dignity and sink into your original
obscurity; for know, that we alone are monarchs of the plains."
Indestructible, however, as they had proved themselves, even their
granite sides had not been able entirely to resist the corroding
influence of the smoke with which they were now surrounded, and a
slight crumbling announced the first outward symptom of decay. Still,
however, though blackened and disfigured, they shone stupendous
monuments of former greatness; and Edric and his tutor gazed upon them
with an awe that for some moments deprived them of utterance.

The doctor, however, who was too fond of reasoning ever long to
remain willingly silent, after surveying them a few minutes, broke
forth as follows:--"What noble piles! What majesty and grandeur
they display in their formation, and yet what dignified simplicity!
Can the imagination of man conceive any thing more sublime than the
thought that they have stood thus frowning in awful magnificence,
perhaps since the very creation of the world, without equals, without
even competitors,--mocking the feeble efforts of man to divine their
origin, and seeing generation after generation pass away, whilst they
still remain immutable, and involved in the same deep and unfathomable
mystery as at first."

"It is very strange," observed Edric, "that, in this age of speculation
and discovery, nothing certain should be known concerning them."

"It is," returned the doctor; "but the thick mysterious veil that has
rested upon them for so many ages, seems not intended to be removed
by mortal hands. They remind one of the sublime inscription upon the
temple of the goddess Isis, at Sais:--'I am whatever was, whatever is,
and whatever shall be; but no mortal has, as yet, presumed to raise the
veil that covers me.'"

"Your quotation is apt, doctor," resumed Edric, "for both relate to
Nature. Indeed, Nature appears to be the deity which the ancient
Egyptians worshipped, under all the various forms in which she presents
herself; and their strange and animal deities were but reverenced
as her symbols. It was Nature whom they worshipped as Isis; it was
Nature that was typified in the Pyramids; and the good taste of the
Egyptians made them prefer the simple, the majestic, and the sublime,
in those works which they destined to last for ages. Formerly, from the
immensity of their population, and high state of their civilization,
labour was so divided, and consequently so lightened, that multitudes
were enabled to exist exempt from toil. These persons, devoting
themselves to study, became _initiati_; and either enrolled themselves
amongst the priesthood, or passed their lives in making themselves
masters of the most abstract sciences. The consequences were natural:
they followed up the ramifications of creation to their original
source; they penetrated into the most profound secrets of Nature, and
traced all her wonders in her works: aware, however, of the taste of
the vulgar for any thing above their comprehension, and of the natural
craving of the human mind for mystery, they wrapped the discoveries
they had made in a deep and impenetrable veil, and concealed awful and
sublime significations under the meanest and most disgusting images."

"You are right," said the doctor, "in your observations upon the
religion of the ancient Egyptians; but it does not appear to me that
the Pyramids were erected by them."

"What! I suppose you draw your conclusions from the want of
hieroglyphics in their principal chambers; and, from what Herodotus
says of their having been erected by a shepherd, you think they were
the work of the Pallic race."

"No; though I allow much may be said in favour of that hypothesis,
particularly as Herodotus says the kings under whom they were
erected, ordered all the Egyptian temples to be closed, which we
know the shepherd or Pallic sovereign did; but I cannot imagine that
an ignorant, Goth-like race of shepherds, men accustomed to live in
tents or in the open air, and possessing no talents but for war, were
capable of constructing such immense piles. No, no, the Pyramids
required gigantic conceptions, highly cultivated minds, and unwearied
perseverance; all qualities quite incompatible with a warlike wandering
race. No, I do not think the Palli were capable of imagining such
structures, much less of constructing them. I think they were the work
of evil spirits."

"Evil spirits!" exclaimed Edric.

"Yes," returned the doctor. "We are told that the evil spirits, after
their expulsion from Paradise, were under the command of the Sultan, or
Soliman Giam ben Giam, as he is called by Arabic writers, but who is
supposed to have been the same as Cheops; and that he employed them in
this vast work."

"I do not know by what analysis etymologists can draw the name of
Cheops from that of Giam ben Giam: but, supposing the fact to be
correct, that they designated the same person, I think it only proves
more strongly my hypothesis; for the Palli came from Mount Caucasus,
where the evil spirits were said to have been enchained, and if Cheops
was a Pallic king, it is possible the Egyptians might poetically call
their conquerors evil spirits."

"That is a good idea, Edric; though I do not think it by any means
certain that Cheops was a Pallic king. However, we shall soon be able
to see his tomb, and judge for ourselves; for we have now approached
near enough to the Pyramids to descend. Foh! what a smoke and what a
noise! It is enough to rouse the mummies from their slumbers before
their appointed time, and without the aid of galvanism. Have you opened
the valves, Edric? Oh yes! I perceive we are getting lower; we will not
lose a moment before we visit the Pyramid. But what a crowd of brutes
are assembled to witness our arrival! they stare as though they had
never seen a balloon before. Egypt is certainly a fine country, but the
inhabitants are a century behind us in civilization."

An immense crowd had gathered together to witness the descent of
our travellers, and they did indeed stand staring, lost in stupid
astonishment at the strange sight that presented itself; for though
the Egyptian people had occasionally seen balloons, they had never
before beheld one made of Indian rubber. The odd figure of the doctor,
too, amused them exceedingly, as he sat wrapt up in the most dignified
manner in an asbestos cloak, his bob-wig pushed a little on one side
from the heat of the weather and the warmth of his argument; his round,
red, oily face attempting to look solemn, and his little, fat, punchy
figure trying to assume an air of majesty. The Egyptians were amazingly
struck with this apparition, and being, like most colonists, somewhat
conceited and not very ceremonious in their manners, they looked at
him a few minutes in silence, and then burst into immoderate fits of
laughter.

The doctor was exceedingly indignant at this rude reception, and
rising, shook his fist at them in anger; a manœuvre, however, that
only redoubled the mirth of the unpolished Egyptians, whose peals of
laughter now became so tremendous, that they actually shook the skies,
and occasioned a most unpleasant vibration in the balloon. Edric,
who was almost as much annoyed as the doctor, had yet sufficient
self-command to continue calmly making preparations for his descent;
and without taking the least notice of the crowd below, he screwed
the top upon the propelling vapour-bottle; he let the inflammable air
escape from the balloon, which rapidly collapsed as they approached
the earth, and throwing out their patent spring grappling-irons, they
caught one of the lower stones of the Great Pyramid, and in a few
moments the car in which our travellers were sitting, was safely moored
at a convenient distance from the earth for them to alight. Edric
now unloosed the descending ladder, and reverentially assisted the
doctor, who was encumbered with his long cloak, to reach terra firma in
safety,--amidst the bustle and exclamations of the crowd, who thronged
round them expressing their wonder and astonishment audibly, in broad
English.

"Where the deuce did this spring from?" cried one; "the car would load
a waggon!"

"And what is gone with the balloon?" said another; "it is clean
vanished!"

"Well, I never saw such a thing in all my life before!" exclaimed a
third; "I think they must be come from the moon."

"Hush! hush," cried an old gentleman bustling amongst them, who seemed
as one having authority. "What's the matter? what's the matter?"

"We are strangers, Sir," said Edric, advancing and addressing him: "we
come here to see the wonders of your country, and we wish to explore
the Pyramids--but the reception we have met with----"

"Say no more--say no more!" interrupted the worthy justice, for such he
was. "Get about your business, you rapscallions, or I'll read the riot
act! Here, Gregory, call out the posse comitatus, and set a guard of
constables to keep watch over these gentlemen's balloon, whilst they go
to explore the Pyramids. Eh! but where is the balloon? I don't see it.
I hope neither of the gentlemen has put it in his pocket!" laughing at
his own wit.

"No, Sir," returned Edric, smiling, "though it is a feat which might
easily be accomplished, for that is our balloon," pointing to the
caoutchouc bottle, now shrunk to its original dimensions.

"Very strange, that!" said the Justice; "Very curious, very curious
indeed! Well, gentlemen, if you wish to proceed immediately, you'll
want a guide of course. These cottages at the foot of the Pyramids are
all inhabited by guides, who get their living by showing the sights.
They are sad rogues, most of them, but I can recommend you to one who
is a very honest man. Here, Samuel," continued he, knocking against a
small door, "Samuel! I say!"

Samuel made his appearance, in the guise of a tall, raw-boned,
stupid-looking fellow, with a pair of immensely broad stooping
shoulders, which looked as though he could have relieved Atlas
occasionally of his burthen, without much trouble to himself. Coming
forth from his hut in an awkward shambling pace, he scratched his head,
and demanded what his honour pleased to want.

"You must show these gentlemen the Pyramids," said the Justice.

"Ay, that I will with pleasure!" returned Samuel; "I've got my living
by showing them these fifty years, man and boy; and I know every crink
and cranny of them, though I'm old now and somewhat lame. So walk this
way, gentlemen."

"We are very much obliged to you, Sir," said the doctor, bowing to the
Justice; who was in fact one of those good-natured, busy, bustling
men, who are always better pleased to transact any other person's
business than their own; and are never so happy as when a new arrival
gives them an opportunity of showing off their consequence. Indeed,
there is a pleasure in showing wonders to a stranger, that only those
who have little else to occupy their minds can properly estimate: a
man of this kind feels his self-love gratified by the superiority his
local knowledge gives him over a stranger; and, as it is, perhaps,
the only chance he ever can have of showing superiority, they must
be unreasonable who blame him for making the most of it. Justice
Freemantle was accordingly exceedingly delighted with travellers who
seemed disposed to submit implicitly to his dictation; and he returned
a most gracious reply to the doctor's thanks.

"Don't mention it! don't mention it, my dear Sir!" said he; "I am never
so happy as when I can make myself useful. Is there any thing else I
can do for you? You may command me, I assure you; and you may depend
upon it, no injury shall be done to your luggage, whilst you are away."

"What a very civil, obliging, good-natured old gentleman," said the
doctor, as they walked towards the entrance of the Pyramids; "I declare
he almost reconciles me to the country, though, I own, I thought at
first the people were the greatest brutes I had ever met with."

"Which Pyramid does your honour wish to see?" asked the guide.

"That which contains the tomb of Cheops, man!" cried the doctor
solemnly; who, encumbered with his long cloak, and loaded with his
walking-stick and galvanic battery, had some difficulty in getting on.

"Won't your honour let me carry that pole and that bag?" said the man;
"you'd get on a surprising deal better, if you would."

"Avaunt, wretch!" exclaimed the doctor, "nor offer to touch with thy
profane fingers the immortal instruments of science."

The man stared, but fell back, and the whole party walked on in perfect
silence.

In the mean time, Edric had walked on before his companions, completely
lost in meditation. A crowd of conflicting thoughts rushed through his
mind; and now, when he found himself at the very goal of his wishes,
the daring nature of the purpose he had so long entertained, seemed to
strike him for the first time, and he trembled at the consequences that
might attend the completion of his desires. With his arms folded on
his breast, he stood gazing on the Pyramids, whilst his ideas wandered
uncontrolled through the boundless regions of space: "And what am I,"
thought he, "weak, feeble worm that I am! who dare seek to penetrate
into the awful secrets of my Creator? Why should I wish to restore
animation to a body now resting in the quiet of the tomb? What right
have I to renew the struggles, the pains, the cares, and the anxieties
of mortal life? How can I tell the fearful effects that may be produced
by the gratification of my unearthly longing? May I not revive a
creature whose wickedness may involve mankind in misery? And what if my
experiment should fail, and if the moment when I expect my rash wishes
to be accomplished, the hand of Almighty vengeance should strike me to
the earth, and heap molten fire on my brain to punish my presumption!"

The sound of human voices, as the doctor and the guide approached,
grated harshly on the nerves of Edric, already overstrained by the
awful nature of the thoughts in which he had been indulging, and he
turned away involuntarily, to escape the interruption he dreaded, quite
forgetting for the moment from whom the sounds most probably proceeded.

"Lord have mercy on us!" said the guide; "I declare that gentleman
looks as if he were beside himself! and see there! if he hasn't walked
right by the entrance to the Pyramid without seeing it! Sir! Sir!"
halloed he.

Excessively annoyed, but recalled to his recollection by these shouts,
Edric returned.

"These Pyramids are wonderful piles," said the doctor, as he stumbled
forward to meet him. "I really had no adequate conception of the
enormity of their size. They did not even look half so large at a
distance as they do now."

"Immense masses seldom do," replied Edric; compelling himself with
difficulty to speak.

"True," returned the doctor; "the simplicity and uniformity of their
figures deceive the eyes, and it is only when we approach them that we
feel their stupendous magnitude and our own insignificance!"

"They give an amazing idea of the grandeur of the ancient kings of
Egypt," said Edric, without exactly knowing what he was saying. "Their
palaces must have been superb, if they had such mausoleums."

"How absurdly you reason, Edric!" replied the doctor peevishly; for,
being annoyed with his burthens and his cloak, he was not in a humour
to bear contradiction. "I thought we had settled that question before.
In the first place, I think it very doubtful whether the Egyptians had
any thing to do with the building of these monuments; and if they had,
I think they were meant for temples, not mausoleums; and in the next
place, even if they were intended for tombs, their greatness affords no
argument for the splendour of the surrounding palaces; as the Egyptians
were celebrated for the superiority of their burying-places, and for
the immense sums they expended upon them. Indeed, you know, ancient
writers say they went so far as to call the houses of the living only
inns, whilst they considered tombs as everlasting habitations;--a
circumstance, by the way, that strongly corroborates my hypothesis, at
least as far as their opinions go; as it seems to imply that both soul
and body were designed to remain there."

They had now entered the Pyramid, and were proceeding with infinite
difficulty along a low, dark, narrow passage: "Observe, Edric," said
the doctor, "how the difficulty and obscurity of these winding passages
confirm my opinion: you know, the religion of the ancient Egyptians,
like that of the ancient Hindoos, was one of penances and personal
privations; and, granting that to be the case, what can be more simple,
than that the passages the _initiati_ had to traverse before they
reached the adytum, should be painful and difficult of access. Besides
this, as you know, the bones of a bull, no doubt those of the god Apis,
were found in a sarcophagus in the second Pyramid, it seems probable
that it was sacred to his worship: and its vicinity to the Nile, which
was indispensable to the temples of Apis, as, when it was time for him
to die, he was drowned in its waters, confirms the fact. Indeed, I
am only surprised that any human being, possessing a grain of common
sense, can entertain a single doubt upon the subject."

"How do you account for the tomb we are about to visit being placed in
the Pyramid, if you think they were only designed for a temple?" asked
Edric.

"The question is futile," said the doctor. "A strange fancy prevailed
in former times that burying the dead in consecrated places,
particularly in temples intended for divine worship, would scare away
the evil spirits, and the practice actually prevailed in England even
as lately as the nineteenth or twentieth century. Indeed, it was not
till after the country had been almost depopulated by the dreadfully
infectious disease that prevailed about two hundred years ago, that a
law was passed to prevent the interment of the dead in London, and that
those previously buried in and near the churches there, were exhumed
and placed in cemeteries beyond the walls."

Edric did not reply, for in fact his ideas were so absorbed by the
solemn object before him, that it was painful for him to speak, and the
doctor's ill-timed reasoning created such an irritation of his nerves,
that he found it required the utmost exertion of his self-command to
endure it patiently. The passage they were traversing, now became
higher and wider, shelving off occasionally into chambers or recesses
on each side, till they approached a kind of vestibule, in the centre
of which, yawned a deep, dark, gloomy-looking cavity, like a well.

"We must descend that shaft," said the guide, "and that will lead us to
the tomb of King Cheops; but as the road is dark, and rather dangerous,
we had better, each of us, take a torch."

As he spoke, he drew some torches from a niche where they were
deposited, and began to illuminate them from his own. The red glare
of the torches flashed fearfully on the massive wails of the Pyramid,
throwing part of their enormous masses into deep shadow, as they rose
in solemn and sublime dignity around, and seemed frowning upon the
presumptuous mortals that had dared to invade their recesses, whilst
the deep pit beneath their feet seemed to yawn wide to engulf them in
its abyss. Edric's heart beat thick: it throbbed till he even fancied
its pulsations audible; and a strange, mysterious thrilling of anxiety,
mingled with a wild, undefinable delight, ran through his frame. A few
short hours, and his wishes would be gratified, or set at rest for
ever. The doctor and the guide had already begun to descend, and their
figures seemed changed and unearthly as the gleams of the torches fell
upon them. Edric gazed for a moment, and then followed with feelings
worked up almost to frenzy by the over-excitement of his nerves; whilst
the hollow sound that re-echoed from the walls, as they struck against
them in their descent, thrilled through his whole frame.

No one spoke; and after proceeding for some time along the narrow path,
or rather ledge, formed on the sides of the cavity, which gradually
shelved downwards, the guide suddenly stopped, and touching a secret
spring, a solid block of granite slowly detached itself from the wall,
and, rising majestically like the portcullis of an ancient fortress,
showed the entrance to a dark and dreary cave. The guide advanced,
followed by our travellers, into a gloomy vaulted apartment, where
long vistas of ponderous arches stretched on every side, till their
termination was lost in darkness, and gave a feeling of immensity and
obscurity to the scene.

"I will wait here," said the guide; "and here, if you please, you had
better leave your torches. That avenue will lead you to the tomb."

The travellers obeyed; and the guide, placing himself in a recess in
the wall, extinguished all the torches except one, which he shrouded
so as to leave the travellers in total darkness. Nothing could be now
more terrific than their situation: immured in the recesses of the
tomb, involved in darkness, and their bosoms throbbing with hopes that
they scarcely dared avow even to themselves, with faltering steps they
proceeded slowly along the path the guide had pointed out, shuddering
even at the hollow echo of their own footsteps, which alone broke the
solemn silence that reigned throughout these fearful regions of terror
and the tomb.

Suddenly, a vivid light flashed upon them, and, as they advanced, they
found it proceeded from torches placed in the hands of two colossal
figures, who, placed in a sitting posture, seemed guarding an enormous
portal, surmounted by the image of a fox, the constant guardian of
an Egyptian tomb. The immense dimensions and air of grandeur and
repose about these colossi had something in it very imposing; and our
travellers felt a sensation of awe creep over them as they gazed upon
their calm unmoved features, so strikingly emblematic of that immutable
nature which they were doubtless placed there to typify.

It was with feelings of indescribable solemnity, that the doctor and
Edric passed through this majestic portal, and found themselves in an
apartment gloomily illumined by the light shed faintly from an inner
chamber, through ponderous brazen gates beautifully wrought. The light
thus feebly emitted, showed that the room in which they stood, was
dedicated to Typhon, the evil spirit, as his fierce and savage types
covered the walls; and images of his symbols, the crocodile and the
dragon, placed beneath the shadow of the brazen gates, and dimly seen
by the imperfect light, seemed starting into life, and grimly to forbid
the farther advance of the intruders. Our travellers shuddered, and
opening with trembling hand the ponderous gates, they entered _the tomb
of Cheops_.

In the centre of the chamber, stood a superb, highly ornamented
sarcophagus of alabaster, beautifully wrought; over this hung a lamp
of wondrous workmanship, supplied by a potent mixture, so as to burn
for ages unconsumed; thus awfully lighting up with perpetual flame the
solemn mansions of the dead, and typifying life eternal even in the
silent tomb. Around the room, on marble benches, were arranged mummies
simply dried, apparently those of slaves; and close to the sarcophagus
was placed one contained in a case, which the doctor approached
to examine. This was supposed to be that of Sores, the confidant
and prime-minister of Cheops. The chest that enclosed the body was
splendidly ornamented with embossed gilt leather, whilst the parts not
otherwise covered were stained with red and green curiously blended,
and of a vivid brightness.

The mighty Phtah, the Jupiter of the Egyptians, spread its widely
extended wings over the head, grasping in his monstrous claws a
ring, the emblem of eternity; whilst below, the vulture form of Rhea
proclaimed the deceased a votary of that powerful deity; and on the
sides were innumerable hieroglyphics. The doctor removed the lid, and
shuddered as the crimson tinge of the everlasting lamp fell upon the
hideous and distorted features thus suddenly exhibited to view. This
sepulchral light, indeed, added unspeakable horror to the scene, and
its peculiar glare threw such a wild and demoniac expression on the
dark lines and ghastly lineaments of the mummies, that even the doctor
felt his spirits depressed, and a supernatural dread creep over his
mind as he gazed upon them.

In the mean time, Edric had stood gazing upon the sarcophagus of
Cheops, the sides of which were beautifully sculptured with groups of
figures, which, from the peculiar light thrown upon them, seemed to
possess all the force and reality of life. On one side was represented
an armed and youthful warrior bearing off in his arms a beautiful
female, on whom he gazed with the most passionate fondness. He was
pursued by a crowd of people and soldiers, who seemed rending the air
with vehement exclamations against his violence, and endeavouring in
vain to arrest his progress; whilst in the background appeared an old
man, who was tearing his hair and wringing his hands in ineffectual
rage against the ravisher.

The other side, presented the same old man wrestling with the youthful
warrior, who had just overpowered and stabbed him; the helpless victim
raising his withered hands and failing eyes to Heaven as he fell, as
though to implore vengeance upon his murderer, whilst the crimson
current was fast ebbing from his bosom. The dying look and agony of
the old man were forcibly depicted, whilst upon the features of the
youthful warrior glowed the fury of a demon.

The sarcophagus was supported by the lion, emblem of royalty, the
symbol of the solar god Horus; and above it sat the majestic hawk
of Osiris, gazing upwards, and unmindful of the subtle crocodile of
Typhon, that, crouching under its feet, was just about to seize its
breast in its enormous jaws. Neither of the travellers had as yet
spoken, for it seemed like sacrilege to disturb the awful stillness
that prevailed even by a whisper. Indeed, the solemn aspect of the
chamber thrilled through every nerve, and they moved slowly, gliding
along with noiseless steps as though they feared prematurely to break
the slumbers of the mighty dead it contained. They gazed, however,
with deep but undefinable interest upon the sculptured mysteries of
the tomb of Cheops, vainly endeavouring to decipher their meaning;
whilst, as they found their efforts useless, a secret voice seemed
to whisper in their bosoms--"And shall finite creatures like these,
who cannot even explain the signification of objects presented before
their eyes, presume to dive into the mysteries of their Creator's will?
Learn wisdom by this omen, nor seek again to explore secrets above your
comprehension! Retire whilst it is yet time; soon it will be too late!"

Edric started at his own thoughts, as the fearful warning, "soon it
will be too late," rang in his ears; and a fearful presentiment of evil
weighed heavily upon his soul. He turned to look upon the doctor, but
he had already seized the lid of the sarcophagus, and, with a daring
hand, removed it from its place, displaying in the fearful light the
royal form that lay beneath. For a moment, both Edric and the doctor
paused, not daring to survey it; and when they did, they both uttered
an involuntary cry of astonishment, as the stern, but handsome,
features of the mummy met their eyes, for both instantly recognized
the sculptured warrior in his traits. Yes, it was indeed the same,
but the fierce expression of fiery and ungoverned passions depicted
upon the countenance of the marble figure, had settled down to a calm,
vindictive, and concentrated hatred upon that of its mummy prototype in
the tomb.

Awful, indeed, was the gloom that sat upon that brow, and bitter
the sardonic smile that curled those haughty lips. All was perfect
as though life still animated the form before them, and it had only
reclined there to seek a short repose. The dark eyebrows, the thick
raven hair which hung upon the forehead, and the snow-white teeth
seen through the half open lips, forbade the idea of death; whilst
the fiend-like expression of the features made Edric shudder, as he
recollected the purpose that brought him to the tomb, and he trembled
at the thought of awakening such a fearful being from the torpor of the
grave to all the renewed energies of life.

"Let us go," whispered the doctor to his pupil, in a low, deep, and
unearthly tone, fearfully different from his usually cheerful voice.
Edric started at the sound, for it seemed the last sad warning of his
better genius, before he abandoned her for ever. The die, however,
was cast, and it was too late to recede. Indeed, Edric felt worked up
to frenzy by the overwrought feelings of the moment. He seized the
machine, and resolutely advanced towards the sarcophagus, whilst the
doctor gazed upon him with a horror that deprived him of either speech
or motion.

Innumerable folds of red and white linen, disposed alternately, swathed
the gigantic but well-proportioned limbs of the royal mummy; and upon
his breast lay a piece of metal, shining like silver, and stamped with
the figure of a winged globe. Edric attempted to remove this, but
recoiled with horror, when he found it bend beneath his fingers with
an unnatural softness; whilst, as the flickering light of the lamp
fell upon the face of the mummy, he fancied its stern features relaxed
into a ghastly laugh of scornful mockery. Worked up to desperation,
he applied the wires of the battery and put the apparatus in motion,
whilst a demoniac laugh of derision appeared to ring in his ears, and
the surrounding mummies seemed starting from their places and dancing
in unearthly merriment. Thunder now roared in tremendous peals through
the Pyramids, shaking their enormous masses to the foundation, and
vivid flashes of light darted round in quick succession. Edric stood
aghast amidst this fearful convulsion of nature. A horrid creeping
seemed to run through every vein, every nerve feeling as though drawn
from its extremity, and wrapped in icy chillness round his heart.
Still, he stood immoveable, and gazing intently on the mummy, whose
eyes had opened with the shock, and were now fixed on those of Edric,
shining with supernatural lustre. In vain Edric attempted to rouse
himself;--in vain to turn away from that withering glance. The mummy's
eyes still pursued him with their ghastly brightness; they seemed to
possess the fabled fascination of those of the rattle-snake, and though
he shrunk from their gaze, they still glared horribly upon him. Edric's
senses swam, yet he could not move from the spot; he remained fixed,
chained, and immoveable, his eyes still riveted upon the mummy, and
every thought absorbed in horror. Another fearful peal of thunder now
rolled in lengthened vibrations above his head, and the mummy rose
slowly, his eyes still fixed upon those of Edric, from his marble
tomb. The thunder pealed louder and louder. Yells and groans seemed
mingled with its roar;--the sepulchral lamp flared with redoubled
fierceness, flashing its rays around in quick succession, and with
vivid brightness; whilst by its horrid and uncertain glare, Edric saw
the mummy stretch out its withered hand as though to seize him. He saw
it rise gradually--he heard the dry, bony fingers rattle as it drew
them forth--he felt its tremendous gripe--human nature could bear no
more--his senses were rapidly deserting him; he felt, however, the
fixed stedfast eyes of Cheops still glowing upon his failing orbs, as
the lamp gave a sudden flash, and then all was darkness! The brazen
gates now shut with a fearful clang, and Edric, uttering a shriek
of horror, fell senseless upon the ground; whilst his shrill cry of
anguish rang wildly through the marble vaults, till its re-echoes
seemed like the yell of demons joining in fearful mockery.

How long he lay in this state he knew not; but when he reopened his
eyes, for the moment, he fancied all that had passed a dream. As his
senses returned, however, he recollected where he was, and shuddered
to find himself yet in that place of horrors. All now was dark, except
a faint gleam that shone feebly through the half-open gates; these
ponderous portals slowly unclosed, and the form of a man, wrapped in
a large cloak, and bearing a torch, entered, peering around as it
advanced, as though half afraid to proceed. Edric's feelings were too
highly wrought to bear any fresh horrors, and he shrieked in agony as
the figure approached. The sound of his voice subdued the terrors of
the intruder, and the doctor, for it was he, shouted with joy, as he
rushed forward to embrace him.

"Edric! Edric! thank God he is alive!" exclaimed he. "Edric! my beloved
Edric! for God's sake, let us leave this den of horrors! come, come!"

Reassured by his tutor's voice, Edric arose, and taking one hasty,
shuddering glance around as the light gleamed on the sarcophagus, he
hurried out of the tomb. Neither he nor the doctor spoke as they passed
through the vestibule, where the colossal figures still sat in awful
majesty; indeed, as their torches were extinguished, their gigantic
forms looked still more terrific than before, from the wavering and
indistinct light thrown upon them. Edric shuddered as he looked, and
hurried on with hasty strides to the place where they had left the
guide, whom they found kneeling in a corner, hiding his face in his
hands, and roaring out, "O Lord, defend us! Heaven have mercy upon us!
Lord have mercy upon us! Heaven have mercy upon us!"

"He has been in that state for more than an hour," said the doctor
mournfully; "for, after I came to myself again, I tried to rouse him,
but all to no purpose."

"Then you also fainted?" said Edric, with difficulty compelling himself
to speak.

"Why," resumed the doctor with some hesitation, "I don't know that you
can exactly call it fainting; but the fact was, that when I saw you
touch the plate upon the mummy's breast, and start back, looking so
horribly frightened, I--I thought I had better call for assistance;
so as I ran for that purpose, somehow or other, I fell down, and lay
insensible I don't know how long. When I came to myself, however, I
tried to rouse the guide, and when I found I could not, I came to seek
you; but now that we are both recovered, I really don't know what is
to become of us; for this fellow will never be able to show us the way
out, and I'm sure I don't know the road."

"Let us try to find it, at any rate," said Edric faintly.

"Oh, for God's sake, take me too!" screamed the guide. "If you have any
mercy, don't leave me in this fearful place."

"Take the light then, and lead the way," said Edric. The guide obeyed,
shaking every limb, and every now and then casting a terrified
look behind, whilst the quivering flame of the torch betrayed the
unsteadiness of the trembling hands that bore it. In this manner they
proceeded, starting at every sound, and frightened even at their own
shadows, without daring to stop till they reached the plain.

"Thank God!" cried the doctor, the moment they stepped out of the
Pyramid; looking round him, gasping for breath, and inhaling the fresh
air with rapture.

"Thank God!" reiterated Edric and the guide, as they walked rapidly
towards the place where they had left their balloon. When arrived
there, however, they looked for it in vain; and fancying themselves
under the influence of a delusion, they rubbed their eyes, and again
looked, but without success.

"Dear me, it is very strange!" said the doctor; "this is certainly the
place, and yet, where can it be?"

"Where, indeed!" repeated Edric; "horrors and unaccountable incidents
environ us at every step; I am not naturally timid, yet--"

"Ah!" screamed the doctor, as he tumbled over a man lying with his
face upon the ground; "Oh!" groaned he, as Edric and the guide with
difficulty raised him; "would to Heaven I were safe at home again in my
own comfortable little study, indulging on pleasing anticipations of
that which I find is any thing in the world but pleasing in reality."



CHAPTER X.


We left Dr. Entwerfen in the last chapter uttering a very moral, if
not a very new, exclamation on the vanity of human expectations; which
had scarcely escaped from his lips, ere cruel Fate, resolving not to
be accused in vain, supplied him with yet more abundant cause for
lamentation. We have before mentioned, that the doctor had stumbled
as he quitted the Pyramids, and that his friends raised him from the
ground; but what was his consternation and dismay, when, on looking
round to thank them, he found he was surrounded by armed men, who
commanded him in the royal name to surrender! Sadly did the doctor turn
his woeful eyes upon Edric, but, alas! he was in the same predicament
as himself; and, in spite of their entreaties, they were marched off to
prison, without being at all informed of what crime they had committed.

Sadly passed the night, and gloomy dawned the day upon the unfortunate
travellers, whose minds were harassed and bewildered by the
extraordinary success of their awful experiment, and whose misery
was infinitely increased by the suspense they had to suffer, both on
account of their ignorance of the crime of which they were accused,
and its probable punishment if they should be found guilty. Soon after
daybreak, however, a summons for them arrived, and they were conducted
as criminals before the same magistrate who, the day before, had
treated them with such officious kindness.

Very different, however, was the solemn judge who, clothed in all
the insignia of magisterial dignity, now sate upon the bench, from
the easy, good-tempered gentleman of the Pyramids; and the unlucky
travellers saw, in an instant, that they were not likely to experience
any favour from their previous acquaintance with him. The court was
thronged with people, and the prisoners saw that they were regarded
with curiosity, mingled with horror and supernatural fear. It is not
agreeable to feel oneself an object of disgust to any one; and though
Edric magnanimously and frequently repeated to himself that it was
quite indifferent to him what such ignorant wretches as Egyptians
thought of him; yet, if he would have avowed the truth, he would have
been quite as well contented to have found himself the object of their
admiration instead of their hatred; and he would have been very glad
to have been safely at home again; whilst the doctor openly and loudly
lamented the much regretted comforts of his own dear delightful study
at Sir Ambrose's. Little time, however, was allowed for reflection;
for as soon as the prisoners were placed at the bar their examination
commenced.

"So, gentlemen!" said the learned judge, "you stand convicted--no, I
mean accused, of a most horrible, heinous, and sacrilegious offence--an
offence that makes our hair start with horror from our heads, and every
separate lock rise up in vengeance against you." The justice paused,
that the prisoners might admire his eloquence; but, alas! such was the
absorbing nature of self-love, that they were only thinking of what
was going to be done with them, and to what this terrible exordium
was likely to lead. After a short pause, Edric, supposing they were
expected to speak, addressed the judge, and begged to know of what
crime they were accused.

"We are strangers," said he, "and gentlemen. We were attracted to your
country by an account of the wonders it contained; we declared our
purposes openly; we have affected no concealment; and we have done
nothing we need blush to avow--"

A confused murmur ran through the court as he spoke, expressive of the
utmost disgust and abhorrence; Edric felt indignant, and he looked
round proudly as he added:--

"Yes, I repeat we have done nothing we need blush to avow, and nothing
derogatory to our characters as Englishmen and gentlemen."

"Sorcerers! wizards! demons in disguise!" cried the crowd. "Down with
them! burn them! guillotine them! destroy them!"

"Is this fair? is this generous?" asked Edric. "If we have done wrong,
let our crime be proved, and we are ready to submit to any punishment
you may think proper to inflict; but do not condemn us unheard. In
England, every man is deemed innocent until he be proved guilty. You
boast of having imported and improved upon all the useful regulations
of the mother country, and cannot surely have omitted her most glorious
law. Let us then have a fair trial, and God forbid that the course of
justice should be impeded."

"You talk well, Sir," said the judge; "but it's of no use here. My
chair, Sir, is made of witch-elm, and the whole court is lined with
consecrated wood; so you may take your familiars to another market, for
here they will avail you nothing."

"Good God!" exclaimed Edric, wringing his hands, "what ignorance! what
gross superstition! And yet, in this man's power are our lives!"

"Oh! oh!" said the judge, who saw his despair, though he did not
exactly know the cause; "I have brought you to, have I? Yes, yes; I
tell you, no incantations will be of any avail here; and so, clerk,
call the witnesses--"

The first person examined was the man who had been left in charge
of the balloon, and he deposed as follows:--"Why, Sir," said he,
scratching his head, as though he supposed wisdom dwelt in his
fingers, and that their touch might give a little to his brain, "your
honour told me to call out the _posse comitatus_, and set a guard of
constables over the gentlemen's whirligig; but I thought as how, seeing
it was but a queer-looking thing, and not likely to tempt anybody to
steal it, I might as well save the gentlemen from throwing their money
away upon a parcel of idle fellows, and keep watch over it myself."

"And so get the reward instead of them," observed the judge.

"Why, your honour," said the fellow, grinning, "I thought they might
give something that might do _me_ some good, but that it would be
nothing amongst so many."

"Very true!" remarked the judge; "Go on Gregory."

"Well," continued Gregory, "as I was sitting there, thinking of nothing
at all, and somehow, I believe, I had fallen into a bit of a doze, I
heard a queer sort of a buzzing, and I opened my eyes, and there I saw
the gentlemen's whirligig buzzing and puffing like a steam-engine on
fire, and i' th' midst o' the smoke I'll take my oath I saw the mummy
of King Cheops as plain as I see his worship there sitting in his
throne."

"Oh!" groaned the horror-struck crowd; "Oh!" groaned the judge and jury.

"Yes," continued the man; "I'll take my oath, if it was the last word
I had to speak, that I saw him there vomiting fire, and his big eyes
flaring like a fiery furnace."

"Oh!" groaned the judge, crowd, and jury, a degree louder than before.

"And then," resumed Gregory, "something went whiz, and off it all fled
together like a flash of lightning--"

"Oh!" shrieked the whole court, in a convulsion of horror. Some of the
fair sex in particular, screamed and covered their faces, as though
they feared the next exploit of the redoubtable magicians would be to
blow up the court, and send them all flying after the resuscitated
mummy.

"With your permission, Sir," said Edric, as soon as the tumult had
somewhat abated, "this proves nothing against either my friend or
myself. We are, in fact, injured by it, and we have a claim against you
instead of your being able to substantiate a charge against us. We left
our balloon, containing valuable articles, and money to a considerable
amount, in your charge, or, at least, in the custody of a man whom you
recommended. When we quitted the Pyramid, we, of course, inquired for
our balloon--it had vanished; and instead of making us amends for our
loss, you throw us into prison and tell us a wild, extravagant story
of the disappearance of our property, which no man in his senses can
possibly believe."

Another confused murmur, though very different in its character from
the former, ran through the court on the conclusion of this speech;
and the judge, if such an expression be not profane when speaking of a
representative of justice, looked most excessively foolish.

"Had not your worship better call the other witnesses?" whispered the
clerk, pitying the dilemma of his principal.

"True, true!" said the Lycurgus of Anglo-Egypt; "your observation is
premature, young man; when the case has been proved against you, it
will be time enough for you to think of your defence."

Edric bowed assent, and the examination continued. The guide was the
next witness.

"Well, Samuel," said the judge; "what do you know about this matter?"

"Why, Sir," replied Samuel, "ye see, my dame and I were sitting by the
fire, and we'd got a black pudding, as we was a going to have for our
dinners. And so says dame, 'I likes it cut in slices and fried,' and so
says I----"

"Hold, fellow!" cried the judge, with great dignity. "Don't abuse the
patience of the Court. We have nothing to do with your dame or the
black pudding; it is quite irrelevant to the matter now before us. Go
on."

But Samuel could not go on; and, like his predecessor in the
witness-box, he only stood still and scratched his head.

"Why don't you speak, fellow?" asked the clerk.

"Because I doesn't know what to say," replied Samuel.

"You must tell all you know about this affair," pursued the clerk.

"But I doesn't know where to begin!" rejoined the perplexed witness;
"his worship says it is not reverent."

"Begin with the Pyramid," said the judge; "and, if you can, give a
clear account of all that happened after you left the old passage by
the moveable block in the wall that was last discovered."

"Why I can't say there was any thing very particular happened, as I
know of, Sir," said Samuel, "after that, till we got to the shaft,
and then we went down, Sir, you know, as we always does, till we came
to the tomb of King Cheops; and then I turned the gentlemen in by
themselves, as we always does, for the 'fect, as Parson Snorum calls
it. And then I sits me down i' the vault, to wait for 'em, and I'd just
rolled myself up, and was dozed asleep, when I hears such a noise as
if the Pyramids were all coming tumbling about my ears. So up I jumped
and rubbed my eyes, for I did not know very well where I was; and then
I saw something that seemed to strike the torches out of the hands of
the two great sitting figures, and put them out; and then I saw a great
tall figure come gliding by me; and when he came up to the light, I
saw his great flaming eyes; and then I fell upon my knees, and he laid
hold of my shoulder and griped it. Look, your honour!" laying bare his
shoulder as he spoke, and showing the deeply indented marks of the
bony fingers of the Mummy. Again a groan of horror and indignation ran
through the Court; and when another witness proved that the sarcophagus
of Cheops had been examined, and was found empty, the judge seemed to
think it was a clear case, and called triumphantly upon Edric for his
defence.

"I do not see that what has been proved," said Edric, shuddering in
spite of himself, "can affect either my tutor or myself. These people
say that a mummy has revived, and, quitting the Pyramid in which
he had been so long immured, has flown away with our balloon: but,
supposing the tale to be true, what proof have you that we were at
all implicated in the business? We were in the Pyramid, it is true;
but so was also this man, whom you have brought forward as a witness
against us. Supposing it was the intervention of some human aid that
roused the Mummy from its tomb--a fact, by the way, by no means proved,
why may not he be the agent instead of us? What is there to fix the
charge against us? Have we gained any thing by the adventure? Have we
not, on the contrary, been serious losers by it? Where is our balloon,
and the valuable articles it contained? If we are wizards, it must be
confessed that we are very foolish ones; for we have lost our property,
and thrown ourselves into prison, without reaping the smallest possible
advantage! And if we have the power you seem to attribute to us, why do
we stay here to be questioned, when we might so easily fly away in a
flame of fire, or turn you all to statues, and walk quietly off without
your being able to follow us?"

Every one shuddered, and many turned pale at this speech, seeming to
fear that Edric was about to put his suggestions into execution; whilst
the judge seemed posed, and in vast perplexity as to what he had better
determine;--and the people were dreadfully afraid, lest they might,
after all, lose the edifying spectacle of of an _auto-da-fé_, for which
they had been so impatiently longing.

Edric marked the hesitation of the judge, and endeavoured to improve
it to his own advantage.--"For my part," continued he, "I am a British
subject, and as such, under the protection of my own Court; my
Sovereign has a consul here, and to him I make my appeal. I am neither
ignoble, nor unknown in my own country,--my name is Montagu, and I am
brother to the celebrated general of that family,--whose victories, no
doubt, have reached even this remote province!"

"My dear Mr. Montagu!" said the judge, "I really beg your pardon: why
did you not acquaint me sooner with your dignity? I dare say there is
no truth at all in the charge:--only assure me upon your honour that
you did not touch the mummy, and that you know nothing of what is
become of it at present, and I will instantly order you to be set at
liberty."

"I certainly do not know what is become of it," replied Edric. "But--"

"No!" interrupted Dr. Entwerfen, coming forward with the air of a
determined martyr, "I will not suffer such equivocation.--I would
rather perish at the stake, than disavow, for a moment, my opinions,
or betray the sacred interests of science with which I feel I am
entrusted. No, Sir! my pupil cannot make the public declaration you
require. I know he would not--and he cannot if he would;--on the
contrary, I avow the fact. We came here for the express purpose of
endeavouring to resuscitate the mummy of Cheops, and I glory in the
proud thought that we have succeeded." (A groan of horror.) "Yes, Sir,
I do not hesitate to avow openly, that the grand object of my life,
for several successive years, has been to detect in what consisted the
strange, inexplicable secret of life. We live, Sir, we die: we are
born, and we are buried: we know that time, sickness, or violence,
may kill us; but who can say in what the mysterious principle of life
consists? Various theories have been broached, with which, no doubt,
a gentleman of your intelligence and extensive information is well
acquainted;--and life has been successively stated to depend upon the
heart, the brain, the circulation of the blood, and the respiration of
the lungs. All, however, are fallacious; the heart has been wounded,
and the brain has been removed, and yet the patient has lived, whilst
the operations of respiration and circulation have been kept up for
hours, in a body from which the vital spirit had departed. Weighing
all these and divers other arguments in my mind, it has struck me, and
indeed I may say, that after mature deliberation, I have confidently
arrived at the conclusion, that both the faculties which we call
life and soul depend entirely upon the nervous system. Do not all
philosophers agree that we receive ideas merely through the medium of
the senses? And can our senses be operated upon otherwise than through
the influence of the nerves? Ergo, the nerves alone convey ideas and
sensations to the mind--or rather, the nerves alone are the mind. Not
a single instance, I believe, is known in which life remained after
the sensorium had been destroyed, or even seriously injured. What
then can be more simple than to suppose life resides there? Pursuing
this idea, I have long been convinced that where the nervous system
remained uninjured, and the appearance of death was only occasioned
by a suspension of the operation of the animal functions, that life
might be restored, if, by the intervention of any powerful agency,
the nervous system could be excited to re-action; and as this, of
course, could not be effected where any kind of decomposition had taken
place, it appeared to me that a mummy was the only body upon which the
experiment could be tried with the least prospect of success. From
various circumstances, however, it has never till now been in my power
to realize my wishes on this head; but for a few weeks past, my pupil
has entertained similar longings to myself; and yesterday saw our hopes
accomplished. Yes; I flatter myself there cannot now remain a shadow of
doubt to the world, that, in ordinary cases, before decomposition has
taken place, that resuscitation is not only possible, but probable, and
that dead bodies may be easily restored to life."

The horror and consternation produced by this extraordinary speech,
amongst the Anglo-Egyptians who heard it, far exceeded any human powers
of description. Their terror at what they considered as the doctor's
daring impiety, being considerably augmented by their not understanding
above one-tenth part of what he said,--and when he had finished, there
was a dead pause which no one dared to interrupt, till a sudden gust of
wind happening to blow open the door of the justice's retiring-room,
the terrified crowd fell back aghast one upon another, pale and
trembling, as though they absolutely expected his Infernal Majesty to
appear before them in _propriâ personâ_.

When tranquillity was in some degree restored, the judge ordered the
prisoners to be reconducted to prison.

"After the dangerous and impious speech we have just heard," said he,
"it would be madness to trust such suspected persons at large; and yet,
I would willingly take time to consider the case, and to ascertain
whether this young man be indeed the person he represents himself; as,
I own, I should be sorry to inflict the full penalty of the law upon
the brother of her Britannic Majesty's Commander-in-chief."

Remonstrance was useless, and the prisoners were again conducted to
their dungeon where they were heavily chained, and left to ruminate
upon the calamities that had befallen them. Far from agreeable were
these meditations; for Edric was too angry with the doctor's ill-timed
candour to be inclined to speak; and the doctor was too much ashamed
of the effect already produced by his eloquence, to wish to make any
farther display of it. At length, as his eyes became accustomed to the
faint glimmering light admitted into the dungeon, he perceived the wall
to which he was chained was covered with hieroglyphics, and endeavoured
to divert his chagrin by examining them.

"I congratulate you, Sir," said Edric, when he perceived this, feeling
rather indignant at his tutor's coolness--"I congratulate you most
sincerely upon your philosophy, and most earnestly do I wish that I
could imitate it."

"Ah, Edric!" returned the doctor, "all men are not equally gifted."

"With either the art of making blunders, or forgetting them," said
Edric pointedly.

"These hieroglyphics are very curious," observed the doctor, who
had his own reasons for not wishing to pursue the subject; "see
how beautifully the ancient Egyptians worked in granite. The fine
polish they contrived to give this hard substance would be perfectly
astonishing, if we did not recollect that they always edged their tools
with emerald dust."

"Humph!" said Edric, in a tone which seemed to imply "and what does
it matter to me if they did?" The doctor, however, was unabashed, and
continued: "You see, as usual, the figure of the bull is frequently
repeated here. This wall is evidently built of stones gathered from
some ancient ruin. By the way, Edric, I don't think I ever explained
to you why the ancient Egyptians chose a bull as one of their deities,
or, rather, as their principal one. You know, that anciently the year
began in Taurus, though, by the precession of the equinox, it has now
advanced past Aries. Well, as the ancient Egyptians found that the sun
began its career in Taurus, what could be more natural than that they
should identify a bull with the vivifying principle? The same theory
may account for that legend of the Chaldeans, which supposes the world
to have been produced by a bull's striking chaos with his horn--which
horn, by the way, was probably the origin of the fable of Amalthea, or
the Horn of Plenty."

Edric made no reply, and the doctor dreading a pause, which might give
his pupil an opportunity of upbraiding him, went on:--

"Though the Egyptians had a number of divinities, they clearly
worshipped only two, viz. the principles of good and evil. Osiris,
Isis, Cneph, Phath, Horus, and all their host of inferior deities, were
clearly types of the first, and light and life were their essence;
whilst Typhon, Campsa, and the malignant deities, exemplified the
second, and their attributes were invariably darkness and death."

"For Heaven's sake!" cried Edric, "say no more upon the subject, for it
is not in the power of language to describe the horror I have at the
mere thought of any thing Egyptian. Let us escape from this fearful
country, and I most sincerely hope nothing may ever happen to recall
even its recollection to my imagination."

"Such and so changeable are the desires of human life!" said the
doctor. "But a few short weeks since, Egypt was the goal of your
wishes, and the prospect of re-animating a corpse--"

"Oh! do not mention it!" cried Edric, shuddering. "Oh God! how justly
am I punished, by the very fulfilment of my unhallowed hopes!--even now
the fearful eyes of that hideous Mummy seem to glare upon me; and even
now I feel the gripe of its horrid bony fingers on my arm!"

"Oh yes, no doubt," exclaimed the doctor, "he pinched hard. He was a
king, and kings should have strong arms, you know."

"For God's sake! do not jest upon such a subject," returned Edric; "a
subject so wild and fearful, that I can still scarcely believe but that
all which has passed was a dream."

"If it be," said the doctor, "it is one from which I freely avow I
should be very happy to awake, for I must confess this prison is not at
all to my taste."

"And yet, is it not your fault--?" began Edric.

"Recrimination, Edric, is always folly," interrupted the doctor,
who did not now feel very proud of the part he had acted before the
magistrate, nor very anxious to have it alluded to;--"and instead of
losing time in regretting past errors, it is the part of a wise man to
endeavour to find means of remedying them, and avoiding them in future."

"Agreed!" returned Edric; "and as I presume you are now convinced your
learned dissertation on the probable seat of human life was, to say the
least, ill-timed, we will drop the subject. But, even if we get out of
prison, what is to become of us? Our money and valuables were all in
the balloon; and here we are, in a foreign country, entirely destitute."

"Not entirely, Edric--not entirely!" cried the doctor, a glow of
satisfaction spreading itself again over his face; "no, no; I have
guarded against that; ah, what a thing it is to have foresight! Well!
some persons are certainly singularly gifted in that line, and it is
a happy thing for you that you have somebody to think for you. See
here!" displaying the things as he spoke; "here is a bed, bolster, and
pillows, ready for inflation; a portable bedstead, linen, soap, pens,
ink, paper, candles, fire, knives, forks, spoons, and money; all snugly
packed up in my walking-stick!"

"Your supporter," returned Edric, smiling, "as you used to call it; and
as it now seems likely to prove, in more senses than one."

"Yes, yes!" cried the doctor, "let us only get out of prison, and all
the rest will be easy."

"But that only, doctor."

"Of that we must take time to consider."

"Well, it is some comfort that we are likely to be allowed time enough,
as my hint respecting the British consul did not seem thrown away upon
the judge. Oh, doctor, if you had not spoken!"

"Why, surely you would not have given him the declaration he required?"

"There was no occasion. He neither wished nor expected more than I had
already said. After what I had mentioned of my family, he only wished a
decent pretext for setting us at liberty."

"At any rate," said the doctor, by way of changing the subject, "you
see my doctrine is proved completely by the resuscitation of the mummy,
for it must have been perfectly restored to life and consciousness, or
it could not have flown away with the balloon."

"For my part," returned Edric, "I can scarcely believe what has
occurred to be real: there must be some deception. And yet, by whom can
a deception have been practised, and for what purpose? In short, I am
quite bewildered."

The doctor being much in the same condition, could only sympathize with
his pupil; and in this state we must leave them, whilst we inquire
respecting the mysterious object of their speculations.

The mummy thus strangely recalled to life, was indeed Cheops! and
horrible were the sensations that throbbed through every nerve as
returning consciousness brought with it all the pangs of his former
existence, and renewed circulation thrilled through every vein. His
first impulse was to quit the tomb in which he had been so long
immured, and seek again the regions of light and day. Instinct seemed
to guide him to this; for, as yet, a mist hung over his faculties, and
ideas thronged in painful confusion through his mind, which he was
incapable of either arranging or analyzing.

When however he reached the plain, light and air seemed to revive
him and restore his scattered senses; and gazing wildly around he
exclaimed, "Where am I? what place is this? Methinks all seems
wondrous, new, and strange! Where is my father? And where! oh, where,
is my Arsinoë? Alas, alas!" continued he wildly; "I had forgotten--I
hoped it was a dream, a fearful dream, for methinks I have been long
asleep. Was it, indeed, reality? Are all, all gone? And was that
hideous scene true?--those horrors that still haunt my memory like
a ghastly vision? Speak! speak!" continued he, his voice rising
in thrilling energy as he spoke--"speak! let me hear the sound of
another's voice, before my brain is lost in madness. Have I entered
Hades, or am I still on earth?--yes, yes, it is still the earth, for
there the mighty Pyramid, I caused to be erected, towers behind me. Yet
where is Memphis? where my forts and palaces? What a dark, smoky mass
of buildings now surrounds me!--Can this be the once proud Queen of
Cities? Oh, no! I see no palaces, no temples--Memphis is fallen. The
mighty barrier that protected her splendour from the waste of waters,
must have been swept away by the encroaching inroads of the swelling
Nile. But is this the Nile?" continued he, looking wildly upon the
river; "sure I must be deceived. It is the fatal river of the dead. No
papyrine boats glide smoothly on its surface; but strange, infernal
vessels, vomiting forth volumes of fire and smoke. Holy Osiris, defend
me! where am I? where have I been? A misty veil seems thrown upon the
face of nature. Awake, awake!" cried he, with a scream of agony; "set
me free; I did not mean to slay him!" Then throwing himself violently
upon the ground, he lay for some moments, apparently insensible. Then
slowly rising, he looked at himself, and a deep, unnatural shuddering
convulsed his whole frame. His sensations of identity became confused,
and he recoiled with horror from himself: "These are the trappings of
a mummy!" murmured he in a hollow whisper. "Am I then dead?" The next
instant, however, he broke into a wild laugh of derision:--"Poor,
feeble wretch!" cried he; "what do I fear?--Need _I_ tremble, in whose
bosom dwells everlasting fire? No--no! let me rather rejoice. I cannot
be more wretched; why then should I dread a change? I should rather
welcome it with transport, and bravely dare my fate."

At this moment the car of the balloon caught his eye: "Ah! what is
that?" cried he; "I am summoned! 'Tis the boat of Hecate, ready to
ferry me across the Mærian Lake, to learn my final doom. I come! I
come! I fear no judgment! My hell is here!" and, striking his bosom,
leaped into the car, and stamped violently against its sides.

At this instant Gregory awoke; his terror was not surprising. The
dried, distorted features of the Mummy looked yet more hideous than
before, when animated by human passions; and his deep hollow voice,
speaking in a language he did not understand, fell heavily upon his
ear, like the groans of fiends. Gregory tried to scream, but he could
not utter a sound. He attempted to fly, but his feet seemed nailed to
the spot on which he stood, and he remained with his eyes fixed upon
the Mummy, gasping for breath, while a cold sweat distilled from every
pore. In the mean time, Cheops had stumbled over the box containing
the apparatus for making inflammable air, and striking it violently,
had unintentionally set the machinery in motion. The pipes, tubes, and
bellows, instantly began to work; and the Indian-rubber bottle became
gradually inflated, till it swelled to an enormous magnitude, and
fluttered in the air like an imprisoned bird, beating itself against
the massive walls to which it was still attached.

"Still it goes not," cried Cheops, again stamping impatiently. The
quicksilver vapour bottle had fallen beneath his feet, and it broke as
he trod upon it. The vapour burst from it with inconceivable violence,
and tearing the balloon from its fastenings, sent it off through the
air, like an arrow darting from a bow.



CHAPTER XI.


In the mean time, Sir Ambrose Montagu had been presented to the Queen,
and the evening after his arrival in town he attended her drawing-room.
The splendour of the English Court at this period defies description.
The walls of the room in which the Queen received her guest, were
literally one blaze of precious stones, and these being disposed in
the form of bouquets, wreaths, and trophies, were so contrived as to
quiver with every movement. These magnificent walls were relieved
by a colonnade of pillars of solid gold, around which, were twined
wreaths of jewels fixed also upon elastic gold wires, so as to tremble
every instant. The throne of the Queen was formed of gold filigree
beautifully wrought, richly chased and superbly ornamented, whilst
behind it was an immense plate of looking-glass, stretching the whole
length and height of the apartment, and giving the whole the effect
of a fairy palace. The carpet spread upon the floor of this sumptuous
saloon was so exact an imitation of green moss, with exquisitely
beautiful groups of flowers thrown carelessly upon it, that a heedless
spectator might have been completely deceived by the delicacy of
their shape and richness of their colouring, and have stooped to pick
them up, supposing them to be real. The suit of rooms appropriated to
dancing was equally splendid, and fitted up in the same manner, save
that the floors were painted to imitate the effect of the carpet, and
rows of trees were placed on each side, hung with lamps. This imitative
grove was so exquisitely managed, that the spectator could scarcely
believe it artificial; and the music for dancing proceeded from its
leaves, or from automaton birds placed carelessly amongst its branches.

The dresses of the Queen and her attendants were worthy of the
apartment they occupied. Brocaded silks, cloth of gold, embroidered
velvets, gold and silver tissues, and gossamer nets made of the
spider's web, were mingled with precious stones and superb plumes of
feathers in a profusion quite beyond description. The most beautiful
of the female habiliments, however, were robes made of woven asbestos,
which glittered in the brilliant light like molten silver. The ladies
were all arrayed in loose trowsers, over which hung drapery in graceful
folds; and most of them carried on their heads, streams of lighted gas
forced by capillary tubes into plumes, fleurs-de-lis, or in short any
form the wearer pleased; which _jets de feu_ had an uncommonly chaste
and elegant effect. The gentlemen were all clothed in the Spanish
style, with slashed sleeves, short cloaks, and large hats, ornamented
with immense plumes of ostrich feathers, it being considered in those
days extremely vulgar to appear with the head uncovered. It would,
perhaps, have been difficult to imagine more perfect models of male
and female beauty than those which now adorned the Court of Queen
Claudia, for the _beau ideal_ of the painter's fancy seemed realized,
nay surpassed by the noble living figures there collected. The women
were particularly lovely, and as they stood gathered round their
Queen, or lightly threaded the mazes of the graceful dance, dressed as
above described, their brows bound with circlets of precious stones,
and their glossy hair hanging in rich luxuriant ringlets upon their
ivory shoulders, they looked like a group of Houris, or the nymphs of
Circe, ready with sparkling eyes and witching voices to lure men to
destruction.

Claudia was very handsome, and though her countenance wanted
expression, her noble figure and majestic bearing well qualified her
to play her part as Queen amongst this bevy of beauties, with becoming
dignity. There is something in the habit of command, when it has been
long enjoyed, that gives an imposing majesty to the manner, which
the parvenu great strive in vain to imitate; and Claudia had this in
perfection. The consciousness of beauty, power, and high birth swelled
in her bosom; and even when she wished to be affable, she was only
condescending.

She now, however, received Sir Ambrose most graciously; she gave him
her snowy hand to kiss, and addressed a few words of compliment to
him, which sank deep into his heart. It is one of the privileges of
greatness easily to excite emotion; one word of commendation from those
above us, far outweighs all the laboured flattery of our inferiors.
Thus the words of Claudia, and the warm praise she bestowed on Edmund,
gave the purest transport to his father's heart; and affected him so
violently, that he would have fallen at her feet, had he not been
supported by a young man who stood near him.

"You seem faint, Sir," said the youth; "will you permit me to lead you
to a seat."

"Thank you, thank you," cried Sir Ambrose, gratefully accepting the
proffered aid, and leaning on his youthful supporter as they left the
presence. The stranger carefully placed Sir Ambrose upon a sofa, under
the harmonious trees we have already mentioned; and as he stood before
him, asking if he should procure him some refreshments, Sir Ambrose
had full leisure to survey his face and figure: both were handsome
in the extreme. The youth seemed scarcely to have passed the age of
boyhood, and his well-proportioned form displayed all the lightness and
activity of youth; but wit and good-humour laughed in his bright blue
eyes, whilst animated features and an enchanting smile completed an
_ensemble_ which few bosoms were frozen enough to resist. Sir Ambrose
was irresistibly pleased, and longed to know to whom he was indebted
for so much kindness. But he felt too delicate to ask the question in
direct terms, and there was nothing in the youth's exterior to mark
decidedly to what rank in life he might belong.

He was handsomely dressed, and his air and manner appeared slightly
foreign; though this might be fancy, arising from Sir Ambrose's
ignorance of the manners and habits of the Court. There also seemed
something droll about him, and the air with which he submitted to Sir
Ambrose's scrutiny was excessively comic.

"Is there any thing I can do for you?" asked he at length, when he
thought the baronet's curiosity had had time to satisfy itself.

"Nothing," replied Sir Ambrose; "but--"

"But--you would like to know who I am?" said the stranger.

"I own," returned Sir Ambrose, blushing, "I would fain know to whom I
am so much obliged."

"My name is Henry Seymour," replied the youth. "I was born in Spain, of
English parents. I am an orphan and in want; and have been introduced
to the Queen, in hopes of getting a place at Court, by one of her
Majesty's physicians, Dr. Coleman."

"I am quite ashamed," said Sir Ambrose, "that my indiscreet
curiosity--that is, that you should have thought--I mean, that I should
have asked for--"

"In short," interrupted the youth, "you think, perhaps, that I meant to
call you rude by giving such a long account of myself: but I always do
so in similar cases; it saves trouble."

Sir Ambrose smiled. "You are a singular youth," said he; "I should like
to know you better."

"And I," returned the stranger, "should be proud to obtain the
friendship of Sir Ambrose Montagu, and shall always reckon the day that
introduced me to his notice, as one of the happiest of my life."

A glow of pleasure spread over the animated features of the youth as
he spoke, and Sir Ambrose fancied his accent sounded slightly Irish:
convinced, however, that he must be mistaken, he did not remark it, but
only exclaimed, "You know me, then?"

Before the stranger had time to utter a reply, the Duke of Cornwall,
and the Princesses Rosabella and Elvira approached, and prevented him
from speaking.

"How do you find yourself, my dear friend?" said the duke; "they told
us you were ill."

"I have been slightly so," returned Sir Ambrose; "and I believe I
should have fainted, and paid my respects to my Sovereign quite
orientally, if this gentleman had not saved me."

"I am sure we are very much obliged to you, Sir," said the duke,
turning to the youth.

"Indeed, we feel most grateful," said Elvira.

The stranger made a suitable reply, and after a short conversation, in
which Dr. Coleman joined, that worthy gentleman having been also drawn
to the spot by the report of Sir Ambrose's illness, he requested the
favour of Elvira's hand for the dance.

"That is a very nice young man," said the duke, when he was gone to
join the dancers: "I admire him much."

"He deserves every thing you can say in his favour," returned Dr.
Coleman: "I have known him long, and I love him as a son."

When Elvira retired to her chamber that night, she sighed so often,
and so deeply, that Emma, who assisted at her toilet, could not avoid
remarking her uneasiness. "Are you ill, my dear mistress?" asked she,
in a tone of feeling; "what else can have produced this sudden change?"

"I am quite well," said Elvira, again sighing.

"Why then do you sigh and look so thoughtful?"

"I was thinking of Lord Edmund."

"Indeed! I did not think he had the power to make you sigh. He has
reason to feel flattered."

"Oh, Emma! I wish he were like Henry Seymour!"

"And who is Henry Seymour?" asked Emma, smiling, and beginning to
suspect that she had been rather hasty in fancying Lord Edmund had
occasion to flatter himself on account of the Princess's _tristesse_.

"One of the most fascinating of human beings," returned Elvira; "so
gay, and yet so tender. He is not, perhaps, so regularly handsome as
Edmund, but he has such expressive features, and his soul gives such
animation to his countenance."

"Poor Edmund!" thought Emma: but as she was too discreet to say so,
Elvira was not aware of the interpretation that might be put on what
she was saying; and she went on, raving of the pleasures of the ball,
till she was fairly in bed.

The following day was appointed for the triumphal entry of Lord Edmund,
and the greatest part of the night preceding it, was passed by Sir
Ambrose in the greatest agitation. He could not sleep; he rose several
times from his bed, in excessive anxiety, to listen for the repetition
of noises which he fancied he heard: once he opened his window--all
was still. His room looked into the garden of Mr. Montagu, which, as
we have already mentioned, shelved down to the Thames, and the calm
moonlight slept peacefully upon the tall, thick trees, and verdant lawn
that spread before him. The evening breeze felt cool and refreshing;
but Sir Ambrose sighed, and a strange fear of something he could not
wholly define hung over him.

He again retired to bed, and at length sank into a feverish and uneasy
doze. At daybreak, however, a thundering of cannon announced the
arrival of the important day. Sir Ambrose started from his pillow at
the first discharge, and the solemn sound thrilled through every nerve
as it pealed along the sky. Scarcely had its echoes died upon the ear,
when another, and another peal succeeded; and the heart of Sir Ambrose
throbbed in his bosom almost to suffocation, as he sate, resting his
head upon his hands, and striving, though ineffectually, to stop his
ears from the solemn sound, which seemed to absorb his every faculty,
and strike almost with the force of a blow upon his nerves.

Whilst he was still in this position, Father Morris entered the
room.--"Come, come, Sir Ambrose!" cried he, "are you not ready?
The Queen has sent for us, and the procession is just ready to set
off."--Sir Ambrose started: he attempted to dress himself, but his
trembling hands refused to perform their office, and Father Morris
and Abelard were obliged to attire him, and lead him down to join his
friend, the duke, who was waiting for him impatiently.

It has often been said that the anticipation of pleasure is always
greater than the reality: this, however, was not the case in the
present instance, as the brilliancy of Lord Edmund's triumph was far
greater than even the imaginations of the spectators had before dared
to conceive. The duke and Sir Ambrose, attended by Father Morris,
found the individuals who were to compose the procession of the Queen
assembled in the extensive gardens belonging to the superb palace of
Somerset House. These fine gardens, spreading their verdant groves
along the banks of the river, adorned by all the charms of nature and
art, and enriched by some of the finest specimens of sculpture in the
world, were now crowded with all the beauty and rank of England, who,
waiting for the arrival of their Sovereign, formed an _ensemble_ no
other nation in the world could hope to imitate.

In the centre walk, appeared the superb Arabian charger of the Queen,
led by his grooms, and magnificently caparisoned. His bridle was
studded with precious stones, and his hoofs cased in gold; whilst his
blue satin saddle and housings were richly embroidered and fringed with
the same metal. The noble animal, whose flowing mane and tail swept the
ground, paced proudly along, tossing his head on high, and spurning
the ground on which he trod, as though conscious he should perform a
conspicuous part in the grand pageant about to take place. All now was
ready, but yet Queen Claudia did not appear.

"It is very strange, but lately it is always so," said Lord Maysworth
to Lord Gustavus de Montfort, who had been for some time engaged in
earnest conversation with Father Morris. Lord Gustavus started at the
sound of his friend's voice in some apparent confusion, whilst Father
Morris replied in his usual soft, insinuating tones, "Perhaps her
Majesty may be indisposed, and have slept rather longer than usual."

"Most likely," returned Lord Maysworth; "yet it is strange the same
thing should happen so often.--If you remember," continued he, again
addressing Lord Gustavus, "I made the same observation the morning of
her last levee. Indeed I have frequently made it lately, and I have
observed that she looks pale and languid."

"Here she comes, at any rate! and for my part, I think I never saw
her look better," said Dr. Hardman, who had now joined them, and
who, notwithstanding his violent politics, was one of the physicians
of the Court. The indolence of Claudia, which, indeed, seemed daily
increasing, having induced her to overlook what another Sovereign would
have resented.

Claudia did indeed look well, and her dress suited well with her style
of beauty. Her trowsers and vest were of pale blue satin; whilst over
her shoulders was thrown a long flowing drapery of asbestos silk,
which hanging in graceful folds, swept the ground as she walked along,
shining in the sun like a robe of woven silver. On her head, she wore
a splendid tiara of diamonds; and in her hand, she bore the regal
sceptre, surmounted by a dove, and richly ornamented with precious
stones. Thus gorgeously attired, surrounded by the ladies of her
household, she issued from her palace; and whilst her kneeling subjects
bent in humble homage around her, she mounted her noble charger. Cannon
were now fired in rapid succession; the bells of every church rang
in merry peals, and martial music mingled in the clamour. The palace
gates were thrown open, and the procession poured from them along the
streets, where crowds of human beings bustled to and fro, eager to
catch a glimpse of the sumptuous spectacle.

First advanced a long double line of monks, arrayed in sacerdotal pomp,
and bearing immensely thick lighted tapers in their hands; chanting
thanksgiving for the victory. They were followed by chorister-boys,
flinging incense from silver vases, that hung suspended by chains in
their hands, and chanting also; their shrill trebles mingling with the
deep bass voices of the priests in rich and mellow harmony. The Queen
next appeared, her prancing charger led by grooms, whilst beautiful
girls, elegantly attired, walked, on each side of their Sovereign,
scattering flowers in her path from fancy baskets made of wrought gold.
Behind the Queen, rode the ladies of her household and the principal
nobles of her Court, the superb plumes of ostrich feathers in the large
Spanish hats of the latter, with their immense mustachios, and open
shirt collars, giving them the air of some of Vandyck's best pictures.
As they rode slowly along, their noble Arabians paced proudly, and
champed the bit, impatient of restraint.

The ladies of the Court, superbly dressed in open litters, next
appeared, borne upon the shoulders of men splendidly clad in rich
liveries. Amongst these, were Elvira and Rosabella.

These were followed by monks and boys as before, but singing a somewhat
different strain. It was now a chant of glory and triumph that swelled
upon the ear, for these preceded the duke and Sir Ambrose; who, the one
as uncle to the Queen, and the other as father of the expected hero,
occupied the post of honour. The two venerable old men sate hand in
hand in a sumptuous car drawn by two Arabian horses, and were followed
by a large body of the Queen's guards.

The costliness and variety of the dresses worn this day, were quite
beyond description. Many of the ladies had turbans of woven glass;
whilst others carried on their hats very pretty fountains made of glass
dust, which, being thrown up in little jets by a small perpetual motion
wheel, sparkled in the sun like real water, and had a very singular
effect.

In this manner the procession advanced towards Blackheath Square, said
to be the largest and finest in the world, where the meeting between
the Queen and her general was appointed to take place. Amongst the
numerous balloons that floated in the air, enjoying this magnificent
spectacle, was one containing Father Murphy, who had been prevented,
by a sprained ankle, from joining in the procession, and the family
of Mr. Montagu--and nothing could be more enthusiastic than their
delight, as they looked down upon the splendid scene below them. Few
things, indeed, could be imagined finer than the sight of this gorgeous
_cortège_, winding slowly along a magnificent street, supposed to be
five miles long, leading from Blackfriars' Bridge, through Greenwich,
to Blackheath.

Sumptuous rows of houses, or rather palaces, lined the sides of
this superb street; the terraces and balconies before which, were
crowded with persons of all ages, beautifully attired, waving flags
of different colours, richly embroidered and fringed with gold,
whilst festoons of the choicest flowers hung from house to house. We
have already said the air was thronged with balloons, and the crowd
increased every moment. These aërial machines, loaded with spectators
till they were in danger of breaking down, glittered in the sun, and
presented every possible variety of shape and colour. In fact, every
balloon in London or the vicinity had been put in requisition, and
enormous sums paid, in some cases, merely for the privilege of hanging
to the cords that attached the cars, whilst the innumerable multitudes
that thus loaded the air, amused themselves by scattering flowers upon
the heads of those who rode beneath.

Besides balloons, however, a variety of other modes of conveyance
fluttered in the sky. Some dandies bestrode aërial horses, inflated
with inflammable gas; whilst others floated upon wings, or glided
gently along, reclining gracefully upon aërial sledges, the last being
contrived so as to cover a sufficient column of air for their support.
As the procession approached the river, the scene became still more
animated; innumerable barges of every kind and description shot swiftly
along, or glided smoothly over the sparkling water. Some floated
with the tide in large boat-like shoes; whilst others, reclining on
couch-shaped cars, formed of mother of pearl, were drawn forward by
inflated figures representing the deities or monsters of the deep.

When the Queen reached a spot near Greenwich, where, through a spacious
opening, the river, in all its glorious majesty, burst upon her, she
paused, and commanded her trumpeters to advance and sound a flourish.
They obeyed, and after a short pause were answered by those of Lord
Edmund; the sound, mellowed by the distances, pealing along the water
in dulcet harmony. Delighted with this response, which announced the
arrival of Lord Edmund and his troops at the appointed place, the
procession of the Queen was again set in motion, and in a short time
arrived at Blackheath.

The noble square in which the meeting was to take place, was already
thronged with soldiers; whilst every house that surrounded it was
covered with spectators. No trees or fantastical ornaments spoiled
the simple grandeur of this immense space; the houses that surrounded
it, built in exact uniformity, each having a peristyle supported by
Corinthian pillars, and a highly decorated façade, looked like so many
Athenian temples. As the _cortège_ of the Queen entered the square, the
soldiers formed an opening to receive it, and reverentially knelt on
each side, with reversed arms, and bending banners as she passed. In
the centre was Lord Edmund, surrounded by his staff, all in polished
armour; for since an invention had been discovered of rendering steel
perfectly flexible, it had been generally used in war. Lord Edmund's
helmet, however, was thrown off, and his fine countenance was displayed
to the greatest advantage, as he and his officers threw themselves from
their war steeds to kneel before the Queen. Claudia, also, descended
from her charger, and as she stood in her glittering robes, surrounded
on all sides by her kneeling subjects, she looked, indeed, their
Sovereign. With becoming dignity, she addressed a few words of thanks
and commendation to Lord Edmund, as he knelt before her, his thick,
dark, brown hair falling in clustering curls over his noble forehead.
His graceful figure was shown to the utmost advantage, by his closely
fitting armour, over which, however, upon the present occasion was
thrown a short cloak of fine scarlet cloth, richly embroidered with
gold, and fastened in front by a cord and superb tassels, made entirely
of the same metal. He looked a living personification of the God of War.

The Queen raised him from the ground in the most gracious manner; and
then turning to the still kneeling soldiers, she made a short speech
to them, of the same nature as that which she had addressed to Lord
Edmund: after which, again mounting her palfrey, she made Lord Edmund
ride by her side, and prepared to return to town. Edmund's quick eye
had discovered, and exchanged looks of affection with his father and
friends, though the etiquette of his present situation did not permit
him to do more; and he now rode proudly by the side of the Queen,
gracefully bowing to the assembled crowd as he passed along, his heart
beating with pleasure at the thought that his triumph was witnessed by
those most dear to him; whilst his noble Arabian tossed his head and
champed his bit as he pranced forward, as though he also knew the part
he was performing in the splendid ceremony.

Acclamations rent the sky as the procession advanced, and showers
of roses were rained down upon the Queen and her general from the
balloons above; from which, also, flags waved in graceful folds, and
flapped in the wind, as the balloons floated along the sky. Every
one seemed delighted with the grandeur of this splendid pageant; but
no one experienced more pleasure than the occupiers of the balloon
of Mr. Montagu. Even that oblivious gentleman himself was moved to
exclaim, that he never was more enchanted in his life; whilst the
raptures of his spouse were so excessive, that, like the spectators of
the stag-hunt on the lake of Killarney, she was in imminent danger of
throwing herself overboard in her ecstasy: and Clara clasped her hands
together, in all the transports of childish delight, her sparkling eyes
and animated looks bearing ample witness to her gratification.

"What shouting! what a noise!" exclaimed Mr. Montagu; "I declare it
puts me in mind of the acclamations in the time of Nero, when the
Romans shouted in concert, and birds fell from the skies with the
noise!"

"La! papa, is that true?" asked Clara.

"Och, and that's a strange kind of a question," said Father Murphy,
"and one I wouldn't like a child of mine to be putting."

"And why not?" asked Mr. Montagu, somewhat indignantly.

"Because a child ought always to belave what his father says, before he
hears him open his mouth."

"How well the Queen looks!" observed Mrs. Montagu, to whom the reverend
father's remark was far from agreeable. "It was said a short time
since, that she had lost her appetite and could get no rest; but I
think she doesn't seem to have much the matter with her now."

"My nurse says she's being poisoned," cried Clara, "and that it would
be no great matter if she was, for then the people would have to choose
a Queen for themselves, and they might make what terms they pleased
with her."

"And is this the kind of servant you suffer to attend on my daughter,
Mrs. Montagu?" demanded the indignant father, roused from his usual
lethargy by the importance of the occasion; "Clara shall go to a
boarding-school to-morrow, and her nurse shall be dismissed. My child
shall not be taught to utter treason."

"Dear me! Mr. Montagu," replied the wife, "what a serious matter you
make of a little harmless gossip!"

"Gossip do you call it?" repeated her husband; "it is such gossip
as might cost me my head, and you your fortune, if it were to reach
unfriendly ears."

An awkward pause followed this speech, which no one seemed inclined to
break, till Clara exclaimed, "Dear me! what a pretty horse my cousin
Edmund rides!"

"I think that's a prettier that comes after him," said Father Murphy.

"What, that one with his head hanging down and his mane sweeping the
ground?" asked Mrs. Montagu.

"Yes.--And it's a very handsome young man also, that walks by the side
of him," replied Father Murphy.

"His hands are chained as if he were a prisoner; and he looks like a
foreigner," observed Mr. Montagu, who had relapsed into one of his fits
of abstraction: "I wonder what can bring him there!"

"La! Mr. Montagu, how you talk!" exclaimed his wife, "you know my
nephew Lord Edmund, has just gained a battle, and what can be more
natural than that he should have taken prisoners?"

"True," rejoined Mr. Montagu with the utmost naïveté, "I never thought
of that!"

"Och, and it's a barbarous custom that of putting chains about the
hands of the prisoners," said Father Murphy, "as if it was not bad
enough to be a prisoner without looking, like one."

"Poor fellow!" cried Clara, "I should like to go and let him loose. He
looks very melancholy!"

"How great my nephew Lord Edmund looks!" continued Mrs. Montagu: "I
declare it he were a real king he couldn't have a grander appearance.
And then to see the poor old gentleman his father, my brother-in-law,
Sir Ambrose, sitting there hand-in-hand with the Duke of Cornwall
himself--I declare it does my heart good to look at them!"

Whilst Mrs. Montagu was thus exulting in the reflected grandeur
that shone upon her, from being sister-in-law to the person who sat
hand-in-hand with the duke, the joy and delight of that exalted
personage had been almost as great as her own.

His impatience during the whole procession from London had been
excessive; and the moment he saw Edmund, he rubbed his hands in
ecstasy, and jumping up in his seat almost overturned Sir Ambrose, who
was also bending forward eagerly gazing upon his son. "There! there
he is!" cried the duke. "Look how handsome he is! Oh the young rogue!
there'll be many a heart lost to-day, I warrant me! Look at him, how
the colour comes into his cheeks as the Queen speaks to him! Look! Now
he helps her on her horse--and now see, he's looking round for us!
There I caught his eye--see, Sir Ambrose! don't you see him?--Surely
you ar'n't crying, my old friend? Why you'll make me as great a fool as
yourself--God bless him! I am sure I don't know any thing we have to
cry at; but we are two old simpletons."

Father Morris, who had joined the procession of monks, was almost as
much affected as his patron. Indeed his affection for Edmund seemed
the only human passion remaining in his ascetic breast. Cold even to
frigidity in his exterior, Father Morris seemed to regard the scenes
passing around him but as the moving figures of a magic lantern, which
glittered for a moment in glowing colours, and then vanished into
darkness, leaving no trace behind:--whilst he, unmoved as the wall over
which the gaudy but shadowy pageant had passed, saw them alternately
vanish and re-appear without the slightest emotion being excited in
his mind. Under this statue-like appearance, however, Father Morris
concealed passions as terrific as those which might be supposed to
throb in the breast of a demon: though never did his self-command
seem relaxed for a moment, but when the interests of Edmund were in
question. On the present occasion, however, joy swelled in his bosom
almost to suffocation, as he raised his eyes to Heaven, and, wringing
his hands together, exclaimed, "Oh! it is too--too much!"

There is something indescribably affecting in seeing strong emotion
expressed by those who are generally calm and unimpassioned; and Sir
Ambrose, by whom this burst of feeling from his confessor was quite
unexpected, gazed at him with the utmost surprise, and, strange to
tell, though the monk had now lived nearly twenty years under his
roof, it was the first time he had seen his head completely uncovered.
Father Morris's cowl had now, however, fallen off entirely, and
displayed the head of a man between forty and fifty, whose fine
features bore the traces of what he had endured. His noble expressive
brow seemed wrinkled more by care than age, and his sable locks had
evidently become "grizzled here and there," prematurely. Sir Ambrose
gazed upon him intently, for the peculiar expression of his features
seemed to recall some half-forgotten circumstance to his mind, dimly
obscured, however, by the mist of time. The earnestness with which he
consequently regarded the monk, seemed at length to recall the latter
to himself. He started, and, whilst a deep crimson flushed his usually
sallow countenance, he hastily resumed his cowl, and appeared again to
the eyes of the spectators, the same cold, unimpassioned, abstracted
being as before.

The ovation had now nearly reached Blackfriars' bridge, at the entrance
to which, a triumphal arch had been erected. The moment the Queen
and her heroic general passed under it, a small figure of Fame was
contrived to descend from its entablature, and, hovering over the hero,
to drop a laurel crown upon his head. Shouts of applause followed this
well-executed device; and the passengers in the balloons, wondering
at the noise, all pressed forward at the same moment to ascertain the
cause of such continued acclamations. The throng of balloons became
thus every instant more dense. Some young city apprentices having hired
each a pair of wings for the day, and not exactly knowing how to manage
them, a dreadful tumult ensued; and the balloons became entangled with
the winged heroes and each other in inextricable confusion.

The noise now became tremendous; the conductors of the balloons
swearing at each other the most refined oaths, and the ladies screaming
in concert. Several balloons were rent in the scuffle and fell with
tremendous force upon the earth; whilst some cars were torn from their
supporting ropes, and others roughly overset. Luckily, however, the
whole of England was at this time so completely excavated, that falling
upon the surface of the earth was like tumbling upon the parchment of
an immense drum, and consequently only a deep hollow sound was returned
as cargo after cargo of the demolished balloons struck upon it; some of
them, indeed, rebounded several yards with the violence of the shock.

Amongst those who fell from the greatest height, and of course
rebounded most violently, were the unfortunate individuals who composed
the party of Mr. Montagu, an unlucky apprentice having poked his right
wing through the silk of their balloon, in endeavouring to avoid the
charge of an aërial horseman, who found his Æolian steed too difficult
to manage in the confusion. The car containing our friends was in
consequence precipitated to earth so rapidly, as for the moment to
deprive them of breath.

"Och, and I'm killed entirely!" cried Father Murphy.

"Oh, my bonnet! my beautiful bonnet!" sobbed Mrs. Montagu; whilst
Clara, dreadfully frightened, began to cry; and Mr. Montagu, whose
ideas were generally a long time travelling to his brain, particularly
upon occasions of sudden alarm, stood completely silent, stupidly
gazing about him, as though he had not the least notion what could
possibly have happened. Indeed, it was not till a full hour afterwards,
that he found himself sufficiently recovered to exclaim, "Dear me! I do
think we were very near being killed!"

In the mean time, the confusion in the air still continued; piercing
screams that demons were in the air, mingled horribly with the crashing
of balloons, the cries of the sufferers, and the successive falling
of heavy weights. The situation of the crowd below, however, was
infinitely worse than that of those above. The momentum of the falling
bodies being fearfully increased by the distance they had to descend,
those below had no chance of escape, and were inevitably crushed to
death by their weight, whilst the agonizing shrieks of the unfortunate
wretches who saw their danger coming from a distance, yet were so
jammed together in the crowd that they could not fly, rang shrilly upon
the ear, and pierced through every heart.

At this moment a dreadful scream ran through the crowd, and the horse
of Queen Claudia, his bridle broken, his housings torn, his nostrils
distended, and his sides streaming with gore, rushed past--"Oh God! the
Queen! the Queen!" burst from every voice, and one general rush took
place towards the spot from whence the cry had proceeded.

Beneath the triumphal arch, and partially sheltered by its shade, lay
the bleeding body of Claudia, supported by Edmund. By her side, knelt
Rosabella, who, assisted by Father Morris, was applying restoratives;
whilst Henry Seymour was endeavouring to restore Elvira, who had
fainted in the arms of her father, and Sir Ambrose, his face streaming
with blood, stood at a little distance amongst a group of courtiers,
several of whom had also experienced severe injuries. The tumult in
the air still continued; groans and shrieks and exclamations, that the
atmosphere was supernaturally haunted, were heard in many places; and
some persons declared the accident to be the work of demons. A current
of wind had blown those balloons that had become unmanageable across
the city, while the others, terrified almost to madness, appeared still
contending with some fearful monster in the sky.

The courtiers, however, heeded not this disturbance; for all their
attention was occupied by the apparently expiring Queen, whose
long-drawn sighs, and convulsed bosom, seemed to threaten her instant
dissolution.

"She's gone!" cried Lord Gustavus de Montfort, as her bosom heaved with
a deep, heavy sigh, and then all was still.

"Yes, she's dead!" repeated Lord Noodle.

"She is certainly dead!" reiterated Lord Doodle.

And then these sapient counsellors of the apparently departed Queen
shook their wise heads in sympathy.

"Hush! she breathes!" cried Lord Edmund.

For some moments, the courtiers stood in breathless anxiety watching
the body, and fearing to move lest they should break the awful silence
that prevailed, though their hearts throbbed till the pulsations were
almost audible.

Fearful was the pause that now ensued! All were suffering from the
torments of hope or fear; for all knew that the interests of the whole
community hung upon her breath. Most of the courtiers also either
hoped to gain places, or feared to lose them, whilst all trembled at
the uncertainty that seemed to rest upon their future destiny, and
the prospect of the anarchy which the purposed mode of electing their
future Sovereign might create. The interest which the fate of the Queen
excited was thus intense, and the courtiers hung over her body with
streaming eyes and motionless limbs to watch the result.

At this instant, a fearful and tremendous yell ran through the air; and
the car containing the Mummy, which had been for some time entangled
with the other balloons, fell to the ground with tremendous force,
close to the expiring Queen. The gigantic figure of Cheops started from
it as it fell--his ghastly eyes glaring with unnatural lustre upon the
terrified courtiers, who ran screaming in agony in all directions,
forgetting every thing but the horrid vision before them.

END OF VOL. I.



CHAPTER XII.


The tumult had now nearly subsided. The late busy crowd had flown,
uttering shrieks of horror and dismay; and of all the countless mass
of human beings that had so lately thronged around, none now remained
but Edmund and Father Morris, who supported Claudia; and the Duke and
Henry Seymour, who still remained near the insensible form of Elvira;
the eyes of all being chained, as though by magic, upon the horrid
vision before them; whilst they, pale and immovable as the sculptured
marble of the tomb, waited in fearful expectation of what was next to
happen, and scarcely dared to move or breathe; the solemn silence that
prevailed being only broken by the convulsive gasps of the expiring
Queen:--an awful change from the busy hum of thousands which had so
lately filled the air!

"Where am I?" exclaimed Cheops, gazing wildly around--his deep
sepulchral voice thrilling through every nerve:--"Where is Arsinoë?
Where is she? They seize her! They tear her from me! Curses on the
wretches!--May Typhon's everlasting vengeance pursue them with its
fury, and may their hearts wither, gnawed by the never-dying snake!"

The Mummy gnashed his teeth as he spoke, and the gloom that gathered
on his dark brow grew black as night. All shuddered as that horrid
glance of eternal hatred seemed to freeze their blood. They turned away
involuntarily; and when they looked again, the spectre had disappeared.
The shattered remains of the balloon lay before them; for happening
to cross London just at the moment of the greatest confusion, it had
become entangled in the crowd, and, notwithstanding the strong material
of which it was composed, had been rent asunder in the scuffle, and had
fallen with its fearful occupier to the ground.

"Good God!" cried Father Morris, after a short pause; "what a horrid
vision! what can it mean?"

"It seemed an Egyptian Mummy," said Edmund, shuddering; "and it spoke
that language. But what can have resuscitated it? What human power can
have recalled to life, a being so long immured in the silent tomb!"

"Perhaps the vehicle he came in may contain something to explain the
mystery," said Henry Seymour.

At this moment several persons ran past screaming with terror, and
exclaiming that they had seen a demon. When the confusion excited by
these trembling fugitives had a little subsided, a few of the courtiers
began also to make their appearance, and return to their posts near
the Queen. But all were pale, and they started at every sound, seeming
ready, at the least alarm, to take flight again as expeditiously as
before.

Claudia still lay insensible; her heaving chest and deep convulsive
sobs for breath, alone betraying signs of life. But her fate no
longer excited the deep, overwhelming interest it had done before.
Whispers of wonder and superstitious horror mingled with the hopes
and fears inspired by her danger; and her removal to the palace was
almost regarded with indifference, so completely were the minds of men
occupied by the strange spectacle they had so lately witnessed.

Every one, indeed, neither thought nor spoke of any thing but the
Mummy; and a thousand rumours, each more extravagant than the last,
spread from mouth to mouth respecting it. Men stood in groups
whispering to each other, and scarcely daring to stir without a
companion: nay, even then, creeping from place to place, looking
cautiously around, and starting at every noise, as though they feared
the awful visitor was returned: whilst the sages of the country gravely
shook their heads, and declared that what had taken place was evidently
a visitation from Heaven, in punishment of the sins of mankind. An
indefinable presentiment of evil hung over the spirits of all. Gloom,
indeed, spread through every class of society: all dreaded they knew
not what--and all shrunk with horror from the thought of supernatural
agency. There is an invincible feeling implanted by Nature in the mind
of man, which makes him shudder with disgust at any thing that invades
her laws.

The body of the Queen being removed, attended by her physicians and the
ladies of her household, the rest of the assembled courtiers gathered
round the balloon; and exclamations of terror and surprise broke from
their lips when they discovered it to be the same in which Edric and
Dr. Entwerfen had so short a time before taken their departure for
Egypt. The whole truth now seemed to flash upon them.

"I thought how it would be," said Lord Maysworth; "you know I told you,
Lord Gustavus, that in my opinion it was an expedition that could never
possibly do any good--but you were of a different belief."

"My Lord," returned Lord Gustavus, solemnly, "thinking as I think,
and as I am convinced every one who hears me must think, or at least
ought to think, it is my deliberate opinion, that the expedition of
my youthful friend and his learned tutor was both admirably planned
and well concocted, and that if it have failed in its ulterior object,
it has been solely owing to some of those unforeseen events which
sometimes do occur even in the best regulated arrangements, and which
it was utterly impossible for any human ability entirely to ward off
and avert."

"Edric's balloon! Impossible!" cried Sir Ambrose, rushing forward to
ascertain the fact, and forgetting all his anger against his son in his
anxiety for his fate. "Yes! yes!" continued he, looking at some of the
things, as they were drawn forth and exhibited by different persons in
the crowd; "those were Edric's books--that was his desk. Oh! my son! my
son! what is become of him?"

Many sympathized with the unfortunate father, and more eagerly
questioned each other as to the probable meaning of what they saw. No
one, however, could give any explanation; and all was confusion and
dismay. The bosom of Edmund, after the first moment of excitation had
passed, was racked with anguish too bitter to allow him to feel curious
even to know his brother's fate. But a few hours before, love and
fortune seemed to unite in showering their choicest blessings upon his
head, and now he was the most wretched of mankind; for if Claudia died,
Rosabella or Elvira must be queen; and if Elvira should be chosen, all
hopes of becoming her husband must be lost.

"Oh, God!" cried he, striking his forehead in agony, "why was I
reserved for this? Why did I not perish fighting the battles of my
country? And why was I saved only to be mocked with the hope of
happiness, which, just as it seemed within my grasp, flies from me for
ever? Wretch that I am! would that I had been never born, or at least
had died in my nurse's arms, and thus escaped the tormenting pangs that
now drive me to distraction!"

Whilst Edmund thus raved, the eye of Rosabella followed his every
movement, and seemed with a fiend-like pleasure to exult in his
agonies. "I am avenged," thought she; "he now feels what I have so
often suffered. But this is not all; he must be probed to the quick ere
he can know the bitter vengeance of a woman scorned."

Whilst these violent emotions were convulsing the bosoms of all around,
the old duke knelt by the side of Elvira, gazing upon her with the most
intense anxiety. Her gentle and feminine nature had been overpowered at
seeing the blood of Claudia, and she still lay insensible, looking more
exquisitely lovely than fancy can conceive. The beauty of Elvira was of
the most soft and feminine description; long silken eyelashes shaded
her dark hazel eyes, and gave them an expression more voluptuous than
brilliant, whilst nothing could exceed the delicacy of her complexion,
or the beauty of her full rosy lips. The figure of Elvira might not
have served as the model of a courageous heroine, but it would have
suited admirably for an Houri; and lovely as she always was, she had
perhaps never looked more so than at this moment, as the returning
blood softly retinted her cheeks, and her eyes gradually unclosed.
Lord Edmund gazed upon her, till, maddened by the thought that he must
lose her for ever, he could no longer endure his own sensations, and,
darting amongst the crowd, he endeavoured to fly from the world and
from himself.

The duke, on the contrary, saw the recovery of his daughter with
unalloyed transport, for though he loved Edmund, and wished to have
him for a son-in-law, he was by no means insensible to the prospect
of seeing his daughter a Queen, and his breast throbbed with violent
emotions, which had long been a stranger to it.

In the mean time the Mummy had stalked solemnly through the city, urged
more by instinct than design; the mist that still clung over him,
making him seem like one wandering in a dream. Yet still he advanced;
his path, like that of a destroying angel, spreading consternation
as he went, and all he met flying horror-stricken from his sight:
many, however, when the monster had passed, crept softly back to gaze
after him, and amongst this number was Mrs. Montagu, in whose breast
curiosity, that vice of low minds, reigned predominant.

The whole family had reached home in perfect safety, the lady herself
hurrying her return, the moment the accident of the Queen was made
known: lest, as she said, in the confusion that might ensue, her
servants might be induced to leave her house, and some evil disposed
personages might strip it of its contents. Urged by this prudent
motive, Mrs. Montagu had hastened home, and finding all safe, was just
about to retire to re-arrange her disordered dress, when one of the
servants rushed into the room with the account of a fearful spirit
having been seen in the Strand, whose mysterious appearance, coupled
with the singular accident that had happened to the Queen, seemed to
portend some dreadful calamity that was about to fall upon the country.

"What is it like?" asked Mrs. Montagu; "have you seen it, Evelina?"

"Oh yes, ma'am!" cried the panting girl; "its eyes flare like fire, and
it stares so wildly round it! and as it went along it saw a dead cat
lying in the street; and it knelt down and took the creature up, and
kissed it, and lamented over it in such a strange way, and in such a
strange language! I never heard any thing like it in my life."

"Oh, dear! I should like to see it!" cried Mrs. Montagu, flying to
the door, and holding it half open to secure a retreat in case of
necessity. Just as she reached the street, however, fate, as though
willing to gratify her curiosity, occasioned the Mummy to turn back;
and with that kind of half pleasure and half pain, with which the good
people of England sometimes delight to gaze upon any thing horrible,
Mrs. Montagu continued to look as it rapidly approached her dwelling,
till, as it reached the door, to her infinite horror it stalked
towards it. Awe-struck and trembling, Mrs. Montagu retreated. The
Mummy followed her. He stretched his hand out to her. She shrunk back
aghast from his touch. "Lead on!" cried he with a voice of thunder.
Mrs. Montagu could bear no more, and she fled screaming to the parlour,
where her husband was already lost in some of his beloved calculations.

Absent as Mr. Montagu generally was, however, he was roused by this
unexpected intrusion, and the blood ran chilly through his veins, as
he saw the tall majestic figure of Cheops stride across the apartment.
His athletic stature, his dark swarthy complexion, and his strongly
marked features, aided by the fearful lustre of his piercing eyes,
gave to his figure, swathed as it yet was in the vestments of the
grave, a supernatural grandeur that thrilled through every nerve of Mr.
Montagu's frame, and he shrunk back with horror as his fearful guest
stalked past him.

Cheops saw his terror, and smiled in proud disdain as he threw himself
upon a couch, placed near a window looking upon the garden, which, as
we have before stated, shelved down to the river. There he lay, his
eyes fixed upon the majestic Thames, whilst Mr. and Mrs. Montagu gazed
with trembling limbs and pallid lips at their strange guest, without
daring either to approach or disturb him.

"Thus have I watched the Nile," said Cheops, his awful voice sounding
as from the tomb, "whilst the gently rising waters have gradually
swelled into the flood which was to pour joy and plenty over the
land:--and thus, too, have I lain, gazing upon its streams, when, the
purpose of all-bounteous Nature having been fulfilled, it has sunk
back, slowly retiring to its natural bed. But, oh! how different were
the feelings that then throbbed in my breast, to the corroding fire
that now consumes me!--Oh! Osiris! what horrid thoughts flash through
my brain!--they come like overwhelming floods pouring from heaven to
the great deep, sweeping all before them in one mighty ruin.--Oh!
Arsinoë! by the fell rites of Typhon, there's madness in the thought!"

Then springing from the couch, his eyes glared with yet fiercer
brilliancy as he flashed them round, whilst Mr. and Mrs. Montagu,
terrified beyond the power of expression, flew towards the door, eyeing
the motions of their dangerous guest with feelings of unspeakable
horror. The storm of passions in the breast of Cheops, however, though
tremendous, seemed soon allayed; for ere many moments had elapsed, he
sank again upon the couch in a kind of lethargy, which, if it were not
slumber, seemed at least to imply a temporary cessation from pain.

"Thank God!" whispered Mr. Montagu, as he motioned to his wife to
creep out of the apartment. She tremblingly obeyed; and the moment
she thought herself in safety, she threw herself upon her knees,
and thanked God with more fervour than she had ever done before in
her whole life; whilst the servants, who were all assembled in the
ante-room, crowded round her, trembling and with pallid cheeks and
white lips, clustering together like bees swarming round their queen.

"Oh, madam! madam!" exclaimed Angelina, in a whisper, "what will become
of us? A serous moisture transudes from every pore in my body with the
chilliness of death, and my very hair erects itself with horror upon my
head."

"And my heart throbs with such violence," said Cecilia, "that the whole
arterial system seems deranged."

"It is evidently an Egyptian Mummy," observed Mr. Montagu, and, as he
seldom spoke, every word he uttered was listened to as an oracle. "Its
language and its dress bespeak its origin, but by what strange event it
has been resuscitated--"

At this moment a sharp knock at the door made the terrified servants
all spring closer together, clinging to each other in an agony of
nervous horror, and not one daring to approach the door. The knocking
and ringing, however, at length became so violent, as to rouse even Mr.
Montagu to give the clamorous intruders entrance. It was Father Morris
and Sir Ambrose.

"Oh, my dear brother!" cried the latter, panting for breath; "have you
heard the news? The strangest vision has appeared, and the Queen is
certainly dying. Every one says it is a demon."

"What, the Mummy?" asked Mr. Montagu.

"Have you heard of it then?" said Sir Ambrose eagerly.

"It is now in this house," cried Mrs. Montagu.

"In this house!" repeated her brother-in-law; whilst Father Morris, who
had looked pale and exhausted when he entered the hall, became still
paler, and looked scarcely able to support himself.

"To arms!" cried Cheops from the inner room; "the Palli are upon us!
Cowards that we are, the enemy are at our gates!"

Screaming, and scarcely knowing where they went, the terrified servants
tumbled over each other in the hastiness of their retreat, huddling
themselves together in a heap, yet keeping their eyes fixed upon the
door from which they expected the spectre to appear, as though charmed
by the fascination of a rattle-snake.

A loud crash now produced a fresh scream; then all was still. After a
long pause, which seemed of endless duration, Father Morris, evidently
with a dreadful effort, roused himself and advanced--

"Death itself is not so horrid as this suspense," said he, as he
resolutely threw open the door of the room, which had contained the
Mummy, and entered it. It was empty--but the broken frame-work of the
window seemed to point out in what manner the awful visitor had made
his exit.

It was with infinite difficulty that Mrs. Montagu could be persuaded
to return to the room; and when she did, the remainder of the day
was passed by her, and every inhabitant of her mansion, in fear and
trembling. When they spoke, it was in whispers, and when they moved,
they crept along with stealthy noiseless steps, as though they feared
the echo of their own footsteps: the eyes of all fixed timidly upon the
broken window, through which the fearful stranger had disappeared.

Slowly and heavily the hours rolled on, till the time appointed for
dinner arrived: the servants, as they served the meal, looking timidly
around, instead of regarding the dishes they carried in their hands,
and the family scarcely daring to eat, and only speaking in whispers,
whilst they started every moment, fancying the wild eyes of Cheops
again glared upon them, and his deep hollow voice again rang in their
ears; and their own tones sounded strangely hoarse and unnatural.
Nothing, however, had terrified Mrs. Montagu so much as the laugh of
Cheops; strange, wild, and unearthly, it still seemed to ring in her
ears, like the yell of a demon; whilst, if any thing that happened,
chanced to recall the appalling sound, her limbs shook in every joint;
her teeth chattered in her head; terror blanched her lips and cheeks
to a ghastly paleness, and she seemed every instant upon the point of
rising from her seat and flying shrieking from the room.

In the mean time, the sensations these extraordinary events had
created amongst the people were indescribable. Strange rumours and
contradictory reports were circulated, and the most incredible stories
invented of all that had passed. The minds of men became bewildered;
they knew not what to credit nor what to think; a gloomy presentiment
hung over them; they seemed to feel some fearful change was at hand,
but scarcely knew what to hope or what to fear. Business was at a
stand: people indeed gathered together in the shops, but it was only to
whisper secretly to each other, strange mysterious stories of the late
marvellous events, which they dared not breathe in public. The extremes
of ignorance and civilization tend alike to produce credulity, and the
wildest and most improbable stories were as greedily swallowed by the
most enlightened people in the world, as they could have been even by a
horde of uncultivated barbarians.

The family of Mr. Montagu retired early to rest at the close of the
eventful day we have been speaking of, hoping to lose in sleep the
remembrance of the harassing events they had so lately witnessed. Lord
Edmund had returned soon after the disappearance of the Mummy; but he
had locked himself in his chamber, and had refused to see any one, his
mind being too much agitated for him to endure the common forms of
society. All was soon quiet throughout the mansion.

It was midnight when a tall figure wrapped in a large cloak, appeared
slowly gliding with catlike steps through the garden of Mr. Montagu.
It cautiously avoided the light, and crept along the shadiest walks
and thickest allies, carefully shrouding itself from observation,
and endeavouring, by availing itself of the shelter of the trees,
the better to conceal its movements. It has been already stated that
the garden of Mr. Montagu was only separated from that of the duke
by a terrace very little used; the door, indeed, leading to it from
Mr. Montagu's premises, had been so long closed up, as to be nearly
forgotten, and yet it was towards this unfrequented spot that the
mysterious figure directed its course. The long neglected door slowly
opened, and the stream of light it admitted, was obscured for a moment
by a passing shade; and then all seemed dark, silent, and mysterious as
before.

"It certainly went that way," said a voice, the preciseness of which
marked it as belonging to Abelard; "and it was a real, tangible,
material form, as I saw its shadow intercept the light when the door
was opened and it passed through."

"It is quite impossible," cried Evelina, one of Mrs. Montagu's
housemaids, who having been induced by the inconstant butler to take
a ramble with him by moonlight, had also witnessed this strange
apparition; "you must be mistaken Mr. Abelard, for that door has not
been opened this age. It is even nailed up, as you may see yourself if
you examine it."

"It is very strange," said Abelard, after he had tried the door and
found it immovable; "I certainly saw it open."

"It must have been an optical delusion, Mr. Abelard," said Evelina;
"the retina of the eye is sometimes strangely affected, and represents
objects quite different to what they really are."

"I must consult Father Morris about it to-morrow," resumed the butler;
"for it was certainly the Mummy spectre."

"La! do you think so, Mr. Abelard?" said Evelina, turning pale; "why
then didn't you speak to it."

"I will if it comes again," returned Abelard.

"Oh! there it is!" cried Evelina; and the worthy pair flew back to the
house, screaming in concert, and without once daring to look behind
them. Scarcely, however, had the last echo of their footsteps died away
upon the ear, when the figure emerged from the recess in which it had
lain concealed, and again crept slowly towards the door leading into
the garden of the duke.

"Hist! Marianne!" cried he, pausing for a reply; but all was still.
"Marianne!" repeated he still louder--"Fools! dolts! idiots!" continued
he, stamping violently, as he still found his call of no avail; "they
have kept me so long with their cursed folly, that she is gone. Eternal
misery haunt them for their officious babbling. By Heaven! if they had
had the sense to climb the wall, I had been lost:--but hark, she comes!"

The door now slowly opened, and a female figure holding a light
appeared.

"How is she?" cried the stranger.

"Better," returned the female.

"Then it is past the power of man to kill her," resumed the first; and
rushing wildly past her he buried himself in the deepest recesses of
the grove.



CHAPTER XIII.


Father Morris, when Abelard and Evelina confessed to him the following
morning the strange spectre they had witnessed, treated the whole as
the mere vision of their heated imaginations, and refusing to listen
to any of their surmises respecting it, prepared to attend the Queen,
who, finding herself sufficiently recovered to be able to attend to the
duties of religion, had, from the general reputation of his superior
sanctity, sent for him to confess her. Her Majesty, indeed, seemed
rapidly improving, and the hopes of Edmund reviving with her health, he
passed every hour he could abstract from the duties of his station, at
the feet of his adored Elvira, his love for whom, seemed increased by
the imminence of the danger he had just escaped, of losing her for ever.

In this manner several days had passed, and the strange visit of the
Mummy, and the accident of the Queen, had already taken their place
on the shelf with the other _événements passés_ of the day; when one
morning Sir Ambrose was startled by an earnest message from the Duke
of Cornwall, entreating him to come to him without delay. Sir Ambrose
immediately obeyed the summons, and found the duke walking up and down
his study in a state of the greatest agitation, which Father Morris was
vainly endeavouring to tranquillize.

"Oh, my beloved friend!" exclaimed the duke, springing forward and
grasping the baronet's hand the moment he saw him approach: "my dear
Sir Ambrose, Claudia is no more!"

"Dead!" cried Sir Ambrose, involuntarily looking at Father Morris,
whose aspect, however, still preserved only its usual cold and
statue-like appearance. "Are you sure that she is dead?--I thought she
was better."

"So we all did," said the duke: "but alas! we deceived ourselves, for
Father Morris has just seen her expire. Oh! where is Edmund--why is he
not with you?--what will become of him? It will destroy him to lose
Elvira: and I, too, that have felt so proud in the expectation of his
becoming my son-in-law, oh, it will break my heart!"

"Oh!" cried Father Murphy, who was also present; "and if that's the
case, why don't you let Rosabella take the crown at once, and make no
more fuss about it."

"And yet," continued the duke, "I cannot bear that Elvira should be
deprived of her right, she would so become a crown; and with her
inflexible sense of justice, and desire for improvement, she would do
so much good that I should not feel justified in depriving the country
of such a sovereign."

"Thus," said Father Morris, smiling, "do we deceive ourselves; you
are ambitious whilst you think that you are only just. Believe me,
if you consult Elvira's real happiness, you will not impose upon her
the troublesome duties of a crown: she will make a better wife than a
queen; for her gentle nature is less fitted to command than to obey.
Rosabella has more firmness."

"I do not agree with you, Father," said Sir Ambrose; "in my opinion
Elvira is infinitely better fitted to be a queen than Rosabella, for
her passions are more under the control of reason."

"That is to say," resumed the monk, sneeringly, "they have not yet been
called into play."

"What do you mean, Father?" began the duke.

"Nothing that could give you offence, my Lord," returned the priest.
"Disgusted myself with the world, I naturally thought the princess most
likely to find happiness where I seek it myself--viz. in a life of
quiet and retirement."

"Enough," said the duke: "but where is Edmund? Let us seek him; no
doubt he is with Elvira--poor things! we must spoil their billing and
cooing."

Edmund was with Elvira, and was passionately urging his suit, whilst
she, engaged with her embroidery frame, listened with a half abstracted
mind, and Emma duteously waited behind her chair.

"You do not love me," said he, "or you could not answer with such
provoking coldness."

"Indeed I do, Edmund, but you are so unreasonable. I have already told
you I have no idea of that passionate overwhelming love you appear to
feel, it absolutely terrifies me, and I am sure it is not natural to my
character.--This silk is too dark, Emma--and so, Edmund, if you feel
you cannot be happy with such love as it is in my power to bestow, we
had better determine at once to separate."

"Good God!" exclaimed Edmund, striking his forehead violently with his
clenched hand; "how coldly you talk of our separation!"

"What can I do? I try every thing in my power to please you. Emma, give
me my scissors. But since you will not hear reason--"

"Reason!" cried Edmund fiercely, seizing her arm, and then letting it
go again; "If you talk of reason you will drive me distracted!"

"You quite terrify me with your violence, Edmund," said Elvira, rising,
and preparing to quit the room.

"Oh stay! stay, my adored Elvira!" exclaimed Lord Edmund, throwing
himself upon his knees and catching her hand; "for Heaven's sake, stay!
pardon my impetuosity--frown upon me, treat me with coldness, disdain,
or contempt, but do not, do not leave me."

"I do not know what you wish; I have repeatedly told you I am ready to
become your wife whenever our parents think fit; and that I will do
every thing in my power to make you happy. Do you call that coldness?"

"I do--I do indeed: freezing, insulting coldness. Oh, Elvira! I would
rather see you spurn me--hear you declare you hated me, or know that
you doomed me to destruction, than hear you speak of our marriage in
that calm, unvaried tone."

"How unreasonable you are!" said Elvira, smiling. "Hear him, Emma; is
he not a singular being? And if I find it so difficult to please him
now, what must I expect when I become his wife?"

"Tormenting girl!" exclaimed Edmund, "you know your power but too well."

"What ridiculous creatures these lords of the creation are!" said
Elvira, playfully holding out her hand to Edmund, though she still
affected to address Emma; "I really don't think any of them know what
they would have; and I believe the only way to manage them is to make
one's-self perfectly disagreeable."

"That _you_ can never do," cried Edmund, rapturously kissing her hand.

At this moment a slight tap at the door announced the arrival of the
duke and his friends.

"So, so!" said the duke, "we have found you, have we? but you must take
your leave of such tender scenes for the future."

"What do you mean?" asked Edmund.

"The Queen is dead," said Sir Ambrose. The glowing countenance of
Edmund turned of a ghastly paleness; and his livid lips quivered, as he
leaned against the window for support.

"Assist him!" cried the duke. "He will faint! Don't distress yourself,
Edmund; the death of Claudia shall make no alteration in your
prospects."

"I am better," said Edmund faintly, attempting to smile, and waving off
all assistance; "'Twas but for a moment: the suddenness of the shock
overcame me: I thought the Queen was better."

"She was supposed so," returned the duke; "but it seems she had some
internal malady her physicians were not aware of. An inward bruise, I
believe. But don't make yourself unhappy about it, Edmund; I cannot
bear to see you wretched. Let Rosabella take the crown, and think no
more about it."

"Your Grace wrongs me," said Edmund, his fine countenance glowing
with the exalted feelings of his soul. "However I may suffer from the
violence of my feelings, I can never permit them to interfere with
my sense of duty. Elvira has a right to ascend the throne, and if my
exertions can ensure her success, she shall be Queen."

"Thou art a brave lad!" cried the duke. "And will you really try to
secure the election of Elvira, when you know, by so doing, you will
deprive yourself of her for ever?"

"I shall do my duty," said Lord Edmund, pressing his lips firmly
together, as though to suppress his feelings. Father Morris looked at
him from under his over-shadowing cowl with a kind of sardonic smile,
which seemed to say "You speak well, but let us see how you will act."

"My noble Edmund!" murmured Sir Ambrose, tears rolling down his cheeks.

Elvira's eyes thanked her lover for his disinterestedness; and the
glow of anticipated triumph which flushed her cheeks, betrayed, that
neither her love for Edmund, nor the grief for the loss of her cousin,
could suppress her joy at the flattering prospect opened before her.
"Elvira!" said Lord Edmund, gazing upon her earnestly, as though he
would penetrate the inmost recesses of her bosom. "What are your
wishes? Do not hesitate to declare them, for alas! much hangs upon your
words."

Elvira blushed, and cast her eyes upon the ground; however, Lord Edmund
comprehended but too well the meaning of her silence, and he sighed
deeply. "It is enough," said he, in a mournful tone; "then the die is
cast." He paused a few moments, whilst his friends, though they all
looked at him with the deepest commiseration, respected his emotion
too much to venture to interrupt it: then rousing himself, he hastily
brushed a tear from his eye, and exclaimed, "How weak is human nature!
I know my duty, and I will perform it; but yet--Oh Elvira!"

"Compose yourself, my beloved Edmund," said his father; "to-morrow you
will be more calm."

"Oh, talk not of to-morrow!" replied Edmund; "to-day is the season for
action. Keep the death of Claudia concealed a few hours, if possible. I
will in the mean time assemble my friends: I know the army is devoted
to me. A council of state will be chosen to direct the kingdom during
the interregnum. I must be one of its members: some weeks must elapse
before the election can take place, I think?"

"Three months is the time fixed," said the duke: "but you know the
votes of all the people are to be collected, and that, with such a
population as ours, will be no trifle: to be sure, it is the deputies
that are to do the business, but then it will take some time to elect
them."

"When the founder of the present dynasty ordained her successor should
be chosen by the votes of the whole people," said Sir Ambrose; "she
wisely recollected the difficulty that must arise from collecting their
votes impartially, and directed they should elect deputies; but when
she ordered that every ten thousand men throughout the kingdom should
choose a deputy of their own rank and station to come to London to
represent them, she did not calculate upon the immensity of our present
population, nor think of the evils the presence of such a disorderly
body of men must bring upon the capital."

"Yet any attempt to reduce their number, would inevitably overturn
the government," observed Father Morris; "for as it is the only act
of freedom the people have long been permitted to enjoy, they will be
proportionably tenacious of it."

"And the majority of these deputies are to decide the election," said
Edmund, musing; "then our business must be to secure that majority.
Think you that any good can be done by endeavouring to procure the
return of those who are disposed to be favourable to us?"

"Very little," returned Father Morris, to whom this observation was
addressed; "for the lower classes, from their conceit and pedantry, are
extremely difficult to manage. Their deputies, however, notwithstanding
the ordinance of the Queen, will probably be more polished, and less
learned, as the lower classes will be ill able to spare the time
necessary to become deputies, whilst the country gentlemen will be
delighted to obtain something to do."

"We must be prompt," said the duke, "at all events. I don't like delay."

"True!" replied Edmund, starting from a reverie into which he had
fallen; "I must get myself nominated a member of the council, and we
must arrange our other plans afterwards."

The party now separated, and Elvira, left alone with her companion,
indulged in dreams of future grandeur. "I am sorry for the death
of Claudia," said she, "but I never loved her; she was so cold and
uninteresting--such a mere matter-of-fact being--she had no soul, Emma,
and how can one love a being so totally passionless and insipid? I
wonder," continued she, after a short pause, "what Henry Seymour will
think of this?"

Emma smiled. "Poor Lord Edmund!" said she.

"I know what you would say," returned Elvira; "I am sorry for him, and
I admire his conduct extremely. There is really something very noble
about him."

Emma again smiled, for she saw, in spite of this admiration, that in a
week poor Lord Edmund would be forgotten.

In the mean time, poor Rosabella's mind was a prey to the most violent
passions. A billet from Father Morris had informed her of the death of
her cousin, and of the designs brooding against her interests. "I will
be revenged," said she; "I will show them mine is not a soul to dwell
upon impotent grief. I will assemble my friends; my father's party was
strong in the state; it cannot be quite extinct. Let me see, to whom
shall I apply?"

"The Lords Noodle and Doodle (both of ancient families) were both
devoted to your father, and were under great obligations to him when
they were young," observed Marianne.

"But they are such fools!" said Rosabella.

"They are well connected," returned her confidant; "and power does not
always attend upon talent."

"True, and, as they are so weak, I may guide them as I will."

"Do not rely upon that: folly is generally obstinate; and though there
may be hopes of convincing a man of sense, fools will always have their
own way."

"How then are they to be dealt with?"

"By letting them fancy they direct, when, in fact, they are directed.
Apply to Lords Noodle and Doodle, as though for advice, more than
assistance. Consult them how you ought to act, and suggest the
advantages that will arise from your possessing the throne so artfully,
that they may fancy what you say the dictates of their own minds, and
then, if they advise any course, they in some measure pledge themselves
to support you, if you pursue it."

"I do not doubt obtaining their sanction, and that of Lord Gustavus
de Montfort; but I wish I could also obtain the countenance of Dr.
Hardman, for he has many friends, and some talents," said Rosabella;
"and I own I do not feel satisfied to trust myself entirely in the
hands of any of the others."

"Talk of liberty and public spirit," replied Marianne; "promise a
redress of grievances, and a radical reform of all evils, and you may
secure Dr. Hardman. Yet he is not a fool; nay, he is even shrewd,
penetrating, and persevering; but as lunatics are generally mad only
upon one subject, so even men of sense have generally some prevailing
folly, and his is, that of being thought of importance in the state.
Indeed, in my opinion, there are very few human beings that we may not
make subservient to our views, if we have but penetration enough to
discover their weak sides, and art enough to avail ourselves of the
discovery."

"The world is very much obliged to you for the high opinion you have of
it," returned Rosabella; "however, I like your advice, and will pursue
it. But do you think Father Morris will approve?"

"Oh, I will answer for him," interrupted Marianne.

"I will then write to each of the three lords," continued Rosabella;
"and appoint a time and place for an interview with each. I must attend
to the doctor afterwards."

"Beware," said Marianne; "you have a difficult game to play. The old
proverb says, it is well to have two strings to one's bow; but four, I
fear, will be too much for you to manage."

"Fear me not," cried her mistress; "impetuous as I generally am, I can
be cautious when I see occasion."

In pursuance of her resolution, Rosabella wrote to the noblemen, whose
assistance she wished to secure; and receiving favourable answers, the
hour of twelve that night was fixed upon for a secret meeting between
Lord Gustavus and herself upon the subject. The utmost secrecy was
requisite, as Rosabella knew the fiery temper of her uncle, and felt
confident, that if he discovered her plans before they were ripe for
execution, his vengeance would have no bounds. She wished, therefore,
to ascertain her strength privately; and, as she was aware a fruitless
struggle would only involve her in ruin, she resolved not to betray her
intentions till there appeared at least a fair prospect of success.

For this reason, when the duke informed her of the death of the Queen,
she affected only the surprise she might naturally be supposed to feel
at the suddenness of the event; and appeared absorbed in grief for the
loss of her cousin, without seeming even to think of the consequences
likely to ensue to herself; in short, she acted her part so well, that
the duke was completely deceived; and when he returned to Sir Ambrose,
after his conference with her, he exclaimed, "We had no occasion to
alarm ourselves, or give ourselves so much trouble: I don't believe
Rosabella even thinks about the throne; and I am sure she doesn't care
a straw whether she has it or not. I am even confident, from what I
have seen to-night, that I have only to express my wishes in favour of
Elvira, to have her resign all pretensions immediately."

Sir Ambrose smiled and shook his head incredulously, and the duke was
provoked; for, like all weak, obstinate men, he was extremely tenacious
of the infallibility of his judgment.

"Why do you shake your head?" said he; "Do you disbelieve my assertion?"

"I do not disbelieve your assertion; I only doubt your penetration!"

"And why do you doubt that?"

"Because I know Rosabella."

"Then you think her indifference affected?"

"I think it too great to be real. Moderation is not by any means a
characteristic of Rosabella. She is ever in extremes; and when she
appears otherwise, depend upon it she is only acting a part, and she
has some end in view that she hopes to gain by it."

"Well, let her be as sly as she will, she cannot deceive me! I'll watch
her! I'll defy her to think, walk, look, or speak, without my knowing
of it; and if I find she nourishes even the thought of rivalling
Elvira, she shall quit my house immediately. I will encourage no
vipers."

Sir Ambrose smiled inwardly at the mistaken confidence of his friend
in his own judgment. Thinking it useless, however, to irritate him
by farther opposition, he endeavoured to turn the conversation upon
another subject. "It is strange," said he, "how frequently I have been
thinking of that Mummy. If there be no deception in the business, it is
a perfect miracle!"

"And what deception can there be?" returned the duke, peevishly:
"you think yourself so very wise, and that you know so much better
than other people, only because you are always suspecting something
wrong. Now, for my part, I think, as poor Dr. Entwerfen used to say,
'Incredulity is often as much the offspring of folly as credulity'!"

"I wonder what has become of the doctor and Edric? for, ill as Edric
behaved, he is still my son; and I own I should like to know where he
is."

"Oh! I don't think you have the least occasion in the world to trouble
yourself about him. Depend upon it, he and his mad friend, Doctor
Entwerfen are rambling about Egypt, and are happier now than ever they
were before in their lives."

"If you are right," said Sir Ambrose, "and they are now in Egypt; as
they have lost their balloon, they may be even in want of necessaries."

"And it is very right they should be so," replied the duke; "what
business had they to go away?"

The hours of this eventful day rolled on heavily with Rosabella; the
important consequences of the struggle she was about to engage in
forcibly impressed her mind. Ruin must inevitably ensue if she failed,
and even if she succeeded, her path seemed strewed with thorns. The
anxiety natural to the intrigues she was about to be involved in,
also hung about her. Though haughty and vindictive, Rosabella was
not naturally deceitful. Indeed the very violence and impetuosity of
her passions rendered it difficult for her to appear otherwise than
she really was. The secret intercourse, however, which, through the
intervention of Marianne, she had long maintained with Father Morris,
had somewhat practised her in concealment, but it was still repugnant
to her nature. She was now anxiously expecting a visit from the
reverend father, and as he was generally remarkably punctual to his
appointments, his non-appearance filled her with a sensation of dread;
and a presentiment of evil crept over her, that she tried in vain to
overcome.

"It is long past the hour the father mentioned," said Marianne, after
a long pause, during which she had been listening with the utmost
attention to every sound. "I cannot imagine the cause of his absence.
Surely our plans have not been discovered." And as she spoke, her
blanched cheeks and livid lips betrayal the deep interest she took in
his fate.

"How gloomily that heavy bell clangs in my ear!" said Rosabella; "it
seems to ring the death-knell of my hopes. A gloomy foreboding hangs
upon my mind, and undefinable horrors rise in dim perspective before
me."

"Hark!" cried Marianne, her sense of hearing sharpened by anxiety; "he
comes! yes, yes, he comes," added she, after a short pause; and in a
few seconds Rosabella heard the Father's well-known step. "You are very
late," said she, as he entered the room.

"Good God! what is the matter?" asked Marianne, as the haggard,
agitated features of the priest met her eye. "You look like one who has
held communion with infernal spirits."

"You say right, Marianne," replied the Father, in a deep hollow tone;
"I have, indeed, conversed with spirits--for never could those fearful
eyes that so long have glared upon me, belong to mortal."

"What do you mean?" asked Rosabella.

"I have again seen the Mummy! that fearful spectre from the tomb. I
have even conversed with him, and he lives and breathes; nay even
reasons, thinks, and speaks like a human being; but the cerecloths of
the grave are still wrapped round him, his fearful eyes glare with
unearthly lustre, and his deep sepulchral voice thrills through every
nerve."

"What, that horrid creature whom we saw descend from above at the very
moment of Claudia's accident? Heaven grant no horrible consequences may
ensue from so awful an invasion of the general laws of nature!" said
Rosabella.

"Are you certain it is no deception?" asked Marianne.

"Deception!" returned the priest, "even I trembled, Marianne, when I
gazed upon the countenance of that tremendous being, and read there
the traces of fierce and ungoverned passions, wild and destructive in
their course as the raging whirlwind. Even I, dreaded the influence he
might exert upon our destinies, and shuddered at the thought of such
a creature's being released from the fetters of the tomb, and sent
back as a destroying spirit upon earth. The eternal gloom that hangs
upon his brow, seems to bespeak a fallen angel, for such is the deadly
hate that must have animated the rebellious spirits when expelled
from heaven. His look is terrific; and my blood froze in my veins at
his horrid laugh, which seemed to ring in my ears like the mockery of
fiends when they have involved a human being inextricably in their
toils."

"It may be a fiend," murmured Marianne, in a low whisper. At this
moment, the clock struck twelve.

Rosabella started at the sound. "Lord Gustavus will expect me," cried
she.

"Go, then," replied the priest, "with Marianne. I will follow
presently."

With trembling limbs, beating heart, and all the trepidation which the
consciousness of guilt cannot fail to give even to the firmest mind,
Rosabella and Marianne proceeded to the terrace, where they found Lord
Gustavus waiting to receive them.

"You may think it strange, my Lord," said the agitated princess, as she
advanced, leaving her confidant at the gate which led from the garden,
"that I should desire this meeting."

"By no means--by no means," said Lord Gustavus, condescendingly.
"Indeed, I have already had some conversation with an emissary of
yours, that has let me into your views; and I find from him your ideas
upon several important subjects are so clear, so just, so sensible, and
so accordant with my own, that I feel disposed to become your partizan,
even before you utter a syllable."

"And who is this emissary?" asked Rosabella, unable to account for a
reception so unexpectedly gracious, and alarmed at what she feared a
premature exposure of her plans.

"Father Morris," replied Lord Gustavus, alarmed in his turn, lest he
should have unguardedly committed himself: "he told me, he was an
accredited agent of yours, and even induced me to--to--"

"Your Lordship need not hesitate," returned Rosabella; "I was not
aware, that Father Morris had seen you, or I should not have expressed
surprise."

"I have been induced then," said Lord Gustavus, "to bring with me
two friends of mine, Lord Maysworth and Dr. Hardman. They are fully
convinced of the justness of your ideas respecting retrenchment and
reform; and they think your plans of curtailing the expenditure, by
throwing all the power of the state into the hands of a few trustworthy
individuals, upon whom you may thoroughly rely, (such as them or
myself, for instance,) most excellent."

Poor Rosabella was here completely puzzled, as she had not the
slightest idea of what plan Lord Gustavus could possibly allude to;
nor indeed was it probable she should, it being entirely the offspring
of the creative brain of Father Morris, invented by him solely for the
purpose of the winning of the noble lords, to whom he had confided
it, over to her party. Rosabella was naturally quick, and, possessing
abundantly that very unexplainable, but well-known faculty, designated
"tact," she instantly divined the motive that had induced Father Morris
to attribute this scheme to her, and determined to avoid, if possible,
betraying her ignorance.

Lord Maysworth and Dr. Hardman, who had remained at a little distance,
and whom the agitation of Rosabella had prevented her before seeing,
now advanced; and after having been presented to the princess, the
former assured her of his devotion to her cause.

"I admire your ideas exceedingly," said he; "and particularly your
intention of removing Lord Edmund from the command of the army, and
placing an older and more experienced person in his stead."

"Lord Edmund!" cried Rosabella, thrown off her guard by the sudden
mention of that name.

"Father Morris told me so," resumed Lord Maysworth, in surprise.

"And he told you truly," interrupted Rosabella. "Father Morris is
worthy of all the confidence I can repose in him; and, in fact, he
knows my inmost thoughts; but I was not aware that he had seen you."

A conversation now ensued, in the course of which Lord Maysworth
detailed, with admirable minuteness, a variety of subjects calling for
reform. Rosabella did not understand half he said, for his calculations
bewildered her; and her mind, accustomed to soar with the eagle
flight of genius, and take in oceans with a glance, could scarcely
condescend to listen to the petty articles of economy in expenditure,
to which it seemed principally his object to draw her attention. She
assented, however, to all he said; and having let him speak as long as
he liked, without showing symptoms of weariness, and having luckily
said 'yes' and 'no' in the right places, he departed quite enchanted,
and completely gained over to her party, declaring her to be, without
exception, one of the most sensible young women he had ever conversed
with in his life. To this, Lord Gustavus and Dr. Hardman assented, as
she had appeared also to acquiesce in all they had said; and the noble
lords and learned doctor departed perfectly satisfied.

Scarcely were they gone, when Father Morris appeared. "My dear father!"
exclaimed Rosabella, enraptured at the result of the interview,
"congratulate me! Lord Maysworth, Dr. Hardman, and Lord Gustavus, are
our own."

"I rejoice sincerely, my child," returned the priest; "for Heaven knows
I feel as great an interest in your welfare as in my own. But what did
they say? Let us hear if your hopes are well founded."

"At first their expressions were rather of a negative nature--for they
told me rather that a party existed against my rival, than for myself.
They say the duke has many enemies, from his obstinate and conceited
disposition; they said also that my father _had_ had many friends."

"And do they exist no longer then, that you lay such emphasis on the
word _had_?'" asked Father Morris bitterly.

"They exist, but it seems my father has been so unfortunate as to lose
their friendship," returned Rosabella; "Lord Gustavus even alluded to
some crime, which he said he had committed."

"Crime! Did he dare to call it crime?"

"He did indeed, and it is not possible to describe the torture
that rent my bosom as he spoke. I always knew my father had been
unfortunate, but I never before even suspected him of having been
guilty."

"Nor was he guilty, girl! none but fools or idiots dare breathe such an
accusation against his name."

"Ten thousand blessings on you for relieving my mind from the agony of
believing him unworthy of my love. I am perfectly satisfied with your
assurance; and yet, methinks, I would fain know his history."

"Rosabella, you never knew your father; you were but three years
old when circumstances occurred that urged him to commit a deed
of desperation. Seek not to inquire farther; and endeavour, since
misfortune has thrown a shade over your father's name, to redeem it by
the lustre of your own."

"As an obscure individual, whatever might be my will, power would be
wanting."

"But it shall not be wanting. You shall be Queen. I swear it, though
all the powers of heaven and earth should unite to oppose my designs,
and though even blood should be necessary to seal the compact--"

He was going on when a fiendish laugh rang in his ears; and, looking
up, he beheld the gigantic form of Cheops standing over him. The bright
moonbeams showed, with horrible distinctness, the strange attire,
savage features, and unearthly gaze of the Mummy, as his horrid laugh
echoed from the wall behind them and pealed across the water. Rosabella
had not before seen him, except when she knelt before the dying Queen;
and, shrieking with horror, she fled for refuge to her uncle's garden,
whilst Cheops thus tauntingly addressed the priest.

"You were conspiring mischief. Though the language your lips employed
was unknown to me, that of your looks was clear. Men do not cast their
eyes upon the earth, and murmur forth their accents as though they
trembled at the sound of their own voices, when their purposes are
such as will bear avowal. Make me your confidant, and by the aid of
my serpent deity, my guardian Cneph, I may assist you: but force me
to become your enemy, and Typhon himself never pursued Isis and the
infant Horus with more unrelenting vengeance than I will follow you and
destroy your plans."

Dreading alike to trust, or enrage this mysterious being, and cursing
the evil chance that had led him to that spot, Father Morris, who, like
all the English in those days, was an universal linguist, found himself
obliged partially to obey this injunction, and inform the Mummy of his
design. Cheops burst into one of his terrific laughs of derision. "And
so," he said, "you would make yonder feeble girl who fled screaming
at my approach, a Queen. A fit monarch for a warlike people. Can a
woman's arm resist an invasion of the Palli, or a woman's hands direct
the reins of Mizraim's government? Alas! alas! where am I wandering?
I forgot the change wrought in my destiny, and that your people seem
powerless as the sovereign you would give them. Be satisfied, I will
not betray thee. Indeed, so do I hate thy countrymen, that I shall
rejoice to see thee triumph in deceiving them. Beware, however, how
thou attemptest to deceive me, lest my vengeance, quick, sure, and
unforeseen as the secret agency of the Epoptæ, should fall upon and
crush thee at the very moment of the fruition of thy wishes."

Fearing, whilst he hated the mysterious being thus strangely thrust
into his most inmost secrets, Father Morris promised obedience, and the
Mummy retreated within the walls of Mrs. Montagu's garden; ere he left
the priest, however, he held out his hand to him. "Give me your hand,"
said he, "and let us seal our compact." Father Morris shuddered as he
obeyed; for the words of the Mummy recalled those he had just employed,
when this fearful apparition broke in upon him, and brought with them
a train of thoughts he would now willingly have shaken off. He did not
dare, however, to refuse, and reluctantly held out his hand: the Mummy
seized it with an iron grasp, and an icy chill seemed to creep from his
hand to Father Morris's heart, as he burst into one of his demon-like
laughs and left him.

Father Morris, unable to shake off the horror that oppressed him,
for he felt as though he had entered into a compact with a fiend,
stood gazing at the supernatural appearance of Cheops as he stalked
across the terrace. His gaunt figure (rendered more awful by the
grave-clothes that bound it) was magnified in the moonbeams, which
seemed to increase, rather than to mitigate the unearthly ugliness
of the apparition they shone upon. The priest was fixed in a fearful
trance: in imagination, he still felt the cold and iron grasp of
the Mummy, whose eyes seemed as though they were still looking into
his very soul, and whose solemn accents were even now scaring his
faculties. At length, however, Father Morris recovered something of
his self-possession, and fled from the spot (he scarcely knew in what
direction) under the fear, at every turning, of again encountering the
dreaded Mummy!



CHAPTER XIV.


When the reverend father took refuge in his chamber after this fearful
and memorable interview, he felt that strange mysterious sensation of
something dreadful hanging over him, though he scarcely knew what,
which so often weighs upon the mind when any great and unexpected
change has taken place in our destiny. He threw himself upon a
sofa, and endeavoured in vain to analyze his feelings. He was not
superstitious; but there was something about the Mummy that inspired
him with awe in spite of himself, and he felt that he was no longer his
own master, for a supernatural power seemed to mingle with his designs,
and control his actions: he endeavoured in vain to recur to the plans
he had that morning arranged for gaining over partizans to the side of
Rosabella; he could not govern his ideas; he could no longer direct
them as he wished; one sole thought occupied his mind, one sole image
floated before his senses. He held his head with his hands, he pressed
them firmly against his ears, and closed his eyes, as though by
shutting out external objects his mind could recover its tone. It was
all in vain! the gaunt figure of the Mummy still seemed to stalk before
his eyes, and his fiendish laugh still to ring in his ears. Father
Morris rose from his couch and threw open his window; the cool evening
breeze revived him, and restored his faculties. He now began to reason
with himself.

"It is very strange," said he; "but, unaccountable though it may seem,
the destinies of this fearful being are evidently interwoven with mine.
His appearance here at this eventful moment, and his forcing himself
upon my confidence, which a secret power superior to my own prevented
the possibility of my refusing him, cannot surely be accidental.
No, no--he is permitted to revisit this earth for some positive and
definite purpose; perchance to counteract my plans, perchance to aid
them. There is no vanity in the thought; for upon my destiny, at this
moment, hangs that of a mighty empire, and I feel that I am but a blind
instrument in the hands of Fate, condemned to work, mole-like, in the
dark, uncertain whether I be not drawing destruction upon my head at
the very moment when I fancy I am attaining the pinnacle of happiness
and glory. However, I will not be wanting to myself; this strange agent
may be sent to aid me, and it shall not be my fault if I do not avail
myself of his assistance. In his present garb he creates disgust and
terror; but clothed as a human being, his superhuman eloquence, and the
strange fearful interest excited by his looks and manner, might render
him a powerful assistant. It shall be my present business, then, to
endeavour to make him serviceable to my views; and to do this I must
persuade him to adopt the dress and manners of the country."

Pleased with the resolution he had taken, and quite forgetting the
lateness of the hour, Father Morris descended hastily to the usual
sitting room of Mrs. Montagu; but what was his horror, on entering it,
to find, instead of the usual cheerful party he expected, only the
dreaded Mummy! Cheops again lay stretched upon the couch he had before
occupied, his eyes fixed upon the brilliant constellation of Orion, and
his lips murmuring an address to the deity he fancied it to represent.

"Yes, blessed Horus!" cried Cheops, as Father Morris entered the room;
"thou wilt hear my prayer, for thou hast also been a stranger in a
foreign land; forced even in thy mother's arms to fly, pursued by all
the fury of fell Typhon's rage; thou knowest how to pity the unhappy!
And thou too, bright Isis!" continued he, addressing the moon, "thou
also hast known sorrow; when thy streaming tears occasioned the first
overflowing of the Nile, and grief for the loss of Osiris rent thy
bosom with despair--then becamest thou well fitted to be patroness of
the wretched. O Arsinoë! could I but recall the fatal moment when I saw
thee last!"

"Despair is sinful," said Father Morris, who now stood beside him;
"repentance may obtain forgiveness even of the most heinous crimes."

Cheops started upon his feet at the sound of the father's voice, and
burst into one of his fearful laughs: "And who art thou," cried he,
"who presumest to preach repentance to me? Oh! I know thee now, thou
art the priest whose confidant I am become. But though I will aid thee,
think not I will be thy slave--no, rather art thou mine, for thou art
in my power!"

Father Morris felt his blood curdle in his veins at this address, and,
though he strove to speak, his tongue clove to the roof of his mouth,
and he could not articulate a word. Cheops saw his embarrassment, and
continued in a milder tone, "Fear nothing; we may be useful to each
other. I would fain quit these garments of the tomb, and since I seem
destined to remain some time amongst your fellow-men, I will endeavour
to assume their manners. You seem to have influence amongst them;
try, then, to pacify their fears, and teach them to regard me as a
fellow-being."

At this moment the solemn clang of a deep-toned bell fell heavily upon
their ears. Cheops started at the sound, and, springing from the couch
on which he had reclined, bent forward eagerly to listen as it slowly
pealed through the deep silence of the night. It was the great bell of
the ancient cathedral of St. Paul, which tolled to announce that on the
following day the body of the deceased Queen would lie in state.

"What is it?" cried Cheops; "whence comes that fearful knell, awful
as the sound which is doomed to sink into the souls of the initiate
of the Isian mysteries? Again it tolls; speak! whence comes it? what
does it foretell? Is it the signal of another change of existence,
strange, awful, and mysterious, as that I have already experienced? Let
it come, I am prepared. The gods cannot inflict tortures more horrid
than those I already suffer. Cannot! have I said? dread Osiris, forgive
the impious thought! Methinks e'en now I see thy dark blue countenance
frowning in awful majesty at my unguarded rashness. Forgive me, mighty
Spirit! No longer will I repine at thy decrees, but teach my proud
rebellious heart submission. Alas! alas! had I before done so. But it
is now too late, and happiness is lost to me for ever."

Sighing, he hid his face in his hands as he spoke; and all again was
silent, save the deep-toned bell, which still fell heavily at intervals
upon the ear. Slowly the hours rolled on, yet still Father Morris sate
gazing on the Mummy, till the first bright tints of morning broke
through the dark grey sky, and a half-subdued bustle in the streets, as
of people hurrying to and fro, announced that preparations were making
to hang them with black.

The confused murmur--the busy voices hushed to whispers, and the
still-continued tolling of the muffled bell, harmonized with the
fearful form of the Mummy-visitant, which, now seen dimly by the
uncertain shades of the breaking twilight, seemed to acquire fresh
horrors from the obscure and wavering gleams thrown upon it. It was at
this moment, when objects were gradually becoming more distinct every
instant, that Lord Edmund rushed into the room--"Father Morris," cried
he, "you must aid me, or all is lost!"

And as he spoke, he started back aghast; for the terrific form of the
Mummy struck upon his sight. He had seen him, it was true, on his first
descent; but the events that had since occurred, involving as they did
the dearest interests of his soul, had almost driven the circumstance
from his memory. Now, however, aided by the illusive light, the spectre
appeared before him in all its frightful reality, and even the firm
mind of Edmund shrunk back aghast from the appalling sight.

"Why do you shrink?" said Cheops, his deep hollow voice thrilling
through the souls of his auditors; "why does my form appear to create
such terror? Is it because a tomb has been my dwelling? Oh, degenerate
race! know that the sons of Mizraim, bold, wise, and learned as they
were, held that communion with the dead was needful to the living.
They loved to gaze upon the empty casket, deprived of all that gave it
value, for it taught the meanness of the body; and who could dwell upon
the withering worthless clay, and not acknowledge to his soul how poor
were its highest pleasures, when compared to the sublime aspirations of
the spirit? Why then tremble? Virtue need fear no spectres, and vice
might shudder at itself. If thine own conscience do not upbraid thee,
what hast thou to fear?"

"Nothing!" said Lord Edmund firmly; "spectre or demon, whatever you
may be, I fear you not! 'Twas but the infirmity of human nature; it is
past, and I am again myself, and strong in the consciousness of the
integrity of my own mind. It is not in the power of Hell itself to
fright me from my purpose!"

"The integrity of thine own mind!" cried Cheops, with one of his horrid
laughs; "Poor weak offspring of clay! ay, confide in thy boasted
strength; rely upon thy vaunted firmness; but when the hour of trial
and temptation shall arrive, tremble!"

Lord Edmund shuddered in spite of himself, and his blood ran colder in
his veins! "Who art thou?" cried he, indignantly: "strange, terrible
being that thou art?--and why art thou permitted to revisit earth to
taunt me into madness?"

"I was once as thou art," returned Cheops. "Young, ardent, and
impetuous, I thought the world was made for happiness, and that men
were born to be my slaves. Glory was my idol, and Fame the only meed I
coveted. Deeply did I drink of her intoxicating cup; my renown spread
to the remotest corners of the earth, and my power became as boundless
as my ambition! To immortalize my name, I caused the erection of an
enormous pyramid! and my grandeur seemed beyond the reach of destiny to
destroy. But I trusted in my own strength, and I fell! Tremble then,
weak man! nor dare to boast how thou wilt act until the moment of
temptation shall arrive!"

The deep thrilling voice of the Mummy fell upon Lord Edmund's ear as
a warning from the tomb. He too was relying on his own strength, and
should he too fall? Forbid it Heaven! "No!" thought he, "in some cases
I might fear; but now, when the welfare of her I love is at stake, I
cannot fail!"

The Mummy smiled as he read the thoughts that passed over Lord Edmund's
expressive countenance. "Thus I too thought," muttered he; "and as I
was, so will he be deceived! Human nature is still the same even in
this remote corner of the globe. Fool that I was, then, to attempt to
reverse her decrees! Forgive me, mighty Isis!" The rest was lost in
inarticulate murmurs as the Mummy's head sank upon his breast.

"Oh, God!" cried Edmund to Father Morris; "whence comes this fearful
spectre? what does it import?"

"I know not," said Father Morris, in a hoarse unnatural whisper, his
eyes still strained upon the Mummy. Edmund started, for the unusual
abstraction of Father Morris added fresh horror to the scene: his
senses seemed bewildered; he scarcely knew where he was, or what was
passing around him; he rubbed his eyes, and tried to wake from what
appeared a frightful dream; but in vain; the vision was still there
in all its horrible distinctness, and Edmund felt a terrific creeping
steal along his nerves as the hollow sepulchral voice of the Mummy
again fell upon his ears.

"Alas! where am I?" continued he; "can that river be a ramification
of my beloved Nile? or am I indeed torn from all I prize and love,
to be cast upon this secluded spot, where all seems strange and
insignificant? O deity of the foaming waters! holy Sirius, hear me!
Calm my troubled spirit, and grant some gracious manifestation of thy
divinity to chase my growing doubts. But I deceive myself; this is
not the Nile! No papyrine boats glide o'er its polished surface. No
acanthus groves nor forests of lofty palm border its banks. No, no! the
immortal palm, fit emblem of the soul, grows only in those favoured
realms, where, spurning at oppression, it resists the feeble efforts of
man to bend it to the earth, and springs upward with only added vigour
from the feeble attempts made to subdue it!"

The Mummy ceased, and a solemn silence prevailed; whilst passions
fierce as the whirlwind's fury flitted across his face, chilling the
beholder's heart with horror at the fearful being whose bosom could
conceive them.

Father Morris was not naturally timid; he even possessed uncommon
strength both of nerves and mind; yet an unwonted shuddering ran
through his frame as he gazed upon Cheops, and traced the workings of
that demoniac mind as they were successively imprinted on his features.
Involuntarily he turned away in disgust. "For God's sake, let us go!"
cried he, gasping for breath; for a strange feeling that he could not
define, seemed to impede his respiration.

"Yes, yes--let us go!" stammered forth Edmund; still, however, keeping
his eyes fixed upon the awful object of his fear, as he slowly moved
towards the door.

"Stay!" cried Cheops in a voice of thunder. Involuntarily they obeyed.
"How feeble is this race of men!" resumed the Mummy; "how different
from the sons of ancient Mizraim, from the Macrobian Ethiopians, or
even our Pallic foes; degenerate in form as well as spirit, their
souls no longer seem emanations from the divinity, though perhaps the
immortal spark becomes degraded and abased from its long continuance in
clay, and is sunk for ever from its pristine greatness! Stay, then!"
continued he; "why should you fly me? I mean you no harm, and I swear
by the sacred tomb of Osiris in Philæ, that I will not hurt you. Drive
me not then from amongst you, and I may aid your projects: at least, it
is your duty to receive me as the destined instrument of Fate, since
Osiris decrees that my soul shall quit its transmigrations in the form
of animals to re-animate this worthless body. Take me then into your
counsels, confide in my power and I swear by the holy dust of Isis that
you shall not repent."

"Avaunt, demon!" cried Lord Edmund, and, bursting from the room, he
rushed out of the house.

What farther passed between the priest and his awful visitor, was
known only to themselves; for when the family descended to breakfast,
the Mummy was gone, and Father Morris appeared absorbed in his
usual studies, without taking the slightest notice of the terrific
occurrences of the night.

The death of the Queen being now generally known, her remains, laid in
state, were exposed to the lamentations of her subjects, and the family
of Mrs. Montagu were amongst the earliest visitors to the mournful
spectacle.

In an immense hall, hung with black, was placed a kind of bier, covered
with black cloth, supporting the body of the deceased Queen, over which
was thrown a velvet pall, so disposed, however, as to display the
beautiful features of the deceased, which, though now fixed in death,
still retained their native expression of majestic dignity.

Immense tapers of an enormous thickness lighted the sombre walls, hung
with black cloth; whilst chorister boys walked up and down chanting
hymns in honour of the deceased, and flinging incense in the air from
silver vessels suspended by silver chains, which they carried in their
hands; thus shedding fragrance around, and chasing the fearful odour
of mortality even from the very chamber of death. Priests wrapped in
funeral garments also slowly paraded the room, muttering prayers, and
joining occasionally their full, deep-toned voices with the shriller
chant of the boys.

The space where the public were admitted, was railed off from the lower
end of the hall; but near the body knelt a beautiful female arrayed
in black velvet, and her fair face and arms shaded by a veil of black
crape.--

"O Osiris!" cried a figure wrapped in a long dark cloak, grasping the
arm of Father Morris, "who is that lovely creature? There, bending over
the last awful relics of mortality, methinks she looks beauteous as the
phœnix rising from the funeral pile, and triumphing in glory over the
impotent malice of the grave."

"Hush! hush! for Heaven's sake!" whispered the deep, full voice of
Father Morris; "it is Elvira, the rival of Rosabella, whom you have
sworn to support."

"Typhon himself could not injure her," said Cheops, for it was he; and
he stood with his eyes fixed upon her, apparently lost in meditation.

"For mercy's sake, let us go on!" whispered the priest, "you will
excite attention--we shall be discovered. Besides," continued he in
a lower tone, "did you find a crown so delightful that you think you
would injure her by depriving her of one?"

"No! by the holy limbs of Osiris!" said Cheops; and, obeying the
influence of the friar's arm, he moved onwards.

"Why was not Rosabella with Elvira in the hall?" asked Sir Ambrose.
"I thought it was commanded by the law that all the princesses of the
Blood Royal should exhibit themselves publicly as mourners by the
corpse of the deceased Queen."

"Rosabella is ill," replied the duke. "Grief for the loss of her cousin
has produced an access of fever, and she is unable to quit her bed."

"Indeed!" returned Sir Ambrose, incredulously; "it is very strange! I
own I did not give Rosabella credit for so much sensibility."

Notwithstanding the incredulity of Sir Ambrose, however, Rosabella was
really dangerously ill; though her illness did not proceed exactly from
the cause she chose to assign for it. The terror she had felt at the
sudden appearance of the Mummy, whom she thought a supernatural being,
at the very moment she believed the death of her cousin was darkly
hinted at by the monk, operating upon an over-excited imagination, had
produced fever; and for some days Rosabella was in considerable danger.

The secret exertions of Father Morris, however, in her behalf,
prevented Rosabella's cause from being injured by her illness; and,
by the time she was able to leave her bed, Lord Gustavus de Montfort,
Lord Maysworth, and Dr. Hardman, with the Lords Noodle and Doodle, had
declared themselves her adherents, bringing with them all the numerous
host who, finding it too much trouble to judge for themselves, are
always ready to follow in the train of a great man. The day when this
important declaration was made, was that on which all the nobility of
the realm assembled in that splendid monument of antiquity, Westminster
Hall, to choose the council of state to govern the kingdom during the
interregnum. This venerable pile, which had seen so many generations
successively rise and pass away, now cleared of the encumbrances with
which the bad taste of the middle ages had loaded it, shone in all its
original magnificence, and opened wide its ponderous portals to receive
the whole nobility of England upon this important occasion.

It was a glorious, and almost an awful sight, to see so many great and
illustrious characters, some of whose names were celebrated even to the
remotest corners of the globe, collected together in that magnificent
hall. Few however, thought of the grandeur of the spectacle; the deep
interest excited by the occasion that assembled them absorbing all
minor feelings. The business of the day was soon entered upon; and
twelve noble individuals chosen to direct the affairs of state, till
another Queen should be elected.

The Duke of Cornwall, Lord Edmund Montagu, Lord Gustavus de Montfort,
Lord Maysworth, and the Lords Noodle and Doodle, were amongst the
number chosen; and as soon as the election was completed, the council
retired together to an apartment appropriated to their use, to consult
upon the measures to be taken to secure the due election of their
future Queen. Then it was, that the anxious father of Elvira was
paralyzed, to hear the noble lords above-mentioned declare themselves
partizans of her rival; and to see others who had till then remained
neuter, seem inclined to range themselves upon the same side. In vain
did Edmund exert his powerful eloquence; the weight and influence of
the adverse lords far outweighed all his arguments in the breasts of
the auditors; and the poor old duke returned home depressed and almost
broken-hearted, from the conviction he received, that the feeling of
the majority of the council was decidedly against his child.

The moment the duke reached his own palace, he repaired to the
apartment of Rosabella, and found her apparently in a state of
convalescence, reclining upon a sofa, supported by her confidant
Marianne, with Father Morris sitting at her feet. The holy father was
evidently confused at the unexpected arrival of the duke; and he rose
hastily in great disorder, to endeavour to account for his appearance
there. The duke, however, was too much enraged to listen to him, or,
indeed, to notice the suspicious circumstance of his secretly visiting
the princess; his passion was solely directed against Rosabella, and
not even her present feeble and emaciated appearance was sufficient to
disarm his anger.

"Wretch!" he exclaimed; "vile, ungrateful wretch that thou art! Thou
hast destroyed me. Thou wilt bring the grey hairs of thy benefactor
with sorrow to the grave! And so treacherously too! Oh, Rosabella! how
could you plot against me whilst you were enjoying the shelter of my
roof. Against me, did I say? Alas! would it were only against me! But
no! with fiend-like barbarity, you have conspired to destroy my child!"

The duke had here unwittingly struck a chord that thrilled through the
inmost souls of his auditors; he did not heed their confusion, however,
but went on.

"Oh, Rosabella! if I could have guessed, when thou wert brought to me
a little smiling infant, and I took thee under my protection to foster
thee as my own child, that thou wouldst prove a serpent to sting my
heart to the core! But I was told it would be so--Sir Ambrose warned me
to beware. 'Your brother,' said he, 'has proved a villain; the violence
of his passions has led him to commit unheard-of crimes; and may not
the same furies glow in the bosom of this smiling infant? Do not desert
her, but do not educate the offspring of guilt in the bosom of your own
family.'"

"And did Sir Ambrose say this?" exclaimed Father Morris, grinding his
teeth together, and scarcely able to articulate from the strength
of the emotion that convulsed his frame. The duke, however, did not
hear his question, and passionately continued--"He advised well, but
I was deaf to his counsel; Fate hurried me on to my own destruction,
and I nourished with the tenderest care a wretch whom I have this
day discovered plotting with traitors to deprive my child of her
birth-right!"

"What do you mean, my Lord?" said Rosabella; "I do not understand you."

"Yes, yes!" replied the duke, "ask what I mean; you may well assume
that face of smiling innocence--too--too often it has served your
purpose! Fool, idiot, that I have been, to have been so easily
deceived! But your arts will now be vain. Lord Gustavus de Montfort
would not have openly declared himself your friend, as he did to-day,
if the most insidious arts had not been practised to win him."

"And has he done so?" asked Rosabella, her eyes sparkling with joy.

"Has he done so?" repeated the duke bitterly; "no doubt you know it
but too well. Also that the prosing Lord Maysworth, the enlightened
Lord Noodle, and the intelligent Lord Doodle, have enlisted their empty
heads and long purses upon your side."

"Have they?" cried Rosabella, transport brightening every feature.

"Oh, Rosabella!" exclaimed the duke, passion giving way to agony, and
torrents of tears streaming down his aged face; "that look of affected
astonishment is intolerable! You must have known all this! I am a poor,
weak, old man! there needed not such plotting to deceive me. It breaks
my heart to find you guilty of hypocrisy."

Rosabella was affected by her uncle's tears: all his former kindness
rushed upon her mind, and Nature resuming her powerful influence,
she forgot all her ambitious projects, her hopes, her fears, and her
intrigues; she thought only of the feeble, miserable, old man before
her; and, attempting to throw her arms round his neck, she sought to
mingle her tears with his, and, clinging to his feet, implored his
forgiveness. The duke, however, could not read her heart, and, blinded
by his passion, saw in this action only an aggravated insult: violently
he spurned her from him, commanding her to leave his house immediately,
and, by so doing, extinguished for ever every gentler feeling in his
niece's breast.

Rosabella's haughty spirit did not wait a second repulse. Her tears
were instantly dried, and, with eyes flashing fire and cheeks glowing
with indignation, she rushed out of the room, without deigning to reply.

The duke's rage, if possible, exceeded her own; and these near
relations, united as they were by the tenderest ties, parted in mutual
hatred, sincerely hoping, on both sides, that they might never meet
again.

Father Morris and Marianne followed Rosabella; and they found, as they
expected, that the violent over-excitement of the moment had given way
to hysterics. These tremendous convulsive agonies soon exhausted her
enfeebled frame, and she lay upon a sofa in a state of torpid languor
nearly approaching to insensibility, whilst her friends consulted upon
what course they should pursue. During this pause of uncertainty and
painful deliberation--for as Rosabella was entirely dependent upon her
uncle, the case seemed hopeless--a letter arrived from Lord Gustavus
de Montfort, offering the loan of his palace and his purse to the
princess. That prudent and calculating nobleman was fully aware of
the situation in which Rosabella would be thrown by his declaration
in her favour, and of the advantage that would accrue to himself in
after-times, if she should obtain the crown, from his having at such a
moment conferred an important service upon his future sovereign.

Father Morris did not hesitate to open this letter and read it.
Rosabella was not in a state to be consulted. Indeed, the case was
one that did not admit of hesitation; and a conveyance having been
procured, the princess was removed to the house of Lord Gustavus,
before she had recovered the full use of her faculties.



CHAPTER XV.


The morning appointed for the election of the council of state was
passed by Elvira in the most intense anxiety. For herself, she had no
wish to be a Queen--nay, perhaps she trembled at the thought; but when
she saw how earnestly it was desired by her father, and thought of
the bitterness of his disappointment should she be rejected, her eyes
filled with tears, and she felt ready to make any sacrifice to promote
his happiness.

Thus, trembling with agitation, yet fearing alike every change, the
fair Elvira sate, leaning her head upon her hand, whilst Sir Ambrose,
whose rank did not entitle him to a vote, Dr. Coleman, and Henry
Seymour, endeavoured to console her.

"My dear young lady," said the good doctor, "indeed, indeed, I think
you distress yourself quite unnecessarily. With such supporters as your
father and Lord Edmund, I do not think you can fail of success."

"You quite mistake me, doctor, I assure you," returned the princess; "I
think not of the crown, yet it is not possible to express what I have
suffered during the last few hours. Ere my father went to the council
this morning, his agitation was so excessive that I feared it would
destroy him, and my impatience for his return is become almost agony."

"Let me entreat your Highness to be composed," said Henry Seymour. "You
torment yourself with vain terrors. I cannot suffer myself to imagine
for a moment that the duke can be otherwise than successful."

"My dear child," observed Sir Ambrose, "exert your own good sense;
nothing can be more foolish than to let imaginary horrors usurp any
influence over your senses; you thus suffer doubly, and often the pains
of anticipation exceed those of reality. But, see, here comes Father
Murphy, and my little lively niece, Clara. Well, father, what news?
Will the princess be Queen?"

"Och, and there can be no manner of doubt of it!" returned Father
Murphy.

Elvira turned pale. "God in his mercy grant you may be mistaken!" said
she.

"Oh, dear!" cried Clara, involuntarily.

"Why do you exclaim, fair lady?" asked the doctor, smiling.

"I am so surprised--so astonished!" said the blushing girl.

"At what?" resumed the doctor inquisitively.

"That--that," said Clara timidly, "that the princess should not like to
be a Queen."

"Alas! alas!" said Elvira, smiling languidly, "you are too young,
Clara, to know the awful responsibility such a situation would impose.
The Queen of England must devote herself to her people; once elected,
she is cut off for ever from all the happiness of domestic life. She
must form no ties--she must indulge in no attachments--she can never
feel the happiness of devoting herself entirely to promote the welfare
of one adored object. She can never know the transports of a mother!"
and, sighing deeply, Elvira cast her eyes upon the ground, whilst those
of Henry Seymour were fixed earnestly upon her.

"Yet all this," said Sir Ambrose, "is rather imaginary than real.
The subjects of a good Queen ought to be her children; and the glory
of contributing to the happiness of thousands, and ruling nations by
a nod, may well compensate for the humbler comforts of a domestic
fireside."

"I do not agree with you," rejoined Dr. Coleman; "I think the
situation of a Queen is one both of trouble and responsibility. We
all know how difficult it is to give satisfaction even in the most
ordinary occurrences of life; and how much more must that difficulty
be increased in such an exalted station. Besides, it seems cruel to
condemn a young and beautiful woman to the miseries of celibacy. Woman
naturally seems to want support; she is to man, what the clinging ivy
is to the majestic oak,--its loveliest ornament; but take away the
standard tree, and she falls forlorn and unsupported to the dust. Do
you not think so, Mr. Seymour?"

The youth started at this appeal, for his thoughts had indeed wandered
far from the scene before him. "Yes," said he, after a short pause.

Sir Ambrose laughed heartily. "Upon my word," said he, "I congratulate
you, Dr. Coleman, upon your happiness in having such attentive
auditors. The princess looks as if she had not heard a single word
that you have said; whilst Mr. Seymour, when you appeal to him for his
opinion, only starts, and says 'Yes.'"

"You are quite right, Sir Ambrose," returned Dr. Coleman, smiling
good-humouredly; "and I begin to discover that reasons are quite
useless when the feelings are interested."

"Och!" said Father Murphy; "and my opinion is that we have all rason to
be interested; for I should not be surprised at all at all, if the King
of Ireland was to take advantage of our troubles, to make a descent
upon us. There is no time so fitting for throwing every thing into
confusion, as when nobody knows what he is doing."

"There may be much justice in your remark, holy father," said Henry
Seymour, smiling; "but, for my own part, I own I do not apprehend the
King of Ireland has any such bloody-minded intentions."

"Report speaks highly of his son," observed Elvira.

"Not more highly than he deserves," cried Doctor Coleman
enthusiastically. "The youthful Roderick is brave, noble, and generous;
possessing every quality to fit him for a hero; and is quite incapable
of any thing bordering upon meanness."

"Is he handsome?" asked Clara, with infinite _naïveté_, looking up
earnestly at the doctor as she spoke.

"As the Achilles of the ancients," replied the doctor.

"Dear me, how I should like to see him!" said the little beauty, with
the utmost simplicity:--"Should not you, Mr. Seymour?"

"I cannot say I have any curiosity," returned Henry Seymour, having
infinite difficulty to help laughing.

"Dear me, how very odd!" said Clara, looking at him earnestly; "I do
believe the doctor was only quizzing us, and that he's very ugly and
disagreeable. Is he, Mr. Seymour?"

The air and manner with which she put this question, quite destroyed
the small remains of gravity Henry Seymour had till now with so much
difficulty preserved; and, bursting into a violent fit of laughter,
he rushed out of the room. Every body looked astonished, and Dr.
Coleman embarrassed. After a short pause, however, he seemed to recover
himself. "It is very strange the duke does not come," said he, pulling
out his watch. "The council must be chosen before this; and they seldom
stay to deliberate long at a first sitting."

"I am miserable," cried Elvira. "If he should be ill!"

"Shall I seek him?" asked Dr. Coleman; and, reading her assent in her
countenance, he quitted the room.

"The doctor is very obliging," said Sir Ambrose; "but he never did like
Rosabella. He hated her father, and when Duke Edgar--but, I forget! his
history is a secret which must rest for ever in my own breast."

"Do tell _me_, uncle!" cried Clara coaxingly; "I should so like to hear
it, and every body says you know all about him."

"And what can his history have to do with such a little chit as you?"

"I don't know," said Clara with the utmost innocence; "but I am sure I
should like to hear it."

"Why?" again asked Sir Ambrose.

"Because every body says it is a secret," replied Clara, clinging round
him, and fondly stroking his face;--"so do tell me, my dear uncle, pray
do?"

"You are a little coaxing witch," said Sir Ambrose, patting her long
silky hair; "I would tell you any thing in reason, but the history of
the father of Rosabella--"

"Rosabella!" cried the duke, bursting into the apartment with the fury
of a maniac--"Rosabella! who speaks of Rosabella? She is a wretch, a
vile, insidious wretch! She has destroyed me--she has conspired to
destroy my child!"

And as he spake, the agonized old man sank into a chair, fainting
with exhaustion, whilst a sanguine stream gushed from his mouth and
nostrils, a blood-vessel having been ruptured by the violence of his
emotions. Elvira shrieked in anguish, and, dreadfully terrified, threw
herself upon her knees beside him, imploring him to speak to her,
whilst Sir Ambrose, even more alarmed than herself, ran screaming for
assistance. Dr. Coleman and Henry Seymour were at hand. The duke,
and his daughter, who had fainted, were conveyed to their separate
apartments, attended by Clara, Sir Ambrose, and the doctor, whilst
Henry Seymour and Father Murphy were left together.

"O Beauty!" thought Henry Seymour, as he watched the lovely form of
Elvira, looking like some fair flower drooping on its stem, carried
past him, "how omnipotent is thy power! Even the savage monarch of
the forest, tamed by thee, has crouched beside a maiden's feet! How
heavenly does she look! pure as the immortal spirit, when, ere his
breast was sullied by the grosser passions, man first conversed with
God!"

"And sure if it's the princess ye're thinking of," said Father Murphy,
tired of being so long silent, "ye've rason to look so sadly after her,
for it's all over, and she'll never be Queen."

Henry Seymour started: the voice of the holy father sounded harsh and
discordant in his ears; it had dispelled all his fairy dreams; and with
a movement of impatience he threw open some folding doors, and walked
into the garden. Father Murphy followed him.

"And where is it that ye're going?" asked he.

"I would be alone," said Henry in a commanding tone.

"And so ye shall be," returned Father Murphy, "when I'm after laving
ye; and that I will do in a whiffey. But--"

"Begone!" cried a peculiarly low, hollow voice which sounded close to
the friar's ear, He started, and as he looked up, the withering glance
of Cheops fell full upon him; he screamed wildly and fled, uttering
shrieks of terror.

Cheops looked after him with a scornful smile, and then fixing his
superhuman eyes on Henry Seymour, he waited for him to speak. Few were
the human beings who could have met that scowl unmoved. Those wild
eyes, shaded as they were by the thick dark brows above them, always
seemed to sink direct to the beholder's soul: Henry Seymour, however,
shrank not from their gaze. A long pause ensued.

"You wish for help," said Cheops, "and it is in my power to assist you.
I know you well, you are not what you seem; but fear not, and all your
hopes shall be fulfilled."

"Alas! how can they?" said the youth, "when I know them not myself."

"Hear me!" returned Cheops; "you love Elvira, you would fain become
her husband, and would yet not deprive her of the crown. Even now, you
were revolving in your mind a scheme to reconcile these two apparently
incompatible objects; but, besides innumerable minor obstacles, one
great one destroys your plans--you have a father."

"In the name of Heaven!" cried Henry Seymour wildly, "who and what art
thou?"

But, ere he had finished speaking, the Mummy was gone. "Fiend! demon!"
cried the youth, "what means this unreal mockery? But thou shalt not
escape me thus."

In the mean time, the duke had somewhat recovered, and, by permission
of Dr. Coleman, Lord Edmund and Sir Ambrose were admitted to his
chamber. The reverend Fathers Morris and Murphy were there already.

"I believe it is quite against the rules," said the doctor, "to allow
visitors to a patient in the duke's state;--but he is so irritable, I
fear keeping him in suspense might occasion a relapse."

"I am sorry to see you thus, my dearest friend," said Edmund, pressing
the duke's hand warmly; "you have always been a second father to me,
and, God knows! I love you as myself."

The Duke fervently returned his pressure, but he could not speak. "My
dear, dear friend!" said Sir Ambrose, the tears trembling in his eyes.

"Come! come!" said Dr. Colman, good-humouredly, "I must not let you
agitate my patient. Lord Edmund is only come, my Lord Duke, to take
leave. He is going into the country to try to exert his influence
amongst the electors."

The duke shook his head.

"I must not have you despair," said Sir Ambrose; "we shall beat them
yet: not but that we must fight hard, for Rosabella is as crafty as a
fox, and you see what a party she has made:--besides, she's as selfish
as her father."

"No," said the duke feebly, and speaking with great difficulty; "Edgar
was not selfish."

"The influence of natural affection is astonishing!" said Sir Ambrose;
"since it makes you speak thus of one who has so grossly injured you."

"Edgar's faults," replied the duke, scarcely able to articulate, "were
rather those of circumstance than of feeling. I am convinced of it, and
forgive him. Nay, if he were alive, and I could see him, I would clasp
him to my heart."

"Och!" said Father Murphy, "and that's said just like yourself;
for there's nothing so like a Christian spirit as forgiving our
enemies;--and so may Heaven prosper and bless all that love ye, and
send all that hate ye to the Devil."

"But how does that accord with the Christian spirit you were talking
of?" asked Dr. Coleman, smiling.

"Och!" replied Father Murphy, "and it's clane another thing. For none
but the Devil's own brats could hate the duke, and he's a right to his
own, surely."

Dr. Coleman, though not quite convinced by the sophistry of the holy
father, did not attempt to controvert it; and the party, fearing to
fatigue the duke, soon after separated.

A few hours after this conversation, Father Morris was walking in one
of the shadiest parts of the garden of Mr. Montagu, where the thick
trees spread over his head, and by their umbrageous foliage, almost
shut out the light of the sun. In the very centre of this gloomy grove,
a funereal urn had been erected by one of the former possessors of the
mansion, over which hung a weeping willow. The monument had once been
gaudily adorned with bright colours and gilding, to mark the armorial
bearings and dignity of the dust that mouldered below. Now, however,
damp and neglect had hastened the work of Time in that secluded spot.
The once white marble was stained with a dirty green, and moss had
grown round the crumbling monument of former greatness: the plaster
effigies of the arms had cracked, and peeled off in places; whilst
wild-flowers had taken root in the fissures, and reared their blooming
heads, and twined their fantastic wreaths around the mouldering stone,
hanging in wild luxuriant festoons over this emblem of decay, as though
to mock the feeble efforts of man to perpetuate his name, and assert
triumphantly the supremacy of Nature.

Father Morris was struck by the effect produced by this apparently
simple circumstance, and he stood with his arms folded on his breast,
attentively gazing upon the urn: "And for this," thought he, "yes, even
for such perishable baubles as these, does man risk his immortal soul.
For this, for honours that decay even whilst we gaze upon them; for
fame, which the slightest breath may blow away, light as the thistle's
down; for wealth and power, which, past a certain point, pall on the
senses; and for ambition, we sacrifice all the mind holds dear to it.
And what is ambition? What real happiness can fame, wealth, or power
bestow? I will repent; it is not yet too late:--for worlds I would not
harm that poor old man. Yes, he has still a heart. I am not wholly
lost. Oh! how his look, his voice thrilled to my inmost soul, and
awakened feelings I thought for ever dead. Oh, Julia! Julia! surely thy
blest spirit would rejoice if angels can still feel for mortals, at my
repentance. Oh, if one fatal act could but be recalled, and one fiend
be satisfied, I might still be saved!"

And overpowered by his emotions, even his firm heart was softened; he
leant his head against the mouldering urn, and, hiding his face in
his cowl, he wept. Blest were those bitter tears, and sweet were the
sensations that stole over the mind of the monk as they flowed; for
they were the first fruits of human feeling that had long touched that
savage breast. Soothed by their healing balm, and half forgetting the
cares that hung about him, Father Morris still reclined against the
tomb; whilst mild and pleasing images floated before his fancy, and the
fairy form of Happiness rose again upon his sight, and, though dim and
indistinct by distance, seemed once more to beckon him forward through
the mist of time. Lost in these meditations, the most delightful he
had long indulged in, the father remained unheedful of the lapse of
time, till he was startled by a tap upon his shoulder, and, turning, he
beheld the giant form of Cheops.

"Fiend, demon, devil!" cried he, passionately; "avaunt! and tempt me
not!"

The Mummy burst into one of his frightful laughs of derision.
"What!" said he, "have you forgot your friend? your confidant? your
confederate? And is it thus you treat him? Have you forgot our compact
and your oath? which, if it were necessary, was to be sealed with
blood?" (The friar shuddered, whilst Cheops continued:) "Pshaw! pshaw!
talk not of temptation! The passions in that breast defy its power; for
demons scarce could credit them. Fear not temptation then, most pure
and most immaculate priest! for know, I can read thy heart: and I--yes,
even I--shudder at the wickedness it conceals!"

"My feelings are changed--I repent!"

"Impossible! your repentance is but as a passing shade before a glowing
fire, which, even if not removed, would be soon devoured by the flames!"

"I tell you, my purpose is changed:--I will no longer plot against the
duke; and Elvira, if she will, may be Queen."

"'And do you think a crown so enviable then,'" said the Mummy,
repeating the friar's own words, once addressed to him, "'that you
think you would injure her by depriving her of its cares?'"

"Devil!" cried the father, unable to resist the feelings these words
had conjured up.

"And these are mortals," said Cheops; "they sin, and they repent! Thus
adding hypocrisy to guilt, and doubling their crimes by the knowledge
they have of their enormity!"

"Demon!" returned Father Morris; "the words of that old man wrung my
heart; and I would sacrifice all the world can give, to throw myself
upon his breast, and obtain his forgiveness."

"I believe you think so _now_," said Cheops maliciously; "but when
Rosabella shall be Queen, and wealth and dignities shall be dispensed
by Father Morris; when nobles shall bend humbly before him, and,
hanging upon his smile, beg favours from his hand, then--"

"Curses on thee, fiend!" cried Father Morris, rushing from the grove,
and pressing his cowl round his head with both his hands, as though he
feared the horrid laugh of Cheops should echo in his ears, and sting
him into madness.

"Weak, feeble worm!" exclaimed Cheops, with a scornful laugh, looking
after the friar as he darted from his sight; "and yet this man boasts
of his intellect; ay, and rules his fellow-men almost to his will!
Degenerate wretches! O powerful Osiris! if from thy dread abode thou
deignest to look down upon thy votary, pity him now! condemned to waste
his days amongst this hated race! And thou, fell Typhon! dread avenging
deity! say, will thy awful wrath accept of victims such as these? Alas!
I fear vengeance like thine will not be thus appeased! and that thy
never-dying fire, will still gnaw my vitals. Oh! these mortals _think_
they suffer: but what are their torments when compared to mine?"

As he spoke, he gnashed his teeth in fury, whilst again the expression
of passions, too tremendous to be conceived by mortals, darkened on his
brow.



CHAPTER XVI.


"I am really glad we have left the house of my uncle," said Rosabella
to Marianne, the morning after her removal to the palace of Lord
Gustavus; "for though there is something revolting to my feelings in
being dependant upon a stranger, yet as it may soon be in my power
to repay any obligations I may receive from him, it is better than
the treachery I was obliged to practise towards the duke. There is
something so mean in treachery!"

"We are always apt to feel most disgusted with those vices most
repugnant to our nature," said Marian smiling, "whilst we are merciful
to those we practise. However, I can't say I think there is much
difference."

"What!" cried Rosabella indignantly; "do you class those vices that
spring from a noble though mistaken spirit, with those that are the
natural offspring of base, grovelling minds?"

"No," returned Marianne, "for I think the latter preferable, as the
mind that produces them is incapable of making nobler efforts; whilst
the others, by degrading their possessors, show forcibly the monstrous
depravity of the human heart."

"I do not understand you," said Rosabella.

"Nor is it necessary you should:" rejoined her confidant.

Rosabella was not quite satisfied with this summary manner of
dismissing the argument, and was proceeding to question her confidant's
maxim, when a tap at the door announced a page from Lord Gustavus, who
came to know if the princess would honour his master with an audience.

"Certainly," said Rosabella; and in a few minutes Lord Gustavus entered
her boudoir.

"I hope your Serene Highness has rested well," said the noble lord with
his usual pomposity; "I feel better this morning."

"I am perfectly well, I thank your lordship!" returned Rosabella; "and
the relief I have experienced, by having the weight that has so long
hung upon my mind relieved by my removal to your hospitable mansion,
has proved an excellent soporific."

"That being the case," said Lord Gustavus, "perhaps your Highness will
have no objection to indulge the noble lords who already have declared
themselves on your behalf, as also some others of their friends who are
anxious to enlist under your banners, with an interview: for thinking
as I think, and as I am convinced every reasonable person in the
kingdom must think, no time ought to be lost in a matter of so much and
of such infinite importance."

Rosabella, thinking _par merveille_ exactly the same as the noble lord,
instantly gave him her hand to lead her to his library, where the
illustrious personages he had spoken of were waiting to receive her.
It has been already said that Rosabella was beautiful, and now that
her recent illness, and the agitation natural to the novelty of her
present situation had softened the usual pride and haughtiness of her
demeanour, she looked perfectly lovely. It has often been allowed, that
a beautiful woman never looks so well, as when in affliction; there
being something in the appearance of a timid helpless female, looking
up to man for protection and support, that rouses every generous and
manly bosom in her behalf; whilst that wretch must indeed be lost to
every sense of feeling and humanity, who could be deaf to the prayer of
beauty in distress. Thus the appearance of Rosabella caused a general
sensation in her behalf, whilst her usual pride and haughtiness, which
were well known, only made her present diffidence and agitation, her
downcast eyes and trembling voice, appear still more interesting from
the strong effect of contrast they produced.

The persons collected in the library of Lord Gustavus were all affected
by her manners; and though perhaps it would have been difficult to find
a group of individuals more various in their usual habits and modes of
thinking, yet upon this one point they were agreed. The personages who
composed this worthy assemblage, were Lord Maysworth, the Lords Noodle
and Doodle, Dr. Hardman, and the young Prince Ferdinand of Germany, who
had been taken prisoner by Lord Edmund, and was now upon his parole
of honour, till the conditions for his ransom could be arranged. He
was at present the guest of Lord Maysworth, who having in his youth
received great obligations from the German Emperor, was now glad of an
opportunity to show his gratitude to his son; and who had now brought
him to Lord Gustavus, to introduce him to the Princess Rosabella.

Prince Ferdinand was ardent and romantic, and he was just at that
happy age when all appears bright and blooming, before reality has
destroyed the flattering dreams of hope; when we are ready to believe
all we wish, and imagine human nature without a blot. Alas! why are the
delightful moments of life so transient; and why can we never partake
of pleasure without having our relish for it destroyed!

Confiding, however, and unsuspicious as Prince Ferdinand was, he was
certainly excessively astonished to hear Lord Maysworth, the advocate
of freedom and equality, eloquently plead in Rosabella's behalf
that her father was the elder brother of the present duke, and that
consequently her claim was strengthened by all the magic powers of
primogeniture, and he was still more surprised by his assertion that
the present duke had rendered himself unpopular by advising the late
Queen to rebuild the late palace at Richmond, by which several hundreds
of workmen were kept in employ during the whole of the preceding
winter, and saved from perishing.

"Good heavens!" cried Prince Ferdinand, "Can you blame that? Was it not
better than suffering them to perish with cold in the streets?"

"No danger of that, your Highness--no danger of that," returned Lord
Maysworth--"nobody can perish of cold in our streets, because, you
know, we have always pipes of hot air in them to make them quite warm.
And as to the palace, it is really quite melancholy to think how many
thousands of the public money were expended upon it. Oh! I assure you,
it is quite impossible to find a man more deservedly unpopular than the
Duke of Cornwall."

"Oh, quite impossible!" said the Lords Noodle and Doodle, shaking their
heads.

"Thinking as I think, however, and as I am confident every one here
must think," said Lord Gustavus, "it will be imprudent to depend
entirely upon the duke's unpopularity: Lord Edmund is beloved by the
army; and, as he is decidedly upon the side of Elvira, we cannot be too
cautious."

"Oh, no, certainly!--we cannot be too cautious," echoed the two
repeaters.

"It is a glorious circumstance, however," said Dr. Hardman, "that the
choice of the Queen rests entirely with the people; their voice alone
will decide the glorious struggle, and their free unbiassed opinions
alone give the Monarchy its future Queen."

"Yes," said Lord Maysworth, "it is true, it rests with them alone to
decide the question; and for this reason do you not think it will
be as well, my lords, for each of us to repair to his country seat,
and endeavour, by his influence in the neighbourhood, to procure the
election of such deputies as may be disposed to vote favourably to our
wishes."

"The plan is excellent!" cried Dr. Hardman.

"Excellent!" exclaimed Lord Gustavus.

"Excellent!" echoed his attendant satellites.

"Then it only remains for us to put it in execution," said Lord
Maysworth.

"If the princess will excuse my absence--" began Lord Gustavus.

"Oh, my Lord!" interrupted Rosabella hastily, for she dreaded his long
speeches beyond the power of description, "think not of me: I must be,
indeed, unreasonable, if I could complain of your absence, when it is
for my service you will be employed."

"The princess speaks like an oracle," said Dr. Hardman; "and I think we
cannot do better than put her wishes in execution."

"Farewell then, my friends," said Rosabella, her voice trembling with
emotion as they parted, "and may success attend you; for the present,
my poverty, in all but gratitude, prevents my wishes; but the time
may come, when you shall find the powerful Queen will not forget the
favours conferred upon the dependant princess."

"Oh!" cried the noble lords and Dr. Hardman, "do not mention reward;
patriotism and the disinterested love of our country alone dictate our
actions--we think of nothing else!"

"'Twould be treason, and worse than blasphemy," said Prince Ferdinand,
"to mingle the thought of self-interest with such purposes. Who indeed
can see the Princess Rosabella, and suffer the paltry thought of self
to interfere with his devotion to her interests?"

Rosabella smiled graciously upon the youthful speaker, though she did
not speak.

"If, however," said Lord Maysworth, "the interests of the state should
require a general more experienced than Lord Edmund, I have served, and
I would willingly forego the transports of domestic peace to devote
myself to the welfare of my country.'"

"Or, if the state should need a minister," observed Lord Gustavus,
"thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one else must think,
she has a right to command the services even of one so devoted to
retirement as myself."

"For my part," said Dr. Hardman, "I wish neither place nor pension; but
if my humble services in a medical capacity--"

"Fear not," returned Rosabella, "but that all your wishes shall be
gratified; for, if I should be Queen, I shall only regard myself as an
agent to dispose my power to the hands of those most worthy of it."

As she said this she withdrew, having the rare happiness to leave all
her auditors perfectly satisfied with her conduct. In fact, such was
their delight, that each stood for some moments after her departure
lost in contemplation, indulging in day-dreams of the delightful
anticipations her words and manner had excited, till, like Farmer
Ashfield and his dame in "Speed the Plough," they were in imminent
danger of running foul of each other in their abstraction: the entrance
of a servant, however, roused them from their reveries; and, feeling
somewhat alarmed of having so far forgotten the dignified sentiments
they had been professing, they retired to their respective homes to
take measures to put the scheme that had been suggested into execution.

"How I hate that Lord Gustavus," exclaimed Rosabella when she reached
her boudoir. "Even if he makes a sensible observation, he adds so many
explanations to it, that the spirit evaporates."

"Yes," returned Marianne, "he has yet to learn, that to tack
explanations to wit, is like adding water to wine; you diminish its
strength and spoil its flavour; but even he is preferable to Lord
Maysworth."

"Oh! I don't think so," cried Rosabella, "for a ridiculous fool is
always better than a prosing one. I can laugh at Lord Maysworth, but
Lord Gustavus sends me to sleep."

"When an important enterprize is undertaken," said Marianne, "it will
not do to be very scrupulous about the tools one employs to accomplish
it. It is the part of a man of talent to discover the weaknesses of the
human beings around him, and make them each subservient to his purpose."

"At any rate, that is not difficult in my case," rejoined Rosabella;
"for my good friends are so eager to show themselves off, that, I must
do them the justice to say, they neither give me the trouble to find
out their weaknesses, nor the way to win them. Prince Ferdinand is the
only one who possesses a single spark of noble feeling."

"And he, I think you say, seemed struck with your appearance?"

"He appeared to be so."

"We must improve that prepossession. The alliance of Germany may be
invaluable to us. You must encourage the hopes of the prince, and do
all you can to fan his infant passion into a flame."

"But I love Edmund."

"Pshaw! how can you be so childish? I do not wish you to love Prince
Ferdinand. If you can contrive to make him love you, it will be all
that is necessary."

"But do you consider the cruelty of trifling with his feelings?"

Marianne laughed. "I did not imagine you so romantic," said she
tauntingly. "Do not alarm yourself; the rage for dying of love is gone
by: therefore, notwithstanding the power of your charms, you must
excuse me, if I presume to doubt their murderous properties."

Rosabella was too much mortified by the manner in which her confidant
treated her scruples, to wish to continue the conversation; though the
reasoning of Marianne produced its full effect upon her mind, and even,
in spite of herself, influenced her conduct.

In the mean time, the family of Mr. Montagu experienced considerable
uneasiness on account of Clara, whose health gradually declined.

"I cannot imagine what is the matter with my daughter?" said Mrs.
Montagu one day to Dr. Coleman; "I wish you would talk to her a
little.--Here, Clara, my dear, do just step this way.--You will be
quite shocked, doctor, at the change in her appearance. Poor girl! I
don't think she has ever properly overcome the fright she experienced
at the first sight of the Mummy, for she has never seemed herself
since. Indeed

    'It seems to me she hoards some secret care,
    That breaks her rest and drives her to despair.'"

"What do you quote that from, my dear?" asked Mr. Montagu, more
interested in his wife's quotation than the illness of his daughter.

"Oh! it is one of a lot I bought the other day at the patent steam-book
manufactory, in Hatton-Garden. I had been buying some other things,
and so I persuaded the man to throw me in a bargain of quotations very
cheap. They were all quite new, and ready cut, dried, and made up
into pills for use. But I never saw such a man in my life;--you think
nothing at all about your daughter. I really wish you would question
her a little, for she will tell me nothing."

"Very well, my dear, I will," said Mr. Montagu; but the next instant he
was absorbed in his studies again, and had even quite forgotten that
such a being as Clara existed.

"Really," said Mrs. Montagu to the doctor, "I do not think any poor
woman in the world ever was so plagued as I am. You see what a husband
I have. He never troubles his head about any thing; and if I were to
take it into my head to walk off, I don't think he would even miss me;
and then, my daughter--but here she comes.--Clara, I sent for you to
speak to Dr. Coleman."

Dr. Coleman was excessively struck by the alteration in Clara's
appearance. The beautiful, lively, blooming girl was changed to a pale
shadow-like being, whose existence seemed to hang upon a thread, and
whose fragile form the first ungentle breeze would annihilate.

"What is the matter with you, my dear child?" asked the doctor.

"Nothing," said Clara, sighing.

"And I don't know any thing that can be worse," said Father Murphy,
who happened to be present; "for that's the speech a young lady always
makes when she's in love, and I don't know any disease that's harder to
cure."

"In love!" cried Mr. Montagu, roused from his lethargy by that
ill-omened word, which generally grates so harshly upon the ears of
parents and guardians. "In love!" repeated he, looking earnestly at his
daughter; "who can she possibly be in love with?"

"Ay, that's the question," said his wife: "for I'm sure I never trust
her from under my own eye; and I'll defy her to fall in love without my
knowing it. No, no, she cannot be in love."

"Och! and that's no rason at all," cried Father Murphy, "for I never
knew of watching doing any good at all in such matters."

"Well, Clara," said Dr. Coleman, "you hear Father Murphy's opinion; do
you plead guilty to the charge?"

Clara's blushes became deeper, and her agitation so excessive, as Dr.
Coleman fixed his eyes upon her, that, finding she could not bear his
looks, she burst into tears, and hurried out of the room. Poor Clara!
the fangs of the most cruel of passions had indeed pierced thy heart,
though thou wast unconscious of it thyself!

It may be remembered, that, on the day of Edmund's triumph, Clara
had been forcibly struck by the fine figure and noble appearance of
a youth, who had walked as prisoner in the procession. It was Prince
Ferdinand; who, having formed a strong intimacy with Lord Edmund, had
been an almost constant visitor at the house of Mrs. Montagu ever
since. Clara was just at the age when the human mind first begins to
feel the want of something to love. In her own family, her affections
had been thrown back upon herself; and, being driven to the regions of
fancy to find an object to occupy her heart, she would often wander for
hours together in the garden, picturing to herself adventures, which
she would paint in all the vivid colours of imagination; till, lost in
creations of her own, she would almost forget the tame, cold realities
of life.

Of course, all these imaginary adventures could not exist without a
hero; but Clara could never fix upon any definite form to bestow upon
him, till she had seen Prince Ferdinand. Then, all her dreams seemed
realized; and the secret God of her idolatry appeared to stand before
her, in _propriâ personâ_. Clara was now perfectly happy; and as, from
the prince's frequent visits to her cousin, she now often passed whole
days in his society, though he perhaps scarcely saw her, or at most
regarded her but as a pretty child, yet she was satisfied: she saw him,
and she heard him speak; what more was wanting to complete her dream of
bliss?

Lord Edmund's departure for the country, however, broke this magic
charm. Prince Ferdinand came no more to Mrs. Montagu's; and Clara heard
of him only as the devoted admirer of Rosabella. Jealousy till that
moment had been scarcely known to her, even by name; but it now shot
its fiercest pangs into her heart. She had never been accustomed to
conceal her feelings, and they now destroyed her. The climax, however,
was still to come. One day, as she was mournfully pacing the terrace
in her father's garden, she was startled by the appearance of Prince
Ferdinand himself: her agitation was excessive; her lips trembled, and
she panted for breath; but he passed on without noticing her--yes,
it was he, the cherished idol of her thoughts, the hero of her
dreams;--and he had passed without seeing, or at least without seeming
to behold her. Was it possible he could have seen her and passed so
coldly?--was it possible she could be so totally indifferent to one who
was all the world to her? Oh! there was madness in the thought! she
could not bear her own reflections. What would become of her, she knew
not--she cared not; and, in an agony of despair, she plunged into the
thickest grove of the garden.

Though it was summer, the day was cold and chilly; a drizzling mist
fell fast, and a thick fog from the river wrapped the grove in gloom.
Heedless however of the weather, Clara hastened on to the spot where
stood the marble urn; but as she approached it, she started back, for
close beside it stood the hideous figure of Cheops, dimly seen through
the gathering gloom.

"Fear not!" said he in a softened, though still hollow voice; "tell me
your woes, and, if I can, I will assist you."

"Alas! it is in vain," cried Clara in an agony of despair too profound
even to admit of her feeling the fear generally experienced by all who
saw the Mummy; "no one can relieve me,--I have no hope!"

Cheops smiled. "Poor child!" said he, "it is always thus when Eros
first creeps into the soul, covering his arrows with roses, so that
they are not seen till their barbed points rankle in the heart! I
cannot tell how much I pity thee! So young and lovely too, it is hard
that even thou shouldst not be exempt from the common lot of mortals!
Yet do not despair."

"I do despair!" cried Clara, darting away from him; "I am truly
wretched!"

From this moment Clara saw the Mummy almost daily, and her mind
acquired new force and energy from his society, though her health
visibly declined. It was not, indeed, possible for human beings to hold
daily intercourse with Cheops without feeling their souls withered.
The glowing tints of youth and health faded rapidly from the cheeks of
Clara; she became pale and spiritless, whilst she appeared to have lost
all interest in the common affairs of life. Her fits of abstraction,
however, her dejection, and her solitary wanderings, at length became
so evident as to excite the attention of her mother, and the scene we
have just described was the result.

Nothing could be more painful to poor Clara than the questioning
she had undergone. She rushed from the presence of her parents to
her favourite garden, to think over what had passed, and implore
the assistance of the mysterious being with whom she had associated
herself. He was not there, however; and though she repeatedly called
upon his name, he came not. The weather was now delicious; the autumnal
tints, that had just begun to change the lovely verdure of summer into
a glowing brown, gave richness to the landscape. Since the abolition
of coal and wood fires, the air of London had become pure and bright,
though it still remained soft from its vicinity to the river, and
it was thus highly favourable to vegetation: whilst, as no house
was permitted to approach within a certain distance of the Thames,
the sumptuous gardens that bordered its banks were beautiful in the
extreme. That of Mr. Montagu, which has been so often alluded to, was
in particular laid out in the greatest taste; and its grateful shade
and delicious fragrance calmed poor Clara's troubled spirits, and
soothed them to repose. Nothing, indeed, could have a more lulling
effect upon the harassed senses than the scene before her. The air was
perfectly still; not a leaf was agitated, not a flower stirred; all
nature seemed to repose, but Clara alone felt restless. The questions
of Dr. Coleman, and surmises of Father Murphy, had created a variety of
new feelings in her mind; and she wandered up and down, oppressed by a
sensation of melancholy which she had never felt before. She could not
define her own sensations; she could not analyze her thoughts; and, as
she sauntered to and fro without any determinate object, she listlessly
pulled the leaves from a rose that she carried in her hands.

The scattering of the rose-leaves, however, recalled her to herself,
and she smiled as she saw the mischief she had done. "Alas! poor rose!"
sighed she, apostrophizing the flower; "I know not why I have destroyed
thee!" Then walking hastily away, she plunged into the thickest part
of the grove. "Why am I thus agitated?" said she to herself. "Why do
I feel thus miserable and discontented? Can it be love? Love!" she
repeated, whilst deep blushes glowed upon her cheeks, and she started
at the echo of her own voice. She threw herself upon a turfy bank under
a shady tree, and, resting her head upon her hand, watched through
the leaves the light fleecy clouds that drifted along the sky, till,
oppressed by the painful nature of her own sensations, she sighed
heavily, and tears swam in her eyes.

At this moment, footsteps rapidly approached; and Clara, springing
upon her feet, hastily drew her hand across her eyes, and hid herself
amongst the trees.

Dr. Hardman and Father Morris, who approached, seemed absorbed in
conversation; and Clara, who dreaded Father Morris excessively, kept
herself concealed, to avoid meeting him. We have already mentioned,
that she was simple and innocent to a degree; but hers was the
simplicity of ignorance, not folly. Her natural abilities were
excellent, and her mind uncommonly strong. She therefore neither
screamed nor fainted, though, from her present position, she became
auditor to a scene of the deepest villainy. Notwithstanding the
influence which Rosabella's party had at present in state, Father
Morris was not satisfied. He wished to make her election certain,
and this could be only done by removing Elvira. Dr. Hardman was her
physician--the rest may be easily imagined.

Clara trembled, and her flesh seemed to creep upon her bones, as she
listened to this horrid conference. But her terror was even increased
when they changed the subject, and spoke no longer of an intended
murder, but of one which had been already committed. Clara shook in
every limb, and her lips and cheeks became blanched with fear; yet she
uttered no cry, nor betrayed her presence by the slightest motion. At
length they went, and Clara stood like one awakened from a fearful
dream, almost doubting the reality of what she had heard.

An hour elapsed, yet Clara still stood motionless. What should she
do? Would her unassisted testimony be believed in matters of such
awful import against the weight and influence of two persons of so
much consequence in the state? No, she felt it would not. Yet, if she
remained silent, she would be accessory to the murder of Elvira. What
could she do? what course ought she to pursue?--she knew not. A chaos
of thoughts seemed whirling through her brain, and threatened almost
to drive her to madness. The longer she thought, the more she became
confused; and she began to fear her senses were actually leaving her,
when a solemn voice sounded in her ear. Well did she know those deep
and awful tones--they were those of Cheops; and, confiding the awful
secret to him, she promised to comply implicitly with his injunctions.

It was the day following this adventure, that, as Father Murphy and
Abelard were conversing tranquilly together, lamenting over the
degeneracy of the age, their conference was interrupted by the sudden
appearance of the duke.

"Where is Sir Ambrose?" cried he in a state of violent
agitation--"where is Sir Ambrose? I must see Sir Ambrose immediately."

"Calm yourself, for Heaven's sake!" said Father Morris, who had
followed him unobserved. "This violent agitation will destroy you:
remember your recent illness, your age, your weakness--"

"Where is Sir Ambrose?" cried the duke.

"This vehemence is unbefitting of your station," continued Father
Morris: "moderate it, I entreat you--it can do no good."

"Will no one call Sir Ambrose?" reiterated the duke: and as the
baronet, who had been summoned by Abelard, appeared, he threw himself
into his arms, sobbing like a child.

"Oh, my dear, dear friend!" exclaimed he, "they are determined to ruin
Elvira. Lord Gustavus and his adherents are gone to their country-seats
to try to influence the election of the deputies; and my child can have
no chance against such treachery."

"If that be all," said Henry Seymour, who had accompanied the baronet,
"why not follow their example? your influence must, at least, be equal
to theirs."

"He is right," rejoined Sir Ambrose. "I know not why we did not do so
sooner; but, even now, it is not too late."

"And what end can possibly be produced by such a measure?" asked Father
Morris, scowling darkly at the youth: "the freedom of the election
should be inviolable."

"But!" hastily interrupted the duke, "if they attempt to control it, we
may surely--"

"I was not before aware," said Father Morris, in his cold, ironical
manner, "that the circumstance of others doing evil was any reason for
our committing sin."

"Nonsense!" cried the duke; "there can be no sin in securing the
election of my daughter; and so, Sir Ambrose, we will set off to-night,
if you please."

"With all my heart!" said Sir Ambrose: and the two old men and Henry
Seymour hurried away, leaving the monk alone. He did not, however, long
remain so, for in a few seconds Cheops was at his side.

"So, Sir," said Father Morris, scowling upon Cheops with a look of
deadly hatred, "you have proved yourself my friend, in suffering this
babbling boy to counteract my views. Did you not boast he was your
slave?"

The Mummy met his glance without shrinking; and, bursting into one of
his fearful laughs, exclaimed tauntingly, "And so he is: but I thought
you had determined not to oppose the duke any longer. It seems, then, I
did not understand your reasoning in the garden."

"Fiend! cursed mocking fiend!" cried the friar, gnashing his teeth.

"Nay!" returned Cheops, "why blame me? Was I wrong in believing what
you said? Was it, then, only a part you were acting to deceive me?"

"Demon! thou canst read my heart; but it is thy wish to drive me to
distraction."

"No, no, my good Father Morris, my worthy friend, I honour you too
much! If I can read your heart, I must be charmed to see such devotion
to your friends, such candour, openness, and integrity."

"Taunting devil! be my sins what they may, thy presence is a penance
that might redeem them. By Heaven! hell itself were easier to endure
than those bitter scoffs."

"And darest thou talk of Heaven?" said the Mummy in an awful voice,
that thrilled through the father's soul; whilst his eyes glared with
such supernatural lustre that the priest could not bear their beams,
and sank upon one knee before him, bending his head to the ground.
"'Tis as it should be!" continued Cheops, with one of his fiendish
laughs. "Yes, he is mine--he bends before my will! Now will I tell
thee what thy feeble reason was too powerless to discover: I am still
thy friend. The duke and Sir Ambrose will only injure their cause by
the ill-judged measures they will take to promote it. They had the
advantage of justice, honour, and open dealing upon their side; was
it nothing to deprive them of these fair sounding words? Will they in
future be able to complain of corruption, when they have attempted
to corrupt? Had it not been so, even if success had crowned your
efforts, would not the minds of men have inclined to the side of
injured integrity? for so they might have termed the party of the duke.
Might they not also have said the election was secured by bribery and
deceit; and upon the first discontent that arose against Rosabella's
government, would they not have recurred fondly to the recollection
of the honest, open dealing, plain speaking duke! Men naturally love
and respect virtue, though they may be seduced for a time by the
allurements of vice. Thus, though they might not have had strength of
mind to resist the arts of your party, their best feelings would have
still remained upon the side of Elvira. This can now no longer be the
case. The duke and Sir Ambrose voluntarily throw away their strongest
hold--they rush blindfold to destruction. They degrade themselves to
your level; whilst, as they are unused to deceit, they will not succeed
in their endeavours, and disgrace will be their only reward. Now, do
you blame me?"

"Blame you!" exclaimed Father Morris; "you are my friend, my best, my
only friend, my preserver."

"With regard to Edmund," said Cheops, "we must excite his jealousy. If
he were detached from Elvira, her cause would perish."

"It would, it would!" cried Father Morris.

"Try then thy efforts," said Cheops; "and if thou canst excite
suspicions, fan them gently to a flame, yet without seeming to do so.
Do not attack Elvira openly, or assert broadly that she loves another;
but hint it darkly, so that your victim cannot misunderstand, and
that the damning certainty may flash upon his mind with greater force
than mere words can give. Well knowest thou what I mean, and well
hath Nature modelled thee for such a part. That downcast look, that
insinuating voice, and half ironical manner; the infernal deity himself
could not well have wished a more fitting agent to execute his designs
on earth than thou. Work then upon Edmund, and success cannot fail to
follow your attempts."

"Thou Machiavel!" cried Father Morris; "my friend, my dearest friend,
my benefactor: oh! how I could fall down and worship thee!"

A sardonic smile curled the haughty lips of Cheops. "Learn then to obey
in silence," said he, "nor dare again to blame designs far beyond your
comprehension!"



CHAPTER XVII.


The day following was appointed for the departure of the two families
of the duke and Sir Ambrose for the country; and the whole preceding
evening was passed by the two old men in arranging their plans, and
forming new schemes to ensure success. Elvira took no part in this
conversation, though certainly the person most interested: she was
thoughtful and _distraite_; she was too restless to remain in one
place. She walked to the window; she returned, and she again sat down.
She attempted to work, to read, to draw--all was in vain; all seemed
tasteless and insipid. Again she went to the window, and, opening its
folding doors, stepped out upon the balcony. It was a delightful night,
and the air felt soft and warm. Vines, laden with their luscious fruit,
twined from pillar to pillar of the balcony, forming a kind of verdant
network, whilst the moon shone bright upon the lovely scene beyond.
Below, a smooth green lawn stretched forth like a velvet carpet,
bounded on each side by Chinese rose-trees, the delicate tints of which
looked still more transparently beautiful in the lovely light. Behind
these, rose trees of a loftier height and deeper shade, whilst at the
extremity of the lawn wound the river. The clear moon-beams trembled on
the gently rippling stream, and gave a transparent brightness to the
graceful foliage of a weeping willow, which hung over the water, and
quivered in every passing breeze.

Elvira gazed upon the fair scene before her, and sighed heavily as she
gazed. A gentle sigh softly echoed hers, and she started to find that
Henry Seymour was standing before her.

"How beautiful is Nature," said he, "when undefiled by the follies
and sins of man. Here one might forget the world, and all its busy
turmoil of deceit. When one gazes thus upon the sublime and lovely face
of Nature, how poor do all the arts, the ambition, and the pitiful
contrivances of man appear. The soul seems elevated to its proper
sphere, and to long to throw off the frail covering of clay, which
yet chains it down to the grovelling passions of earth, and to soar
triumphant to its native skies."

His fine eyes were turned to heaven as he spoke; and Elvira gazed upon
them and his noble countenance beaming; with enthusiasm, till she quite
forgot to reply.

"Do you not agree with me, Elvira!" said he, in a tone of the softest
melody, fixing his eyes upon hers with a look that sank deep into her
heart. Again she sighed deeply, but she could not speak. "Oh, Elvira,"
continued he, taking her hand; "will you forget me? will not the
remembrance of this night form a tie between us, when we shall be far,
far apart?"

"Apart!" cried Elvira, almost with a shriek of surprise.

The youth sighed; and, gazing earnestly upon her blushing face,
whispered tenderly, as he pressed her hand to his heart, "O that I
could flatter myself sorrow mingled with that sigh."

"Why, what is this?" said the old duke, bustling to the window; "the
doctor tells me you are going to leave us. Surety you might contrive to
stay till after the election."

"I am very sorry, Sir," said the youth; "but the circumstance that
calls me away--"

"Ay, ay, the doctor told me; a near relation dangerously ill, that
can't die in peace till he's seen you. Well, well, my boy, such things
must be; and if he's doomed to die, I only wish him an easy death, and
you a good legacy."

"I cannot tell you how sorry I am to part with you," said Sir Ambrose,
who now advanced, "nor how sincerely I wish you good fortune."

"Thank you, thank you, Sir," said the youth: "alas! I now feel how poor
words are to express my gratitude for all your kindness. But--"

"I am sorry to hasten you, Mr. Seymour," said Dr. Coleman, who now
approached; "but time wears apace."

"True, true," said Henry, "I had forgotten. Once more farewell. God
bless you all!" and he hurried away, as though fearful of his own
resolution if he ventured to stay another second. For the rest of
the evening, Elvira was silent and abstracted; the suddenness of the
blow seemed to have stunned her, and she felt like one wandering in
a dream. Was he really gone? Should she never see him more? were
questions she scarcely dared even to ask herself. "He was nothing to
me, a mere common acquaintance," she repeated incessantly; and yet she
felt a wearisome void, a sickening disgust and impatience at every
thing around her, which she had never experienced before. "What can
be the matter with me," said she peevishly; "I shall never see him
again; and it is the excess of weakness to feel an interest in the fate
of one, who is evidently so indifferent about me; and yet he seemed
affected when he said we were about to part. Was he really so? But
of what consequence to me is it whether he were so or not. I shall
never see him more." And Elvira sighed involuntarily at the thought.
"I am devoted to other prospects. I--in short, I will think of him no
more." And, in pursuance of this magnanimous resolution, she thought of
nothing else all night.

The following day, Elvira and her friends went into the country; but,
as Cheops had predicted, the duke and Sir Ambrose proved quite unequal
to the task they had undertaken, and they only lost their popularity by
the attempt. Men were disgusted to see personages hitherto considered
so respectable descend to meanness, and the shallowness of the
artifices by which it was intended to impose upon them excited their
contempt. In the mean time, Lord Edmund was not more successful in
London than his friends in the country: he had marched a chosen body of
troops within a convenient distance of the metropolis; in consequence
of which ill-judged measure, the members of the council, to show that
they were not influenced by the fear of military authority, and to
vindicate their independence, invariably opposed every measure that he
suggested.

As the law, however, forbade any decisive promises till the actual
day of election, there was still hope, though the friends of Elvira
struggled on, rather from a wish not too hastily to abandon her cause,
than from any rational, well-founded prospect of success.

In the midst of these anxieties, Elvira's health indeed seemed rapidly
declining. A weight that nothing could alleviate, hung upon her
spirits; she made no effort to secure voters; but pale, silent, and
melancholy, she glided about--the ghost of her former self. Still,
however, she was lovely; the increased delicacy of her complexion,
and shadowy lightness of her form, harmonized well with the general
style of her beauty; whilst her fine eyes, shaded by their long silken
lashes, only shone more brilliantly from the glowing hectic of the
cheek below.

The time fixed for the important ceremony now rapidly approached;
the election of the deputies was concluded, and the families of the
duke and Sir Ambrose prepared to return to town. The night, however,
before they departed, the duke gave a grand _fête champêtre_ to the
neighbouring gentry; and as a considerable number of the deputies
were expected, he particularly enjoined Elvira to exert herself to
the utmost to win their suffrages. Never perhaps had Elvira looked
more beautiful than she did that night, as, pale, trembling and timid,
she received her numerous guests; and never, perhaps, was effect more
magical than that which her appearance produced. Her very diffidence
and modesty attracted; and the reserve, with which she shunned, rather
than sought the attention of the crowd, completed the enchantment.

"It is her fear of seeming to wish to interest us," whispered one
deputy to another, "that makes her treat us so coldly."

"Yes," replied the other; "and I like her the better for it. If she
were to attempt to make herself agreeable, I should hate her; the duke
and Sir Ambrose have sickened us of that!"

The fête was given in the gardens of the duke, which were beautiful and
extensive, and now brilliantly illuminated by lamps suspended from the
trees. There was something, however, not quite congenial to Elvira's
taste in thus marrying the gorgeous splendour of art to the simplicity
of nature, and she sighed heavily as she watched the flaring lamps
scorching the calm pale verdure of the trees.

"Now this is as it should be," said the old duke, as he led his
daughter to the pavilion appointed for her to receive her guests;
"Elvira now looks like herself. Does she not, Dr. Coleman?"

The doctor shook his head: "I fear," began he--

"Oh! we will have no fears to-night!" cried the duke gaily; "remember,
Elvira! every thing now depends upon you. Play the part of the smiling,
condescending hostess; win the hearts of the deputies, and you will
make that of your old father leap for joy. We shall have a gay party,
sha'n't we, doctor?" continued he, eyeing the groups as they advanced.
"I wish your friend, Henry Seymour, were here amongst us."

Elvira started, and deep blushes suffused her cheeks at the mention of
this name. The doctor eyed her attentively, though he replied as though
he had not noticed her agitation. "It was urgent business, you know,
that obliged him to leave England."

"He was a charming youth," said the duke; "so gay and yet so fearless.
I think, however, I observed that his spirits seemed much depressed the
last time I saw him."

"You know he said it was the death--I mean the illness of a relation,
that compelled him to go."

"Young men don't generally feel so much for the illness, or even death
of old ones," returned the duke: "now, if I were to judge, doctor, I
should think it far more likely it was some love affair. But we can't
stay talking about it now. I must go, and attend to my guests: and do
you mind, Elvira, and make yourself agreeable."

Poor Elvira, however, was, perhaps, never less fitted to obey her
father's injunctions than at this moment; for the conversation she had
just heard, had quite deranged her nerves. Her father's supposition
inflicted a deep pang on her heart; and though she went through the
duties of her station mechanically, her mind wandered to Henry Seymour.

It was a lovely night, and the general effect of the scene, as groups
of elegantly-dressed people flitted to and fro through the lighted
groves, was striking in the extreme. Beautiful flowering exotics
decorated the pavilion of Elvira, and the balmy air that fanned their
blossoms, seemed loaded with sweets; whilst the richly illuminated
castle, rearing its lofty towers in awful grandeur in the distance, had
the appearance of a fairy palace.

Elvira listlessly gazed upon the magic scene, till she felt almost
fainting with the fatigue her situation as hostess imposed upon her;
and she looked with a languid and almost despairing eye upon the
crowds that came still pouring into the gardens. The throng, however,
now opened, and a tall and dignified figure found its way through the
mass. It was Lord Edmund: he approached rapidly, and threw himself at
Elvira's feet: "My adored Elvira!" exclaimed he.

"You here, my Lord?" cried the princess; whose eyes, enfeebled by
exhaustion, had not permitted her to recognise him till he was
immediately before her: "I did not expect to see you here to-night!"

"Does my presence pain you then?" said Lord Edmund, looking at her
attentively. "They told me you were ill, and I do indeed find you
changed."

"I am better now," returned Elvira faintly.

"Do not deceive yourself," cried he, with the most intense anxiety.
"You are ill--you are not equal to this fatigue. Retire from this
scene, it will destroy you."

"I dare not," replied Elvira, still more feebly, "without permission
from my father; though, I own, I do feel exhausted!"

Lord Edmund waited for no more; but darted to find the duke, and obtain
his wished for sanction. The next instant, his place was supplied by
Prince Ferdinand, who had been invited into the country a few days
before by the duke; and who, with the inconstancy natural to his
disposition, had now become as deeply smitten with Elvira, as he had
before been with Rosabella. Elvira, however, saw him not; and, looking
gratefully after Lord Edmund, sighed profoundly as she lost sight of
him among the crowd.

"Happy Edmund!" said the prince; "what would I not give to create a
feeling in that lovely bosom, like that caused by thy absence!"

Elvira blushed at the earnest gaze of the youthful German, as she
replied, without exactly knowing what she said, "Do you suppose, then,
that the absence of Lord Edmund gave me pain?"

"What other cause can I divine for your melancholy?" said Ferdinand.
"Adored by every heart, admired by every eye, and blest at once with
rank, beauty, and affection, what can Elvira wish?--and what can cloud
her brow with sorrow, or heave her lovely bosom with a sigh, unless it
be the loss of the favoured lover whom ambition bids her sacrifice?"

"And think you so poorly of me," returned Elvira indignantly, "as to
suppose, if I really loved Lord Edmund, that ambition would tempt me to
sacrifice him?"

"Can a heart like yours then be really dead to love?" said the prince,
gazing upon her earnestly. "Can Nature have formed such exquisite
beauty, and forgotten to give a soul to pity the wretches it must make?"

Elvira blushed deeply as he spoke, for his ardent look embarrassed her;
and her eyes having been modestly withdrawn, again met those of Lord
Edmund, who had returned without her perceiving him. 'Twas but for a
moment, however, that she gazed upon him, for she shrank aghast from
his withering glance. Jealousy and hatred curled his lips, and darkened
upon his brow; whilst his features seemed so changed, that Elvira could
scarcely believe he was indeed the same she had so lately spoken with.

"I beg your Highness's pardon," said he haughtily; "I would not have
presumed to intrude, if I had known you were engaged. I fancied that
you wished to retire, and had obtained the duke's permission for your
doing so; but--"

"Oh, thank you! thank you, Edmund!" cried Elvira; "most gladly will I
seek my chamber." Then marking a slight smile upon Prince Ferdinand's
face, she hesitated, for she recollected the interpretation he had put
upon her melancholy and indifference. Lord Edmund's agony was beyond
description: he saw her hesitation; he saw her look at Ferdinand, and
fancying she sought his approval before she would retire, his jealous
rage was unbounded, and, darting at her a look of ungovernable passion,
he sprang from the pavilion, and was out of sight in an instant. Elvira
could not bear his look, nor his unreasonable jealousy; and, exhausted
by her previous fatigue, she fainted. A crowd soon gathered round her,
and she was carried to her chamber in a state of insensibility.

"Mark me!" said a figure muffled in a thick cloak, speaking in a deep,
low whisper, as he laid his hand upon the arm of Father Morris, who
stood gazing after Elvira, with a look of intense anxiety; "she must
not die; for if she does, I swear by the holy tomb of Osiris at Philæ,
Rosabella never shall be Queen!"

From that hour, Elvira recovered; and the consumptive symptoms, that
had so strongly excited the alarm of her friends, entirely disappeared.

Lord Edmund was conversing earnestly with one of the deputies, and,
notwithstanding his jealousy, advocating the cause of Elvira with
vehemence, when he was informed that she had fainted: his first impulse
was to fly to her assistance; and when he found she had been removed to
her chamber, his heart smote him for the cruel manner in which he had
left her.

"She was really ill," thought he; "and, in her feeble state, my
harshness overpowered her. But never again shall my foolish jealousy
disturb her peace. No! let her scorn me--hate me, if she will. I
will bear all the tortures she can inflict, rather than again hazard
wounding that gentle bosom. Let her smile on whom she lists, even upon
that hated German, I will not repine: if she be happy, I will ask no
more."

Thus thought Edmund, and he knew not that he deceived himself, till
he saw Prince Ferdinand, who, with the happy elasticity of youth, was
chatting gaily with one of the beauties of the court. "Love him!"
thought he, as a scornful smile passed over his features--"love him,
did I say? Oh, no! it is impossible; I could not endure to see her love
that coxcomb:" and, shuddering with the torments of jealousy, he turned
away.

Cheops was near him, muffled in a thick cloak that shrouded him from
observation; the Mummy marked the changes in Lord Edmund's countenance,
and read well the feelings they betrayed.

"Yes, even he," said he, with one of his fearful laughs, "will soon be
mine; for never yet did man trust in his own strength, that did not
fall."



CHAPTER XVIII.


The day of election now rapidly approached. The duke, Sir Ambrose, the
rival candidates, and the opposition lords, were all in London. The
deputies were also assembled; and though it was forbidden to declare
publicly for whom they intended to vote, till the decisive moment
arrived; yet the popular feeling seemed so strongly in favour of
Rosabella, that there appeared scarcely a chance for her rival.

Exulting in her expected triumph, and confident of success, Rosabella
sate in the splendid _boudoir_ allotted to her use in Lord Gustavus's
house, musing on her hoped-for grandeur. A large mirror was opposite
to her; and as Rosabella saw her own fine figure reflected in it, joy
sparkled in her eyes, and her mind wandered enraptured through scenes
of future glory. Thus, completely absorbed in pleasing meditations,
Rosabella was not aware that Cheops stood before her, till she heard
his full, deep-toned voice repeating her name.

"Rosabella!" said he--"Rosabella! Queen of England! hail!"

"Cheops!" exclaimed she.

"Hail to the Queen of England!" resumed he: "no longer need you stoop
to solicit suffrages: your fate is sealed!"

"Think you that I am quite safe?" asked the princess; her eyes
sparkling, and her cheeks glowing.

"Certainly--there cannot be a doubt."

"Then I may bid defiance to these wretches, and need no longer submit
to their caprices, or be subservient to their humours."

"Not unless you like it."

"Like it!" exclaimed Rosabella, her eyes flashing fire; "can you
suppose I like to practise meanness?"

"Policy, indeed, recommends a contrary course," continued the Mummy;
"as, if you do not assert your own independence, they will encroach
upon your condescension, and treat you as a slave."

Rosabella bit her lips, and her bosom swelled with indignation.

The Mummy took no notice of her agitation, but went on. "Let them
not bind you by any promises. Prove yourself a free and independent
sovereign. Trample upon them, and they will crouch at your feet: but
crouch to them, and they will trample upon you!"

"You say right," said Rosabella proudly; "and my would-be masters shall
soon find their error. They think weakness has made me submit to their
arrogance; but they shall see their folly."

The influence the Mummy exercised over the minds of all those he came
in contact with was astonishing; and, in pursuance of his advice,
Rosabella, from this moment, resumed her usual imperious manner; and
received the compliments paid to her with the air rather of an empress
long seated upon the throne, than that of an aspiring candidate for
regal honours, dependant only upon the favour of the people. This
excessive confidence, however, displeased the deputies.

"She hardly leaves us a choice," said they; "for she seems to command
us to choose her. Notwithstanding the strength of her party, and the
weakness of her rival, we don't think she should take the thing quite
in her own hands: the old Queen ordered that the people should choose
her successor; but this princess seems to have chosen herself. It is
very kind of her to wish to save us the trouble; but, with her good
leave, we think we might have managed to go through it without her
help."

These murmurs, however, though deep, were not loud; the party of
Rosabella being too firmly established for any one to dare openly to
oppose it. The opposition lords had all returned to town, and, though
they had not completely succeeded in the object of their journey to the
country, they had at least satisfied themselves; and by the activity
they had displayed, given themselves, as they imagined, a just title to
the gratitude of their future Queen.

In the mean time, the friends of Elvira almost despaired; few persons
of note declared themselves her advocates; and though the favourable
impression she had made upon the deputies still faintly operated, the
feeling was fast fading away. An invincible repugnance to appear as the
leader of a party, oppressed her; and she shrank from the public gaze
with a sensation little short of horror. Lord Edmund, however, still
remained her firm and almost her only friend. Yet, though he exerted
every nerve on her behalf, even he despaired of obtaining her election.
Sometimes, indeed, as he gazed upon her beauty, a selfish feeling
crept over his soul, and he could scarcely repress an emotion of joy,
as he thought of the possibility that she might still be his; for the
very qualities that impeded her success, only endeared her yet more
fondly to his heart. The next instant, however, his nobler feelings
would reproach this selfish joy, and with a kind of penitential
sorrow, he would strive by fresh efforts to destroy the hopes, for the
gratification of which his very soul panted.

"I presume," said Lord Gustavus de Montfort to Rosabella, the day
before that appointed for the election, "your Highness does not intend
to make Lord Maysworth a minister as well as a general; for, thinking
as I think, and as I am confident every one else must think, I feel
assured he has no talents for the cabinet."

"As Queen of England, my Lord," returned Rosabella proudly, "I will
not be dictated to; though I will do my best to choose such ministers
as may, in my judgment, be most likely to promote the welfare of my
country."

Lord Gustavus was thunderstruck, and he gazed after her, as she
retired, with mingled feelings of astonishment and indignation. "You
are _not_ Queen of England yet, however," said he to himself, "and it
is possible you never may be. What pride! what haughtiness! If I had
been a slave, she could not have shown more contempt. 'When I am Queen
of England,' said she, I 'will not be dictated to.' 'Queen of England,'
said she? Humph! thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one else
must think, it is possible, that that is a contingency that may never
arrive. Humph! 'I will not be dictated to'--Humph! Well, certainly I
must confess I never heard a more dignified '_will not_' in my life."

It was the hour when Lord Gustavus was accustomed to hold a kind
of levee where the partizans of the princess had been in the habit
of assembling, under the guise of casual visitors; and as he thus
cogitated, Lord Maysworth and Dr. Hardman were announced.

"My dear Lord Gustavus," cried the former, "you cannot imagine
how impatient I feel to have to-morrow over. The uniform of the
household-troops is horrible: I have determined to change it the very
instant I am appointed commander-in-chief."

"If you should obtain that situation," replied Lord Gustavus doubtingly.

"What do you mean?" asked his friend, in astonishment. "I thought the
means we had taken must infallibly ensure success."

"They must ensure the election of Rosabella," replied Lord Gustavus.

"And is not that all we wish?"

"Not quite," returned Lord Gustavus dryly.

"I do not understand you," said Lord Maysworth.

"What can you mean?" demanded Dr. Hardman.

"I mean," replied Lord Gustavus, in his usual cold, precise manner,
"that, thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one else must think,
from the conversation that has just taken place between the princess
and myself, I am convinced that our possession of the places she
has promised to us, is by no means the necessary consequence of her
accession to the throne."

"Oh!" cried his auditors, looking perfectly aghast: a farther
explanation confirmed their fears. "I could not have believed it!"
exclaimed both; and as the partizans of Rosabella continued to arrive,
they were successively apprized of and paralyzed by the appalling
news. Divers were the sensations thus excited: but amongst all,
notwithstanding their professed disinterestedness, there was not one
whose sentiments remained unchanged by the intelligence.

In the mean time, Rosabella, in the solitude of her own chamber, became
aware of the imprudence she had committed, though she brooded in secret
over her uneasiness, and felt too proud to avow it even to Marianne;
whilst that faithful confidant, quite unsuspicious of the error of her
mistress, exulted in her expected triumph with as much transport as
though it had been her own.

"To-morrow," said she, "I shall have to do homage to my Queen, and I
shall have the rapture of seeing crowds kneel humbly at her feet. Oh,
would the happy day were come! how tedious will seem this long, long
night! how wearisome will be the hours! Does not your heart also throb,
my princess? To-morrow I shall see my Queen. To-morrow! oh, would it
were to-day!"

The important day at last arrived, and the delegates, assembled
in Blackheath Square, awaited with impatience the arrival of the
princesses. Each was to deliver a speech; after which, a nobleman was
to be permitted to address the mob on her behalf, and then the majority
of their votes was to decide.

The rival princesses appeared, and were hailed with enthusiasm. They
were dressed with the utmost simplicity, in the purest white; whilst
from their heads hung long veils of gossamer web, the ample folds of
which effectually shielded their persons from observation. They were
followed by their respective suites; Lord Gustavus and the opposition
lords being most conspicuous in that of Rosabella; and Lord Edmund in
that of Elvira. The Duke and Sir Ambrose, attended by the reverend
fathers Morris and Murphy, were amongst the number of spectators: the
two former feeling too much agitated to allow of their appearing as
actors in the scene; and the others being, from different reasons,
equally disqualified from taking a part in it.

All now was silent--the tumultuous, wave-like heaving of the multitude
ceased; and every one listened in breathless expectation--for the
princesses were about to speak. It was an awful moment: the poor old
duke's heart beat almost audibly; he sate, his eyes fixed upon the
ground, not daring to look up, and holding the hand of his friend, Sir
Ambrose, firmly in his own. It was Rosabella who was to speak first:
she advanced with a firm, decided step; and when the attendants drew
back the veil that covered her, the assembled multitude uttered a
shout of admiration at her beauty. Her dark eyes flashed fire, as she
proudly surveyed the crowd; and anticipated triumph gave an animated
glow to her fine features. She looked, indeed, already a Queen, and
seemed born only to command, and be obeyed. The multitude were awed by
her presence; and listened with uplifted eyes, and the most profound
silence, whilst she thus addressed them:

"My Lords and Gentlemen,

"I feel the presumption I am guilty of, in thus venturing to address
so august an assembly; but I trust the magnitude of the occasion
that calls me forward may afford an excuse for my temerity. I come,
gentlemen, to offer myself to you as your Sovereign, and the exalted
nature of the trust I wish you to repose in me, inspires me with
courage to deserve it. Yes, gentlemen, I say to deserve it; for I
should consider myself unworthy to be appointed your Queen, if I were
to shrink from performing any of the duties attendant upon the station;
and one of the most arduous of these do I consider that of thus
addressing you. I am aware, that, upon occasions like the present, it
is usual for the aspiring candidate to promise miracles of reformation,
that are to be effected upon the obtaining of power; I promise nothing
of the kind, for I will tie myself to no promises. Elect me for your
Queen, and I will fulfil the duties of my rank, according to the best
of my own judgment. I will not submit to dictation; neither will I be
censured by my subjects. I will be a free, independent Sovereign, or
I will remain a subject. I scorn to attempt to practise any deception
upon you. I wish you to see me as I really am; and then, if you think
me worthy of the high office I aspire to, then, at least, I may assure
you, you shall never have reason to blush for your choice; nor shall
the proud character which England has so long maintained, ever suffer a
stain upon its glory at my hands. No, my countrymen, haughty as I may
be deemed, I assure you, with sincerity, that I have ever held the name
of Englishwoman as my noblest boast; and that I would not relinquish
my title to it, were kingdoms offered in exchange. I can say no more.
If you approve me as your Sovereign, your voices will obtain the
fulfilment of your wishes; if you do not, worlds would not tempt me to
accept the throne."

Rosabella now sate down amidst thunders of applause, whilst
acclamations of "Long live Rosabella!" rent the air. These symptoms
of approbation were, however, only produced by her beauty and her
commanding manner; for when men came to analyze her speech, they found
much in it to disapprove. The haughty manner in which she had disavowed
control, indeed was neither calculated to win new friends, nor secure
those she already had: as the counsellors who had so warmly supported
her cause, had certainly not imagined, that by so doing, they should
shut the door of preferment against themselves; and what hope of
promotion or power could remain during the reign of a Queen who had
thus openly announced her intention of acting entirely for herself?

The prejudices of the people, too, were wounded; they had been so
accustomed to promises of reformation and relief from taxation, upon
the accession of a new Sovereign, that they were disappointed at
not receiving them, although they knew from experience, that they
meant nothing: just as persons fond of flattery cannot live without
it, though they are well acquainted with its fallacy. Besides, even
experience cannot make some people wise; and though the hopes of the
English had been so often disappointed, it was pleasant still to have
something held out to them to hope for. These thoughts soon arose
in the breasts of the multitude; and a rising murmur was beginning
to swell upon the ear, when the assembly was hushed to silence by
perceiving Lord Noodle had risen, and was about to address them.

"My lords and gentlemen," said he, "it is with feelings of considerable
embarrassment that I rise to address you. Every thing that can be said,
has been said; and every thing that has been said, ought to have been
said; and every thing that ought to have been said, has been said.
What, then, can there possibly be left for me to say?

"Let it not be supposed, however, by my saying this, that I have
nothing to say for myself; on the contrary, I think every body must
allow I have said a great deal upon the said subject;" (here the noble
lord tittered at his own wit, and well it was that he did so; as, if
he had not, perhaps nobody might have found it out;) "say what I will,
however, one thing must be clear, and that is, (if I was to speak for
an hour I could say no more;)--that is, that you must have a Queen; and
that you cannot choose a better one than the noble lady who has just
sat down!--and so, gentlemen, she having finished, I think I cannot do
better than follow her example!"

Shouts and roars of laughter followed this speech, to the infinite
delight of the enlightened orator; and he bowed and bowed on all sides,
till his little head and bobbing periwig seemed to have acquired the
gift of perpetual motion.

No sooner was the tumult a little subsided, than Elvira came forward
to address the people. When her veil was removed, her agitation was
extreme. Elvira was delicately fair, and the "eloquent blood spoke in
her cheeks" in a thousand varying tints; for a few seconds she stood,
her eyes fixed upon the ground, apparently endeavouring to collect
herself: then raising her eyes, she seemed on the point of speaking,
but her courage failing as she surveyed the immense multitude, every
eye fixed upon her, and every ear listening for her words, the sounds
died upon her lips, and after a few ineffectual attempts to speak, she
buried her face in her veil, and sobbed aloud.

Who can describe the agitation of her aged father at this moment!
When she appeared, he had risen, and, leaning forward, listened with
a fearful eagerness, as though his ear would drink in every syllable,
and as though his own death-warrant hung upon her words. He became
pale as he saw her agitation, and his countenance varied with every
variation of hers; till, when he saw her total inability to speak, his
lips became of livid whiteness, he uttered a piercing shriek, and fell
senseless to the ground!

A bustle immediately took place; the duke was carried off; and Elvira
remained pale, trembling, and almost fainting, leaning against one of
the pillars that supported the canopy over the platform upon which she
stood. An awful pause ensued, which was at last broken by Lord Edmund
rushing forward, and eagerly addressing the crowd in the following
words:

"My friends and countrymen,

"If one spark of kindness and compassion dwell in your breasts; if
your hearts are open to noble feelings; if you can pity defenceless
age and helpless womanhood, listen to me now! Hear me whilst I plead
the cause of the timid female now before you; who, agitated by the
solemn occasion for which you are convened, and awed by the august
majesty of this assembly, finds it impossible to give vent to her
feelings in words; for difficult, indeed, is it to express by words
the strong emotions of the heart. Oh! would to Heaven, my friends,
that I could lay her heart open before you, that you might there read
the love of her country--the devotion to your dearest interests--and
the generous wish to sacrifice her domestic happiness to secure yours,
that prompt her this day to appear before you. Do you fear tyranny? Is
this trembling woman likely to impose it? Do you wish remission from
oppression? Is not she who evidently possesses such extreme sensibility
likely to relieve your cares? Can her breast, which now throbs with
emotion, ever be deaf to the cry of misery? No, no; that gentle spirit
which shrinks from exposure in the garish light of day, will devote
itself to soothing your woes, and lightening your burdens. Do you wish
for victory? Has not my arm been hitherto successful, and am I not
devoted to Elvira?

"My countrymen, I plead not from interested motives, God knows I do
not! Nay, there may be some among you who know I now plead for the
destruction of my dearest hopes: but the welfare of my country is more
to me than my own. I give my country the treasure that might have been
mine: contented, if by the sacrifice of my own happiness, I can secure
that of thousands.

"My countrymen, I cannot more strongly prove my devotion to your
interests, for if you choose Elvira for your Queen, my widowed heart
will have no bride but glory. Take, however, the treasure I resign to
you. Prize her as she deserves, and Heaven in its mercy grant that
prudent counsellors and sagacious statesmen may so direct her steps,
that victory may shine on her banners, wisdom in her counsels, and
happiness in her kingdom!"

Lord Edmund stopped, overpowered by his own emotions; and his agitation
found an echo in the bosom of every auditor. The effect of his speech
was instantaneous: cries of "Elvira shall be our Queen!" "Elvira for
ever!" rose in deafening tumult from the crowd, nor did there appear
a single dissentient voice. In fact, after all that can be said upon
the subject, feeling is the only true eloquence. The passions of the
crowd were strongly excited: the fainting of the duke; the agitation
of Elvira; and the speech of Lord Edmund, who was the hero of the
day, absolutely had driven them distracted. They shouted again and
again that Elvira, and Elvira alone, should be Queen, and, forming a
triumphal car, placed her in it, and dragged her along to Westminster
Abbey, where the ceremony of the coronation was appointed to take
place. This venerable pile, which had stood for centuries, and resisted
alike the war of nature, and the destroying hand of innovation, with
which the barbarous taste of the middle ages had endeavoured to destroy
its grandeur, shone forth in all its original splendour, and afforded
another magnificent proof of the length of time the labours of man
survive the term of his fragile existence.

It had been a brilliant sight, when Westminster Hall was crowded with
the nobles of the land, to choose the council of state; but far more
splendid was it now, when, after the religious part of the ceremony
of the coronation had been performed in the Abbey, the trembling
and beautiful Queen entered its sumptuous walls, surrounded by her
counsellors, and welcomed with transport by her kneeling subjects. All
had been previously prepared for the ceremony, as the ordinance of the
old Queen had directed the coronation to take place immediately after
the election; and the venerable Hall was now crowded with the nobles
and ladies of Claudia's court, splendidly attired, waiting for the
Queen, whom the choice of the deputies might give them, with the most
eager impatience. Elvira was received with transports; and though,
perhaps, under different circumstances, her rival might have been
honoured with equal rapture, yet, as Elvira knew it not, the thought
did not damp her pleasure.

In the mean time Father Morris had remained aghast, a prey to the
combined tortures of grief, rage, and disappointment. The crowd
had disappeared, yet still he stood gazing upon the platform, the
speechless image of despair.

"For Heaven's sake, do not remain here," cried a voice he knew only
too well; and, obeying the impulse of Marianne's arm, he suffered
himself to be led from the scaffold, where all his hopes had perished.
There was a small house, at no great distance from the spot, where the
partizans of Rosabella had held frequent conferences respecting their
plans for securing her election; and to this place Marianne led the
disappointed friar.

"Curses on the fiend that has betrayed me to my ruin!" said he, as he
threw himself upon a sofa in this abode: "may demons haunt him here,
and eternal misery be his portion hereafter!"

The fiendish laugh of Cheops rang in the father's ears as he pronounced
these words; and ere he finished, the hated form of the Mummy stood
before him.

"What, Father Morris!" cried the Egyptian, "is this your treatment of
your friends? Fie! fie! is this your strength of mind? I am ashamed of
you. Is it the part of a man of courage to shrink from such a slight
reverse? However, I am still your friend, and if you will follow my
advice--"

"Avaunt! demon!" cried Father Morris; "tempt me no more! Ruin hangs
upon thy words, and it is thy advice that has destroyed me."

"Say rather, your own evil passions," returned the Mummy.

"Fiend!" exclaimed the monk; "was it not by thy advice Rosabella
rejected the address I had prepared for her, and determined to deliver
her own sentiments extempore."

"Such an expression of her genuine feelings was likely to produce ten
times the effect of a studied address. The oration of Lord Edmund was
from the feeling of the moment, and you saw its power was magical."

"And it was not by your desire that the fool Lord Noodle seconded her,
instead of Lord Gustavus, as I had intended?"

"A ridiculous fool was more likely to put the people in good-humour
than a prosing one."

"Yes, yes, I know; it was thus you made your plans seem feasible, but
how have they succeeded?"

"Success is not always the test of merit. How could I foresee the
fainting of the duke, and the agitation of Elvira? That timid silence
said far more for her than words: if she had spoken, she would have had
no chance."

"Would she were dead!" said Father Morris, grinding his teeth.

"So would you seal your ruin. Rosabella would be suspected, and her
chance of reigning destroyed--destroyed for ever."

"What shall I do?"

"Let Elvira reign!--Nay, start not! for it is but for a time: she
will naturally make Edmund her first counsellor from gratitude for
the service he has rendered her; and, as he has sense and talent,
he will as naturally either reject employing the noble lords who
were your friends entirely; or, at best, give them but subordinate
situations. Their hopes having been previously raised, they will feel
this disappointment bitterly, and look back with longing eyes to
Rosabella, by whom they were promised place and power. That princess
must moderate her natural haughtiness: if she wish to reign, she must
submit to bend before she rise; for, though ambition be the most
lofty of all passions, perhaps no one makes its votaries occasionally
condescend to greater meanness. At present patience alone is required.
Novelty is always delightful; but the pleasure it produces can never
be lasting: and the expectations of men having been raised too high
by the brilliancy with which a new government is certain to commence,
they will soon be disposed to quarrel with every thing that may chance
to fall short of the standard they will then propose to themselves:
though this same standard, if they give themselves time to consider,
they would find far too exalted for mortals to have ever any hopes of
reaching. Their extravagant expectations not being realized, they will
then plunge into the opposite extreme; they will see every thing with
a jaundiced eye; and, not liking to own they find themselves deceived,
they will overturn the government of Elvira to conceal for ever the
folly they have been guilty of."

"But will not the government of Rosabella afterwards share the same
fate?"

"No: for they will have learnt wisdom by experience; and having just
suffered from the inconveniences inseparable from a revolution, they
will idolize every word and action of Rosabella, to spare themselves
the necessity of again undergoing the same horrors, and yet avoid the
charge of inconsistency. They will thus fear even to censure, and
will gloss over any thing that may not quite please them, rather than
run the risk of again interrupting that tranquillity which the late
disturbance has made them taste the sweets of."

The sophistry of Cheops was well suited to the feelings of his hearers;
and well did he know how to work upon the passions of those he
conversed with. The indignation of Father Morris and Marianne subsided,
and they again became the Egyptian's devoted slaves. Cheops watched
them as they retired; a smile of derision curling his haughty lip.

"Fools that they are!" said he, as again a fearful expression flashed
across his saturnine countenance: "by Typhon! they are scarcely worth
deceiving, for they rush blindfold into the net."

In the mean time, nothing could exceed the grandeur of the scene
exhibiting in Westminster Hall. The ceremony was finished; for
the Queen had taken oaths of fidelity to the interests of her new
subjects, and had received their humblest homage in return. A sumptuous
banquet was now served, where all that could please the eye mingled
in luxuriant profusion with all that could tempt the appetite. Music
completed the charm; and as the harmonious notes swelled through the
lofty dome, it seemed a choir of angels rejoicing from on high. Thus,
whilst all that could gratify the senses was combined, the fairy
loveliness of Elvira seemed to fit her well to be the goddess of the
scene; and the figure of the poor old duke, her father, gazing at her
with indescribable rapture--the tears trickling down his furrowed
cheeks, and his long white hair hanging loose upon his shoulders,
completed the interest of the picture.

Great and glorious was the triumph of Elvira: but, whilst the nation
rang with acclamations of joy, and bonfires and illuminations
proclaimed the transport of the people, who shall paint the despair,
the desolation, of the unfortunate Rosabella? Forlorn and deserted by
her friends; despised and injured by him she loved; disappointed in
the fairy dreams of her ambition; and disgusted with a world that had
rejected her--what could she do? where find a refuge from her woes?

Rosabella sought no refuge: wretched as she was, her proud spirit still
supported her: she neither retired from society, nor gave herself up
to the paroxysms of despair. Hers was not a mind to brood over useless
grief. She felt her wrongs, it is true, and most keenly did she feel
them, but she wasted not her time in lamentation, and burnt only to
avenge them. Marianne had communicated to her the advice of Cheops, and
her whole soul was now devoted to revenge. For this, she determined
to obey his injunctions; to bend her haughty spirit to his wishes; to
conciliate the friends that had deserted her; and to submit to any
meanness to keep up a party in the state. This done, she resolved to
watch for the errors unavoidable in a new government; to take advantage
of every weakness, and foment every discontent; in short, to open a
chasm under her rival's feet, and then, like the lion pismire on the
brink of his sandy trap, to rest concealed until the entanglement of
the expected prey enabled her to rush upon and destroy it.

Elvira's disposition was naturally noble; and, satisfied with the
possession of the throne, she sought no farther triumph. Her generous
soul was touched by the apparent resignation of her rival, and she
endeavoured, by every means in her power, to console her for her
disappointment. The duke had quitted the country, and now resided
entirely with his daughter; whilst upon Rosabella, Elvira, with the
utmost delicacy, conferred a palace and a separate establishment.

Notwithstanding, however, the delicacy with which Elvira's favours were
conferred, Rosabella could not forget that they were favours, and hers
was not a mind to brook dependence. Her hatred for her cousin thus
increased with the weight of her obligations, whilst that of Elvira
had vanished with the occasion that gave it birth. It is, indeed,
scarcely possible for a proud, haughty temper, like that of Rosabella,
to love the person to whom it owes every thing. Such dispositions find
infinitely more pleasure in obliging, than in being obliged--pride
being gratified in one case and humbled in the other. People are thus
often devotedly attached to their protégées, as they seem, in some
measure, creations of their own, and lavish favours upon them with
a profuse hand; but they often expect such devotion in return, that
love withers into slavery, or changes into hatred, and what was once
gratitude, soon becomes mortification.

Elvira had an arduous part to sustain. It was difficult to find the
medium between giving too much or too little; and more difficult still,
to discover a means of giving at all, without hurting the feelings of
Rosabella. The sense she had of this, rendered the manner of Elvira
towards her cousin, occasionally, cold and restrained, and Rosabella
felt acutely the slightest change. She, indeed, saw every thing with
a jaundiced eye: she imagined insults, where none were intended; she
shrank from the slightest observation, that could be supposed to
allude to her present situation; and she appeared to feel so much pain
whenever she was in the society of Elvira, that the intercourse between
the cousins gradually dwindled to a mere formal interchange of visits,
and the customary ceremonials of court etiquette.

The cousins thus completely estranged from each other, Rosabella's
palace became the resort of the discontented. The King of Ireland had
died soon after the departure of the Duke of Cornwall for the country,
and those malcontents, formerly in his pay, being repulsed by his son,
now crowded round Rosabella. Men of talents, but of dissolute habits;
daring spirits that preyed upon themselves for want of employment; and
desperate characters, to whom every change was agreeable, as they had
nothing to lose, and every thing to hope for by a revolution, vied with
each other in devoting themselves to her service. It was often grating
to Rosabella's feelings to associate with wretches such as these; but
to what cannot proud spirits sometimes submit, to gain the determined
purpose of their souls! Every thing is swallowed up in one vast
overwhelming passion, and minor difficulties are neither seen, thought
of, nor felt.

Thus, Rosabella scrupled not to waste her time in the society of such
beings as Lord Noodle and his friend Lord Doodle; she even stooped
to flatter them, and occasionally to ask, and appear to follow
their advice: she endured patiently the dictatorial prosing of Lord
Gustavus, and listened with an appearance of interest to the wearisome
pettinesses of Lord Maysworth. All she thought of, was whether any
particular line of conduct were likely to conduce to placing her on
the throne; and if it were, be it what it might, the haughty Rosabella
instantly condescended to practise it. Taught by the late events not
to rely too confidently upon her own strength, she rushed into the
opposite extreme, and descended even unto servility.

In the mean time, the attention of Elvira was completely devoted to the
establishment of her government. She had many qualities worthy of her
rank; and some of the most conspicuous were her nobleness in forgetting
injuries, and her inflexible sense of justice: thus, though she had
made no promises herself to her people on the day of her election, she
justly considered those made by Edmund on her part as equally binding,
and endeavoured by every means in her power to redeem the pledges he
had given. Cheops had judged rightly in supposing she would make Edmund
her prime minister--her gratitude to him, indeed, was unbounded; and
though her noble and generous disposition prevented her depriving the
lords who had voted against her of their dignities, yet that the strong
mind, and commanding genius of Edmund would make them dwindle into
nonentities, he had also been equally correct in predicting. The noble
lords, quite unconscious of their own inefficiency, were indignant at
finding themselves subalterns where they had hoped to be commanders,
and rallied round the standard of Rosabella, who, on her part, received
them so graciously, that her former haughtiness was forgotten.

Elvira was not aware of their defection, or if she were, she thought
them too insignificant to merit notice, her attention being entirely
occupied in affairs which she considered of infinitely more importance.
Though the laws of the old Queen had been excellent, many abuses had
crept into the manner of putting them into execution; and these Elvira
now, with the aid of Edmund, set herself diligently to work to discover
and correct. She could not, indeed, have chosen an assistant more
competent to the task. The penetrating mind and commanding genius of
Edmund were unequalled. With a single glance, he saw where errors had
been committed, and how they ought to be amended. Whilst under his
auspices, vice was punished and virtue rewarded, goodness, though in
rags, was raised to affluence, and villainy compelled to disgorge its
ill-gotten wealth. Justice was impartially dispensed to all, and the
first Monday in every month, the Queen proceeded in solemn state to the
grand square at Blackheath, to receive there, in person, the petitions
of her subjects.

The crowd assembled upon these occasions was immense. However well a
constitution may be organized, it is impossible to give satisfaction to
every one; and even under the best-regulated governments there will be
always some who fancy themselves aggrieved. Besides, as free access was
allowed on these occasions to every one, numbers went merely to see the
Queen; and nothing could be better contrived for letting her Majesty
know the real feelings of her subjects, than this arrangement; as,
from the people being placed in lines, along each of which the Queen
walked, she became alternately in personal contact with every separate
individual. Like every thing else, however, that sounds perfect in
theory, difficulties arose when this plan came to be put in practice:
it was originally intended that the Queen should receive, with her own
hands, and read herself, all the petitions that might be presented; but
when it was found their numbers frequently amounted to some thousands,
this scheme was abandoned as impracticable, and the Lords Noodle and
Doodle were appointed to the important office of walking behind the
Queen, carrying large bags, in which the petitions were deposited,
and from which they would probably never again have emerged, if they
had not been dragged to light by the persevering and indefatigable
exertions of Lord Edmund.

The people, however, were not aware of this, and there was something in
the show that delighted them. It was indeed a fine sight, to behold so
many hundreds of human beings anxiously watching the movements of their
beautiful Queen, as she glided along their ranks, smiling graciously
upon all, and looking like an angel sent upon earth to dispense
blessings to mankind: ladies of honour walking behind her, with pages
bearing their train, and the two aged counsellors of state, bending
beneath the weight of their ponderous bags, bringing up the rear.

Thus gloriously commenced Elvira's reign. The people, delighted with
the attention paid to their wishes, and struck by some instances of
the Queen's love of justice and hatred of oppression, lauded her to
the skies; the nobility, hoping riches and power from her liberality,
almost worshipped her; and the ambassadors of foreign powers, dreading
the valour of Lord Edmund and his soldiers, offered the humblest homage
at her feet. In short, all seemed to smile upon her, and the kingdom to
bid fair shortly to rival even the imagined happiness of Utopia itself.



CHAPTER XIX.


In the mean time, what had become of Edric and Dr. Entwerfen? Gloomy
indeed were the reflections of our travellers when they found
themselves immured in a dungeon, so far from all they loved or
reverenced, without friends, and accused of a horrible crime, from the
guilt of which they felt it would be vain for them to attempt to free
themselves. Days and weeks rolled on, yet no change took place in their
destiny. Every night the grating of a rusty key in the lock announced
the arrival of the gaoler, bringing their daily pittance of bread and
water, but he never spoke, nor could the most earnest entreaties of the
doctor and Edric bring one word from his lips.

Despair at length began to invade the bosoms of the travellers;
till one day, as they were examining, for the thousandth time, the
hieroglyphics on the stones in the wall, Edric perceived that one
of them was loose. With infinite difficulty they removed the stone,
and found a long vaulted passage, dimly lighted by an opening at the
farther extremity. The transport of the prisoners, on making this
discovery, was unbounded, and can only be imagined by those who have
felt the loss of liberty, and rejoiced at its recovery.

When their first raptures had a little abated, they began to consult
upon the best means of availing themselves of their good fortune,
and preventing pursuit. The doctor had luckily several chemical
preparations in his walking-stick; with one of these he dissolved
the iron of their chains, so as to free Edric and himself from their
weight, and then, smearing them over with the remainder of the
composition, he laid them in a heap, exclaiming with a laugh, "The
jailors will be dreadfully frightened when they find these fetters; for
though they look perfect to the eye, they will crumble to pieces at the
slightest touch."

Edric was too anxious to effect his escape, to listen to his tutor's
exultation; and his arrangements being made, the travellers, with
trembling steps and throbbing hearts, explored the vaulted passage, and
found, to their infinite delight, that it had led them to the borders
of the Nile. A small boat was anchored to the shore, and its crew, an
old man and his son, who gained their living by conveying goods up the
Nile, were peaceably taking their supper on the bank.

Edric and the doctor had taken the precaution to replace the stone that
had concealed the vaulted passage, and having smeared the opposite
wall with phosphorus, they had no doubt that when the jailor entered
the prison, which he generally did in darkness, he would be too much
alarmed to take any effectual means for pursuing them till it should be
too late. Having luckily also plenty of money, that certain road to the
human heart, they easily persuaded the old man to take them on board,
and in a short time they embarked in his fragile vessel and set sail.

Slowly and silently they floated along the majestic river, which rolled
in solemn waves like an inland sea, and swept proudly on to the ocean,
seeming to scorn the degenerate land it left behind; and without one
pang did our travellers quit for ever the fertile plains and gorgeous
cities of Egypt. One only thought swelled in their bosoms, and that
was joy at their escape. Offering up silent prayers of thanksgiving,
our travellers continued their progress down the river, and, when
morning dawned, and the enormous forms of the Pyramids were seen
grimly frowning through the mist, they shuddered involuntarily, and,
devoutly crossing themselves, muttered new prayers for protection and
deliverance.

After a long and tedious voyage, our travellers at length reached the
sea in safety. The mouths of the Delta were at that time the seat of
extensive, and almost universal commerce; and our travellers trembled
lest they should here encounter some emissary of their enemies, who
might re-convey them to the prison from which they had so miraculously
escaped. They found, however, the belief of their supernatural
disappearance too strongly impressed upon the minds of the multitude
for even a suspicion of their existence to remain; and they stood upon
that sumptuous quay, surrounded by Greeks, Russians, Egyptians, Arabs,
and Turks, without exciting a single remark, or obtaining the slightest
attention. They wished to proceed to Constantinople, then the capital
of the powerful empire of Greece, and entered into conversation with
the master of a felucca, for that purpose.

"I will attend to you directly, gentlemen," said the sailor, leaving
some persons with whom he had been previously talking: "but I have been
listening to such a horrid tale!"

"What was it?" asked Edric, suspecting the subject, but aware that
to seem incurious upon such an occasion, might betray that they were
already only too well informed.

"Two sorcerers," returned the man, "have been taken into custody, for
blowing up the Pyramids and bewitching the mummies!"

"And how were they punished?" asked Edric.

"Oh, you haven't heard half they did yet!" said the man. "When they
were put in prison for their pranks, the Old One came to their help,
and carried them off in a flame of fire, leaving a long train of light
after them in the sky, like the tail of a blazing comet. Dick Jones,
who was telling me, swears he saw them all going off together. The old
one hanging by the Devil's horn, and the young one keeping fast hold of
his tail!"

"Shocking!" said Edric; scarcely able, however, to repress a smile at
this proof of the vividness of Dick Jones's imagination.

"I haven't told you half," resumed the man. "All Sumatra rings with it;
several have gone mad, and others died with fear; and the man who was
with Dick Jones, and who was one of the soldiers of the guard set over
them, assured me as a positive fact, that the chains they had had on,
and left behind them, crumbled between his fingers like a bit of rotten
wood."

"It is very awful!" said Edric.

"Ay, is it not?" rejoined the man; "thank God I was not there to see!
I am sure the very look of one of those conjurors would have driven me
mad! I never could abide such things."

Edric now, with some difficulty, persuaded the man to return to the
subject of their transit.

"I am very sorry, Sir," said he; "but I don't think there'll be a
vessel going out to Constantinople for this week at least; for they've
got the plague there, and our magistrates won't let a ship that has
been there, return to our harbour again without performing quarantine;
and that is such a hindrance to trade that our folks don't like it. But
perhaps you're in no hurry, and can wait?"

"Oh yes, we can wait quite well!" said the doctor, trembling with
anxiety to be off.

The sailor, however, had no occasion to say more; for the bare mention
of the plague was quite sufficient to deter our travellers from
visiting Constantinople; and finding he was bound for Malta, and that
no other vessel would quit the harbour that day, they hastily embarked,
notwithstanding his vessel was old and inconvenient, and not forwarded
by steam, and though the superior certainty of the steam-packets was
now so generally felt and acknowledged by all, that perhaps this was
the only common sailing-boat in the harbour. The joy of our travellers
at their deliverance was, however, too great to permit them to dwell
upon trifles; and as the cabin was scarcely habitable, they resolved to
remain on deck the whole of the voyage, being determined to submit to
any thing sooner than delay their departure. Accordingly they stretched
themselves upon their cloaks, and, reclining against some ropes,
watched attentively the lovely scene around them. The evening was
beautiful, and, as the shores of Egypt swiftly receded from their view,
they felt their minds soothed by the contemplation of the grand scene
that presented itself. There is, indeed, something in the awful majesty
of the world of waters, which, like the gigantic monuments of Egypt,
powerfully affects the mind by its very simplicity, and, by raising the
soul far above the common trifling occurrences of life, soothes it to
tranquillity.

The voyage was long, for contrary winds impeded their progress; and
one evening, after Dr. Entwerfen had remained for some time gazing
steadfastly on the water, with a look of deep abstraction, he exclaimed
suddenly, "There will be a storm!"

"Impossible!" returned Edric. "The sun set in unwonted splendour,
spreading its rays of purple and gold through the waters like a
jewelled diadem; and the wind is even now dying away to a gentle
breeze, which scarcely curls the surface of the ocean as our bark
dances gaily over it."

"That is a bad sign," said the doctor. "Have you not often heard that
a storm is generally preceded by a calm? You will find it no metaphor
now."

The moon soon shone brightly; and as the ship ploughed her way slowly
through the almost motionless waves, its beams sparkled through the
spray, which fell in silvery showers over the prow. All now was still,
except the heaving of the vessel, and the monotonous splashing of the
waters as she slowly worked her way through them. The wind gradually
sunk, and the sails only feebly flapped in the breeze that could no
longer inflate them, till at last even that failed, and the vessel,
completely becalmed, lay like a log upon the water, which spread like a
vast and tranquil mirror around her.

Bitterly now did our travellers regret the precipitate haste that had
made them embark in such a frail, unmanageable boat; and they regarded
with longing eyes the compact steam-packets that glided past them;
their black smoke curling in the air as they were wafted swiftly along.
It was too late, however, to repent; and the doctor consoled himself by
taking advantage of the effect produced by the thick black smoke, as
they saw it rising in the distance, to illustrate the lecture he had
formerly given his pupil, on the theory of combustion and decomposition
of amphlites, till he fairly lulled him to sleep.

Morning came, but brought not with it the wished-for breeze. Edric
rose, and walking upon deck, encountered the doctor. "How still all
seems!" said he; "Nature seems to sleep: but 'tis an awful stillness,
such as falls upon a dying patient, prophetic of his end. Nature seems
exhausted, and I could fancy is seeking a short repose to rally her
energies for some decisive blow."

"You are fanciful, Edric," said the doctor; "you alarm yourself
unnecessarily. The violent shock your nerves have sustained, unfits you
for exertion, and renders you disposed to see every thing in a gloomy
light."

"I beg your pardon, Sir," said a ragged English sailor, who happened
to be on board; "in my opinion the gentleman is right, for every
thing portends a storm. Cirro-strati streak the sky, and as they join
with the fleecy cumuli below them in cumulus-strati, nothing can more
clearly indicate wind and rain, and probably thunder. And see, too, how
the dark, frowning nimbus spreads its black shade along the edge of the
horizon, and how the birds fly cowering, almost touching the waters
with their wings as they flit along. Now it begins, hark!"

Whilst the sailor had been speaking, the clouds had thickened
gradually, and the sky had grown dark as night. A hollow murmuring was
heard, which seemed to gather fury as it came, till it burst over the
devoted vessel with terrific violence, and rent the sails to atoms,
whistling round in fearful gusts, as though mocking the mischief it had
done. The sea now heaved mountains high. The forked lightning played
like writhing serpents along the deep black sky; now streaming like
floating ribands in the air, and then darting downwards like fiery
arrows. Thunder rolled heavily in the distance, approaching however
nearer and nearer, every peal reverberating through the sky, as though
echoed back by unseen rocks, till at last a tremendous crash announced
the fall of the electric fluid. Our travellers were preparing to retire
below, when, just as they reached the cabin stairs, the heavens seemed
to open, and a ball of light-blue fire, of a most vivid brightness,
shot downwards from the chasm, and struck the mast of the labouring
ship. Immediately after, a loud crackling noise rattled over their
heads, and then all again was still, save the howling winds, and the
groans of some prostrate seamen, wounded by the scattered fragments of
the splintered mast.

The rain now descended in torrents, and the feeble vessel, at one
moment raised to a fearful height, then dashed down, and apparently
engulphed by the heavy seas that washed over her, seemed every instant
doomed to destruction, and to escape only by a miracle. The shouts of
the seamen, and creaking of the strained timbers of the ship, mingled
horribly with the howling of the wind, and roar of the billows. Every
instant it was expected she must go to pieces; for she had sprung
a leak, and the water rose so fast as to baffle every attempt made
to check its progress. The seamen were now in despair: they broke
open their trunks, and dressing themselves in their best clothes,
they filled their pockets with all the valuables they could find:
then, whilst some went to prayers, others broke open the captain's
spirit-chest, and many rolled overboard in a state of intoxication,
whilst the ship, now become a perfect wreck, drifted before the wind,
and was rapidly sinking. The storm, however, seeming to abate, the
master ordered out the boat, and all the seamen who retained their
senses, eagerly sprang on board. Our travellers attempted to follow,
but the seamen pushed them back, and exclaiming the boat was full,
rowed off, leaving them to their fate.

The English sailor had been in the act of stepping on board the boat,
the very moment she pushed off, and the sudden shock precipitated him
into the sea. A piercing scream burst from his lips, as his body, with
a dying effort, sprang from the waves, which seemed to rise after him
and suck him back into their gulph. Our friends heard the cry, and
rushed to the side of the vessel, but alas! they were powerless to save
him: the ship drifted rapidly by, they saw his hands gleam for a moment
through the waves, as he raised them in agony, and then the roaring
billows rolled on, deep, black, and gloomy as before.

The horror of Edric and the doctor was excessive; but the impending
terrors of their own fate prevented the possibility of their minds
dwelling long upon his. The storm, however, visibly abated, and the
dismantled hulk they were upon, lightened by the desertion of the
sailors, still swam: light, fleecy clouds now scudded rapidly along the
skies, and the moon, struggling to break forth from behind them, shed a
faint and watery gleam upon the scene.

Our travellers now, by the feeble light afforded by the moonbeams,
perceived the boat labouring heavily through the dark-grey sea, and
struggling to reach a long black line of rocks, distinctly marked
in the distance, against which the still boiling waters broke with
tremendous roar, curling in whitened foam as they laved their craggy
sides; whilst the wreck our travellers were upon, seemed rapidly
drifting upon the same point. Death now appeared inevitable, as it was
impossible their shattered bark could resist the shock, if it should
be tossed against these jagged crags; and every moment she seemed
rising upon a wave that must dash her upon them, and floating back to
escape only by a miracle. The doctor and Edric became giddy with these
repeated shocks, and in despair fancied themselves resigned; or rather,
stunned by the misfortunes which had followed each other with such
overwhelming rapidity upon their devoted heads, they awaited their fate
with an apathy which they mistook for resignation.

The seamen in the boat still continued labouring on, straining every
nerve to reach the shore, though ineffectually; for the foaming surge
beat them back with repeated, with resistless violence. With anxious
eyes and beating hearts, our friends marked the progress of the boat;
till, giddy with watching, and feeling their spirits exhausted as they
surveyed the fruitless struggle of the toiling boatmen, they hid their
faces with their hands, and shut it from their sight.

At this instant a wild and piercing cry rang in their ears:--'twas
from the boat. She had swamped; the human beings she contained were
all swallowed up in the boiling waves, and that shriek of agony was
their funeral knell. A horrid silence followed this appalling scream,
unbroken save by the lashing of the billows against the rocks, and the
low, half-suppressed moaning of the winds,--till the senses of the
travellers became bewildered, and they shrieked in agony. Their peril
indeed grew every moment more intense, for every wave carried them
nearer and nearer to those frowning crags, whilst their dark sides,
rearing themselves in awful majesty, seemed mustering their strength
to repel the insolent intruders that sought to invade their territory.
The doctor and Edric, in the mean time, suffering a thousand deaths
in the protracted horrors they were compelled to endure, and which
they could neither mitigate nor evade, shrank back with the shivering
of affrighted nature trembling at dissolution, every time the wave on
which their vessel floated seemed to dash against the shore.

At length, however, the fate they had so long dreaded arrived. Their
shattered hulk was raised on a tremendous billow, and thrown with
fearful violence upon the rocks, with a force that shivered it to
atoms, and engulphed the doctor and Edric in the boiling surge. The
next wave, however, returning, swept them along in its bosom, and threw
them, perfectly insensible, though locked in each other's arms, upon
the shore.



CHAPTER XX.


It was morning, and the glowing sunbeams danced gaily on the sparkling
waters of the dark blue deep, as, gently rippling, it laved the
rocky shore on which Edric and his tutor had been thrown; and seemed
to smile, as if in mockery of the mischiefs it had wrought. There,
sheltered by a rock, whose jutting crag had saved them from being
carried back into the devouring ocean, lay our travellers, apparently
buried in sleep; returning consciousness not having yet dispelled the
torpor produced by the fearful terrors of the night. The sun now shone
brightly, and its glowing heat revived Edric from his trance. Slowly
and heavily he unclosed his languid eyes, and, forgetting where he was,
attempted to rise. He succeeded; but weak and dizzy, he only staggered
a few paces ere he again fell: the roaring of the ocean still sounded
in his ears, his senses swam, and, giddy and enfeebled by his previous
exhaustion, he fancied himself still tossed upon the foaming billows.
For some time, he lay in a state of torture, the thrill of returning
circulation tingling through his veins, till the recollection of what
had passed flashing across his mind, he again endeavoured to rouse
himself, and seek his tutor. The unfortunate doctor, however, appeared
to be no more, and as Edric gazed upon his inanimate form, he might
have exclaimed with Prince Henry, "I could have better spared a better
man."

At this moment, Edric recollected the strong chemical preparations the
doctor generally carried about him, and, searching his pockets, found
a potent elixir. With some difficulty, he forced a few drops down his
throat, taking a dose also himself. The effects of the medicine were
soon visible: the doctor heaved a deep sigh, and, opening his eyes,
gazed vacantly around, whilst Edric himself felt perfectly restored.

"Where am I?" cried Doctor Entwerfen, as soon as he was sufficiently
recovered to speak, and then, as some of the horrors he had so lately
witnessed recurred to his mind, he exclaimed:--"I will never disclose
it--no torture shall compel me; where is the justice? He fled away in a
flame of fire hanging to the Devil's horn. Ah, Edric! where are we? Ah!
I have had such a horrid dream."

"Alas!" returned Edric, "it is but too real!"

"What! what!" cried the doctor, getting up and staring wildly around
him; "I remember now, we were drowned--but where--where are we?"

"I know not," replied his pupil mournfully. "You forget I have been
exposed to the same perils as yourself, and that I am equally ignorant
where fate has thrown us. I should think, however, from the position we
were in when the storm began, that we are somewhere on the shores of
the Mediterranean; but whether in Europe or Africa, I have as yet had
no means of ascertaining."

"We must explore," said the doctor solemnly; "we ought not to remain in
doubt another instant upon so important a subject. Follow me!"

They now quitted the rocky beach on which they had so long lain, and
advanced towards some cliffs which shut them out from the view of the
surrounding country. When they had surmounted this natural barrier,
they found the prospect that presented itself superb; and their eyes
wandered with delight over orange groves and forests of cork-trees;
whilst the green shining leaves, and rich scarlet blossoms of the
pomegranates, and light tender waving foliage of the olive, afforded
variety to the scene. The burning heat of the sun's rays felt softened
by the breezes from the sea; a balmy fragrance seemed to pervade the
air; birds flew twittering around them, or, perched upon the branches
of the trees, made the groves resound with melodious harmony; whilst
butterflies of the most brilliant colours fluttered from flower to
flower, and innumerable buzzing insects seemed to fill the air with
motion.

"What a lovely country!" said the doctor, as he and Edric penetrated
into the deep recesses of a shady grove; "and how delightful is this
sensation of refreshing coolness, after having been exposed to the
burning rays of the sun! It is yet early, for the sun has not yet
reached far above the horizon, and the dew-drops still glisten in his
rays like diamonds hanging from every leaf. Where can we be? Surely we
are not dead, and now in Paradise!"

Edric smiled: "I rather think," said he, "that we are in Andalusia.
I have often read of the exquisite beauty of some of the southern
provinces of Spain, and this seems well to accord with the ideas I have
always entertained of that country."

They now approached what appeared to be a cemetery, and which was
tastefully adorned with weeping willows hanging over the graves; whilst
roses, and a thousand beautiful flowering shrubs, flourishing in wild
luxuriance from the genial nature of the climate, spread around, and
gave this receptacle of the mouldering remains of mortality the aspect
of a blooming garden.

"How different from the Pyramids!" exclaimed the doctor and Edric at
the same moment.

"The tomb-stones seem to have inscriptions upon them," continued the
former, after a short pause; "let us approach and examine them: they
will at least declare the country we are in, by the language in which
they may be written."

The idea struck Edric as feasible, and they entered the cemetery. "You
are right, Edric," said the doctor; "we are in Spain, for here lie the
mortal remains of Don Alfonso, that mighty hero of the Bourbon race,
who, you doubtless remember, was the first that conquered the northern
part of Africa, and by transferring the seat of the Spanish empire to
Fez, contributed so powerfully to the civilization and conversion to
Christianity of all that vast territory."

"And who destroyed Spain as a monarchy, by so doing," added Edric.

"It is true," replied the doctor, "that Spain, finding itself too
mighty for a province, shook off in consequence the yoke of his
descendants, and erected its present republic, which it most probably
would never have done if the seat of government had remained at Madrid.
But that is trifling compared with the inestimable benefits produced to
the world at large, by the civilization and reduction to a Christian
state, of such a mighty empire as that of Morocco. Had it not been for
that, we might still have remained in the degrading ignorance in which
mankind were immersed for so many centuries respecting the interior of
Africa:--Timbuctoo would never have risen to its present eminence in
science and commerce; the real course of the Niger would never have
been discovered: and the sources of the Nile still remained wrapped
in oblivion. Yes, mighty shade! thou wert indeed a hero! Calumny may
assail thy fame, and unenlightened minds cavil at the wonders of thy
glory; but one firm and attached votary still remains to thee, and thus
he humbly bends to do thee homage."

So saying, the doctor prostrated himself upon the tomb, and
reverentially kissed the cold marble inscribed with the hero's
name.--"Hold! hold!" cried a man, rushing from behind a small temple,
and seizing him, whilst in an instant Edric and his tutor found
themselves surrounded by soldiers, whose grim visages spoke them inured
to blood and warfare.--"Wretch!" exclaimed the leader, apostrophizing
the terrified doctor; "but thy life shall soon pay the forfeit of thy
crimes. Away with him!" continued he, addressing his soldiers; "bear
him before the next alcaide, and let him there suffer the punishment
the law enacts against all those who dare to praise the actions or
worship the memory of the tyrannic Alfonso--Away with him, I say."

"Mercy! mercy!" implored the doctor.

"Impossible!" said the leader sternly; "do you not know that this is
a land of liberty, and that we abhor the very name of tyranny and
oppression? How then can the admirer of a tyrant hope for mercy at our
hands? Away with him, I say, and with his companion too; for as they
appear to be associates, no doubt their principles are the same."

"And do you call this a land of liberty?" asked Edric reproachfully.

"Hear him! he blasphemes!" cried the soldiers; "gag him if he
dare again to breathe such impiety!" and amidst their shouts and
execrations, Edric and his tutor were dragged away. Taught by this
lesson that the liberty of the republican Spaniards did not extend to
the tolerance of any opinions except their own, Edric and the doctor
did not again venture to speak; and they soon, to their infinite
dismay, found themselves in the presence of the alcaide; who, however,
luckily for our travellers, happened to be a man of some sense and
liberality. He smiled when he heard the substance of the facts gravely
stated against the prisoners. "This case requires a private hearing,"
said he: "Velasquez, conduct the prisoners to my own apartment."

"We will have no private hearing," clamoured the people and the
soldiers. "The crime was public, and the punishment should be so too;
we will not be gulled."

"But, gentlemen," said the magistrate, "supposing these prisoners
to be part of a gang of conspirators who have been plotting against
the state, it might defeat the ends of justice to have them examined
publicly; as it is possible--mind, gentlemen, I only say, as it is
possible--some traitors may lurk even among the crowd before me, who
might give intelligence to other parties interested, who might be thus
enabled to make their escape."

"Ay, now you speak reason," said the mob; "we are always willing to
listen to reason;" and without farther remonstrance they permitted the
alcaide and the prisoners to retire.

"You see, gentlemen," said the alcaide, shutting the door of the room
carefully, and placing chairs, in which he invited his prisoners to sit
down, "that all is not liberty which is called so, and that a mob can
occasionally be as tyrannical as an emperor. I know that in reality
there is not a shadow of complaint against you; yet I dare not release
you, as my own life would be the forfeit if I did. You must thus submit
to a temporary restraint, which you may rest assured I shall not only
endeavour to shorten, but shall render as light as possible whilst I am
compelled to inflict it."

"My dear sir," said the doctor, "we are exceedingly obliged by your
kindness. If we had not met with you, I do not know what would have
become of us. I could not have believed people were in existence so
illiberal as these Spaniards, or that any human beings could be so weak
as to fancy themselves in a land of liberty whilst they are practising
the most refined tyranny."

"And yet my countrymen are neither fools nor hypocrites," returned
the alcaide; "but, like many other people, they deceive themselves,
and talk about freedom till they fancy they possess it. Their great
fault, however, has been, that they did not know where to stop; and as
even virtue becomes vice when carried to the extreme, so have the most
sublime principles of liberty and patriotism become degraded in their
hands, by being attempted to be carried to an exaggerated degree of
perfection!"

"Oh, England! England!" sighed the doctor; "would to Heaven I had never
left thy happy shores! Alas! alas! what a crowd of horrible events have
occupied the last few months!"

"Why did you leave your country, since you so bitterly regret it?"
demanded the alcaide.

"Because we could not be contented," replied Edric. "Devoted from
my earliest youth to the pursuits of science, I craved ardently
for knowledge denied to mortals; I aspired to penetrate into the
profoundest secrets of Nature, and burnt to accomplish wishes destined
never to be realized. The desire of seeing foreign countries also
filled my soul: I longed to travel, to acquire new ideas and meet
with strange and wonderful adventures; I sickened of the quiet and
tranquillity of home. 'Give me change,' cried I in my madness, 'give me
variety, and I ask no more; for even wretchedness itself were better
to bear than this tiresome unvarying uniformity.' The unreasonableness
of my wishes deserved punishment, and I have been curst with the very
fulfilment of my wishes."

"Is this gentleman also a votary of science?" asked the alcaide, who
had appeared musing whilst Edric spoke.

"What a question!" exclaimed the doctor, in a transport of indignation.
"What! has my whole life been devoted to scientific pursuits! have I
deprived myself of rest and almost of food! and wasted the midnight
lamp in bringing to perfection some of the most sublime discoveries
ever vouchsafed to man, to be insulted suited with such a doubt
as that? Know, sir, that you see before you Doctor Entwerfen, the
fortunate inventor of the immortalizing snuff, one single pinch of
which cures all diseases by the smell; the discoverer of the capability
of caoutchouc being applied to aërial purposes; and the maker of the
most compendious and powerful galvanic battery ever yet beheld by
mortal!"

"Then you are the very man I want," said the alcaide; "go to prison
contentedly, and rest satisfied that your confinement will be of very
short duration. In a day or two I will see you, and explain the project
I have conceived for your deliverance."

So saying, he summoned his guards, and, ordering them to convey the
travellers to prison, the doctor and Edric were dragged away, and,
being immured in separate dungeons, were left there to ruminate upon
the varied and busy scenes in which they had been so lately engaged.
Sadly and heavily passed the time; yet days and weeks rolled on ere
they again saw the alcaide. At length, when they had begun almost to
despair, they were reconducted to his presence.

"Do you understand the management of an electrical machine?" asked he
abruptly.

"Certainly!" cried the doctor, transported with joy at the question,
before Edric, who was half blinded by the sudden change from his gloomy
prison to the broad light of day, had sufficiently recovered himself to
reply.

"Then it is in your own power to set yourselves free," continued the
alcaide. "The principal general of the army stationed here is ill;
a powerful party exists against him who wish his death, at the head
of whom stands the leader who was the cause of your being taken into
custody. The general himself is a mere nonentity; but the opposite
party, to which I belong, wish to save his life, as his name affords a
sanction under which they can act. He is now ill of a palsy, and has
been recommended to try the effects of an electrical shock. A machine
has been with difficulty procured in this remote district; but the
philosopher of the army being lately dead, and another not having been
yet appointed, no one here knows how to apply it. Now, if you--"

"Say no more!" cried the doctor, interrupting him, in a transport of
delight; "say no more--I see, I comprehend the whole! I shall restore
him, and receive my liberty as the reward. Nay more, I shall obtain
immortality amongst the Spaniards by the deed; their poets will sing my
fame, and their historians will pause upon the fact!"

"You will undertake it then?" said the alcaide, and, reading an
indignant affirmative in the doctor's looks, he led the way to a camp,
at a short distance from the village, where the paralytic general was
sitting in a kind of throne, placed without his tent, and surrounded by
the principal officers of his staff; the electrical machine, a large,
clumsy, heavy-looking thing, standing before him. The doctor looked
with dismay at this unwieldy apparatus, so different from his own neat,
powerful compendium of science, as he was wont to call it; and saw with
infinite horror that even its construction was totally different from
those he had been accustomed to. His natural vanity and presumption,
however, revolted from making this mortifying acknowledgment,
particularly after the boasts he had been indulging in to the alcaide;
and, relying upon his general knowledge of the principles of science,
he walked boldly up to the machine, with as much composure and
self-confidence as though he had been accustomed to the management of
it all his life.

A considerable trepidation, however, crept over him as he examined
it and found its movements intricate and complicated in the extreme;
and his hands trembled, and a thick film came over his eyes, as he
attempted to charge and adjust the cylinder. No time, however, was
allowed for deliberation; he was ordered to apply it instantly; and,
terrified by the recollection of the prompt manner in which the
Spaniards were accustomed to make themselves obeyed, and the already
long and severe imprisonment he had undergone, he set it in motion:
an unlucky wire, however, which he did not quite understand, pointed
upwards, and he tried in vain to arrange it; he tried again, but was
instantly felled to the ground by a tremendous shock, whilst a loud
crash of thunder burst with violence over his head, and a vivid flash
of lightning proclaimed that the ill-managed machine had drawn down
the electric fluid from a heavy cloud, that happened unfortunately to
be just above them, upon the head of the unfortunate general, whom it
scorched to a cinder, levelling some of his officers to the earth,
and scattering the rest in all directions. For the moment, the doctor
himself was blinded by the sudden light, and, when he recovered his
sight, the first thing that met his eyes was his friend the alcaide
sticking fast by the skirts of his coat in a hedge.

Terrified at the mischief he had done, the first impulse of the learned
doctor was to run away; but, notwithstanding the general confusion
and dismay, the first intimation he showed of his design, drew around
him a crowd of soldiers, like peasants round a mad dog, who seemed to
think him as little entitled to mercy as though he had really been one
of those unfortunate animals. "Cut him down!" cried one--"blow his
brains out!" shouted another--"chop his head off!" screamed a third;
and summary punishment would instantly have been inflicted, if the
alcaide, who in the mean time had contrived to extricate himself from
his uncomfortable situation, had not interfered. "Villain!" cried he,
as soon as he had recovered his breath--for being rather fat, he found
flying exercise rather too violent to suit his taste; "is this the
manner in which you treat me? Was it for this I brought you to the
camp, and would have made your fortune? Wretch that you are! hanging is
too good for you, and impaling alive mercy to what you deserve.--Away
to prison with him! he merits not a death so easy as you would give
him; carry him back to his dungeon, and let him there await what
punishment the council of state may judge fit for killing a general and
frightening an alcaide out of his senses."

"Mercy! mercy!" screamed the doctor; but his cries were disregarded,
and he and Edric were dragged back to prison, deprived of every hope
of obtaining forgiveness. Sadly and silently passed the hours in this
gloomy abode; for, though the doctor and his pupil were now permitted
to be together, little communication took place between them, as,
though Edric was too good-natured to upbraid his unfortunate companion,
yet it was past the power of human nature not to feel enraged at the
folly that had drawn them into so disagreeable a situation.

The poor doctor, however, needed not to be upbraided; for the
reproaches of his own conscience were more bitter than any Edric could
have lavished on him. "I am lost!" cried he; "ruined, and utterly
undone! Not only my body will perish miserably, but my fame, my
immortal fame is destroyed--oh! I shall go distracted!"

In this manner he lamented; wringing his hands and tearing his hair,
whilst Edric felt too angry to attempt to console him.

"Speak to me, Edric, dear," cried the poor doctor at last, quite in
despair at his silence; "for Heaven's sake, speak to me! Do let me
hear the sound of some voice, besides my own and that of those cursed
Spaniards. Oh, Edric! Edric! solitary confinement is quite enough to
drive a man distracted; but to have a companion in such a place as
this, and he to refuse to speak--Oh, Edric! Edric! your heart must be
turned to stone, if you can resolve to use me so cruelly."

Edric was moved by the doctor's sorrow.

"What do you wish me to say?" asked he, smiling.

"Oh, now that's like yourself," cried the poor doctor, bursting into
tears, and throwing his arms round Edric's neck, whilst he sobbed upon
his shoulder like a child. "Now I shall die happy! I don't care what
they do to me; I am quite ready for any thing that may happen."

Edric was affected by the doctor's manner, and returning his embrace
warmly, he could not restrain his own tears.

"Oh! my dear, dear Edric!" cried the doctor; "how I love you! would to
Heaven I could save you! I would not care for myself."

"And I would not accept of liberty without you, my dear tutor, I assure
you!" returned Edric. "No, no! the perils we have undergone together
have added new force to the ties that formerly united us; and our fate
now, be it good or ill, shall be the same. It is possible, however,
that there may be some means of escape."

"Alas! no!" said the doctor mournfully; seeing Edric look round at
the walls and windows: "this is the same dungeon I have been so long
confined in, and not even a mouse could get out of it without the
keeper's permission."

"What is to be done, then?" cried Edric.

"Ay," returned the doctor; "what, indeed! However, it is certainly
a great comfort to have a companion in one's misery; and though my
prospects are certainly not much improved since you joined me, my cares
are lessened at least one-half."

"Oh! my poor father!" exclaimed Edric. "The hardest part of my fate
seems to die without obtaining his forgiveness! Alas! if he could see
me now, he would surely repent his ill-timed severity. Fain would
I also know what has passed in England since we left it: if Edmund
be married, and if Claudia still reigns. It was spring when we left
England, it is now winter: alas! alas! how many changes this brief
space of time may have produced. If, however, my father's life has been
spared, I care not for the rest."

"How little did we anticipate," said the doctor, "when we first
proposed to travel, the misfortunes that were to attend us! Alas! they
seem a just punishment for our crime, in presuming to wish to pry into
secrets never intended to be revealed to man."

"Can you believe it," returned Edric, "but in spite of all the
misfortunes I have suffered, a restless curiosity to know the fate
of the Mummy we so strangely resuscitated, is one of the strongest
feelings in my bosom."

"I can readily credit it," said the doctor; "for the same feeling
operates upon me! It is, however, vain to indulge in useless regrets:
we must die; and all we have to do, is to endeavour to become resigned
to our fate."



CHAPTER XXI.


A few days after this, the prisoners were honoured by another visit
from the alcaide.

"Thank God!" cried Edric involuntarily, as soon as he saw him; for, as
he felt confident that the anger he had expressed against them, had
been assumed, he hoped he was now come to save them.

"Alas!" returned the worthy magistrate, "I fear you have little reason
to be thankful. All my endeavours to save you have only succeeded in
obtaining a few hours respite, and to-morrow morning you are condemned
to be burnt alive."

"Oh!" shrieked the doctor; whilst even Edric's courage could not
prevent his turning deathly pale. "It is dreadful," said he, "to die
thus so young in a foreign country, and by such fearful means."

"Oh! don't talk of it," sobbed the doctor. "My poor dear, dear Edric!
Save him, sir! in mercy, save him! Though I may be doomed to pay the
penalty of my folly, it is very hard he should suffer."

"It is, indeed," returned the alcaide; "and my wish to save him, joined
to the hatred I bear the present general, has made me a traitor to
my country. I see you look astonished, but to explain what I mean,
it will be necessary to give you a short sketch of the present state
of this country, which I will endeavour to do in as few words as
possible. You know, no doubt, that Spain was once a powerful empire,
till the ill-judged policy of one of her monarchs, in removing the
seat of government to Africa, occasioned her fall: for the tree of
majesty becoming too widely extended, it was but natural that some of
its branches should strike root for themselves, and detach themselves
entirely from the parent stem.

"This was the case with Spain; and her first directors as a republic
happening to be intelligent men, the infant state grew and flourished,
exciting the admiration of its neighbours, and the envy of its mother
country. Unfortunately, however, the wheel of fortune is always
turning, and Spaniards, as I before said, not knowing where to stop,
have gone on, getting worse and worse by degrees, till they have become
the bigoted and intolerant wretches you have found them. In fact, the
army now rules the state, and the people, finding the tyranny of the
soldiers insupportable, have been for some time attempting to throw off
the yoke. They were long unsuccessful, as they found the discipline
of the soldiers far outweighed all their bravery and self-devotion.
In their distress, however, they called in the aid of Roderick the
Second, the young and warlike King of Ireland. This powerful monarch,
who realizes in himself all the romantic qualities of the ancient
knights of chivalry, hastened instantly to their assistance, and they
are now combating under his auspices with every prospect of success.
His progress has been magical; success has followed wherever he has
gone, and his army now lies at a little distance, though he landed in
the north of Spain. It is to him, therefore, that I have sent secretly,
giving him (in the hope of saving you) instructions, by which, if he
follows them, he cannot fail of surprising the camp."

The doctor and Edric, though they were fully aware that they were
principally indebted to the hatred the alcaide bore the present general
for the steps he had taken in their behalf, yet felt and expressed
themselves properly grateful; and the alcaide quitted the prison,
leaving the flatterer Hope behind to console them for his absence,
mingled, however, with the natural anxiety, which they could not help
feeling, lest the well-arranged plan laid for their escape should fail.
Morning had just dawned, after a tedious and miserable night, and the
doctor and Edric were yet shivering from the damp cold which often
precedes the break of day, and which now seemed to have struck a chill
to their inmost souls, when the door of the prison opened, and a file
of soldiers appeared, ready to conduct them to the place of execution.
The doctor's heart beat thick, so as almost to impede respiration, and
a heavy film spread before his eyes; whilst the agitation of Edric, who
had, however, now quite forgiven him, was scarcely inferior to his own.
Fervently they embraced, and then submitting to be pinioned, they were
forced to march to the spot appointed for their sacrifice, where an
immense crowd awaited their approach.

The doctor's heart sunk within him as he looked down from the kind of
terrace upon which the ceremony was to take place, upon the mass of
human heads jammed together below, every face regarding him with a
gaze of anxious expectation; and as he turned from these eager looks
with a thrill of horror, his feelings were yet more forcibly harrowed
up by the sight behind him. This was composed of two iron stakes
fixed firmly in the ground, and provided with ponderous chains so as
to prevent the remotest possibility of escape, whilst the enormous
heaps of green wood piled round each, gave a frightful idea of the
intensity of the lingering torments the unfortunate prisoners were
condemned to suffer. The mind of Edric, in the mean time, was not much
more composed than that of his friend. He also had looked round, and
whilst nature shuddered at the thought of the horrid death awaiting
them, the immensity and compactness of the crowd seemed to destroy all
probability of a rescue, and the hope which had till then supported
him, fled from his breast; whilst, as his eyes again met those of the
poor doctor, mournful, indeed, was the glance that they exchanged.

It is an awful thing to die! and though there are occasions when death
may be braved, or at least met with unabated courage; yet when it comes
on thus slowly and deliberately, seen from afar off, and yet impossible
to be avoided, the firmest mind will find it difficult to bear its
approach unmoved. That of Edric, however, notwithstanding it had been
weakened by his long confinement, and by the delusive flattery of hope,
did not shrink from the trial: and calmly he even saw the crowd divide,
to make way for the executioner, who slowly advanced, preceded by a
band of martial music, playing a mournful air, the drums being covered
with black crape, and followed by a long train of soldiers, in mourning
cloaks, with their arms reversed. Nothing could be more appalling than
this lugubrious procession: the executioner, musicians, and soldiers,
being all shrouded in their gloomy cloaks, (the very hoods of which
were drawn over their heads,) had the air of demons coming to bear away
the miserable victims to everlasting perdition; and the mind of the
unhappy doctor not being able to endure such accumulated horrors, he
sunk upon his knees, uttering shrieks of anguish, whilst the cold sweat
ran in large drops from his forehead, and every nerve quivered with
agony.

The procession had now nearly reached the prisoners, and even Edric's
firmness gave way, as he saw the executioner spring upon the terrace,
and advance towards him. A convulsive throb of anguish seemed to rend
his heart, and his lips and cheeks turned of a livid paleness. But how
was he surprised, and what a sudden revulsion of feeling did he not
experience, when the supposed executioner, after having unbound his
arms, put a sword into his hands, and whispering,--"Now is the time,
defend yourself!--our soldiers are in green," left him completely free.

Completely overcome, Edric stood for a moment lost in amazement, unable
to credit the evidence of his senses, and gazing after his deliverer,
who, the moment he had also unbound the doctor, threw off his disguise,
and shouting "Roderick for ever!" disclosed to the multitude below the
dreaded form of the Irish hero himself. Shouts of "Roderick for ever!"
now rent the skies; the soldiers who had followed their monarch, and
several others who had lurked concealed amongst the crowd, threw off
their disguises at the same moment, and formed round the leader; whilst
the main body of his troops, left behind in the care of experienced
generals, tutored for the purpose, charged the affrighted Spaniards in
the rear.

The confusion and dismay that now prevailed were quite beyond
description. The terrified Spaniards, who, naturally superstitious, had
long fancied the wonderful acts of heroic valour attributed to Roderick
could only be performed by magic, were now firmly convinced that his
sudden appearance amongst them was an act of especial favour from his
Infernal Majesty himself! and finding themselves attacked on all sides,
imagined their enemies multiplied by the powers of darkness, and fled
without striking a blow. Roderick and his soldiers returned laughing,
after they had pursued them a little way, to ransack and burn their
camp; which when they had done, they retired to their former station;
having previously promised the alcaide to spare the town, and not to
push the consequences of their victory farther.

The doctor and Edric, who had been too much agitated to take any very
active part in the combat, had been conveyed by the guards of Roderick
to their master's camp, to await there the return of the monarch, in
whose hands destiny had now placed them. Neither of our travellers
had noticed the person of the Irish king in the bustling moment of
their deliverance; but the almost magical celerity with which he had
contrived to disperse their enemies; the evident terror with which his
very name seemed to inspire the Spaniards; and the wondrous feats the
guards around them seemed to delight in attributing to him, made them
now almost tremble at the thought of being presented to so tremendous a
personage; whom they amused themselves in picturing as a stern, fearful
tyrant, breathing nothing but war and desolation.

Roderick the Second, surnamed the Great, was then in the flower of
his age. He had not long ascended his throne; and his father, who
had been a prudent prince, having left behind him a well-established
government, able statesmen, and a considerable sum in the treasury,
Roderick had little to employ his mind at home. Brave, ardent, and
enterprising, burning for conquest, and spurning the quiet of domestic
peace, the overtures of the Spaniards had met his most ardent wishes;
and he had embraced their cause with an eagerness and impetuosity that
had hitherto carried every thing before it. The greatest part of Spain
lay at his feet. Even Madrid was his! but it was to attack Seville,
that queen of cities, that he was now in Andalusia. This city was
still in the power of his enemies, and Roderick, having made Cadiz his
head-quarters, was about removing thither, when the message of the
Alcaide, had induced to undertake the romantic enterprize he had just
so successfully accomplished. Romance was, indeed, a leading feature
in Roderick's character: it had been the policy of his father, the
late King, to foment secretly the discontents nourished amongst the
English; but the spirit of Roderick revolted at conduct he considered
so mean and base. The Spanish war, on the contrary, exactly suited his
disposition: to aid an oppressed people--to throw off the yoke of their
oppressors, seemed noble and generous; and he engaged in the enterprize
with all the energy of his bold and daring temper. His soldiers adored
him, and his people warmly seconded his efforts; for, as the seat of
war was far removed from them, and as the treasury of the late King
defrayed the expenses, they felt none of the inconveniences of war, and
gloried in the triumphs of their Sovereign. Thus, Roderick's praise was
the theme of every tongue: even the Spaniards worshipped him almost as
a god, and their active imaginations magnified his exploits, till both
friends and foes alike regarded him as a being who had only to will to
conquer! and whose prowess it was perfect madness even to struggle to
resist.

Such was the monarch our travellers now anxiously awaited, till
suspense became almost agony. At last the joyful sounds of "He comes!
he comes! Long live the mighty Roderick!" burst upon their ears, and
the travellers bent forwards, eagerly expecting, yet dreading to see,
a countenance stern and fearful as that of Cheops in his tomb: but how
were they astonished to behold, in the redoubtable Roderick, only a
tall handsome young man, riding carelessly upon a beautiful Barbary
charger, and laughing and talking gaily with his officers as he came
along.

"What!" cried the doctor indignantly, "would you attempt to make me
believe that slight blooming boy a conqueror? the thing is impossible!
It is quite ridiculous to mention it. Those laughing eyes, smooth
down-like cheeks, and white teeth, may be well adapted to win a lady's
heart, but I am sure they never can belong to a hero!"

The King, in the mean time, was equally struck with the doctor; and
seeing something peculiarly honest and simple in his fat, round, oily
face, he felt a lively interest for him, and an excessive curiosity to
know what could possibly have brought a man, apparently so harmless and
inoffensive, into so perilous a situation. The fine person of Edric,
disfigured as it was by the troubles he had undergone, also attracted
his attention; and as he rode up to his guests to question them as to
their adventures, (the noble barb that carried him, pacing proudly
along, as though conscious of the illustrious burthen he bore,) even
the doctor was compelled to admit, the face and figure of his rider
bespoke firmness, intellect, and dignity.

"What crime had you committed amongst the Spaniards?" asked he, as he
approached, addressing himself to the doctor in a full, mellow, yet
commanding tone. "It must have been of the blackest dye, if we are to
judge by the enormity of the punishment."

"I am innocent!" cried the doctor, "an' it may please your Majesty! I
am quite innocent."

"It will please me very much to find you so," said Roderick, smiling;
"but assertion is nothing--what proof have you?"

"My friend here will bear witness in my behalf," said the doctor
solemnly, not feeling at all pleased with what he thought the King's
unseasonable disposition for merriment; whilst as he stood looking very
cross, his red face and bald head streaming with perspiration from
anger and vexation, his clothes having been torn to rags, and his hat
and wig lost in his late troubles, he struck Roderick as presenting
so very whimsical and ridiculous a figure, that after looking at him
a few minutes, the Merry Monarch burst out into a violent and almost
convulsive fit of laughter.

"Well!" said the doctor, still more gravely, "I am glad your Majesty
seems so well amused; but for my part, I don't see any thing at all
agreeable or entertaining in being about to be burned alive."

The doctor's solemn look and lengthened face, as he made this naïve
remonstrance, only increased Roderick's peals of laughter. "I beg
your pardon, Sir," said he, addressing Edric, as soon as he was able
to speak; "I really beg your pardon; but your friend here is so
exceedingly amusing, that I am really under infinite obligations to
him, and know not how I shall ever be able to repay him."

"It is we who are under obligations to your Majesty, for which we can
never be sufficiently grateful," said Edric gravely; for he also was
not very well pleased at seeing his friend so openly ridiculed; as,
though he did sometimes take the liberty of smiling at the learned
doctor's innocent follies himself, he did not like to see him made
the laughing stock of another. Roderick, however, saw and instantly
understood the ill-humour of Edric; and as he applauded its motive,
he endeavoured to divert it by every means in his power, and soon
completely succeeded. Few people, indeed, knew so well how to make
themselves agreeable as Roderick; and though Edric, at first, felt
indignant that the King should treat him so much like a child, as to
suppose his displeasure could be easily joked away, yet this feeling
insensibly wore off, and he soon thought Roderick the most fascinating
of human beings. Indeed, that heart must have been hard that could
have withstood unmoved the fascinations of Roderick when he wished
to please. His bright laughing eyes that looked the very colour of
gladness, and his arch smile, might have subdued the melancholy of
a stoic; whilst his character had something bewitching in its very
failings. He had been all his life the spoiled child of fortune, and
though his rashness and impetuosity, his pettishness and his caressing
manners, his bravery, haughtiness, and obstinacy; his fondness for any
thing that promised a frolic, and his chivalrous devotion to noble and
grand enterprizes, formed a singular melange, he was, perhaps, more
beloved than he would have been if his character had been more perfect;
and it was this very inconsistency that made him so completely the idol
of his soldiers.

"Believe me," said he, addressing Edric, "that it is impossible for
me to describe the pleasure I feel in having had it in my power to be
of service to you; and though I should have been happy to relieve any
of my fellow-creatures in distress, yet I must own I am glad you are
Englishmen. It was the policy of my late father to act as the enemy
of England; but I have always been her friend. I am sure that Nature
intended the English and Irish for brethren; and I am too sincere
a votary of the goddess to wish, even in the slightest degree, to
counteract her designs."

"Your sentiments perfectly coincide with mine," said Edric; "and as it
has been my fate to live in habits of intimacy for several years with a
very worthy countryman of yours, Father Murphy, confessor of the Duke
of Cornwall, who was the most intimate friend of my father--"

"Father Murphy!" interrupted Roderick.

"Yes," returned Edric, surprised at the wonder expressed by the King.
"Is it possible you can know him?"

"The name appeared familiar to me, that was all," replied Roderick,
evidently finding it difficult to repress a strong inclination to
laugh. Edric looked at him with still increasing astonishment, not
being able to discover any thing in the slightest degree ridiculous
in what he had said; and Roderick's disposition to mirth seemed to
increase in exact proportion to Edric's gravity. At length, perceiving
he remained silent, Roderick with infinite difficulty contrived to
say,--

"Go on, my dear Mr. Montagu, I entreat you to go on; never mind me; it
is a strange thought that has just entered my head."

"Mr. Montagu!" exclaimed Edric. "I was not aware that your Majesty was
acquainted with my name; I do not recollect having mentioned it."

"Perhaps, however, the doctor did," returned the King; "or the alcaide
might have told me, or my servants may have seen it marked upon your
trunks or your linen, or--"

"Your Majesty need not give yourself so much trouble to explain a
circumstance in itself perfectly immaterial," replied Edric. "I have no
wish to conceal my name; I was only astonished to find your Majesty so
well acquainted with it."

"Well, well," cried Roderick, somewhat impatiently, "the circumstance
is, as you say, quite immaterial, so pray go on with what you were
saying of Father Murphy."

"I was simply observing that the excellence of his disposition had
given me a favourable opinion of your Majesty's countrymen."

"Which I hope the thoughtlessness of their King will not induce you
to change. I trust you have too much good sense, Mr. Montagu, to feel
offended with what you may call the frivolity of my manner. My heart,
I hope, is good, though I own even I cannot say much in favour of my
head. I am a laughing philosopher however, a sort of Democritus the
second; and finding it more agreeable to laugh than cry, I generally
try to extract amusement from every thing that happens to fall in my
way. We shall soon know each other better, and so now, as doubtless you
may wish for repose after the fatigues you have undergone, you will
perhaps like to retire to the tent prepared for you."

The doctor and Edric willingly assented and repaired to their new
abode, completely puzzled by what seemed to them the extraordinary and
inconsistent character of the King.

Under this gay, laughing exterior, however, Roderic hid a sound
penetrating mind, and a firm determined spirit; whilst, though no one
enjoyed more to ridicule occasionally the foibles of his subjects,
no one knew better how to check them, and bring them back instantly
to their proper stations, if they ventured a hair's breadth beyond
the limits he prescribed to them. He had thus the art to make himself
feared as well as loved, and to rule his subjects despotically, though
he never spoke to them without a smile.

Such as I have described him, it may be easily imagined Roderick
was not long in winning the affections of his new friends, and he,
in his turn, was equally delighted with them. The noble, generous,
and inquiring spirit of Edric exactly accorded with his own; and the
follies of the learned doctor afforded him never-ceasing amusement,
whilst Edric, delighted to meet with a companion who could understand
and sympathize with his feelings, felt happier than he had been for
years; and the learned doctor, proud of being admitted to the intimacy
of such a man as Roderick, declared all his troubles were repaid, and
that he now considered himself as the most fortunate of mortals.



CHAPTER XXII.


The Spanish nobility were daily collecting round the Irish King. To
one of the most distinguished of these, the Duke of Medina Celina,
Roderick was particularly anxious to introduce Edric. For this
purpose, therefore, as soon as the army of Roderick returned to his
head quarters at Cadiz, where the duke had remained, the friends went
together to pay him a visit.

Edric was exceedingly interested by this call. The duke's family
consisted only of himself and his grand-daughter, the Princess Zoe,
but the appearance of both was excessively striking. The duke was a
blind old man with white flowing hair and a long silvery beard, clad
with almost patriarchal simplicity; whilst Zoe, who sate closely by his
side, and seemed devoted to his comfort, was beauty itself. Exquisitely
lovely, however, as her features were, they excited rather pain than
pleasure in the mind of the beholder, from their excessive paleness.
Her dress was simple: a robe of black silk fitted tight to her slender
shape, and her jet black hair was simply braided on her forehead, and
confined in a net behind.

When she saw the strangers, a slight blush stained the usual alabaster
fairness of her complexion, and a trifling agitation was visible in
her manner. It was but for an instant, however, that this glowing
tint suffused her pallid cheeks, or that her fine features betrayed
agitation. Her usual calm dignity of expression was immediately
re-assumed, and her countenance regained its marble whiteness. There
was, indeed, something very singular in the whole countenance of this
young beauty, for, notwithstanding the exquisite loveliness of her
features, her charms were rather those of a statue than of a human
being. Her fine features were strictly Grecian and perfectly regular,
but they were always fixed in one unvarying expression; whilst her
large black eyes fringed with long silken eyelashes, and her glossy
raven hair, contrasted strangely with the spotless fairness of her
complexion; the whole gave her the air of some unearthly visitant from
the tomb.

Zoe had been unfortunate from her birth. Her mother having accompanied
the old duke upon an embassy to Constantinople, had happened to please
the fancy of the reigning Emperor so forcibly, that, contrary to
the advice of his counsellors, he had married her. Disproportioned
marriages, however, are seldom happy ones: and that of the parents
of Zoe formed no exception to the general rule. The Emperor soon
repented his rashness, and, becoming tired of his wife, treated her
with coldness and neglect; whilst she, far removed from all her former
friends, and finding herself despised by the man for whose sake she had
sacrificed every thing, lingered a few years and then died unheeded and
forlorn, leaving only the hapless Zoe to lament her fate.

The Emperor married again; and Zoe had dragged on a miserable
existence, till in an insurrection of the Greeks, her father had been
murdered, and she herself compelled to fly from Constantinople. She had
repaired first to Africa; but finding her grandfather was in Spain,
she had followed him thither, and still remained with him, under the
protection of Roderick.

It was, indeed, the aristocracy of Spain for which the Irish hero was
now principally fighting; for they had suffered most severely from the
licentious conduct of the soldiers, and were most earnest in imploring
his assistance. When the seat of the Spanish monarchy had been removed
to Africa, most of the nobles had followed in its train, whilst
those that remained had become objects of hate and suspicion to the
republican governments that ensued. Still, however, the _amor patriæ_
glowed strongly in their breasts, and chained them to their country;
they submitted patiently to innumerable grievances, till, a few months
before they applied to Roderick, finding the insolence of the soldiers
become insupportable, they determined to throw off the yoke, and
re-establish a monarchy in Spain.

For this purpose, they had invited Don Pedro, a younger branch of their
former Royal family to come over from Africa to accept their throne.
He complied, and had brought in his train many of the old nobility;
and amongst the rest the venerable Duke of Medina Celina, whose most
passionate wish it was, that he might die and be entombed in Spain. Don
Pedro had been unsuccessful, and had fled; but many of those who had
accompanied him remained, and with the resident Spanish nobility now
formed the splendid Court of Roderick at Cadiz.

The duke received Edric kindly, and treated Roderick with that
enthusiastic devotion, which is, beyond all other praise, flattering
to the mind of man. Zoe never spoke, nor did her features betray that
she took the slightest interest in the scene before her. It has been
before observed, that education was carried to such a pitch in England,
that all, even the common people, were universal linguists. Instruction
indeed, in that respect, was imparted in many brief and ingenious
modes; and knowledge being thus rendered so cheap and easy, as to be
_à la portée de tout le monde_, it of course was going partially out
of fashion with the higher classes; but as Sir Ambrose piqued himself
on his devotion to all the old customs, he would not swerve from them
in the education of his sons; and in consequence, Edric was almost as
learned in this respect as a servant or a labourer.

This had often been a source of chagrin to him at home, as it prevented
his feeling upon equal terms with those in the same situation of life
as himself, and had contributed greatly to give him those shy and
reserved manners we have noticed. On the present occasion, however,
Edric found his learning advantageous, as it enabled him to enjoy
thoroughly the animated and entertaining conversation of the old duke.
After a lively and spirited discussion of the manners of the age
generally, and the state of Spain in particular, the friends retired,
having first obtained a promise from the duke and Zoe to be present at
a grand tournament Roderick intended giving on the following day.

"Well, Edric!" said Roderick, "what think you of the Princess Zoe?"

"That she would be a Venus de Medicis, if she had a little more soul."

"Oh come! Edric," said Roderick, laughing; "that is really too bad.
I'll allow that Zoe wants animation; but she has at least as much as a
statue. Besides I thought you were fond of still life, or you would not
feel so anxious about your Mummy."

"Oh, for God's sake!" said Edric, "do not joke me upon that subject; it
is too solemn, too awful!"

"At least, your doubts are now satisfied," said the King.

"Not at all," returned Edric; "for I cannot help imagining it was only
permitted to appear resuscitated to punish my presumptuous daring;
and its mysterious disappearance, added to the strange and fearful
adventures that have since attended us, only confirm my opinion."

"It must have been a horrible feeling when you first saw it stir,"
observed Roderick.

"Words cannot express the agony of that moment," replied Edric, "when I
saw my strange unearthly wishes gratified, and felt the impiety I had
been guilty of in having formed them; and I would have given worlds to
restore the Mummy to the deep sleep I had disturbed. It was, however,
then too late."

"Can you form any idea of what has become of it?"

"None. If the Egyptian's story be correct, it contrived to re-inflate
the balloon, and that carried it away, though it is quite impossible to
say how far it might go, as the Mummy could not possibly understand the
management of the machine, though he might accidentally fill it."

"Would it relieve you to think the Mummy safe in England?"

"Oh no! I shudder at the thought."

"Well, well, then it is useless to make yourself unhappy about the
subject. Depend upon it, all is for the best. I am sure, for my part, I
am very much obliged to the resuscitated gentleman; as, if it had not
been for his freak of flying away with your balloon, you would not have
been here at the present moment, and I might never have even known that
such a person was in existence. However, now you _are_ here, you must
not leave me; and when we have finished our campaign, we will return
to Ireland together, and pass the remainder of our lives in peace and
tranquillity."

Edric smiled, for the very idea of peace and Roderick seemed
incongruous.

The tournament was held on a fine plain on the mainland, a few miles
from Cadiz, and nothing could exceed the brilliancy of the show. "The
sun shone o'er fair women and brave men," for even in winter, the
bright beams of an Andalusian sun give a glowing animation to the
scene. The busy murmurs of the crowd, the prancing of the horses,
and the gay laugh of the light-hearted Irishmen, as they paid their
highflown compliments to the Spanish beauties, were, however, soon
interrupted by the firing of cannon, and a pause ensued, which was at
length broken by loud shouts of "Roderick! Roderick, for ever! Long
live the Conqueror of Spain!" And immediately, the pressure and bustle
of the people, and the sound of warlike music which gradually swelled
upon the ear, announced the arrival of that illustrious Sovereign upon
the field.

Roderick was, as usual, riding upon Champion, his noble barb, and
surrounded by the officers of his staff; but he was not talking to them
with his accustomed familiarity; his countenance even wore an air of
sadness and reflection, very unusual to it. However, as he rode along,
his fine horse tossing his head and spurning the ground as he advanced,
he looked completely the powerful Sovereign that he really was.

His dress was exceedingly becoming. Roderick knew mankind too well not
to appear to adopt, in some measure, even the prejudices of those he
associated with; and knowing the partiality of the Spaniards for dress
and appearance, his own was magnificent. A tight vest and pantaloons of
black satin displayed the elegance of his figure to the best advantage,
whilst a short cloak of the same material, hung from his shoulders in
graceful negligence, and his head was covered with a large Spanish
hat of black velvet, having a magnificent plume of ostrich feathers,
secured by a diamond aigrette in front. A superb collar of diamonds
also adorned his breast, and a deep frill of vandyk lace was fastened
round his neck.

Splendid, however, as was the attire of Roderick, it was far exceeded
by his personal advantages; and no one could look upon that fair, open
brow, those bright blue eyes, that manly, though youthful form, that
glossy chestnut hair and curling mustachios, or, what was more than
all, upon the fascinating smile of the mouth they decorated, without
feeling deeply interested for their possessor.

The fascinating manners of Roderick have been already mentioned; but,
upon the present occasion, his usual _gaité de cœur_ was tempered by
an air of dignity and command which became him equally well, and which
powerfully told, that though he might sometimes condescend to seem
amused with trifles, he could, when he pleased, be indeed a king.

The affairs of Spain were now beginning to assume a favourable
appearance, and, consequently, the people were better disposed to be
amused; whilst, as a truce had been granted for some weeks, during
a negotiation for peace which was carrying on, the combined Spanish
and Irish soldiers shut up in the Isle of Leon, and thrown entirely
upon their own resources for amusement, like most persons in similar
situations, grasped eagerly at every trifle that seemed to promise
variety and amusement.

Roderick was perfectly aware of this; and it was partly to afford
employment for his officers, and partly to gratify his own taste for
the pursuits of chivalry, that he had proposed the present tournament.
The lists were marked out, and a flourish of trumpets summoned the
combatants to the field. Two of the Irish officers were the first who
engaged, and whilst every eye was occupied in watching their movements
with the most intense anxiety, Roderick took an opportunity of
whispering to Edric that he had just received news from England.

"Well!" cried Edric, his eyes sparkling with impatience.

"Elvira is elected; but I am afraid there is a strong party in the
state against her."

"And my father?"

"He is well, and Edmund is prime minister!"

"What says Rosabella?"

"She is silent; and, therefore, I fear--"

"You are right. In such a case, Rosabella's silence can only portend a
storm."

"The duke has left the country, and now resides entirely in town."

"What a change," said Edric, "a few short months has produced! all is
altered. I was excessively shocked when you informed me of the death
of Claudia; but this news, though it surprises, does not displease me;
and, thank God! my father is well."

The defeat of one of the combatants, and the shouts and triumph
attending the success of the other, now interrupted the conference; and
the rush of all parties towards the King separated him from Edric, who
walked quietly away from the crowd to meditate upon the news he had
received. The train of thought thus conjured up was so pleasing, that
he was soon completely lost in it. His father, his brother, and all the
scenes of his childhood, those early recollections so dear to every
heart, seemed to rise before him, and he had forgotten Spain and all
that it contained, when he was roused from his reverie by a piercing
scream; and, looking round, he saw the Princess Zoe, near whose
palanquin he had accidentally placed himself, attempting to break from
her carriage in a state of the most violent agitation.

Astonished beyond the power of expression at her emotion, Edric hastily
assisted her to unfasten the door of her palanquin, and offered her
his arm: Zoe took it without speaking, and with trembling steps
hurried across the plain. In a few minutes, however, the cause of
the princess's agitation was explained; for, as they approached the
spot she evidently wished to reach, Edric saw the body of Roderick
extended upon the ground, apparently without life or motion. Uttering
an exclamation of horror, he attempted to rush towards him, but the
princess held his arm firmly, and prevented him. Quite astonished, he
looked up in her face; she was still dreadfully agitated, but she did
not speak, and only pressed her finger against her lips.

In a few minutes, Roderick opened his eyes, and the princess again
pressing Edric's arm, said in a hurried, though low tone, "Let us
go!" Edric obeyed; and they walked hastily back to the palanquin in
perfect silence. When Edric had assisted the princess into her carriage
however, and was about to retire, she pressed his hand, and said again
in her peculiarly low soft voice, "Do not speak of this!"

"I will not," said Edric; and bowing respectfully as he pressed her
hand to his lips, he walked away excessively surprised at the scene
he had witnessed. Upon reaching the King, he found he had been thrown
from his horse, and so slightly hurt as not to think it necessary to
interrupt the amusements of the day; which concluded after a brilliant
display of Irish and Spanish valour, without any other incident worthy
of notice.

A few days after this adventure, as Edric was sitting, lost in thought,
in his own apartment, musing, as was his custom whenever he was alone,
upon the strange adventure of the Mummy, and endeavouring in vain to
imagine what might be its probable fate, he was startled by the door of
his room flying suddenly open, and Roderick's rushing in pale and in
violent agitation.

"Oh, Edric!" cried he, "I am ruined! my fame is lost for ever! whilst
I have been loitering away my time here, the enemy has obtained the
assistance of the French: they have taken Madrid, and almost all the
towns between that and the frontier! An immense army is marching upon
Seville, and they intended to have blocked me up here, amusing me with
their pretended treaties, till they had caught me in their snare."

"And how has their plot been discovered?"

"The Princess Zoe--yes! I know what you would say--she loves me, and
though I love her not, nay, though I am devoted to another, if I
reconquer Spain, myself and crown shall be thrown at her feet;--but, if
I fail, I will never live to be the herald of my disgrace."

"It is unworthy of Roderick to despair: it will be by treachery, if you
are vanquished."

"Hold!" cried Roderick, driven almost to frenzy at the thought. "For
mercy's sake, talk not so calmly of my being vanquished. I will
conquer--I will redeem my name, or perish in the attempt; and if they
do vanquish me, it shall be my corpse alone that they shall conquer,
for the immortal spirit shall escape their fury."

"Alas! alas!" said Edric; "your words have again conjured up the fiend
that so long has haunted me:--_does_ the immortal spirit escape?"

"Edric," returned the King, "this is not a moment for metaphysical
subtleties; we must act, and that immediately and decisively. We must
advance upon Seville, and, if possible, get possession of that city
before the army of the enemy shall reach it: this blow will strike the
Spaniards with awe, and before they have recovered themselves, I shall
have made myself master of half Spain. I know the character of the
people I have to combat; I must carry every thing by a _coup de main_,
or I shall fail."

It was impossible to deny the justice of this observation, and Edric
warmly seconded the preparations of Roderick to march immediately
upon Seville. These preparations were soon made; for Roderick was so
completely idolized by his soldiers, that they regarded his will as
law, and were ready to march at an hour's notice, though they knew not
where they were going. Dr. Entwerfen was excessively agitated when
he found he was going now really to engage in war; not that the base
emotion of fear took possession of his soul, but a slight trepidation,
such as that which scandal says even heroes feel at their first battle,
crept over his nerves, and gave him an odd kind of sensation, which, he
said, was only anxiety to engage.

No one knew where they were going; it was only rumoured, indeed, that
hostilities were about to recommence, and, as the doctor said, it was
very disagreeable to be unacquainted with the theatre of their future
glory. Roderick was amused, notwithstanding even the agitation of the
moment, with the efforts of the doctor to discover the secret, and told
him, as though in confidence, that they were going to attack Lisbon.
Delighted with this news, which he firmly believed, the doctor strutted
about with indescribable dignity, walking upon the tips of his toes,
pressing his lips together, and swelling out his cheeks like a cherub
in a country church-yard, whilst he seemed absolutely bursting with the
importance of the secret he carried. All was now ready; but before
Roderick quitted Cadiz, he took leave of the Princess Zoe.

"It would be unjust to your merit, and my gratitude," said he, "to
insult you with words; but if I survive, the devotion of my whole
life--"

"Stay!" interrupted Zoe, "nor overrate so strangely the value of the
service I have been so fortunate as to render you. Besides, even if
your estimate were just, know that the services of Zoe are not to be
purchased. No, prince, judge me not so meanly. Had I not determined
that we should never meet again, the intelligence you so highly value
would never have reached your ears. My greatest enemy is dead; and
to-morrow I return to my native land, where the rebels have no longer
the power to injure me. Demetrius, the ancient minister of my father,
arrived yesterday, with the permission for my return, and I do not
hesitate an instant--yet, before I go--"

"Speak," cried Roderick hastily; "command my life! my throne! my
fortune!"

Zoe smiled. "The favour I have to request is trifling. I have a
favourite page, who dreads to return to Greece, and I would willingly
place him under your care."

"He shall be my brother!" exclaimed Roderick enthusiastically; "my
friend! my companion in arms! He shall live with me, fight with me,
and--"

Again a faint smile played on Zoe's marble features, like the ghost of
departed joys; it was but for an instant, however, and it added fresh
darkness to the succeeding gloom. "I wish no privileges for my page,"
said she gravely, "beyond those usually bestowed upon his class. Treat
him kindly, but promise me you will not over-indulge him, or I will not
leave him with you."

"You have only to command," said Roderick, "and you may rely upon
obedience."

"Adieu! then," exclaimed the princess, extending her hand, whilst a
slight blush stained her alabaster complexion. "God bless you!--we may
meet again."

Roderick kissed her hand as he would have done that of an empress.
"Heaven grant we may!" exclaimed he, "for, rest assured, no earthly
pleasure could afford me half the joy."

"None?" asked Zoe incredulously.

"None!" repeated he firmly; "unless, perhaps," added he with a smile,
"the re-conquering of Spain."

"Then you will accept my page?"

"As a gift from Heaven!"

"He shall join you ere you cross the bridge: once more, adieu!"

"Adieu!" cried Roderick, and Zoe vanished. In half an hour the troops
were under arms, and had quitted Cadiz; but Roderick, in the bustle
and confusion attendant upon the removal of so large a body of men so
suddenly, had quite forgotten the Greek page. As he was crossing the
bridge, however, his noble barb started, and Roderick, looking for the
cause, saw a slight, graceful boy, who, kneeling, presented him with a
letter; it was from Zoe.

"I forgot to tell you," wrote she, "that my page is dumb. As his loss
of speech, however, was accidental, he is, notwithstanding, perfectly
intelligent, and will obey your slightest gesture."

Ordering some of his attendants to provide a horse, Roderick desired
the page to mount it, and ride by his side: the boy crossed his arms
upon his breast, and bowed his head in token of obedience, and then
lightly vaulted into the saddle.



CHAPTER XXIII.


The army of Roderick advanced rapidly through a lovely country richly
tinted by the rays of a southern sun. Nothing, indeed, could be
more beautiful than the scene. Though spring was only just bursting
from the icy chains of winter, vine-covered cottages peeped through
orange groves loaded with their fragrant flowers; whilst behind, the
dark foliage of the lofty palm-trees gave depth and richness to the
landscape. Innumerable flowers perfumed the air, and the sky glowed
with azure and gold.

Under these circumstances, the advance of Roderick's army, though
rapid, resembled rather the journey of a party of pleasure than a
fatiguing and toilsome march; and when, just as the sun was setting,
they approached a small village, Edric paused on the summit of a hill,
to survey with delighted admiration the lovely scene below. A white
church peeped from between a thick cluster of trees, and romantic
cottages covered with wild festoons of luxuriant plants, were scattered
about at intervals; whilst sitting before the doors, were placed
groups of peasant girls, singing patriotic airs to their mandolines or
lutes, and others were dancing gaily beneath the shade of some widely
spreading trees. Neat dresses of black serge fitted tightly to the
shape of these girls, and displayed the graceful elegance of their
figures to the utmost advantage. Their long dark hair was bound in a
simple net; and their sparkling eyes beamed with animation and love,
whilst the clear dark complexion, well proportioned forms, jet black
hair, and aquiline noses of their male partners, still, notwithstanding
the lapse of so many centuries, strongly marked their Moorish origin.
Songs of joy and lively music swelled upon the gale; but these sounds
of peace and happiness were soon changed to shrieks of terror, as the
unfortunate peasants saw the army of Roderick wind slowly through the
trees, and they fled screaming for mercy, whilst all their little store
of wealth fell an easy prey to the foe they left behind.

Edric shuddered at the pillage that ensued, and warmly remonstrated
with his friend.

"My dear Edric," said Roderick, "these things are inevitable; though
what you see here can give you but a very faint idea of the dreadful
havoc and devastation of war. My soldiers destroy nothing, and
generally even pay for what they take: but commonly in an enemy's
country, men burn what they cannot make use of, and treat the
unfortunate inhabitants with the most appalling cruelty. However these
are things we cannot reason about."

"I think not," returned Edric; and finding his remonstrances
unavailing, he had the discretion not again to allude to the subject,
till the army approached Seville. The first view of this splendid city,
illumined by the glowing rays of the setting sun, struck our young
philosopher most forcibly. "Oh, Roderick!" cried he, "look at that long
line of sumptuous palaces, adorned with marble pillars, and the finest
statues; those lovely gardens--those bowers of roses; and those crystal
fountains, whose sparkling spray looks dazzling in the sunbeams."

"Well," said Roderick, "I see them all, and more, the lofty spires of
the town rising beyond, their gilded vanes glittering in the sun."

"And can you look upon this fair scene?" asked Edric, "and not feel
compunction? Alas! alas! that the cruel hand of man should dare to
destroy so lovely a picture!"

"My dear Edric," returned Roderick, smiling, "you would never do for a
conqueror. If you make war a profession, Glory must be your mistress,
and to obtain her, you must sacrifice all your better feelings. But,
ah! what is that? look yonder, Edric!"

"I see nothing but a volume of fleecy smoke curling up between the
trees," said Edric; "which harmonizes well with the lovely scene
around--that scene which the grim hand of War is destined so soon
to desolate. Oh, Roderick, can it be possible, that you, whose kind
and charitable nature would not crush a worm to death unnecessarily,
should--"

"They have fired the suburbs!" cried Roderick, interrupting him; and
clapping spurs to his horse, he darted forward like an arrow discharged
from a bow. His suspicions were correct. Light clouds of white vapour
hung high in the clear blue heavens; whilst below, a thick yellow
smoke, mingled with flames, spread wide ruin and devastation. Crackling
pieces of wood, sparkling like a _feu d'artifice_, were thrown up with
violence at intervals, and the scorching heat felt intolerable, as
showers of sparks, and pieces of ignited matter, rained thick and fast
upon the plain.

Edric and Roderick were on a gentle eminence when they first saw the
city; and, deceived by the remarkable optical delusion often observable
in similar situations, they had fancied it very near them. When they
plunged into the valley, however, they soon discovered that this was of
very considerable extent; and their horses, weary with their toilsome
march, with difficulty made their way through the thick underwood and
tangled grass that every moment threatened to impede their progress.
At length, they entered into the mazes of a wood, that quite obscured
the city from their sight; and when fair Seville again broke upon them
through an opening in the trees, she appeared one vast mass of flame.

"Good Heavens!" cried Edric, "surely they will not burn the city! What
a multitude of human beings will be sacrificed if they do!"

"I hope they will not be so foolish," said Roderick, "yet I own I
fear; no--no--" cried he, after a moment's pause; "see, see! the smoke
divides, and as the wind bears the rolling volumes asunder, the city's
walls still stand: no fire as yet has touched the glory and the bulwark
of proud yet fair Seville."

The glowing embers still crackled as they approached, and still threw
up occasional showers of sparks fearfully glaring amidst the darkness
of the night, which now closed in upon them with a thick gloom very
unusual to that climate. The flames had caught the bridge ere the army
of Roderick reached the banks of the river; and the fiery bow, glowing
through the surrounding darkness, looked like the fabled arch over
which the Mahometans believe the souls of the dead are destined to
skait into Paradise.

At length the army of Roderick found their progress stopped by the
deep and rapid waters of the Guadalquiver; the black smoking remains
of the bridge which had once stretched across the river, seeming to
forbid their farther progress. Magnificent palaces lay around them,
crumbling into ruins, whilst their half-burnt roofs fell occasionally
with a tremendous crash. Fearful indeed was the spectacle that
presented itself, and the once superb suburb seemed the very temple
of Desolation. Vases and statues lay overturned, and blackened by the
smoke. Majestic trees, scorched by the flames, and their shrivelled
leaves stripped from their withered branches, stretched forth their
bare arms forlorn and desolate, like bereaved mothers mourning over
their murdered children. A chill drizzling mist began to fall, and all
looked dreary and uncomfortable.

Roderick stood upon the banks of the river and marked its dark rolling
waters, in which the fire that still crept amongst the ruins on the
other side reflected its red lurid glare. "We must pass the river,"
said he; "these Andalusians are too crafty to have destroyed this fine
suburb, in itself a town, had not some imperious reason urged them to
it. They want to gain time; but we must show them that we dare brave
the combined terrors of flames and water, when Glory gives the word."

"And what is this Glory you pursue so madly?" asked Edric. "May not
Prudence be admitted to its councils? And will it not be more certain
if we wait till morning to seize it? The night is dark and gloomy; I
think it forbodes a tempest; and at any rate it will be difficult to
ford this black rolling stream in the obscurity. To-morrow with the
dawn we will effect a passage; our troops will be then refreshed with
rest, and we shall be ready to encounter with vigour the dangers that
may oppose us."

Roderick smiled sadly. "To-morrow, Edric," said he, "it may be too
late. To-morrow, the army our enemies expect may advance upon us, and
either obtain possession of the town, or cut off our retreat. We have
traitors amongst us; for even now, secret as our movements have been,
you see the enemy has had notice of our approach."

"Why should we pause?" cried Lord Arthur O'Neil, one of the Irish lords
who had followed his Sovereign to the field. "Your Majesty may confide
in your soldiers.--Tired! An Irishman knows not the meaning of the
word. Shall the heroes of Burgos, Valladolid, and Salamanca, complain
of fatigue? Have you forgotten how they fought and conquered? Have you
forgotten the proud day before Madrid, when a handful of Irish fought
and defeated a whole legion of Spaniards? Can we think of these things,
and yet talk of fear? Oh no, surely not! Surely if we did, every warm
drop of blood in our veins, every spark of enthusiasm in our hearts,
would give the lie to the assertion. Lead us on, brave Roderick! Damp
not the spirit of your troops by unnecessary delays, but lead us
forward to victory."

"Lead us to victory!" shouted the officers and troops; and Roderick,
animated by their cries, gave orders for the instant fording of the
river. The evening had now quite closed in; not a star broke the
thick dull grey of the heavens, and the sky began to look dark and
threatening. The lowering clouds grew gradually darker and darker;
whilst a dusky veil seemed to fall over the distant turrets of the
town, and to envelope them in gloom.

The fire that still raged in the suburbs, had now seized an ancient
castle, and a thick yellow smoke burst from its embrasures: it seemed
like a huge giant vomiting forth flames. In the mean time, heavy clouds
that had gathered over their heads, seemed big with destruction,
and a low moaning sound was heard at a distance as though the winds
were sighing over the fate of the unhappy wretches, who were soon to
fall victims to their fury! The hollow murmuring continued; it grew
gradually louder and louder; and at length, burst with tremendous
violence in fearful blasts over the heads of the army. It was now as
dark as night, and the thunder rolled with awful grandeur; the rain
descended in torrents, and the flashes of lightning showed by glimpses
the pouring vengeance of the clouds, and the still smoking fragments of
the ruined bridge.

It seemed madness to attempt the passage of the river at such a moment;
but the determined spirit of Roderick, when once resolved, was not
easily to be shaken, and crying out, "Glory and Roderick for ever!" he
attempted to plunge into the boiling flood. At this instant the heavens
seemed to open, and a vivid ball of bright blue fire to dart from them.
The lightning had struck a tree, beneath which a group of soldiers had
taken shelter, splitting it asunder and scattering the branches in all
directions; whilst the groans of the unhappy wretches, crushed by its
fall, mingled horribly with the howling wind and crashing thunder.
Nothing, however, could intimidate the daring spirit of Roderick, and
calling upon his soldiers to follow him, he struck his spurs into
Champion, his faithful barb, and the noble animal plunged with him into
the stream. The river, swollen by the torrents of rain, now rushed
along in roaring waves like the sea. Champion, and the horses of those
who had followed the example of their Sovereign, were soon obliged to
try to swim, and struggled in vain to reach the opposite shore. The
impetuous current, however, swept them down the river, and soon the
cries of the drowning men, and the plunging of the horses, added fresh
horror to the roar of the raging waters.

Fearful was the struggle, till, after a few horrible moments of almost
supernatural exertions, the storm partly ceased; and though the wind
still continued to howl at intervals, and the thunder to roll, its
growl became fainter and fainter; and soon nothing was heard but the
splashing of the waves, and the struggles of the swimming animals who
tried in vain to stem the boiling current.

Champion had made most violent efforts to save his master, but he
strove in vain! he only floated upon the waves. No longer could he
toss his head and proudly champ his bit; his strength was fast leaving
him: his long thick mane and heavy armour weighed him down. His feeble
eyes, however, caught a glimpse of the opposite shore; they had almost
reached it, and the noble animal, collecting all his strength for one
attempt, sprang forward: but, alas! his heart broke in the effort; his
strength failed; the slippery clay slided from beneath his feet, and
the lifeless body of poor Champion fell back into the river, dragging
his illustrious master with him. Roderick was too much exhausted to
swim; and, encumbered by the dead body of the horse, he was fast
sinking to rise no more, when a powerful arm caught hold of him:--

"Take this knife!" cried a voice that he knew to be Edric's:
"disentangle yourself from the horse, and I can save you!"

His words recalled the fleeting spirit of Roderick; he grasped the
knife and hastily cut asunder the cord that confined his cloak round
his neck. It was this cloak which had become entangled in the saddle,
and the moment it was released from the neck of Roderick, it floated
down the stream with the body of poor Champion, whilst the fainting
Monarch was dragged on shore by his friend Edric. The storm had now
entirely ceased; the water began to get more tranquil, and the moon,
breaking from the clouds that drifted rapidly across the skies, showed
the opposite bank so plainly that the rest of the army passed with
little difficulty. In the mean time, restoratives had been applied
to Roderick, and he opened his eyes. A slight shudder, however, ran
through his frame, as he looked, around, and, heaving a deep sigh,
he hastily reclosed them, as though he wished to shut out for ever
the recollection of what had just passed. 'Twas but for an instant,
however, that the manly mind of the Irish hero indulged in this
overwhelming sorrow; the next, smiling though mournfully, he took the
hand of Edric, and looking at him with affection, he said, "I owe my
life to you. God only knows whether the boon be worth the meed of
thanks, or whether you have not been cruel to my people in saving me.
They have small reason to wish my life, if I am often to be seized
with such freaks as these. Good God! I shudder when I consider that
the lives of several of my fellow-creatures have been sacrificed to
my misguided folly. Poor Champion too," drawing his hand across his
eyes to wipe away his tears, and then again trying to smile. "You will
laugh at me, Edric, but you don't know how much I feel the loss of that
horse. Poor fellow! how nobly he breasted the tide, and struggled on.
But he is gone, and it's of no use thinking of him."

And as he spoke, he resolutely started from the bed upon which he had
been laid, and again dashed the tears from his eyes. "I have other
things to think of that are of far more importance than poor Champion;
and yet, poor fellow, I can't forget it was his obedience to me that
destroyed him! Poor fellow! You would have been sorry for him, Edric,
if you had heard how deeply he sighed when we were in the middle of
the water, and I forced him to go on. But I will think no more of
him. Summon my officers, and let us hold a council as to our future
proceedings."

The council was called, and it was soon ascertained that the army had
sustained no other loss than poor Champion, a few other horses, and
about eight or ten of the King's bodyguard, who had thrown themselves
into the river the moment they had seen their master do so. Roderick
felt keenly the folly that had occasioned the loss of these brave men
and useful animals; but as he was aware that he was now surrounded by
his soldiers and the allied Spaniards, and that it is always necessary
for a Monarch to seem great, whether he be so or not, if he wish to be
obeyed, he had too much self-command to show any signs of weakness, and
gave orders for the commencement of the siege of the town with as much
coolness as though he had merely quietly marched up to its walls.

In the mean time, Dr. Entwerfen had safely floated over the stream,
riding astride upon one of the ammunition waggons, which were contrived
of cork, and supported by bladders, or rather balloons, filled with gas
upon each side; whilst the middle part, upon which the doctor rode,
being nearly in the form of a barrel, the worthy gentleman had formed
no bad representation of Bacchus as he swam merrily across; for the
learned doctor, having wisely considered how much the interests of
science would suffer if any accident befell his precious person, had
waited till the river was as smooth as glass, before he would venture
to traverse it.

It was perhaps also well for Roderick, that he now found himself upon
the theatre of war: that he had orders to give--decisions to make;
in short, that he had sufficient to occupy his mind, and prevent its
dwelling upon the unpleasant circumstances that had just passed.
Occupation, indeed, is the only sure remedy for grief. The consolations
of friends and hopes of religion may do much; but constant employment
is the most effectual medicine for woe that the skill of man has yet
been able to discover.

Roderick now enjoyed the benefit of this invaluable panaçea in its
fullest extent; for he had much to do. Notwithstanding all their
affection for him, his army could not conceal from themselves, that he
had sacrificed several valuable lives unnecessarily by his rashness,
and their confidence in his prudence was proportionably diminished.
Roderick saw, and was mortified by this; the more so, as he felt it
was occasioned by his own folly; and he struggled to do something to
retrieve the confidence he had lost. There is, perhaps, no situation
more painful to a noble, high-spirited mind, than the consciousness of
error; and the feelings of Roderick upon this occasion were an ample
penance for his faults.

During the whole of the passage of the river, and the encampment of the
army upon the opposite side, under the very walls of the city, not a
single soldier of the enemy had been seen: but when that was completed,
and the harassed host of Irish had stretched their weary limbs upon
the earth, to seek a few minutes' repose before the attack that was
ordered at daybreak, lights could be plainly seen moving to and fro in
the city, and the heavy tramp of the soldiers heard as they paraded
the walls. All now was still; a calm seemed to have succeeded a mighty
tempest.

A tent had been erected for Roderick and his chief officers; and
there the Monarch now sate gloomily musing, whilst his officers were
scattered, in various attitudes of repose and thought, around him.
Alexis, the Greek page, who had with difficulty passed the river, lay
at his feet. At length, all slept but Edric and Roderick. After a long
pause, the Irish hero looked at his friend, and seeing him gazing
at him with a look of the tenderest concern--"Edric," said he; "I
suffocate here; will you walk forth?" Edric willingly consented, and
they sallied from the tent.

The moon now shone brightly, and the night was calm and still. They
walked together towards the banks of the river. Those waters, which so
lately had raged like a roaring lion seeking to devour, now rippled
gently along, dancing in the sunbeams, and seeming almost to smile at
the mischief they had done.

Roderick could not bear the sight; remorse for his impatience struck
like a barbed arrow through his heart, and he turned hastily away.
He now looked at the scene that lay before him towards the town. The
moon shone brightly upon the tents of his soldiers, which contrasted
strongly with the black and disfigured ruins of the suburbs, amongst
which they had been hastily pitched; whilst the lights in the city,
seen only from the summit of the walls, made it look almost like an
eagle's nest suspended between heaven and earth. Roderick grasped
Edric's hand. "How calm," cried he, "how peaceful seems the scene
before us! Alas! how different from that which so lately--but ah!
what's that?" exclaimed he, suddenly interrupting himself; "surely I
heard a groan."

Edric listened, and distinctly heard the feeble moaning of a human
voice. Neither Roderick nor himself uttered a syllable; but both darted
to the spot from whence the sounds proceeded. Just at a bend in the
river, surrounded by lofty trees, now scorched and half destroyed by
the fire, had stood the _maison de plaisance_ of one of the Spanish
nobles. It had been built in the Italian style; hedges of myrtle and
pomegranates had bloomed in the garden, and a raised terrace had
surrounded the house, ornamented by statues. Now, however, this terrace
was covered with fallen pillars and broken vases--ruin and desolation
spread around. The trellis-work, against which, different creeping
shrubs had been trained, hung in wild disorder, torn from the walls,
and crushing with its weight the shrubs to which it had once served as
a support.

Edric and Roderick entered the dwelling, for the cry seemed to proceed
from its ruins. With hasty steps they traversed the deserted chambers,
in which magnificent tapestry hung in tatters from the walls, whilst
shattered remnants of valuable pictures and shivered mirrors showed the
grandeur that had once been there. All now, however, was desolation!
the gilded walls and ceilings looked black with the smoke, and the
splendid furniture lay half-burnt and half-destroyed upon the ground.
Roderick and Edric, however, did not stop long to survey the misery
around them, for they hurried hastily forward to the place from which
the cries had proceeded. As they approached, they found they were the
accents of a female voice that had attracted them; and advancing a few
steps farther, they beheld a sight that filled them with pity.

Beneath a fallen column, in the ruins of which she was so entangled
that she could not move, lay, or rather stooped, a beautiful female,
bending over the apparently lifeless body of an old man, whose fine
features and venerable appearance were sufficient of themselves to
create a deep interest in his behalf, but which interest was trebly
increased by the evident anxiety painted upon the beautiful face of the
female.

"Oh, Heavens!" cried she, as soon as they approached; "if you have any
mercy or Christian charity in your disposition, succour this poor old
man. Those cruel wretches have left him to perish miserably: though we
are strangers, we are human beings, and have committed no crime."

By this time, Edric and Roderick had arrived near enough to draw
her from the column, when they perceived, to their infinite horror,
that her arm was broken, and that she was otherwise seriously hurt.
"Oh, think not of me," cried she, finding they wished to succour her
before they attended to the old man, who appeared to be dead; "save my
father, I am quite well--can I help you?" and heedless of her own pain,
the heroic girl assisted in dragging her father from his dangerous
situation.

"I fear he is dead," whispered Roderick.

"Oh! say not so," shrieked Pauline, for that was her name; "he must,
he shall recover. Give him air," continued she, endeavouring with the
one trembling hand, the use of which remained to her, to unfasten his
collar. Edric gazed at her with admiration, and, struck with her filial
piety and generous self-forgetfulness, he felt an interest for her that
he had never before experienced for woman. He assisted her pious cares,
and finding the old man still insensible, he bore him in his arms to
the banks of the river, and sprinkled him with its waters.

Whilst he was thus engaged, the little fat Dr. Entwerfen, quite out of
breath with his exertions, came puffing up, in something between a run
and a trot. "Oh! Edric dear!" cried he, gasping for breath, "I've found
you, have I; but, heyday! what's the matter? You haven't been killing
any body, have you?"

"Doctor!" exclaimed Edric, "I am rejoiced to see you; this gentleman
has been hurt by some falling ruins--will you bleed him?"

The doctor had studied surgery in his youth, and had since practised
frequently for charity; and, being in all things in which his
particular foibles were not concerned, a man of sense and feeling, he
instantly comprehended the importance of the case, and drawing forth
his lancet, after having first bared and bound up the arm of his
patient, he bled him. At first the blood dropped slowly, drop by drop;
but it soon began to flow more freely, and then the patient, heaving a
deep sigh, opened his eyes.

Pauline had been bending over her father with an intenseness of anxiety
that repressed every personal feeling; but the moment she heard him
sigh, the unnatural strength that had supported her gave way; nature
could bear no more, and she fell senseless to the ground.

Every one flew to her assistance, and Dr. Entwerfen, in particular, was
quite in agony. "Dear, pretty creature!" cried he, pushing his wig on
one side, in his hurry to raise her up--"Pretty dear! I do declare her
arm is broken, and her shoulder dreadfully lacerated! Poor thing! I
wonder how she could contrive to hold up so long."

"It is wonderful!" repeated Edric. "It is the triumph of mental energy
over bodily suffering."

"See! she opens her eyes! she survives!" exclaimed Roderick. "Had I not
better return to my tent for assistance?"

"There are some soldiers just there," replied the doctor, pointing to a
group of men a few paces distant; "they came with me to protect me, but
I outran them when I saw Edric."

The soldiers soon formed a litter, upon which M. de Mallet, for that
was the name of the old man, and his daughter were conveyed to the tent
of Roderick, where proper surgical aid was afforded them. And whilst
they are recovering from the injuries they had received, we will take
the opportunity of informing our readers of the circumstances that had
placed them in so unpleasant a situation.

M. de Mallet was a Swiss noble; and upon the usurpation of the then
despot of Switzerland, he had vehemently defended the liberty of his
country. The tyrant had imprisoned him, and he had with difficulty made
his escape, followed by his only daughter, who was devotedly attached
to him, and who, in all his dangers, had never quitted his side. She
had lost her mother in her earliest youth, and since that period, all
her thoughts and cares had been devoted to her father.

To comfort him, had formed the sole occupation of her life; and self
was quite forgotten in her anxiety for his welfare. After escaping from
Switzerland, they had taken refuge in Spain, flattering themselves,
that, as it was a free country, they should there be safe and happy.
But, alas! they soon found the charms of freedom were more ideal than
real; and M. de Mallet, though he had been an enthusiast for liberty
under the despotic government of Switzerland, found the sweets of
freedom not quite so great as he had imagined amongst the Republicans
of Spain; the pride of the nobles, and the conceited ignorance and
insubordination of the people, being, as he found by sad experience,
things much more agreeable to talk about than endure. In Switzerland,
he had called the one, proud independence, and the other manly daring;
but he now discovered nobles and democratic chiefs can be tyrants
as well as kings; and that the mob is a many-headed monster most
exceedingly difficult to manage.

At first, M. de Mallet and his daughter were rapturously received in
Spain. No human beings could be more interesting: applauses filled
the air whenever they appeared; addresses were presented to them from
all quarters; the people crowded to see them, and the Spanish nobles
vied with each other in offering them an asylum. All this was very
fine; but, unfortunately, it was too charming to be lasting. As M. de
Mallet and his lovely daughter had been often seen, congratulated, and
condoled with, there was nothing now to be done, and the enthusiasm
of the Spaniards began rapidly to abate. In the first moment of
triumph, M. de Mallet had blindly believed every thing the people had
advanced, and had fancied himself, really as they called him, a hero
and a martyr. He thus felt sensibly the change of feeling they so soon
evinced; he became disgusted with a people so fickle; and, being too
candid to conceal his sentiments, he suffered the Spaniards to perceive
his disgust. The total alienation of the remaining interest they felt
for him, was the natural consequence.

In the heat of enthusiasm, M. de Mallet had accepted freely the offer
of a Spanish nobleman to make his house his home; but, with the usual
tenacity of a generous mind in a state of dependence, as soon as
he fancied he saw a coldness on the part of his host, he left him
instantly, and hastened to the house of another, who had been still
more warm in his offers of friendship. He, too, soon became cold; and
M. de Mallet, like the hare with many friends, though overloaded with
professions, found himself completely desolate when he really wanted
protection.

M. de Mallet had provided no funds when he left his native country,
and his estates having been confiscated, he was thus thrown entirely
upon the bounty of strangers. Too high-minded to endure dependence,
and too proud to humble himself to labour, M. de Mallet had solicited
and obtained the promise of a post in the Spanish army; and the
directors of the government having promised him a place in the garrison
of Seville, he had proceeded a few weeks before to the house of the
Duke of Sidonia, the governor of that city, for the purpose of taking
possession. The duke, however, received him coldly, amusing him with
procrastinating promises, till M. de Mallet found too late he had been
duped by the directors; who, to rid themselves of his importunities,
had sent him to Seville, merely on account of its distance from Madrid,
and the difficulty he would have in returning to torment them, instead
of having any real intention of complying with his wishes.

Indignant at the treatment he had met with, M. de Mallet expostulated
warmly with the duke; and the violence of his feelings produced an
apoplectic seizure. The duke, though indifferent to the suit of M. de
Mallet, was not destitute of the common feelings of humanity; he had
him, therefore, carried to a chamber, where proper surgical assistance
was afforded him. This scene took place at the duke's country-seat,
upon the banks of the river; and M. de Mallet had remained there
till, aided by a strong constitution and the vigilant attention of
his daughter, he was fast recovering. When, however, intelligence
being received of the rapid approach of the army of Roderick, the
duke ordered the suburbs to be burnt, including his country-house;
his unfortunate guests had entirely escaped his recollection; and the
Spaniards appointed to destroy the suburbs, having performed their task
with the utmost barbarity, tearing to pieces and destroying what they
could not burn; the servants had flown at their approach, entirely
forgetting M. de Mallet and his daughter; who, being in a distant
quarter of the mansion, knew nothing of what was passing, till they
were roused to a sense of their situation by the flames attacking their
apartment. With piercing screams Pauline succeeded in rousing her
father, and forcing him from the chamber; but they knew not where to
fly. The crackling flames seemed to pursue them wherever they went, and
the falling timbers threatened every instant to destroy them. At last
they reached the hall, and Pauline's beautiful features beamed with joy
at their approaching deliverance, when the tottering roof gave way,
rocking a few moments with a fearful cracking noise, and then falling
with a tremendous crash. Pauline saw it coming; but there was not time
to escape; and uttering a faint cry, she threw herself before her
father, striving to shield him with her delicate body from the coming
danger.

Feeble, however, would have proved this slight and fragile barrier to
ward off the impending peril, had not fortunately one of the descending
rafters struck against a projecting pillar, and thus formed a kind of
arch, which served to protect them from farther injury; the falling
of the roof having also nearly extinguished the fire. Pauline's arm
had been broken with the blow, and her shoulder dreadfully lacerated;
yet still the heroic girl supported herself; and, sustaining with her
remaining arm the apparently lifeless body of her father, who, stunned
with so many misfortunes, lay insensible at her feet, she endeavoured
by her cries to draw the attention of some one to the spot; as she
found her father and herself were so entangled in the ruins, that it
was impossible they could be extricated without powerful assistance.

The keenest interest was excited by Pauline and her father in the
breasts of Edric and Roderick; but, powerful as it was, it was destined
soon to give way to yet more painful sensations; for scarcely had
they been removed to the tent, when Roderick, perceiving the first
feeble tints of day streak the horizon, gave orders for the assault.
The city was strongly fortified, and even where the ancient bulwarks
had decayed, the governor had hastily supplied their place with wood
so skilfully painted to resemble stone, as quite to deceive the eyes
of his opponents. Thirty towers were ranged at intervals along this
formidable-looking wall; and on one side appeared a citadel strongly
garrisoned, which commanded that space between the river and the city
where the army of Roderick was now encamped, and which was aided by a
kind of ditch which served occasionally as a covered way.

The sun now rose in all its splendour, spreading its rich tints of
purple and gold over the scene, and sweeping away before it the mists
of morning. Soon, however, was its brilliancy to be obscured, and the
savage rage of man to deface the beauty of nature; soon did roaring
cannon and flashing weapons imitate a contention of the elements;
and soon did the gashed and bleeding forms of the assailants strew
the ground, rendered slippery by their blood. The besieged defended
themselves vigorously; three times did Roderick and his followers
attempt to scale the walls, and three times were they repulsed; but at
length a breach was made, and Roderick, transported with joy, threw
himself into it, shouting to his soldiers to follow him. They obeyed;
and the siege would have been at once terminated, had not a cloud of
dust, rising in long black columns in the distance, through which the
reflection of arms shone dazzling in the sun, given new spirits to the
besieged, and discouraged the besiegers.

Deep masses, half hidden by this heavy cloud, and appearing only more
vast from the obscurity thrown over them, advanced rapidly, seeming to
come on with the mighty force of the raging sea when it rushes along
with irresistible violence and sweeps before it every thing that dare
oppose its fury.

The garrison of the town, animated at the sight, rallied their
half-exhausted forces, and drove back the assailants with such carnage
that the line of their retreat was marked by a long stream of blood and
expiring bodies. Roderick, for the first time in his life, refrained
from renewing the attack, for, as he feared being surrounded, he
determined to draw off his forces, and give battle to the combined
French and Spanish army that was now fast approaching.



CHAPTER XXIV.


Notwithstanding the danger of his situation, Roderick was delighted at
the sight of the allied army. "Now we shall fight," cried he, "and not
be thrown down like dogs from the walls to perish. I could not bear to
see my brave soldiers so sacrificed. But now that we shall meet fairly
upon the open field, and struggle hand to hand, and man to man, we
cannot fail to conquer!"

"Heaven grant us victory!" said Edric, sighing.

"Why, and so it will, man!" repeated Roderick gaily. "Come, come!
rouse, and cheer thy spirits, for the moment of glory ought not surely
to be that of gloom!"

The force of the enemy had, in the mean time, rapidly advanced, and
the two armies were now opposite to each other; the river curving round
that of Roderick like a silver band. The situation of the Irish hero
was, indeed, now become hazardous in the extreme; and, if defeated, he
could neither retreat nor advance without being exposed to imminent
peril, as the river lay before him, and his rear was open to attacks
from the town. But neither Roderick nor his soldiers ever contemplated
the possibility of defeat; they breathed nothing but victory; and,
as the confidence of success often ensures it, they had hitherto
found themselves invincible, principally from the firm belief they
entertained that they really were so. Roderick divided his army into
three parts, and, determining to lead the van himself, he gave the
command of one of the other divisions to Lord Arthur O'Neil, son of
the Earl of Tyrone; and confided the other, which consisted entirely
of Spaniards, to the conduct of the Spanish general, Don Alvarez
Ripparda, upon whose prudence he knew he might confidently rely: whilst
he retained Edric, the doctor, and Alexis, the Greek page of Zoe,
immediately about his own person.

The battle soon raged with terrific grandeur; the shouts and cries
of the combatants, mingling horribly with the roar of the cannon,
which echoed from the walls of the town, seemed to leap from hill
to hill, and reverberate in the distance like peals of rolling
thunder. Roderick, in the mean time, performed prodigies of valour.
Not satisfied with directing the movements of his troops, he fought
bravely, sword in hand, like a common soldier, with all that prodigious
energy and unexampled good fortune, which had previously induced the
belief amongst the lower classes of Spaniards, of his being assisted by
supernatural agency. A square was attacked and seemed upon the point of
giving way; but when Roderick saw its danger and threw himself into the
centre, the soldiers were inspired with unwonted courage, and, fighting
like lions about to be despoiled of their prey, repulsed the enemy
with tremendous slaughter. In fact, nothing could resist the valour of
Roderick's arm; like Homer's Achilles, he seemed ready to triumph even
over Fate herself.

An unexpected occurrence, however, notwithstanding his prowess, was
very near turning the tide of the battle against him. Lord Arthur
O'Neil, whom he had placed at the head of one of the divisions, though
brave as an individual, was nothing as a chief; and, unequal to the
responsibility of the task he had undertaken, stood hesitating and
uncertain what to do, whilst the moment for action passed away. His
division had been sent round to attack the enemy in the rear; and
Roderick having advanced farther than he would have done, had he not
depended upon their assistance, their inaction seemed likely to produce
the most fatal consequences. Edric saw Lord Arthur's uncertainty; and,
comprehending in an instant both the cause and its effects, he put
himself at the head of a few men and galloped to his relief. Arthur,
bewildered and overwhelmed, willingly resigned his command; and Edric,
leading his division to the charge, changed instantly the fortune of
the day. The victory that followed was decisive. Those combating in
front against Roderick, astonished at hearing the din of battle in
their rear, wavered and became irresolute; whilst disorder being once
thrown amongst such a mass of men, horses, and ammunition-wagons,
its consequences were irreparable. The rout soon became general. The
French and Spaniards fell over each other in dismay; whilst, in some
instances, their confusion was so excessive, that they turned their
arms upon their own troops, mistaking them for those of their opponents.

The pursuit of the flying foe being confided to the Spanish division of
Roderick's army, that victorious monarch returned himself in triumph
to his camp before the city. Gloom hung over the walls of Seville, as
that proud city expected to become instantly the prey of the conqueror.
Roderick, however, finding the garrison were still determined to
resist, and that his own soldiers were exhausted by the fatigue they
had undergone, resolved to defer the attack till the next day. Then
retiring to his tent, he ordered his officers and nobles to be summoned
to hold a council of war as to their future proceedings. A crowd had,
in consequence of this summons, already collected round the Monarch
when Edric appeared amongst them. Roderick saw him, and hastily rushing
forward, clasped him in his arms. "My dearest friend!" cried he;
"yesterday you saved my life, but to-day you have preserved my honour.
I do not attempt to thank you, for I feel the utter incompetency of
words to express my feelings. Do not, however, look miserable, Arthur,"
continued he, addressing the unfortunate general; "for I do not blame
you. It was my fault for putting you in a situation you were not
competent to fill. For the future, you and Edric shall change places;
and then I trust, whilst I have still the pleasure of employing my
friends, the interests of the state will not suffer."

A page now appeared, bearing a ribband, attached to which, were
fastened some glittering crosses. "It is well," said Roderick, taking
the ribband in his hand. "Edric," continued he, "I hope you will oblige
your friend by accepting these splendid baubles from his hand. They can
confer no additional honour upon you in his sight, but they may aid in
establishing your authority amongst the soldiers you in future will
command, who regard these trinkets with respect."

Edric gracefully bowed assent, and kneeling before the Monarch,
received his new honours with as much grace as Roderick bestowed them;
the assembled officers and nobles pressing round, and offering their
congratulations. Whatever they might say, however, no one present
really felt a tenth part of the delight experienced by Dr. Entwerfen
upon the occasion. His transport, indeed, quite defies description;
for he danced, sang, jumped, nay, absolutely screamed with rapture;
till at last, quite unable otherwise to give vent to the violence of
his emotions, he sprang to the pillar of the tent, and clinging round
it, embraced it with all his strength. All these antics had been
slyly watched and enjoyed by Roderick, even through the circle that
surrounded him: he lost sight of the doctor, however, when he darted
away; and it was not till the officers and nobles dispersed, that the
King discovered his learned friend, to his infinite amusement, still
hugging the post.

It has been already observed, that an unconquerable love of mischief
mingled with the thousand good qualities that formed the composition
of Roderick, and that he was continually getting into scrapes, and
playing tricks upon all the unhappy personages who happened to fall in
his way; though his invincible good-humour, and a certain indescribable
degree of the _bon enfant_ peculiar to his character, rendered it quite
impossible for any one seriously to resent his pranks.

It was not, indeed, in nature, for any human creature to be long angry
with Roderick; and thus being certain of not giving lasting offence,
whenever he was not positively engaged in war, the restless activity of
his disposition made him frolic about, like a spoiled and petted child,
who, even at the very moment of his sins being forgiven, is entirely
occupied in plotting some new exploit.

Under these circumstances, it may be easily imagined what an infinite
fund of amusement the confiding simplicity of Dr. Entwerfen had
proved to Roderick, and innumerable had been the tricks he had played
off upon him during their long and tedious sojourn in the Isle of
Leon. The important events that had since occurred had, however,
entirely occupied the monarch's attention, and the poor doctor had
been suffered to enjoy a long respite, till this sudden view of his
unabated enthusiasm presented an opportunity too tempting for the
laughter-loving Monarch to resist.

Accordingly that evening, one of Roderick's pages, affecting an air
of profound secrecy, presented the doctor with a mysterious bag,
containing several small balls of dough, and a billet from the King,
in which he informed the doctor, that these balls when boiled would be
converted into a gunpowder of such amazing strength and efficacy, that
ten grains of it would be sufficient to blow up a whole city; and that
having become possessed by accident of the invaluable secret of their
composition, he wished to use them for the destruction of Seville; and
not having in his whole camp so skilful an experimental philosopher as
the doctor, he had determined to confide their preparation exclusively
to his care.

It is impossible for words to do justice to the importance that
swelled in the breast of the doctor as he perused this epistle. He
strutted, puffed himself out, and did his very utmost to look big--a
feat he doubtless might have contrived to accomplish, had not Nature
perversely determined to counteract his endeavours, and confined his
stature to about four feet eleven. As it was, however, he certainly
did make the most of himself, and being firmly resolved not to lose a
single instant in putting the designs of the King into execution, he
hastened to a vacant place between the camp and the city, where some
cauldrons had been hastily erected for cooking the soldiers' food, and
there commenced his operations.

In the mean time, Roderick, who had no idea the doctor would be so
expeditious in his movements, was busily engaged in superintending the
removal of the wounded, and in giving orders of the assault which was
to take place upon the following day. He had indeed much to do; for
awfully heavy is the responsibility of a general who is not entirely
divested of feeling for his men; and the heart of Roderick, though
a mistaken thirst for glory had made him a conqueror, was kind and
generous, nay even tender in the extreme.

Urged by his compassion, he thus could not rest satisfied, after the
more arduous labours of the day were over, without visiting himself
the hospitals of the sick. He saw their wounds dressed, and tried to
soften their pains, whilst he spoke kindly to them, and praised their
valour. Thus employed, as he passed from tent to tent, the eyes of his
soldiers beamed with rapture at his approach; and even in the agonies
of death, they raised their feeble voices to call down blessings upon
his head. Alexis followed his master in this excursion, and his fine
eyes sparkled with pleasure as they followed the god-like form of
Roderick through the crowd. The Monarch, indeed, himself, started with
amazement as, turning suddenly, he accidentally met their gaze. "This
page," said he to Edric, who happened to be near, "possesses a glance
of fire--I really never saw more expressive features."

"It is often the case," returned Edric calmly, as he assisted one
of the surgeons to bind the arm of a wounded soldier. "The dumb
frequently employ gestures to make themselves understood, and their
features insensibly become more expressive from the muscles being more
frequently brought into play."

"You fought like a hero, my brave fellow!" said Roderick to the poor
man Edric had been assisting. "I hope your hurt is not serious!"

"And if it were through my heart," said the man, "it's no more than I'd
be proud to bear for your Majesty, any day of my life."

"Oh, these Irish!" sighed an old Andalusian soldier, who lay near, and
happened to understand them. "They are brave as lions in the field, but
gentle as doves when they are in a chamber."

"Have your wants also been attended to?" asked Roderick.

"Yes, God bless your Majesty!" returned the soldier. "If the devil does
help you when you are fighting, I am sure it is God's own spirit makes
you so good to your soldiers afterwards."

"If the devil helped me to-day," said Roderick, laughing, "I am sure I
am very much obliged to his Satanic Majesty, for I never was in greater
peril. Do not look so grave, Edric, you know I am only joking; and that
whatever my tongue may say, my heart only feels gratitude where it is
really due:" and as he spoke, he devoutly crossed himself.

"I know," said Edric gravely, "that your heart is infinitely better
than your head."

"The fault of my countrymen," cried Roderick, again smiling, "or
rather the fault of nature, for they, poor souls, can't help it. Our
imaginations are so vivid that, like a restive horse, they are apt to
take the bit in their teeth and gallop away at full speed, in spite of
all that the sage Dame Reason, who still keeps uselessly pulling the
rein, can do to prevent them."

As soon as the more important duties of his station were fulfilled,
Roderick intended paying a visit to Doctor Entwerfen, to discover what
effect had been produced upon the doctor's mind by his treacherous
letter; but Edric proposing that they should see the fair Swiss, as
common politeness required they should inquire after her arm, the poor
doctor was driven entirely from his thoughts.

A separate tent had been pitched for the reception of M. de Mallet
and his daughter; and when our friends entered it, they found that
worthy gentleman quite recovered, and his lovely daughter reclining
upon a kind of couch, and looking more beautiful than ever. Her angelic
features had, it is true, lost the animation they before expressed, but
their present languor made them infinitely more interesting than their
former energy. Softness was indeed the characteristic of Pauline's
beauty. Her figure, though slight and sylphic, was yet round and full
enough to please a voluptuary. Her complexion was exquisitely fair,
but a beautiful rosy tint glowed on her cheeks, whilst her clear blue
eyes and golden hair gave her the look of a seraph; and when she raised
those bright blue eyes in gratitude to Edric, her look sank deep into
his soul, and he thought he had never before seen beauty.

Such was Pauline; and when she spoke, Edric, as he listened in
rapture to the soft melting tones of her melodious voice, felt he
could no longer resist, but yielded up his heart a willing captive to
her charms. Yes; the calm, the reasoning, the philosophic Edric was
actually in love. He, who had so despised and ridiculed the passion,
and who had affected to doubt its very existence, was now become one of
its most devoted victims.

Roderick was almost as much charmed as Edric with the beauty of
Pauline, and as the circumstance that had at first introduced her to
their notice formed so striking a contrast to the softness and delicacy
of her present appearance, that it was scarcely possible to suppose
her the same person, a feeling of curiosity mingled with the interest
she excited. When our friends entered the room, M. de Mallet rose to
receive them: "I know not how to thank you," said he; his voice almost
stifled with emotion: "my own life was of little value; but for that of
this dear child--" he could not proceed.

Roderick took his offered hand. "My dear Sir," cried he, "talk not of
thanks; Edric and myself are but too well repaid in seeing you thus
recovered; and I am sure we shall ever esteem the day when we were so
fortunate as to be of service to you, as the happiest of our lives!"

"You are too good," exclaimed M. de Mallet--"too good!" and he could
no longer restrain his tears.

Roderick was deeply affected; he could not bear to see an old man weep;
and he again took M. de Mallet's hand, pressing it respectfully to his
lips: "My dear Sir," exclaimed he, "what I have as yet been able to do
for you is nothing; but if you will return with me to Ireland, I may be
able--"

"Hush! my good friend," replied M. de Mallet; "I do not doubt your
kindness nor your power; but I have had too much of professions!"

"My father," said Pauline, interposing her soft sweet voice, "has
suffered much; forgive him if he seem ungrateful for your kindness; but
repeated disappointments sour the spirit. We have seen much trouble!"
and her voice trembled as she spoke.

"Alas! if _you_ have not been exempt from trouble, who shall dare
complain?" exclaimed Edric, in a voice as soft and tremulous as her own.

Pauline turned her beautiful eyes upon him: "Pardon me, Sir," said she,
"that I have not before thanked you! be assured it has not been for
want of feeling your kindness; but sometimes the heart is too full for
utterance."

"Thanks from your lips, madam," returned Roderick, "would be a reward
for any service."

Pauline blushed: "You too, Sir, were kindness itself," rejoined she:
"think not I am insensible to your favours; but I am a bankrupt even in
thanks. Alas! fate destines us to incur continually obligations which
we can never repay."

"A grateful heart is more than words," said her father; "and in that,
my child, I know, you will never be deficient; but to whom are we
indebted for such kindness?"

"I am the King of Ireland," said Roderick, smiling; "surnamed the
devil's favourite here in Spain."

"Is it possible?" cried M. de Mallet; "do I, indeed, see the
illustrious Roderick?"

"And this," continued Roderick, without noticing his exclamation,
"is my friend, Mr. Montagu, an Englishman; who, like many of his
countrymen, not contented with enjoying every luxury at home, rambles
into foreign climes, to grumble and find fault with every thing he may
chance to meet."

"Do not believe him, madam," cried Edric; "my countrymen are fond of
travelling, it is true; and may find fault occasionally with what they
think deficient in a strange land; but I assure you, we travel from
a desire of improving ourselves and acquiring knowledge, whilst we
only find fault in the charitable hope that our censures may produce
amendment."

"That is, supposing your censures are just," replied Roderic; "but that
we sometimes take the liberty to doubt."

"I think nothing more unreasonable than to censure customs merely
because we are not used to them," said M. de Mallet; "for my part,
when I travel, I make up my mind to be satisfied with every thing, as
I think I have no right to quarrel with inconveniences I have sought
myself."

"It would be well," rejoined Roderick, "if all were of your opinion,
and if those who cannot be contented abroad would try to rest contented
at home. But you speak as though you had travelled, and I think your
daughter mentioned yesterday that you were strangers in Spain."

"We are Swiss," replied M. de Mallet; "my name is de Mallet, a name
which you may have heard as belonging to a champion of liberty.
Powerless as my efforts have been, I was that champion, and the reward
of my labours is poverty and disgrace in a foreign land."

"But surely," said Roderick, "the Spaniards as a nation of freemen
would receive a martyr for liberty with open arms, and would treat him
as a brother."

"Yes, yes," replied M. de Mallet bitterly; "I have had a tolerable
specimen of their fraternal affection: they received me with
protestations, fed me with delusive promises, and then left me to
perish miserably."

"Not designedly, my dear father," said Pauline; "I cannot suppose they
left us to perish designedly."

"Oh, no!" cried Roderick; "that must have been impossible: tigers must
have been moved to pity by that voice. They never could have intended
to leave _you_ to perish."

"Sire," replied M. de Mallet gravely, "you forget my daughter and
I are but plain simple Swiss; we are unused to flattery and to the
language of Courts; do not then address expressions to us above our
comprehension, which may lead us to forget the distance fortune has
placed between us."

"Speak not of the difference of rank," interrupted Roderick
impatiently; "beauty and merit, like that of your daughter, place her
upon a level with a throne."

"Pardon me, Sire," replied Pauline, blushing, and casting her eyes upon
the ground; "I am perfectly aware of the humility of my station. I am
aware that I was not born to be a companion of kings and princes, nor
have I any wish to exalt myself above the situation in which nature has
placed me. My duty to my father led me to follow him to the Spanish
Court. It was the first that I had seen; and, forgive me, Sire, if I
say I sincerely hope it may be the last."

"But you must not judge of us by the Spaniards."

"I know it well, Sire; report has always spoken of the Irish hero as
noble, generous, and kind: even his enemies have done justice to his
merits, and the fame of Roderick has spread to every corner of the
globe. I know that he is incapable of treating my father as he has been
treated by the directors of Spain; but I know also, that he is so far
superior to myself as to make his notice a condescension which I dare
not flatter myself will continue, and of which I know myself perfectly
undeserving."

Edric's eyes expressed his admiration, and Pauline's glowing cheeks
proved she saw and understood their meaning. Roderick, however, was not
quite so well pleased; he felt himself rebuked, and Roderick did not
like to feel himself in the wrong.

"You are too modest," said he; then turning to Edric, "Edric,"
continued he, "have you any idea what is become of Dr.
Entwerfen?"--then again addressing himself to Pauline, he added,
"Apropos--you will be very much amused with the learned doctor,
Mademoiselle de Mallet; but I give you fair notice before you see
him, that you must not laugh at him before his face, for Edric is as
tenacious of the feelings of his tutor as of his own."

Pauline's eyes expressed her approbation of Edric's delicacy upon
this point; and, as they met his, they conveyed more pleasure to his
heart than language could express. From this moment, Pauline and Edric
seemed to understand each other, for they felt there was a community of
feeling between them. The mute intelligence of the eyes sometimes says
more than whole years of common-place intercourse; and thus Pauline and
Edric felt like old friends, though they had scarcely exchanged half a
dozen sentences.

"Was not that the gentleman that relieved me from my swoon?" asked M.
de Mallet.

Before Roderick had time to answer, an officer rushed into the room,
looking the very image of despair, and, approaching Roderick, bent his
knee before him.

"What is the matter?" cried the Monarch sternly. "Speak! If you have
committed a fault, you have less to fear from my justice than my mercy,
for misplaced lenity only encourages crime."

"Pardon, Sire!" exclaimed the officer, still kneeling; "but--but--"

"Speak!--no evasion."

"Your Majesty commanded that we should watch that no harm happened to
Dr. Entwerfen, and--and he has been taken by the enemy."

"Fool! dolt, blockhead!" cried Roderick; and, taking leave of M. de
Mallet and his daughter, he and Edric hastily quitted the tent.

The balls the Irish King had given the doctor were simply formed of
dough, the same as that used in the making of bread, with only the
addition of a little bit of quicksilver rolled up in the centre of
each. This, the merry Monarch knew, as soon as it was exposed to the
action of heat, would make the dumplings dance about, as though they
were bewitched; and he anticipated great amusement from seeing the
doctor's exertions to keep them in the pot, and his despair at not
being able to do so. To prevent the possibility of mischief, however,
he had desired a select guard to keep watch over the unfortunate
philosopher, and never to lose sight of him, taking care to prevent,
if possible, his being exposed to any danger. These fellows, however,
did not perform their duty, and it was to their negligence that the
unhappy fate of the doctor was owing.

The moment the doctor had received the fatal balls, he hastened to the
cauldron, and, hastily kindling a fire, began to try the experiment.
The balls more than answered Roderick's expectations, for, as soon as
they were affected by the heat, they began to jump out of the pot, one
after the other, with the most determined perseverance. The doctor was
in a violent heat from being exposed to the steam of the cauldron;
and he threw off his coat to cool himself; his wig also slipped off,
in his exertions to recover the provoking balls, he being obliged to
skip after them with the utmost agility as they rolled bounding along;
and no sooner had he caught one and put it back into the pot, than
another would jump out and begin a new set of vagaries. The doctor,
though tired and provoked, did not however relax his labours even for
an instant, and he was running, panting and out of breath, after one of
these mercurial harlequins, when he was stopped by a rough arm, whilst
a man in a gruff voice demanded what he was doing there?

The doctor looked up, and finding with horror that he was surrounded by
eight or ten armed Spaniards, answered, in trembling accents, "that he
was making gunpowder."

"Gunpowder!" exclaimed one of the men. "But what were you doing with
those balls?"

"I was boiling them," replied the doctor, with great awe.

"You seemed to be playing with them, I think," resumed the man. "Were
you running after them to make gunpowder?"

"Yes, they wouldn't stay in the pot; and I was obliged to run after
them, to catch them."

The soldiers burst into a horse laugh at this naïve reply, and their
merriment offered a ridiculous contrast to the doctor's woeful visage.
They now prepared to retire, dragging the doctor with them, totally
heedless of his supplications for pardon and declarations of innocence.
They declared him to be a spy, and swore that they would hang him as
such as soon as they should get within the town. The soldiers who were
appointed to guard the doctor, and who, by indulging in a comfortable
game at piquet, had neglected their charge, now came up, and, dismayed
at seeing the doctor in custody of a force too considerable for them to
engage with, fled to inform their Sovereign, trembling, however, all
the time at the consequences of their disobedience.

When Roderick and Edric reached the plain, the group of soldiers, with
the poor doctor in the midst of them, were just entering one of the
gates of the town through which they had made their sally. The rays
of the setting sun fell full upon the poor doctor's bald head and
shining face; and these, and his white shirt sleeves, as he raised his
hands in a supplicating manner towards Heaven, made him a conspicuous
object even at a distance, till he was hidden from the sight of his
friends by the heavy gates closing upon him. Roderick and Edric were
in despair at the loss of their favourite; and to see him dragged away
so barbarously, without having the power to assist him, was enough to
try the philosophy of a stoic. It was no wonder, therefore, that it
was too much for the patience of the Irish hero, who had rarely known
disappointment or control: he raved, stamped, and, unable to contain
his rage, ordered an instant attack of the place.

The enemy, imagining the Irish too much fatigued with the battle
they had just fought, to assault the town that night, were far from
expecting an attack; but, encouraged by the successful opposition they
had before made, they received the assault with firmness, and repulsed
it with vigour. The cannon roared with tremendous fury on both sides,
and whole columns of men were swept away as grass falls before the
scythe. The impatience of Roderick increased every moment, and the
discharge from a petard having set fire to the wooden bulwarks of the
town, he threw himself upon the blazing breach, sword in hand, heedless
of the crackling timbers and fast spreading flames, whilst Edric and
some of his most devoted soldiers followed him, and they were all soon
warmly engaged with the Spaniards who opposed their entrance upon the
walls. A loud shout from below, however, soon engaged their attention;
the besieged had made a sortie by means of the covered way; and Edric
and his royal friend, finding their retreat would be cut off if they
stayed, were reluctantly compelled to retire with their followers.
Roderick, indeed, was struck down by a Spanish soldier, whilst in the
act of leaping from the walls. The soldier, seeing the effect he had
produced, was about to repeat his blow, and the Irish hero must have
perished before he could have recovered himself, if Edric had not
interposed, and received the gash instead of his friend; then instantly
turning round, he cut down the soldier. In the mean time, Roderick had
revived, and he and Edric fought their way back to the rest of the
army. It was now getting quite dark, and the besieged falling back
within the town, the army of the Irish Monarch returned once more to
their camp.

"How provoking!" cried Roderick, the moment they entered his tent,
taking off his helmet, and giving it to Alexis the Greek page: "I
shall never be happy again, if they hurt the doctor. Take my sword
also, Alexis: but what is the matter with the boy? methinks he
looks wondrous pale. Does he not, Edric?" Then turning to Edric, he
was excessively shocked at the change in _his_ appearance. It has
been before stated, that Edric received the blow the Spanish soldier
intended for Roderick. The wound had bled profusely, but the blood
having congealed, the flow had stopped, and Edric, aided by his own
courage, presence of mind, and firmness, had been enabled to sustain
himself till he had reached the tent. Now, however, that the necessity
for exertion had ceased, his pallid looks and ghastly countenance
bespoke what he had suffered. He had received one horrid gash upon the
temple, and the coagulated blood upon his face and hair contrasted
frightfully with the whiteness of the rest of his face. In fact, he
looked like the ghost of some poor murdered wretch appearing to implore
vengeance upon his destroyer.

He had seated himself at a table, resting his arms upon it, and
supporting his head with his hands. He attempted to smile in answer
to Roderick's inquiries; but the effort was too much for his already
exhausted strength, and his head fell heavily upon the table. Roderick
flew to support him, and despatched Alexis for a surgeon. "My dear!
dear Edric!" cried he, "speak to me! for God's sake, speak to me! Do
not let me think that I have destroyed my friend. Oh, Edric! 'tis
Roderick calls. Speak! speak, for God's sake, speak!"

Edric was, however, incapable of speaking; and the torture of the
Irish King, when he found his friend could not answer him, was beyond
description.

"My beloved Edric!" exclaimed he, wringing his hands in an agony of
grief, "I implore you to answer me. Alas! he cannot: he is no more.
Curses on my folly! I might have been blest and happy: but, in pursuit
of the phantom Glory, I have sacrificed all I ever loved on earth. Oh!
would to God that I had never visited Spain!"

A heavy groan behind him startled Roderick as he finished speaking; and
turning round he beheld Alexis, who had now returned with the surgeon.
The boy's appearance was singular; his complexion was usually a clear
dark brown, with a rich glow of colour, and remarkably full rosy lips;
now the deep colour on his cheeks remained unfaded; but his lips had
assumed a ghastly livid hue, his limbs trembled with agitation, and a
dark mysterious expression seemed to sit upon his features. Roderick
looked at him with amazement and almost horror, as strange suspicions
arose in his mind respecting him.

Before the Irish army had left Cadiz, it had been whispered that the
Duke of Medina Celina's claim to the throne was at least equal to
that of the Prince whom Roderick was fighting to establish. The duke,
indeed, had many partizans, but his age and blindness enfeebled their
efforts. An express from Cadiz had just brought intelligence that the
duke was dead; and as Zoe was his sole heiress, this extraordinary
agitation in her page looked at least suspicious.

"I must beware of him," thought Roderick, regarding him attentively;
"for as Zoe knows that, notwithstanding my obligations to her, I shall
never permit any monarch to reign in Spain but Don Pedro whilst I live,
my life will be the first sacrifice required in her cause."

Thus mused Roderick, though it was but for an instant, that even the
dread of personal danger could divert his thoughts from his friend.

The surgeon, when he probed Edric's wounds, however, declared to the
great joy of the King that they were not dangerous, and that he had
only fainted from loss of blood. He was now placed upon a couch in the
same tent with that of the King; and Roderick, soon after stretching
his fur mantle under him, threw himself upon his bed; if not to sleep,
at least to muse upon the eventful occurrences of the day.

In the mean time, Dr. Entwerfen was forcibly dragged by the Spanish
soldiers towards a kind of town-hall, in one of the principal squares
of Seville, where, on a platform or dais, raised a little above the
floor, sate the sapient magistrates of the town. When the prisoner was
brought before them, they all put on their spectacles and surveyed him
attentively, examining his bald head with the most scrupulous exactness.

"Here is the lump of a spy," said one.

"And here that of a rogue," rejoined another.

"Yes, the organs of observation and self-appropriation," resumed the
first, "are strongly developed. That head is enough to hang an angel!"

"Alas! alas!" cried the poor doctor; "would to Heaven that I had not
lost my wig!"

"It would have been of no avail, if you had retained it," said one of
the judges gravely, "as it would have been forcibly removed; and even
if you had worn your own hair, you must have had your head shaved; for,
knowing the general corruption and inaccuracy of witnesses, the judges
of this enlightened court reject verbal testimony altogether, and form
their correct and infallible judgments upon the sure and undeviating
basis of that most profound and useful of all sciences--craniology."

"And happy are the prisoners judged by so wise a rule," said another.

"Yes," rejoined a third; "for, though the minds of men are weak, and
their judgments liable to err, the broad and general principles of
science must ever remain unchangeably the same."

In this manner they went on, whilst the poor doctor, looking ruefully
from one to another, as they severally pronounced their opinions, stood
the very image of despair.

"Let us question him," resumed the first magistrate: "what were you
doing when you were taken?"

"I was making gunpowder," sighed Dr. Entwerfen.

"The wretch!" exclaimed all his judges together; "he acknowledges he
was manufacturing weapons for our destruction."

"And how were you making this gunpowder," resumed the judge.

"I was boiling it," moaned the doctor.

"Boiling it!" exclaimed the judges; "what a villain!" and they all
shook their wise heads in concert. The poor doctor could not bear this;
and throwing himself upon his knees begged stoutly for mercy.

"In my opinion," said one, "we should be guilty of a crime in letting
him escape."

"I think so too," cried another.

"I would not have such a sin upon my conscience for the world,"
exclaimed a third.

Whilst the unfortunate doctor, reading his condemnation in their
countenances, groaned aloud in the agony of his spirit.

At this moment, the deep awful roar of a cannon was heard, and Dr.
Entwerfen leaped from his knees. "Thank God! thank God!" cried he,
strutting up and down, and wiping his forehead with his pocket
handkerchief, as the continued roar of the cannon rolled awfully along,
rebounding from house to house, and shaking the very court in which
they stood. The magistrates looked aghast, whilst their pallid lips and
trembling limbs told that, however great they might be in the council,
their courage was not particularly conspicuous in the field.

The doctor, in the mean time, kept ejaculating, "I'm safe! I'm safe!
See what a thing it is to have a friend for a sovereign: no, no! what
did I say? a sovereign for a friend, I mean. Ay, ay! that's it! that's
it!"

Thus did the doctor exult, whilst the citizens crowded round their
chiefs, begging for directions, and not knowing whither to fly for
safety. In this dilemma, the exclamations of the doctor attracted
their attention; and, enraged to see him rejoice at their misery, the
magistrates ordered him to prison, whilst they consulted as to what
steps it was most advisable to take.

The poor doctor's joy was thus quickly changed to grief; and he
lamented loudly his foolish transports of delight, without which,
he might perhaps have passed unnoticed in the crowd. It was too
late, however, for repentance; the command had gone forth, and the
unfortunate doctor was dragged away to a loathsome dungeon. The assault
was, as we have seen, repulsed, and it being too late, when it was
over, to think of hanging Dr. Entwerfen that night, the magistrates
retired to their beds, determined to have him executed the first thing
in the morning.

All was now still; the plain between the camp and the city, which had
so lately echoed with the heavy tramp of horses and human beings, now
slept tranquilly in the moonlight; undisturbed, save by the groans
of some expiring wretch, or by the busy labours of those employed to
remove the dead and relieve the wounded. Roderick had thrown himself
upon his couch, and dozed, but in a disturbed slumber; whilst Alexis,
placed at a table, was writing dispatches from the dictation of Don
Alvarez de Ripparda, who had returned from the pursuit, and sate
opposite to him; whilst Lord Arthur O'Neil nodded at his side, and
Edric lay reclined on another couch, at a little distance, near the
opening of the tent.

All was silent, save the whispered voice of the Spanish general, the
heavy breathing of Lord Arthur, and the measured steps of the sentinel,
as he paced his weary round. Edric listened till he grew tired of the
same sounds falling uninterruptedly upon his ear, and turning on his
couch, tried to divert his attention by gazing upon the objects before
him. The strong light from the lamp placed upon the table, fell upon
the fine features of Alexis, as he looked up to the Spaniard; and
Edric thought, as he gazed upon them, that he had certainly seen those
features before, though where he could not remember; and fatigued
with the effort of trying to recollect, he turned to survey the noble
Roderick, as he lay gracefully stretched upon his couch. One arm was
raised above his pillow, and the other fell carelessly by his side,
whilst the fine contour of his head and neck was fully displayed, the
rich, thick, glossy curls that generally hid his forehead being thrown
back. His coral lips were half open, and his long black eyelashes
fringed his closed eyelids; whilst his dark whiskers and mustachios,
with the rich brown tint that glowed upon his cheek, contrasted finely
with the whiteness of his throat. "God bless him!" thought Edric, "and
send him all the happiness he deserves!" And then seeming fearful to
disturb him, he looked again towards the town. The curtain of the tent
was partly looped up, and Edric watched, with interest, the lights of
those still employed in their several duties of burying the dead, and
relieving the wounded. The figures of the persons engaged in these
painful duties were frequently imperceptible; and the lights gliding to
and fro, apparently without any human means, looked like ignes fatui,
or an assemblage of ghosts at their infernal revels.

Edric sighed as he surveyed them, and: his thoughts flew back, he knew
not by what connection of ideas, to his native land. He thought of his
father, his brother--of the good old Duke of Cornwall--of Rosabella and
Elvira, till, one by one, the lights appeared to die away; the images
that floated before his fancy became gradually fainter and fainter;
his thoughts more confused: the scene before him faded rapidly from
his sight, and, in short, he was fast sinking into repose, when he was
roused by a slight sound, and looking up, saw the Spanish general and
the Greek page standing by his bed-side.

Edric roused himself immediately, though he still pretended to slumber.
The recollection of all he had heard respecting the Duke of Medina,
Pedro, and the Princess Zoe, mingled with the suspicions that had
been breathed of the mysterious page, flashed across his mind, and
effectually destroyed all inclination to sleeping: indeed, a cold
shudder ran through his frame, as he remembered, with horror, that
if any thing were designed against Roderick, the first step of the
conspirators would be to destroy him, from his known devotion to the
Irish monarch, and that, in his present enfeebled state, he was quite
incapable of resistance. His blood seemed to run more feebly through
his veins, and he panted for breath, whilst he listened attentively,
and heard the Spanish general whisper, "He sleeps, but not soundly
enough for our purpose."

An icy thrill seemed to chill Edric's heart, and involuntarily he
heaved a deep sigh. The supposed conspirators started, and retired.
Edric, now completely roused from his slumber, gazed after them,
as, with creeping, stealthy steps, they glided across the plain.
Astonished at what he had seen and heard, Edric lay lost in bewildering
speculations; but soon a new object caught his attention. Thick, black,
pointed columns of smoke arose from the town through which, first a red
glow, and afterwards sparks, appeared at intervals. At first, Edric
could not imagine what it was; he rubbed his eyes, and almost fancied
it was a display of fireworks; but, presently, long spiral columns of
flame burst through the smoke, and, uniting in one immense body of
fire, rose up to heaven, and seemed to swallow up the devoted city.

The moment the flames broke forth, Alexis and the Spanish general
hurried back to the tent, and Roderick sprang from his couch, when he
heard their hurried footsteps. "What is the matter?" cried he, rubbing
his eyes, and half blinded by the sudden glare of light.

"The city is on fire!" exclaimed a thousand voices at once, and
Roderick rushed forth upon the plain. The air felt hot and scorching:
"Save them! save the inhabitants!" cried Roderick; "promise them
quarter--peace! any thing to save them! Let all the soldiers fetch
water from the river! I will have no plunder. He dies who touches an
article belonging to the town, or injures a single creature escaping
from it. Let us fight like men! It is beneath us to take advantage of
misfortune!"

The orders of Roderick were as promptly obeyed as given; the monarch
himself leading the way to the town, and assisting in endeavouring to
quench the flames. The gates were thrown open, and men, women, and
children rushed forth half naked, and were received and supplied with
food and shelter by the army of the Irish hero. The Irish adored their
sovereign; his valour, his rashness, and his romantic generosity, won
their hearts; and even his most discontented soldiers loved whilst
they blamed him: thus his will was law--nay, there was something so
noble in his orders, that his soldiers were proud of implicitly obeying
them, and not the meanest slave of the camp would have presumed to
violate them in the slightest instance. The flames had now caught
some cotton-mills on the river, which had been spared in the previous
conflagration, and they burst forth in fresh volumes of fire, as the
light materials they contained added fuel to the flames. The buildings
in the town were mostly old, many of them wood, and some were large
warehouses filled with the most combustible substances, which burnt
with added fury as the long pointed flames lapped them into their
devouring vortex; curling round them, and wrapping them in columns of
fire as they, one by one, fell victims to their rage. The town was
now half destroyed, and the flames were fast approaching the citadel;
the governors of the city had been roused from their beds, and had
taken refuge, half naked, in the camp of Roderick; but the prisoners
yet remained in the citadel, shut up, however, in dungeons below the
surface of the earth. Roderick had anxiously inquired of every one for
Dr. Entwerfen, and at last, to his infinite horror, he learnt he was
in this fated citadel; he rushed forward in agony to save him, for he
knew that the powder was kept there. He was aware too, that the flames
had already seized the fortress: long ere he could reach it, indeed,
a tremendous explosion took place--a vast burst of fire rushed forth,
scattering red flaming furniture, bricks, pillars, and every kind of
rubbish in all directions, and then all sank to comparative darkness.
The fire seemed to have spent its fury in that last effort, and, though
it still feebly crept along in a half-smothered flame, its violence was
passed. Dreadful, however, was the scene that now presented itself,
for Seville was levelled with the dust. Black disfigured smoky ruins
supplied the place of what had once been lofty towers and sumptuous
palaces; the splendid cathedral, that had withstood the rage of
centuries, was now no more; and human bodies lay in the streets, thrown
in fearful heaps, some half burnt, and others blackened and dried by
the scorching fury of the flames.

Roderick, however, stayed not to examine the effects of the fire;
he rushed over heaps of yet hot ashes, and threw himself amongst
the still smoking ruins of the citadel. A Spanish soldier, whom he
had saved from destruction a few minutes before, was his guide, and,
under his directions, Roderick hastened to the dungeons: he hurried
from one to the other, releasing the unhappy wretches confined there,
searching everywhere for the doctor, but in vain: at last he heard his
well-known voice--the dungeon door was thick, but it could not resist
the impatience of Roderick--he could not wait for the soldier to assist
him to open it--he burst the fastenings asunder, and in an instant the
poor doctor, sobbing with joy, was locked in the monarch's arms. Some
of the soldiers of Roderick had followed him to the citadel, and he
left it to them and the Spaniard to release the other prisoners, whilst
he returned with his dear doctor in triumph back to the camp.


END OF VOL. II.



CHAPTER XXV.


When Roderick and Dr. Entwerfen returned to the camp, they found Edric
most impatiently awaiting their arrival. He was too much agitated to
speak; and the worthy doctor found all his troubles amply repaid by the
interest his friends took in his welfare.

Whilst Dr. Entwerfen was employed in relating his adventures to Edric,
Roderick was occupied by a task far more difficult and important than
any he had yet undertaken, viz. that of organizing and of providing
for the disorderly multitude that had thronged into his camp from the
city: their number was immense; men, women, and children, crowded round
their deliverer, falling upon their knees, blessing him and kissing
the edge of his garments. Roderick was affected even to tears: "For
Heaven's sake, my good friends," said he, "spare me; I have done but my
duty; I have been but an humble instrument in the hands of Providence;
address your thanks to him: there they are due."

Roderick, however, was quite aware it was not enough to have saved
these people: he knew he must do something to provide them with
food and lodging; and that if he did not, when the first moment of
enthusiasm should be passed, unpleasant scenes must inevitably take
place. He accordingly made dispositions to this effect, with a prudence
and sagacity that would have done credit to far more advanced years.
Temporary huts were erected, till the streets of Seville could be
cleared of the ruins that encumbered them, and the houses in some
measure repaired. Shelter for the inhabitants being thus provided,
Roderick harangued the magistrates, directing them to take the people
under their direction. These sapient ministers of justice gladly gave
him possession of the town, which Roderick was too generous to assume
without their permission, and acknowledged themselves and the garrison
prisoners of war. The peasants, when they found the kindness with which
the citizens had been treated, flocked in with provisions, and the camp
of the Irish monarch soon resembled an immense fair.

Alexis had followed his master during the whole of these arrangements,
and had frequently sighed deeply as they proceeded. "What is the matter
with the boy?" said Roderick in one of these moments: "I cannot imagine
why he looks so melancholy!"

The boy enthusiastically clasped his hands together, looking up to
Heaven, as though murmuring an inward prayer.

"What can this mean?" exclaimed Roderick with astonishment.

The boy took his master's hand, pressing it first to his lips, and
then vehemently to his heart, and knelt before him, reverentially
bending his forehead to the earth. The next moment, however, officers
entering for directions, the attention of Roderick was diverted and
Alexis forgotten.

In the mean time, M. de Mallet and his daughter, who had been
exceedingly agitated by the events of the day, thought not of repose,
but sat in the tent prepared for them, conversing upon the merits of
their deliverers.

"I never saw a finer countenance," said M. de Mallet, "so noble, so
animated, and yet so good."

"Good indeed," ejaculated his daughter; "surely if we could believe a
superior spirit would ever descend upon earth, such would be the form
he would assume!"

"How kindly he spoke, and how considerately!" exclaimed the father.

"How attentive he seemed, and how delicate!" rejoined the daughter.

"Such a majestic figure!"

"Such a graceful manner!"

"It is so rare to find such condescension in so great a monarch."

"Monarch!" cried Pauline: "were you speaking of Roderick, father?"

"And of whom were you speaking, child?" returned her father, turning
quickly round, and fixing his eyes upon her.

"Of--of--Mr. Montagu, father," replied Pauline, casting down her eyes
and deeply blushing.

"Pauline!" said M. de Mallet. She started at the sound of her father's
voice, and looked timidly up in his face. "Pauline," repeated he, "my
dear child, beware!"

At this moment a roar of cannon shook the tent; the sound echoed by the
walls of the town, and leaping from hill to hill in lengthened peals,
Pauline sunk upon her knees, hiding her face in her father's lap. "My
child! my beloved child!" cried M. de Mallet, bending over her as
though to shield her from danger, "Heaven defend thee!"

In this painful situation, the father and daughter continued till the
cannonading ceased. All was now still; and awful was the calm that
succeeded such a tumult. Pauline raised her head, and looked fearfully
around. "Come, my child," said her father, "let us endeavour to
ascertain who are victors."

Pauline rose from her knees, and, leaning upon her father's arm,
accompanied him to the opening of the tent; but she shrunk back,
shuddering at the horrid scene that presented itself. Their tent was
situated at the extreme edge of the camp, and commanded a view of the
whole field of battle where the combat of the morning had taken place.
The plain that stretched to their left, lay covered with the bodies
of the dying and the dead, whilst a multitude of horses broken loose,
galloped over the field, plunging, snorting, and crushing beneath their
hoofs, the bodies of their fallen riders.

In some places, the branches of half broken trees strewed the ground,
whilst their mutilated trunks, perforated with shot, remained as
melancholy relics of their former beauty. Swords and helmets, mingled
with overturned waggons and military utensils of all kinds, were
scattered in wild disorder around. The earth, ploughed up by the cannon
balls in deep furrows, save where the ridges had been beaten flat by
the feet of the combatants, looked wild and uneven as the waves of the
mighty ocean arrested in the moment of tempest. Blood lay in pools upon
the ground; and clotted gore, mingled horribly with remnants of human
bones and brains, hung to the still standing bushes, disfiguring the
fair face of nature.

Pauline shuddered, and turned eagerly to the other side of the
landscape, which commanded a view of the town. Here still, however, she
found nothing but death and war. It was the moment when the explosion
of the petard set fire to the wooden bulwark; and Roderick and Edric
leaped through the flames upon the beach. The bright glare of the
blazing bulwarks relieved strongly their dark figures, and Pauline
distinctly saw and recognized them for a moment, though the next they
were lost in a cloud of smoke. She screamed, and grasped her father's
arm in convulsive agony. M. de Mallet was scarcely less agitated than
herself; and, as the smoke cleared away, they saw distinctly through
its flaming volumes, Roderick and Edric upon the breach, opposed by a
crowd of Spaniards, and fighting with inveterate fury. "Roderick is
on his knees," cried M. de Mallet. "But see! he rises suddenly, and
plunges the Spaniard, who had raised his sword to cut him down, into
the flames." Pauline did not speak; but she gasped for breath, and
held her father's arm yet more tightly than before. Edric was now seen
grappling hand to hand with a Spaniard, when the fire and smoke closed
upon him and hid him from their view. The next instant, a tremendous
crash was heard, and loud shouts, followed by a rush of men; it was the
sortie of the besieged.

"Oh, heavens!" cried Pauline, turning pale, and resting her head upon
her father's shoulder, "war is a dreadful thing."

"You are faint, my child," replied M. de Mallet; "this is no fitting
scene for you. Shall we go in?"

"Oh, no, no!" cried Pauline feebly; "I cannot leave the spot." Here
shouts of "Roderick! Roderick for ever! Roderick and glory!" rung in
their ears. Pauline shuddered; a faint sickness crept over her; the
scene seemed to swim before her eyes; and she would have fallen, but
for the supporting arm of her father. At this moment, some soldiers,
carrying a bier, passed at a little distance from the tent. Upon it lay
the body of an officer; his head hung back, his long thick hair was
matted with gore, and a ghastly wound gaped on his uncovered breast.
Pauline could bear no more--she thought it was Edric, and she fell
fainting into her father's arms.

M. de Mallet bore her back into the tent, and as soon as she was
sufficiently recovered to enable him to think of any thing but
herself, he dispatched one of the soldiers, appointed to attend them,
to ascertain if the Irish monarch had escaped. The soldier did not
return; and M. de Mallet, too impatient to remain in his tent, sallied
forth to learn the news himself. Scarcely was he gone, however, when
the soldier's wife, whom he had called to the assistance of Pauline,
perceived the town was on fire. Pauline's agitation now became
excessive; she trembled in every limb, and listened till the sense
of hearing seemed agony. She could not comprehend the cause of the
noise and bustle made by the citizens, as they came crowding into the
camp; she looked forth, but the throng of half naked men, women, and
children, that came hurrying along, seemed inexplicable; she stopped a
woman, who, half dressed, had her clothes tucked up in one hand, whilst
with the other she led two half naked children--"What is the matter?"
asked she. "Roderick," cried the woman bewildered in her grief, "God
bless the noble Roderick!"

"Where are you going?" demanded Pauline of two young men, bearing
between them a bed containing their sick father.

"Roderick!" shouted the pious Spaniards. "Heaven, in its mercy, bless
Roderick!" Pauline was proceeding in her inquiries, though without
the smallest hope of receiving a direct reply, the hearts and minds
of Spaniards being so full of Roderick, that no other name could find
utterance from their lips, when she perceived her father.

"My dearest father!" cried she, running to him; "now I shall know all!
What is the matter?"

"Roderick, the noble Roderick is safe!" repeated M. de Mallet. Pauline
was chagrined--she longed to hear of Edric, and she envied, for his
sake, the renown of the Irish hero. "Can you, too, speak of nothing but
Roderick?" said she, somewhat reproachfully.

"And of whom else should I speak?" replied her father. "Who else
deserves to be spoken of? for surely he is the bravest! the noblest of
men!"

"I do not doubt it," observed Pauline coldly. "Every tongue utters his
praise--every breast swells with gratitude at his goodness--and every
hand is raised to Heaven in prayers on his behalf.

"Have there been many persons killed?" asked Pauline.

"How can you ask so foolish a question?" replied her father. "Do you
not see the ground heaped with slain?"

"But persons of note, I mean?"

"Let me see; I think they said there were the Generals H---- and
M----, and Counts L----, P---- and T----."

"Oh!" groaned Pauline, impatiently.

"And besides, I think they say Mr. Montagu is seriously wounded."

"I feared so!" sighed Pauline, "he is so brave."

"Yes--every one says he is brave, and implores blessings upon his
name--for he saved the life of Roderick!"

Pauline's countenance had beamed with triumph at the commencement of
this sentence; but it rather fell at the conclusion. She did not quite
like her hero to owe his glory to any one but himself.

M. de Mallet continued: "His bravery and nobleness of spirit were
unequalled. Every one praises him. There is certainly something very
extraordinary in the character of the English. Their daring tempers and
love of adventure lead them to quit peace and riches in their native
country, to seek glory and distinction elsewhere. This Mr. Montagu is
really an exalted young man."

Pauline's eyes flashed joy--she felt she loved her father better than
ever--she could have embraced him as he spoke, for the praise of Edric
sounded as the sweetest music in her ears. Strange that so slight an
acquaintance should have produced so strong a passion! but such and so
inexplicable is love.

Pauline had now patience to hear the explanation of her father
respecting Roderick. She even felt pleasure in the repetition of
his exploits, for he was the friend of Edric; and she retired to
rest--happy in herself, and contented with all the world; having been
first assured by her father that the surgeon confidently expected Edric
would soon recover. Pauline, however, would have been very much puzzled
to explain the cause of the excessive contentment that she felt. The
situation of herself and father was as hopeless as ever. They were
still prisoners in a strange land, without fortune, without friends;
but so little does happiness depend upon external circumstances, that
the breast of Pauline seemed to have been a stranger to it till now.

After arranging every thing for the comfort of the refugees and his own
soldiers, Roderick took a few hours of hurried repose. When he rose in
the morning, he sent his compliments to M. de Mallet and his daughter
to demand permission to wait upon them. This was instantly and gladly
accorded, and in a few minutes the Irish hero was in their tent.

"I condole with your Majesty upon the situation of your friend," said
M. de Mallet, the moment he saw him: "I hope he is better."

The monarch smiled; he forgave the abruptness of the question, in
favour of the excellence of the motive, and he replied that Mr. Montagu
was fast recovering. "He regrets exceedingly," added he, "that it is
not in his power to pay his devoirs here"--bowing to Pauline, "and well
can I sympathize with him, as I know what he loses."

Pauline inquired modestly the particulars of the combat. "Upon my word,
Madam," replied Roderick, "I know very little about it."

"I thought your Majesty had been engaged."

"That is the very reason. If I had not, the case might have been
different; but as it was, I only just saw a great many people that
tried to kill me, and a great many that I tried to kill, and the smoke
hid all the rest."

"A very satisfactory account of a battle, upon my word," cried M. de
Mallet, smiling; "but other people saw more of your Majesty's acts than
you did yourself; and they say, you performed prodigies of valour."

"It is very kind of them to say so," said Roderick, "for I am sure it
is more than they know."

"Your Majesty's modesty wishes to throw a veil over your valour,"
observed Pauline, "but luckily it cannot be concealed."

"Your praises, Madam, would make any man a coxcomb," returned the
Monarch: "I own I have not the courage to refuse commendations from
your lips."

Pauline blushed--she fancied she had said too much, and now remained
silent.

"I cannot describe how much I admire your Majesty's leniency to
the inhabitants of the city," said M. de Mallet: "it proves your
benevolence is equal to your valour, though indeed it was sound policy
to act as you have done; for by this you have conciliated the hearts of
the Spaniards; whereas, if you had exercised any cruelty, they would
have risen against you _en masse_; but this, I dare say, your Majesty
considered."

"Indeed," replied Roderick smiling, "my Majesty considered no
such thing; I only thought as a man: I did not like to see my
fellow-creatures burnt to death, or poniarded if they attempted to
escape; I should not have liked it at all, if I had been in a similar
situation, and so I did all in my power to save them--that is all I
know about the matter. But to change the subject, I have a great favour
to beg of you, Mademoiselle de Mallet."

"What is it?" asked Pauline: "your Majesty has only to speak to be
obeyed."

"Oh! for Heaven's sake do not talk of obedience--it is I who should
obey--I only ask a favour, and that is, that you will permit me to
bring Dr. Entwerfen to kneel at your feet and kiss your fair hand, in
token of his homage."

"I would not advise Pauline to let him kneel," said M. de Mallet
laughing, "as I fear, if she does, there will be some difficulty in
getting him up again."

"Your Majesty's commands,--" said Pauline.

"Do not talk of commands," interrupted Roderick; "I hate the word."

"Your Majesty's wishes, then," continued Pauline smiling, "shall be
complied with."

"This evening, then," cried the gay monarch, "the doctor shall make his
appearance. Till then, adieu!"

"Will your Majesty have the kindness to present my best wishes to Mr.
Montagu for his recovery," requested M. de Mallet.

"Certainly," replied Roderick; "but am I to tell Edric that
Mademoiselle de Mallet has no wishes for his welfare?"

"I wish--I hope--that is, I think----" stammered Pauline.

"My daughter means her sentiments are exactly similar to my own
upon the subject," said M. de Mallet gravely; for he was not at all
pleased with the interpretation he thought the King might put upon the
embarrassment of his daughter.

"Very well!" repeated Roderick provokingly: "I shall tell Edric, that
M. de Mallet and his daughter think exactly alike of him.--That is it,
is it not?"

M. de Mallet was about to reply, when the King, nodding and waving his
hand, bade them adieu, and hurried away. "I don't know what to make of
the Irish hero," said M. de Mallet, the moment he had left them. "With
all his good qualities, there is something very strange about him: I
don't know what to make of him!"

Pauline sighed assent; though she did know what to make of him very
well, for she fancied he saw, and ridiculed her partiality for Edric.
This idea roused every spark of pride in her nature; she could not
bear the thought of being supposed to give her love unsought, and she
determined when she next saw Roderick to show by her coldness and
indifference, when Edric was mentioned, how completely he had been
deceived.

When Roderick left the tent of M. de Mallet, he returned to Edric, whom
he found pale and feeble.

"You are the happiest fellow in existence, Edric!" said he: "I would
willingly give all my glory, and even my demoniacal renown, that the
Spaniards talk so much about, to be able to call up such blushes to the
cheek of beauty as your name can raise. Oh! if you had seen Pauline. By
Heaven! she is the loveliest creature I ever beheld in my life!"

As he spoke, Alexis, the Greek page, who had been crouching rather than
sitting at the foot of Edric's couch, resting his head upon his hands,
and looking absorbed in grief, uttered a faint cry, and rushed out of
the tent.

"There is something very extraordinary about that boy," said Roderick,
looking after him.

"There is, indeed," replied Edric, "and I have something that I wish to
communicate to you respecting him:" and in a few words he related what
had passed the preceding night in the tent.

"Impossible!" cried Roderick, "you must have been dreaming, Edric! What
communication would the boy hold with Alvarez? You know he is dumb.
Besides, even if Alvarez were inclined to plot against me, he is too
prudent and reserved to make a confidant of a beardless boy!"

"I simply relate the facts as they occurred," said Edric; "I do not
pretend to explain them. But I can assure you, I was neither dreaming
nor delirious."

"It is very strange!" repeated Roderick musing, "and it corresponds
remarkably with what I have observed myself." For some moments he
remained lost in thought; but it was not in his gay and joyous nature
to suffer anything to depress him long; and the next instant, Alexis
was forgotten.

The fall of Seville, and the destruction of the army sent to defend it,
produced a powerful effect upon the destinies of Spain. The Cortes
again sent ambassadors to negotiate with the Irish hero; but, taught by
experience, he now received them haughtily, refusing to treat with them
but as a conqueror; and to put his threats in execution he determined
to advance immediately upon Madrid.

"We must follow up our victory," said he to Edric, after he had
somewhat contemptuously dismissed the deputies from the shattered
remnant of their allied army, who came to sue humbly at his feet for
peace. "These people are treacherous beyond description. They do not
understand leniency, and they must be treated with sword in hand. I am
thoroughly tired of them; their fickleness and uncertainty have quite
disgusted me; I will therefore march to Madrid, establish Don Pedro as
their sovereign, and take my leave of them for ever."

"I am rejoiced to hear it!" exclaimed Edric. "You will then return to
Ireland, and devote your time to your own subjects."

"I will try to satisfy them as well as I can; but as perfection cannot
be expected all at once, you must not be surprised if some day I
should fly off in a tangent, and take it into my head to colonize the
moon."

Edric laughed: "If you promise to wait till then," said he, "I shall be
satisfied."

"You may not find my project so wild as it appears," rejoined Roderick.
"The moon is a very pretty, mild, modest-looking planet, and I must own
I should like amazingly to see what kind of inhabitants she contains;
and if I should determine to go there, here is a gentleman who I am
sure will be quite ready to accompany me."

Dr. Entwerfen entered the tent as he spoke. "Of what was your Majesty
speaking?" asked he.

"Of a voyage to the moon," said Roderick. "Will you go with me?"

"With all my heart," cried the little doctor, rubbing his hands and
looking all glee at the thought.

"There, I told you so," said Roderick, laughing.

"I should have thought the many adventures you have met with had cured
your passion for travelling," rejoined Edric.

"Cured him! Given him a zest for it, you mean," replied Roderick. "The
appetite for travelling always grows with what it feeds upon; and
though the doctor may boast

    'That he _has_ fair Seville seen.
    So _is_ a traveller, I ween,'

yet I do not doubt but that he is just as eager to explore new places
as ever."

"Yes," returned the doctor, "I certainly did see Seville."

"Every part of it, my dear fellow, from its palaces to its dungeons,"
resumed Roderick; "nay, I believe you were very near being indulged
with a view of its ropes."

The doctor did not quite relish this raillery. "I can assure your
Majesty--"

"_Apropos de bottes_," cried Roderick, interrupting him, "I had
entirely forgotten I promised to introduce you to Mademoiselle de
Mallet. We will go now. Will you accompany us, Edric? I am sorry to
ask you to do any thing so disagreeable; but I think it will be but
decent to kiss hands, take leave, and all that sort of thing, before
we set out for Madrid: besides, it may be as well to make some kind of
provision as to what is to become of them in our absence."

"Then you will not take them with you?" said Edric, despondingly.

"Who ever heard of such a thing?" cried Roderick; "How could I possibly
ask the lovely Pauline to endure the inconveniences of travelling with
a camp? I really have not the assurance to attempt it."

Edric sighed deeply; and his countenance assumed an expression of so
much melancholy that Roderick laughed immoderately: "I could not have
believed it possible," cried he, "that you could ever become such a
sighing Strephon; the thing's incredible!"

"The pain of my wounds," said Edric, blushing; for even philosophers
don't like to be laughed at.

"The pain in your heart!" repeated Roderick, mimicking him. "But,
come! come! I can pity you. I have been in love at least fifty times
myself--so I know what it is."

"But I am not in love," remonstrated Edric.

"Denial is one of the most dangerous symptoms," resumed Roderick,
gravely. "Experienced physicians rarely think their patients really
ill, till they are not conscious of it themselves. Let me feel your
pulse."

"Psha," said Edric, impatiently.

"Will you go then!" asked Roderick, laughing; and to avoid being
farther tormented by his raillery, Edric hastily rose from his couch,
and declared himself ready to attend him. The injuries he had received,
having been only flesh wounds inflicted with a sabre, had now nearly
healed; and the only change they had produced in his appearance,
had been to make him look more pale and interesting, one arm being
supported by a sling, and a bandeau bound round his forehead. Pauline's
eyes sparkled when she saw him, in spite of her intended indifference;
and she could not command her voice so entirely, but that its tremulous
tone betrayed her inward agitation.

Edric's eyes also involuntarily expressed his pleasure; whilst the gay
laugh and arch look of Roderick told that he was perfectly aware of
what was passing in the mind of each. Doctor Entwerfen, however, saw
nothing of the kind, his mind being quite absorbed in the delightful
contemplation of his own glory. He had been presented to M. de Mallet
by Roderick, as "his friend and counsellor, the learned and justly
celebrated Dr. Entwerfen;" and that moment seemed a sufficient reward
for a whole life of misery, the doctor's ecstasy upon the occasion
being so unbounded, that he neither knew what he did nor what he said.
Whilst Roderick had been speaking, indeed, he had been in perfect
agony; stretching himself out on tiptoe, opening his hands and closing
them again with every sentence, as though bursting with impatience to
speak, that he might by his eloquence confirm the monarch's eulogium,
yet trembling every instant lest he should interrupt it.

M. de Mallet had been a dabbler in scientific experiments in his youth,
and, pleased to find a person who could talk to him, and understand
his ideas upon the subject, he soon drew the doctor on one side,
leaving his younger friends to be entertained by his daughter.

"I am glad, very glad, to see you so soon recovered," said Pauline,
addressing Edric in a gentle tone; "I feared, that is, my father
feared, your wounds were more serious."

"You see, Edric," cried Roderick archly, "it is as I said--Mademoiselle
de Mallet feels for you exactly the same interest as her father does."

"I should be flattered by exciting any interest in so gentle a bosom,"
sighed Edric, looking at her tenderly.

Pauline sighed too--involuntarily, but remained silent.

"Do you then feel no interest in my behalf?" continued Edric; "not even
the cold, chilling feeling sanctioned by your father?"

"Oh! call not the interest my father feels for you cold or chilling!"
exclaimed Pauline with energy, "I am sure--that is, I think--" and
here, fearing she had said too much, she stopped abruptly, totally
unable to proceed.

"Oh, go on!" exclaimed Edric, gazing earnestly upon her blushing
face--"go on, I could listen to you for ever!"

Pauline trembled, blushed, and hesitated. "I--I--I think I had better
go to my father," stammered she after a short pause.

Roderick smiled: "By all means!" said he. "Don't you think so, Edric?"

Edric did not reply; for in fact he did not hear the question; whilst
poor Pauline's agitation increased, and her colour changed rapidly
every moment: she dreaded Roderick's raillery, and trembled so
violently that she could scarcely stand.

At this moment her father returned; he looked at his daughter with
some surprise, and then, turning to his guests, he apologized for her
abstraction. "My daughter is unused to camps," said he, "and the scenes
she has lately gone through have been too much for her nerves."

"She will now have an opportunity of recovering herself," replied
Roderick; "my army will move forward to-morrow, and if you will accept
the post, I will leave you governor of this city, with a sufficient
garrison to keep it on my behalf."

Pauline turned deathly pale as he spoke, and every hope of happiness
seemed to fly from her breast for ever.

M. de Mallet, however, was not at all aware of his daughter's anguish;
and, thanking the king gratefully for the high honour conferred upon
him, his fancy began to revel by anticipation in the delights of
governorship; and in ten minutes he had arranged in his mind as many
improvements and alterations as it would take fifty years to accomplish.

"Farewell," continued Roderick, "I trust we shall meet again, if
not here, at least in another and a better world. Permit me, lady!"
continued he, slightly touching with his lips the pallid cheek of
Pauline. "To-morrow with the dawn we advance, and we have so much to do
ere then, that we must deny ourselves the pleasure of again enjoying
your society. Farewell, Governor, you will find the necessary papers
to install you here," (giving him a packet) "and the soldiers have
orders to obey you as myself. Come, Edric."

Edric advanced, and bowing, took the hand of Pauline and pressed it
respectfully to his lips;--his heart was too full to speak. Pauline
could scarcely restrain her tears, and shaking hands with the doctor,
she hastily retired to a part of the tent enclosed for her use.

"My daughter is not well," said M. de Mallet, "these scenes of blood
and war are too much for her nerves; but she will soon recover when you
have left us."

"I doubt that," murmured Roderick in a half whisper; and soon after the
friends retired. Edric was not insensible to Pauline's emotion; and as
he more than suspected the cause, a pleasure, unknown before, throbbed
in his bosom. His eyes sparkled, and his whole appearance presented so
complete a contrast to his usual depression, that Roderick could not
resist the temptation of again rallying him most unmercifully upon it.
"Talk of medicine," cried he, "there is no elixir like the magic of a
pair of bright eyes. All the physicians in my camp can effect nothing
like it. Nay, you need not blush so, Edric! I did not imagine you were
so far gone as that."

"I do not blush, that I am aware of," returned Edric, somewhat
peevishly; for he did not relish being teased; "at least, I am sure I
have no occasion for blushing."

"Well, then, don't look so like a bashful maiden, disavowing her first
attachment, with a 'La, Pa! how can you think so!'--I did not suppose
you were capable of such affectation."

"I am not aware that I have been guilty of any."

"Come, then, own the truth candidly--you love Mademoiselle de Mallet?"

"How can you think so?" replied Edric, blushing deeply in spite of his
efforts to look composed.

"You are indifferent to her, then? Dear me, I had no idea of it, I
never was more completely deceived in my life! Well, if that's the
case, I will resume my first design of trying my own fortune."

"How can you be so provoking?"

"Why it is very hard, if you are not in love with her yourself, that
you should wish to prevent every one else from being so."

"Your Majesty's rank, I should think, would prevent your even thinking
of Mademoiselle de Mallet."

"Why should my rank prevent the possibility of my being happy?"

"Your Majesty's rank prevents the possibility of your marrying Pauline;
and I should hope you would not dare to entertain dishonourable views
respecting her."

"Dare! dishonour! Do you remember whom you are speaking to, Edric?"

"Perfectly; for I have not forgotten Roderick, though he appears to
have forgotten himself."

"Edric! But I won't be angry with you. When people are in love, they
never mean what they say; in fact, they very seldom know what they are
talking about. I remember once when I was in love myself--"

Alexis, who had waited at the entrance of the tent during the visit his
master had paid to M. de Mallet, and was now following them, sighed
heavily at this remark. Roderick heard him;--"What is the matter with
the boy?" said he: "Were you ever in love, Alexis?" The page sighed yet
more deeply than before, and, crossing his arms upon his breast, bent
his head in token of assent.

"It is to be much lamented you cannot tell us all about it," continued
Roderick; "for you could never choose a more fitting moment for such
a tale; as you may depend upon the sympathy of Mr. Montagu, even if I
should be so barbarous as to refuse you mine:--

    'We pity faults to which we feel inclined,
    And to our proper failings can be kind;'

as one of your own poets says. Eh, Edric! Don't you think he's right?"

"I think you are very provoking."

"That is because I am touching upon a string that happens to be not
quite in tune; so no wonder it jars a little. Do you not remember the
old proverb?

    'Touch a man whose skin is sound,
    He will stand, and fear no wound:
    Touch a man when he is sore,
    He will start, and bear no more.'"

"How can you condescend to repeat such nonsense?" cried Edric,
indignantly. "It is unworthy the poorest beggar in your dominions!"

"And how can you condescend to be moved at such nonsense, Edric?"
replied Roderick, laughing. "Come, come! own the truth, for it is
useless to attempt any longer to deny it. Say, candidly, that you are
in love with Mademoiselle de Mallet, and I will tease you no longer."

"In love is too strong a term. I admire, esteem, and respect
Mademoiselle de Mallet. I even think her possessed of a thousand charms
and a thousand virtues; but as to being in love----"

"Well, well! we will not quarrel about words. I do not think you
will ever make a romantic lover. You Englishmen are too reasoning and
prudent ever to fall violently in love. Your blood is as cold as your
climate. Now we take the thing quite differently; with us love is a
devouring flame! a fire that absorbs our whole being--a stream that
sweeps every thing before it--a madness--a delirium! In short, I don't
know what it is!"

"I think not," said Edric, dryly.

"Psha, psha!" continued Roderick; "if it could be described, it would
not be worth feeling. It is all spirit! all soul! if you tie it down to
rules, it evaporates. Don't you think so in Greece, Alexis?"

The page bowed, and shaking his head, pressed his finger upon his lips.

"True," returned his master; "I had forgotten: but if you cannot speak,
you can write. Take these tablets, I should like to know your opinion."

The page took the tablets, and wrote with astonishing rapidity--"Since
your Majesty condescends to ask my opinion, I think that the love
which can stay to reason, or hesitates to sacrifice every thing to the
beloved object, does not deserve the name."

"Bravo, my little hero!" cried Roderick, tapping him upon the shoulder;
"spoken like a true Greek. An Irishman, however, would have said nearly
the same."

The boy's slender figure trembled in every nerve at his master's touch,
and his cheeks were flushed with unwonted passion, though his eyes
remained fixed upon the ground, from which indeed he rarely raised
them. Roderick gazed upon him a few minutes in silence, as though he
wished to read his inmost soul. Then turning abruptly to Dr. Entwerfen,
who had taken no part in the last conversation, he demanded gaily what
he was thinking of.

"I was thinking, your Majesty," said the doctor, gravely, "that it is a
long way from hence to Madrid, and that it will be very fatiguing for
your men to march so far."

"Upon my word, doctor," said Roderick, laughing, "you have really
made a most sublime discovery, and I perfectly agree with you in the
justice of your conclusions."

"That being granted," continued the doctor, "if any means could be
devised by which your army could be transported to the gates of the
city without the trouble of walking there, it would be a good thing."

"Certainly," said the King; "the fact does not admit of a dispute."

"The only difficulty is to contrive how it is to be done," resumed the
doctor, musing.

"Ay, there's the rub," cried Roderick, laughing immoderately; "however,
if any one can do it, I'm sure you can, my dear doctor. So rally your
energies and consider the best means of commencing operations: I am
sure, if you exert yourself, you cannot fail of success."

"Your Majesty does me honour, and I will endeavour to prove I am not
undeserving of the confidence you repose in me," said the little
doctor, drawing up himself to his full height, and puffing out his
cheeks as he walked on absorbed in meditation. "I have it," cried he,
suddenly stopping short; "what does your Majesty think of an immense
raft?"

"Excellent, my dear doctor! I see but three objections to making one
large enough to convey the whole army:--First, that we have no timber
to make it of;--secondly, we have no horses to draw it;--and thirdly,
the roads are not wide enough to admit it."

"Balloons would do, but we have them not," resumed the doctor, still
profoundly cogitating, with his eyes fixed upon the ground, and his
hands in his breeches-pockets.

"What think you of packing the soldiers up in bombs, and shooting them
out of mortars?" asked Roderick.

"Your Majesty is pleased to jest," observed the doctor, gravely; "but
ridicule is not argument."

"Certainly not," replied the King; "and you mistake me greatly if you
thought I meant to ridicule your plan. I only wished to remark that I
feared it would be rather difficult to put it in execution."

"That which can be accomplished without difficulty," said the doctor,
solemnly, "is scarcely worth the trouble of undertaking, and quite
below the consideration of a man of genius. Difficulties to a man of
science are but incentives to action."

"Most sensibly observed, my dear doctor," cried Roderick; "however, as
we have now reached our tent, I must leave you to contrive some plan
to bring us back from Madrid, as I am afraid we cannot wait now to put
your designs in practice to enable us to get there: we must march with
the dawn. Of course you will accompany us."

"Certainly!" returned the doctor, still musing; then muttering to
himself--"I don't much like the plan of shooting off the soldiers, it
would take such large mortars and so much gunpowder:--however, there is
no knowing what might be done: I will think of it:"--he retired to his
tent, though no sleep visited his eyes that night, so completely had
the idea of packing up the soldiers in bombs taken possession of his
imagination.

Roderick's arrangements were soon made, for Nature had certainly
intended him for a general. His intelligent mind foresaw every thing,
and provided against every contingency. Brave in the field, and
prudent in council, the only fault of Roderick as a soldier was that
he sometimes suffered himself to be carried away by his ardour when
it would have been wiser to delay. But this very impetuosity had its
charms in the eyes of his soldiers, as he never hesitated to expose
himself to the same dangers or to undergo the same privations as
themselves, and they would all have followed him willingly into the
very jaws of destruction.

After arranging every thing for the morning's march, the Irish hero
snatched a few hours of repose. With the dawn, however, the drums beat
the reveillée, and the Irish army left Andalusia to advance by rapid
marches upon Madrid.



CHAPTER XXVI.


Whilst these scenes were taking place in Spain, Elvira was beginning to
discover, in England, that it was not quite so delightful to be a Queen
as she had previously imagined. The contending parties in the state
had been roused into action by the late struggle, and party spirit is
of all others the most difficult to conquer. Besides this, the choice
of Elvira having been rather a matter of feeling than of judgment, men
felt dissatisfied at having suffered themselves to be hurried away by
their passions, and, as is usual in such cases, they were disposed to
vent the ill-humour they felt at their own conduct upon every thing
which chanced to fall in their way. Thus, even the best measures of
Elvira's government were warmly criticised; and as she unfortunately
altered some of her laws in consequence of these objections, the
critics were encouraged to proceed; and fancying her plans to be the
result of weakness, when they were in fact only produced by her natural
candour and love of justice, the people became more outrageous and
troublesome with every concession that was made to them.

Elvira's intentions were excellent, but by unfortunately wishing to
please every one, she destroyed their effect. This made her councils
vacillating, and her measures uncertain: nothing indeed but the
strength of mind and commanding genius of Edmund, joined to his
complete devotion to her cause, could have prevented the ruin of her
government almost in the moment of its formation. From a mistaken
motive of generosity, she had retained in her council those lords who
had most vehemently opposed her, though, in compliance with the wishes
of Edmund, they were shorn of their beams. This was a fatal error;
half measures are always dangerous: the lords in question should have
been discarded altogether, or retained in their former seats; as it
was, Elvira had made them enemies, and yet left them the power to sting
her.

The emissaries of Rosabella were also very active, and the ferment of
the public mind excessive. The taste the people had just enjoyed of
power, had only been enough to make them long for more. They had only
just began to relish its sweets, when the dish was snatched away from
them, with which, if it had been left them to devour, they would have
soon been cloyed. Discontents became general, disturbances arose, which
were no sooner quelled in one quarter than they broke out in another,
and these petty insurrections, though almost too trivial to mention,
were excessively annoying. For trifling inconveniences, like a host
of flies buzzing round a nervous man on a sultry day, are often more
irritating to the temper, than serious grievances; and the noble mind
of Edmund was wearied by subduing such paltry enemies.

"They want employment," said he one day to the Queen, after reading a
dispatch containing an account of one of the most vexatious of these
tumults; "you must build bridges and cut canals to amuse them."

The active mind of Elvira caught eagerly at the idea, and she vainly
fancied her name would be handed down to posterity as one of the
greatest of Queens, who, though in the bloom of youth and pride of
beauty, did not hesitate to sacrifice herself for the good of her
people, and to devote that time to their welfare and the improvement of
her kingdom, which others of her age and rank wasted in mere amusements.

Delighted with the thought, Elvira did not delay a moment before she
prepared to put it in practice; and she was found for several days
together constantly surrounded by her counsellors, and seated at a
table absolutely loaded with papers, which she was busily employed in
inspecting and arranging.

Plans for the erection of public buildings, for hospitals, bridges,
museums, and churches, schemes for new manufactories, hints for
new establishments conducive to the public good, and sketches of
new discoveries, lay in heaps before her; mixed with addresses of
compliments, votes of thanks, complaints of grievances, petitions,
secret informations; and in short all that multifarious collection of
paper, with which a monarch is sure to be surrounded who is said to be
anxious to ameliorate the condition of his people, or who is unhappily
reported to possess a genius for improvement.

Unfortunate is the man possessed of power, of whom such reports are
current. He is directly surrounded by projectors, each presenting a
scheme more futile than that of his predecessor; and discontented
dependants, each bringing a long list of grievances, half of which are
imaginary, but which have been conjured up by the complainants that
they may not lose the precious right they enjoy of complaining.

Unhappy he whose fate obliges him to decide between the rival
claimants! certain alike to be blamed, if he give or refuse; if he
accept, or if he reject!

Elvira had not yet found the evils of power; but she now tasted of its
sweets, and was enchanted. It seemed to her the most delightful thing
in the world to hold in her hands the destinies of thousands of her
fellow-creatures; and she thought not of the heavy responsibility it
entailed, nor how often her path would be followed by curses instead
of blessings. Some one has said that every time a sovereign confers a
favour, he makes one ungrateful subject and nine discontented ones; but
Elvira and Edmund as yet had not discovered the truth of this maxim.
Since their present plan had been suggested, every thing with them had
been the _couleur de rose_. I say, them, for Edmund was associated with
Elvira in all these gigantic schemes of improvement; and as he had
conceived the first idea of them, so it was he only who could carry
them into execution. His active mind required something to employ it;
and the same strong feelings which had formerly been devoted to love
and glory, were now turned into another channel.

The energies of Elvira's mind had also been awakened by the struggle
for the crown, and the passion awakened in her breast by the youthful
stranger; and she now felt that she could not quietly return again to
the commonplace stillness of every-day life. The passions when once
roused from their dormant state, must have something to occupy them, or
they will prey upon themselves. Thus we generally see great warriors,
or statesmen, or in fact any class of men who have passed their lives
in activity, wither away when forced to the dullness of an obscure
retirement: their minds and bodies decay alike from want of stimulants
to call them into action.

The improvement of her people supplied this stimulus to the mind
of Elvira,--but alas! she entered upon it rather with passion than
judgment, and had not patience to wait to see her plans gradually
carried into effect: No--no--she could not endure any thing slow: with
her every thing must be done by a _coup de main_; and as the people and
the buildings were so stupid as not to be made perfect by the first
attempt, she was continually disappointed and discouraged. In fact, by
attempting to do too much, she did nothing.

When Elvira ascended the throne, she determined no public act should
take place without the approbation of her council; and these noble
lords were one day debating upon the propriety of a new road, that was
proposed to intersect the entire kingdom at right angles, when Lord
Gustavus de Montfort rose to oppose it, upon the ground of the injury
it would do to private property if carried into effect.

Elvira could not endure Lord Gustavus: his cold, prudent, calculating
manner, without a single spark of imagination, disgusted her beyond
description; and the only good quality he possessed, that of being
indefatigable in following up his point, completed her abhorrence.
Wit and eloquence were quite thrown away upon him, for he understood
neither the one nor the other; and when any new or brilliant scheme
crossed Elvira's imagination, and she described it to her council
with all the fire of genius and animation, there he sate with his
calm, cold unvarying countenance, ready to damp it with a doubt. Lord
Maysworth also was her aversion; his narrow mind, which could only
take in such trifles as escape the observation of men of genius; his
mean and paltry spirit, and his grovelling ambition, were all her
detestation; whilst Lord Noodle and Lord Doodle, who, though ciphers
in themselves, yet, like their prototypes, prodigiously increased the
weight of the figures placed before them, completed the group.

Much, however, as Elvira disliked these members of her council, she
felt unequal to resist their combined influence; and she was just upon
the point of being teased into their opinions contrary to her own
judgment, when Lord Edmund entered the room. Indescribable was the
effect produced by his presence; for indeed his commanding talents
swayed all before them; and Elvira could not help smiling when she saw
her counsellors of state shake their wise heads, and imagine they were
assisting the debate with their wisdom, whilst, in fact, they were mere
tools in his powerful hands. It is true they were the agents that
produced the intended effect; but his was the master spirit that set
them in motion, and taught them where to go. His powerful intellect
caught in an instant the comparative merits and disadvantages of the
plan now in discussion, and his nod decided its fate.

The council, however, though they implicitly obeyed his will, had not
the least idea that they were doing so; as he had the address so to
form his opinions as to let each person imagine them the suggestions of
his own breast.

Whilst the principal personages in the cabinet, fancying they were
leading, were thus blindly led, the nonentities of course followed
in their train, and our old friends the lords of ancient family
were perfectly astonished when they heard the magnificent plans
and sagacious councils attributed to them, and sate quite lost in
admiration of their own wisdom, whilst their little heads and enormous
periwigs kept bobbing with at least threefold their accustomed
rapidity.

Elvira's accession to the throne had induced both her father and Sir
Ambrose to leave the country; the duke inhabiting his former palace,
and Sir Ambrose taking possession of a moveable house in one of the
streets upon the banks of the Thames. Here the worthy Baronet found
himself perfectly happy in the society of his niece Clara, (whom her
parents permitted to keep his house,) and that of his old friend the
duke.

"I begin to repent that my daughter is a Queen," said the duke to Sir
Ambrose, one night after supper, when the whole party were sitting
cosily round the fire in Sir Ambrose's library. "I have not half the
enjoyments I used to have when I could have more of her society. Now
when I see her, it is but for an instant, and she can scarcely stay
to ask me how I do, before she flies off to some of her new plans of
improvement."

"The face of the country will be quite changed in a few years, if all
the plans of the Queen prosper," said Father Morris in his usual smooth
hypocritical manner.

"I hope not!" cried Sir Ambrose; "I hope it's no treason, duke--but I
must confess I wish your daughter had never been Queen, if she can't
leave things as they are."

"They are such wildgoose schemes too that she takes into her head,"
said the duke piteously. "Only imagine, Sir Ambrose, she showed me this
morning a plan for making aërial bridges to convey heavy weights from
one steeple to another; a machine for stamping shoes and boots at one
blow out of a solid piece of leather; a steam-engine for milking cows;
and an elastic summer-house that might be folded up so as to be put
into a man's pocket!"

"It is really provoking; and Edward is quite as scheming and visionary.
I absolutely think, if we were both to die, they would not feel more
than a temporary uneasiness at our loss, their minds are so completely
occupied in these gigantic projects."

Whilst these two old men were sitting comfortably over the fire,
commenting on the glorious days when they were young, and when all
went right, or, what was nearly the same thing, when all appeared to
them to do so (quite forgetting that age has other eyes than youth,
and that the change was in themselves, not the times), Clara was at a
splendid party given by Elvira, and Father Morris soon left the duke's
library to join her.

It was a ball; and the splendid court of Claudia seemed yet more
brilliant under the reign of her successor. It was the first time Clara
had ever been at court, and the effect the gorgeous magnificence of the
scene had upon her was powerful in the extreme. She forgot her cares,
her sadness, and her love--all seemed enchantment; and the old lady,
who acted as her chaperon, was quite horrorized at her _gaucherie_.

Brilliant as all was, however, the lovely goddess of the temple far
exceeded even the splendour of the shrine; and the beholders gazed
upon her with indescribable rapture. Beautiful as the fairy image of a
dream; kind, affable, and condescending to all, Elvira glided through
the crowd, followed by her suite to the concert-room. Here, all that
the imagination of man could devise of harmony, enchanted the ears. But
harsh was every other sound to that which stole upon the senses when
Elvira was induced to forget her rank and mingle her voice with the
music.

Elvira's singing was perfection: "clear as a trumpet with a silver
sound;" the round full notes now swelled upon the ear in liquid melody,
and then died away, soft and sweet, yet distinct even in their faintest
strains. Prince Ferdinand was at her side, and his ardent gaze bespoke
the intenseness of his admiration. Elvira had not before seen him since
the night when her conversation with him had so powerfully excited
the jealousy of Edmund; and as she now observed his manner had again
attracted Edmund's attention, she blushed yet more deeply than before.

Edmund saw her blushes; and, stung almost to madness by the sight,
rushed violently out of the room.

The night was cold and damp, a drizzling mist fell fast, and that
peculiar chill that marks the first approaches of winter, hung in
the air; but Lord Edmund thought not of the weather, and he strode
bareheaded through the palace-gardens with hurried steps and the
actions of a maniac; whilst the thick gloom that pervaded the sky,
contrasted fearfully with the brilliantly illuminated apartment he had
just quitted. The gloominess of the scene, however, harmonized well
with Edmund's feelings; he felt soothed insensibly; and though he still
stalked moodily backwards and forwards, he became gradually more calm.

"Ungrateful woman," thought he, "to treat me thus! Does she not
owe every thing to me? I could bear her coldness; I could resign
her to a throne; but the idea of her loving another drives me to
distraction!--Curses on that fiend! It must be by his infernal arts
that Ferdinand has triumphed. The cold, the chaste Elvira could never
give her love thus--thus almost unsolicited, and at first sight if
it were not the work of magic. By Heaven, I would risk my soul for
vengeance on that demon!"

As he spoke, his eyes fell upon a thicket near him, and he fancied he
saw the figure of a man, half obscured however by the mist, emerge from
its gloomy recesses. He gazed intently, and the figure glided slowly
on with cat-like, creeping steps. The mind of Edmund was worked up to
frenzy--he almost fancied a demon had appeared obedient to his wish, to
receive his pledge, and work his bidding. "Speak!" cried he, in a voice
that sounded fearfully amidst the surrounding stillness--"Speak! art
thou a demon, or a mortal?"

All was silent: the figure glided on; and Lord Edmund, oppressed by
supernatural terrors, and shuddering at the sound of his own voice,
could bear no more; he darted upon the figure, and grasping it roughly,
he exclaimed, "Man or devil, I fear thee not, and thus will I grapple
with thee."

"Gently, my son," replied the well-known voice of Father Morris; "in
what have I offended you?"

"Pardon, holy father," returned Edmund "I knew you not--I knew not what
I did--my passion blinded me."

"And what has caused this passion? The mind of Edmund is too noble to
be lightly moved."

"Oh! talk not of the nobleness of my mind, father; I feel I am but a
poor weak worm. Nobleness belongs to God alone; 'tis blasphemy to apply
the term to man."

"Tell me your grievances. They must, I am sure, be great, or they
would not thus affect you. It is my holy office to console affliction.
Speak then, my son; for, remember, that though joy is doubled by being
partaken, grief is lessened by being shared--and woe robbed of half its
bitterness."

"I have little to confess, father. I was weak and foolish; but Elvira--"

"And are you astonished at a woman's fickleness? Light as the eider
down, and unstable as the changing wind, inconstancy is natural to the
sex--they crave incessantly for novelty;--and as vanity is their only
real passion, if that be gratified they ask no more."

"And has not Elvira's vanity been gratified even to satiety? Have I not
idolized, worshipped her? Was it not my power that made her what she
is? And is this my reward? To be scorned, deserted, laughed at, and for
what? A stranger!--a boy!--my prisoner!"

"Whom do you mean?" asked the friar.

"Prince Ferdinand," returned Edmund.

"Impossible!" cried Father Morris, starting with well-feigned
astonishment. "Elvira cannot, surely, love Prince Ferdinand! And yet,
now I recollect, I saw her talking to him, even now, with an appearance
of deep interest, when I passed through her splendid chambers."

"Damnation!" exclaimed Lord Edmund vehemently, driven to distraction
by this speech; for, strange to tell, though we may be certain of the
reality of our own sufferings, they always seem to come with double
poignancy when we hear them related by another.

"Calm yourself, my son," said Father Morris in his silky tones, eyeing
him with about as much compassion as an angler feels for the writhing
of a worm upon his hook. "These bursts of passion are unworthy of you."

"Oh, father!" cried Edmund, softened almost into tears, "you know not
how I loved that woman. Your grave, serious feelings, disciplined by
the restraint of a cloister, mortified by your renunciation of all
earthly pleasures, can form no idea of the depth and fierceness of
mine. Your passions, father, are dead within you; subdued by holy
penitence to calmness; but mine rage with the fury of a volcano, and
destroy me! O that my fond attachment, my long devoted services, my
adoration, should be thus rewarded. Yes--my adoration, for I have
adored her, father! I worshipped her like a goddess; and though I doted
on her charms, and would have endured unheard-of torments to have been
blest with their possession, yet, did I not sacrifice my hopes?--did
I not relinquish the treasure when just within my grasp, because her
happiness was dearer to me than my own? And now to see her lavish
her favours on that boy! She smiled upon him, father, and he dared to
take her hand and press it to his lips. I saw him kiss it, not with
the calm respect of a kneeling subject, but with the fervour, the
impassioned ardour of a lover; and then he looked at her--curses on the
thought!--and she did not reprove; but, casting down her eyes, softly
blushed consent. Damnation! I cannot endure it."

"Passion, my son, entails its own punishment. You see every thing with
a jaundiced eye. Elvira's nature is gentle and yielding; she feared to
hurt his feelings by her harshness. 'Tis but the natural consequence of
that very softness you so often have admired. Why should you quarrel
with it now? 'tis still the same that charmed you, save that now it
is extended to another, and will be soon, no doubt, to all the world.
Elvira has been educated in retirement, and, seeing only yourself and
Edric, you thought her conduct was the effect of partiality for you,
when it was in fact but her natural manner. She is now upon a larger
theatre; and you must expect to see myriads of kneeling victims
worship her beauty, and pay homage at her feet! And do you suppose she
will be displeased at their attention? No; she is far too gentle; she
has no firmness; and the same submission she now pays to you, she will,
if you offend her, easily transfer to another. She is not formed to
govern; she would obey and be happy; but the weight of government would
overwhelm her if she were left alone to sustain it. Shake off, then,
these selfish feelings, and be again yourself. You have often said, you
only wished her happiness; and if that be the case, even if she should
really love Prince Ferdinand, you ought to rejoice to see her in his
arms."

"Sooner would I perish, sooner would I involve all in one universal
ruin! But it is impossible; she scarcely knows him."

"And if it were so, still you would be wrong to blame Elvira for what,
in fact, she cannot help. Her yielding softness is the defect of her
character."

"Fool that I was, that very softness caught me, and my fond heart fell
captive to its chains. But it was folly, infatuation! I see my error;
Rosabella has more character. She _can_ love."

Lord Edmund crossed his arms upon his breast and was soon lost in a
_reverie_, which Father Morris was careful not to interrupt, but which
was broken by the approach of Trevors, his lordship's aide-de-camp and
secretary.

"What do you want?" asked Lord Edmund sternly.

"I came to seek your Lordship. I feared you were unwell, as I missed
your Lordship from the party."

"You missed me!" repeated Lord Edmund bitterly. "_You_ missed me! and
did no one else discover my absence? Was it so marked that my servant
could observe it, and yet no one else?"

"Did not the Queen inquire for Lord Edmund?" asked Father Morris.

"I did not hear her Majesty," replied Trevors.

"How was she engaged? what was she doing?" demanded Lord Edmund.

"She was sitting, talking to Prince Ferdinand, my Lord."

Lord Edmund gnashed his teeth together, grinding them with fury, and
rushed back to the house without speaking, whilst Trevors followed at
an humble distance.

"He has it," cried Father Morris triumphantly--"he has it, and he is
mine for ever."

Several days elapsed from this period before Elvira again saw Lord
Edmund. She was surprised at his absence; as indeed he was so
interwoven in her schemes and plans, that nothing went on well without
him.

"Will your Majesty have the goodness to affix the royal seal to this
ordinance?" asked Lord Gustavus one morning.

"I don't know," replied Elvira. "I can't tell what to do. I wish Lord
Edmund were here."

"He may soon be sent for," said Lord Gustavus pompously. "Though, with
all due deference to your Majesty's better judgment, it does not appear
to me that his presence is exactly requisite."

Lord Edmund, however, was summoned, and he came. But oh! how changed
since Elvira had seen him last! His face looked pale and thin, his
cheeks were sunken, and his eyes hollow and heavy, whilst his deep
voice sounded hoarse and unnatural. Passion had passed through his
soul, and withered as it went. Elvira's heart smote her as she gazed
upon him.

"You have been ill, Edmund!" said she, in tones of melting softness.
"Why was I not informed? Surely you could not think I would willingly
neglect you? Could you judge so harshly of me?"

The firm breast of Edmund softened as she spoke, and tears swam in his
eyes as he struggled to reply with calmness--yes, tears; the brave,
the warlike Edmund, whose strength of mind and firmness had resisted
unequalled dangers, now trembled before a woman.

"You must have some advice," continued Elvira. "Dr. Coleman, Dr.
Hardman, can you not prescribe for your patient?"

"His Lordship appears feverish," said Dr. Coleman. "No doubt he has
rested ill."

"Yes--yes," rejoined Dr. Hardman, with a malignant smile. "His
Lordship's eyes betray his want of rest."

"I have been slightly indisposed," said Lord Edmund, rallying his
spirits to speak: "but I am better. Is there any thing in which my
services can be useful to your Majesty?"

"Her Majesty wishes you to inspect this bill," replied Lord Gustavus
solemnly, "before she gives it her royal assent."

Lord Edmund's eyes sparkled. "Then she still thinks my opinion of
importance," thought he.

"Lord Edmund's illness, I hope, is passed," said Dr. Hardman
maliciously; "for he certainly looks better even since he came into the
room."

Lord Edmund was better; a sudden revulsion of feeling had taken place
within him, and hope was again illumined in his bosom. Passion again
rushed through his soul. "She must, she shall, be mine," thought he,
whilst fire flashed from his eyes. "The hated law shall be repealed.
Difficulties only increase the value of the prize, and they vanish
before a determined spirit. What! shall I, before whose arm whole
nations have fallen vanquished, shrink like a coward from the first
trouble that assails me! Oh, no! I will not be so weak; opposition
shall only animate my courage. Treasures would be scarcely worth
acceptance if they lay beneath one's feet--a brave man spurns an easy
victory! I will exert my powers, and Elvira shall be mine."

Father Morris was at the levee, and he watched with anxious eyes the
fluctuations in Edmund's expressive countenance. "Perdition seize her
beauty!" muttered he; "with one look she undoes whole months of labour.
But he shall yet be mine--Cheops has sworn he shall,--and Rosabella
shall be Queen. Be the Mummy mortal or fiend, he is resistless; he
has unbounded power over the human heart, and what he wills must be
accomplished."

Some weeks elapsed, during which Lord Edmund, restored to his former
influence in the government, laboured assiduously to prepare the minds
of the people for abolishing the law that prevented the marriage of the
Queen. With the greatest care he endeavoured to make Elvira popular.
For this purpose he persuaded her to remit those burthens that weighed
most heavily upon the people, replacing them by taxes levied in a more
indirect way; for the mass of a population seldom grumbles at taxation,
unless it see the trifles for which it pays: men do not regard the
giving double the real value of a commodity, a tenth part so much,
as paying even a small direct sum for the use of any of the common
necessaries of life.

By judiciously acting upon this principle, Edmund made himself adored;
and whispers even were buzzed about, lamenting that he was not King.
This was the point to which Edmund had wished to bring the people;
and he pursued his plan by supporting the poor against the rich,
and rigorously punishing the magistrates or officers of justice who
attempted to oppress the people. The multitude generally hate those
entrusted with the execution of the laws, perhaps upon the same
principle as the bleeding culprit abhors the sight of the whip that has
flogged him; and their natural conceit and presumption were flattered
by the attention paid to their complaints; till, by his judicious
management, Lord Edmund found that he had obtained the entire devotion
of the mob, and could wield them at his pleasure.

Time rolled on, and winter had already wrapped its frozen mantle round
the world, when one day Father Morris abruptly entered the apartment of
Rosabella. "It is all over," cried he, as he threw himself in despair
upon a couch. "Edmund has obtained the consent of the people for the
Queen to marry, and no doubt in a few weeks he will be the husband of
Elvira!"

"The husband of Elvira!" cried Rosabella, her eyes flashing fire, and
her cheeks glowing, whilst every fibre quivered with agitation, and her
fine features bespoke the tremendous passions of a demon. "Then may
everlasting misery attend the fiend that has deceived us; that has led
us on step by step to our destruction, and is perhaps even now mocking
our despair! Yes, yes," continued she, as the fiendish laugh of Cheops
rang in her ears, and his detested form stood again before her,--"I
expected this; you come to enjoy your triumph and mock our credulity;
but know, this arm is yet powerful enough to revenge my wrongs; it
shall annihilate my rival; and thou, wretch! detested hideous wretch!
thou too shalt feel its vengeance!"

"This to your friend!" said Cheops with a bitter smile: "fie! fie!
How blind is human reason when the passions intervene!--all is for
the best--have patience; wait a little, and my promises will yet be
accomplished."

"If Elvira had died," murmured Father Morris, a dark frown gathering
upon his brow.

"You would not be now alive," said the Mummy. "But fear not, all is as
you can wish."

"As we can wish?" cried Rosabella indignantly.

"Yes, as you can wish," returned Cheops firmly. "Edmund has obtained
permission for Elvira to marry any natural born subject of the realm;
but she will not wed him, for she loves another, and that other is
a foreigner. He will be enraged at her refusal, and jealousy will
alienate him from her cause. He will then naturally espouse that of her
rival from ambition and revenge. Rosabella will be Queen, and the law
which prevented the marriage of the Sovereign being abolished, Edmund
will become her husband--if not from love, at least from ambition."

"O Cheops! 'tis useless to resist--we are thy slaves,--do with us as
thou wilt."

"Say rather you are slaves of your own passions," murmured the Mummy;
and they parted.

It was a clear frosty day in November, when Elvira, scarcely knowing
why, wandered into the garden belonging to her splendid palace of
Somerset House; and, entering a pavilion, reclined upon a couch placed
opposite to a window that commanded a view of the river. The pavilion
was decorated with the utmost taste. Its windows, opening to the
ground, were shaded with curtains of gossamer net, lined with pink;
the walls were beautifully painted, and divided into panels by highly
ornamented columns; books, drawings, and musical instruments, were
scattered around; whilst tripods, supporting vases filled with the
rarest exotic flowers, shed sweet fragrance through the air; and the
carpet was so soft and thick, that it felt like moss beneath the feet.

Even in this temple of luxury, however, its fair possessor was not
happy. She sighed as she surveyed the gorgeous refinement around her,
and felt forcibly the insufficiency of greatness. Listlessly she turned
her eyes upon the figures painted upon the walls: they represented the
loves of Mars and Venus: they were exquisitely painted: the artist had
given to the life the tender modesty of the goddess, and the ardent
passion of her lover. Elvira gazed upon his glowing countenance and
sparkling eyes; and then, looking down, sighed yet more heavily than
before.

She dismissed her attendants, retaining only Emma; and long her
eyes were fixed on vacancy, and her mind absorbed in mournful
contemplations; when suddenly she was startled by the entrance of a
page, and the appearance of Lord Edmund Montagu, who followed almost at
the moment of the page's repeating his name: his countenance beaming
joy, and hope dancing in his eyes.

"Oh, Elvira!" he cried, "you are now mine--mine for ever! The people
permit you to marry. The lords in council have signed the law; the
people have proclaimed it with acclamations. You are free! you are no
longer debarred from the inestimable pleasures of domestic life--you
are independent--you may marry any natural born subject of the realm,
and will you now be mine?"

"And so relinquish my independence the moment I obtain it," said
Elvira, smiling.

"Oh, my loved! my adored Elvira! consent to make me happy! Believe me
you shall be free, and still as much a Queen as at this moment."

"Edmund!" said Elvira seriously, "you deserve more than I can give you;
for I will not insult you by supposing you would be satisfied with the
possession of my crown without my heart;--and that it is not in my
power to bestow."

"My dearest Elvira, you but fancy this. I know your feelings are warm,
your sensibility acute, and your generosity unbounded--can you then
want a heart?"

"Alas, no! but I have discovered I possess one, only in time to know
also that I have given it to another."

"And is that other a youth and a stranger?" asked her lover, gasping
for breath.

"He is," replied Elvira, blushing, and looking down.

"Then, indeed, I am wretched!" cried Lord Edmund; and, striking his
clenched hand vehemently against his forehead, he darted out of the
room.

Elvira gazed after him with a feeling almost amounting to horror.
Terrified at the strength of the passions she had awakened, she
appeared stupefied, and stood looking like a child who had
accidentally cut the string which confined the wheels of some powerful
machinery, on hearing its fearful clatter above its head.

"Oh, madam, madam!" cried Emma, wringing her hands, "what will become
of us? Your Majesty has offended Lord Edmund for ever, and for that
wretch, who, I am certain, is a fiend incarnate!"

"Peace, Emma!" said Elvira, "you forget my rank--I will not be dictated
to."

"Pardon me, dear madam, you know I love you, and--"

"I know, also, that you presume upon my love. Begone!"

Emma obeyed, and Elvira was left alone.

Dreadfully agitated, and quite unable to compose herself or arrange
the chaos of her thoughts, she walked to the windows of the pavilion,
and, opening one of them, looked out upon the gardens. It is already
said that these delightful grounds were thrown open to the public;
but, in consequence of the ease with which they might be enjoyed,
a few half-pay officers, attorneys without clients, physicians
without patients, clergymen looking out for livings, hissed players,
disappointed authors and discarded servants, alone strolled through
their romantic walks, and paused occasionally to gaze upon the
beautiful works of art with which they were decorated. The English were
now decidedly the first sculptors in the world. Chemical preparations
alone being used to supply light and heat, smoke was unknown, and the
atmosphere being no longer thick and cloudy, marble bore exposure to
it without material injury. Besides this, perhaps no nation in the
world produced more beautiful models of male and female beauty than
England; and now that the women had long thrown off those deformers of
the human shape ycleped stays, their forms developed themselves into
perfect symmetry. Elvira, however, thought not of the gardens, nor of
the works of art they contained; yet as she stood at the window, though
absorbed in her own reflections, her eyes rested upon the exquisite
statues before her. The inanimate marble seemed endowed with soul and
spirit, whilst the graceful forms it represented seemed to pause only
for a moment, and to be ready to start again into life and action after
a short repose--in short, they appeared to breathe; and the spectator
felt almost surprised, when his eye had turned from them, to find them
still in the same attitude when he looked again.

The river was frozen, and persons glided along it in glittering
_traineaux_, or skated gracefully with infinite variety of movement;
whilst, every now and then, a steam-percussion-moveable bridge shot
across the stream, loaded with goods and passengers, collapsing again
the instant its burthen was safely landed on the other side.

Pleased with the busy scene around her, Elvira stood and gazed, till
half her troubles seemed to vanish, and a pleasing train of thought
crept over her mind. "What have I done?" thought she,--"and yet I do
not repent.--No, no! I could not act otherwise. The noble and devoted
love of Edmund deserved my warmest gratitude, and I have done right
to own the truth to him, painful as it has been to me to do so, rather
than torture his generous bosom by exciting hopes I never meant to
realize. Yes, I have done right," repeated she aloud; "and I am
perfectly satisfied with my conduct."

"Then you have reason to be contented," said the deep voice of Cheops,
immediately behind her; "for few indeed are the mortals that can say so
with justice!"

The solemn tones of the Mummy sank like a foreboding of evil upon the
heart of Elvira, and she shuddered involuntarily.

"You think I have done wrong then?" said she.

"I did not say that," returned he calmly.--"But had I not known the
sex, I might perchance have felt surprised that you should avow,
unasked for, a secret to Lord Edmund, which you have sedulously
endeavoured to keep concealed even from me."

"Alas," cried Elvira, "my motives--"

"Were those of a woman," interrupted Cheops; "a being fated to work
mischief. I do not blame you; for you have only acted according to
your natural instinct."

"What do you mean?" asked Elvira, turning pale and trembling, for the
words of the Mummy created an undefinable dread upon her mind.

"Listen!" said Cheops, "and I will tell you.--If you had confided your
secret to me, it would have produced good, for I should have aided your
passions, and I cannot give assistance unless it be required;--but by
telling it to Lord Edmund you have produced evil, for he mistakes your
lover for another, and the consequences may be fatal. Thus, it is clear
that you could not have done otherwise than as you have; for when was
a woman known to hesitate between good and evil, and not choose the
latter?"

"Mistakes my lover for another!" exclaimed Elvira. "For God's sake,
explain yourself!"

"He thinks you meant Prince Ferdinand," said the Mummy coldly, "and he
is now seeking him in order to destroy him."

"Oh, God!--Oh, God!" cried Elvira in the bitterest agony: "what will
become of me? where is Edmund! Let me fly to implore him to spare the
prince!"

"It does not appear to me," said Cheops still more calmly, "that your
endeavours to preserve him are at all likely to produce the effect you
wish; for, as Lord Edmund already believes you love the prince, and as
that belief is the reason of his hatred, your showing a violent anxiety
for his welfare does not appear to me exactly the mode most calculated
to destroy his suspicions."

"True! true!" cried Elvira, wringing her hands. "Alas! alas! what will
become of me?" whilst, as she spoke, a piercing cry rang in her ears,
and a sudden rush of all the persons in the gardens took place towards
one particular spot. Scarcely knowing what she did, Elvira followed the
crowd, and shrieked with indescribable terror as she heard the clashing
of swords. Pale and trembling, she hurried forward, and arrived just
as Prince Ferdinand, uttering a deep groan, fell beneath the sword
of Lord Edmund. Elvira screamed, and throwing herself upon the body,
endeavoured in vain to revive it, quite forgetting in the excess of her
agitation the crowd that surrounded her, and the interpretation that
might be put upon her behaviour. One sole idea occupied her mind, and
chilled it with horror: it was, that her imprudence had most probably
deprived a fellow-creature of existence.

Lord Edmund in the mean time stood in statue-like insensibility,
gazing upon her with feelings of unutterable anguish. Her grief, her
violent emotion, seemed to confirm the passion she had avowed; and if
she loved, his exertions had only paved the way for the success of his
rival. The thought was madness. Lord Edmund gnashed his teeth, his
countenance changed, blood gushed in torrents from his side, for he too
was wounded, and he leant fainting against a tree.

The confusion that now prevailed was indescribable. It was high treason
to draw a sword in the precincts of the royal palace; and the guards,
who were instantly assembled, took the offenders into custody.
They were both incapable of offering any resistance, and they were
hurried away to prison amidst the exclamations of the mob. Elvira had
fainted, and she was carried back to the palace; whilst the whispered
speculations of the crowd, upon the strangeness of the scene, arose
in half-stifled murmurs like the distant roar of ocean. The attention
of the spectators, however, was soon fixed upon the poor old Duke of
Cornwall. He had stood bending forwards--his hands clasped, and his
eyes riveted upon his daughter during the whole of her ineffectual
attempts to revive the prince. The old man seemed turned to stone: he
neither moved, nor spoke; his glassy eyes were set, and his livid lips
slightly quivered; at last he uttered a faint groan, and fell senseless
into the arms of his attendants in a fit of apoplexy. The spectators
thought him dead, and fancied his heart had broken, on discovering this
unexpected weakness on the part of his adored daughter.

Every one was powerfully affected, and every one seemed bursting to
speak; though no one knew exactly what he might venture to say. Lord
Gustavus looked stern, Lord Maysworth important, and Dr. Hardman sly;
whilst the Lords Noodle and Doodle shook their little heads, till they
seemed in imminent danger of becoming separated from their bodies.
Rosabella's heart alone swelled with rapture, and her eyes beamed with
ill-concealed triumph.

"The Mummy was right," thought she;--"Elvira must fall, and Edmund will
be mine."



CHAPTER XXVII.


The evening of the day on which Prince Ferdinand and Lord Edmund were
committed to prison, Sir Ambrose, as he was writing in his study,
was startled by a loud scream; and flying to the spot from whence it
proceeded, he found Clara lying upon the ground insensible, whilst
Abelard was stooping over her, and endeavouring to render her some
assistance.

"Good God!" cried Sir Ambrose, "what is the matter?"

"It is all owing to the carelessness of the domestic assistants at the
next door," replied Abelard. "No. 7, is just come back from Brighton;
and one of the assistants being occupied in making observations on the
sky, instead of minding what he was doing, pushed the house a little
on one side as it was slipping into the sockets; and poking their
horizontal spout through our library window, they have knocked down
this shelf of books, and frightened poor Miss Clara out of her wits."

"Stupid idiots," said the baronet; "they might have killed her if the
books had fallen upon her."

"I beg your pardon, Sir Ambrose," said the culprit, putting his head
through the window; "I do not conceive Miss Montagu would have been
injured even if the books had fallen upon her. The weight of her body,
I should apprehend, must be nearly equivalent to that of the books;
consequently, the resistance she was capable of opposing, being fully
equal to the blow she would have received, the effect must have been
neutralized."

"Confound your explanations!" said Sir Ambrose, whose anger was
increased tenfold by this speech; "you've killed my niece, and now you
want to drive me distracted. Clara, my dear Clara! open your eyes, my
love; are you hurt?"

"Oh, my dear uncle!" sighed Clara, "Edmund is in prison, and he
certainly will be beheaded."

"In prison, child! you must be dreaming."

"Indeed I am not, uncle: I heard the men who are placing the adjoining
house say so. He has fought with Prince Ferdinand in the palace garden."

"My boy, my darling boy!" cried Sir Ambrose, and rushed out of the room
in despair.

"Follow him, for Heaven's sake, follow him, Abelard," said Clara. The
worthy butler obeyed, wringing his hands, and lifting his eyes up to
heaven; whilst Clara remained perfectly motionless, and apparently
absorbed in thought.

"I will save him," said she after a short pause, "or perish in the
attempt."

In the bitterest anguish of mind, Sir Ambrose hastened to the palace;
but he was refused admittance, as he was informed the Queen was in a
high fever. He inquired for his friend the duke: he too was invisible,
his late attack having placed his life in imminent danger. Dr. Coleman
was in attendance on the Queen; and the lords of the council, though
they affected to sympathize with the unfortunate father, evidently,
though covertly, rejoiced at the disgrace of their most powerful rival.
Repulsed on every side, Sir Ambrose now proceeded to the prison; but
here also he was refused admittance, and sadly and slowly he returned
home in despair, resting his sole remaining hopes upon the advice and
assistance of Father Morris, upon whose gigantic strength of mind he
was accustomed implicitly to rely in all the impotency of age and
misery.

The prison to which Ferdinand and Lord Edmund had been conveyed was
situated in a close disagreeable part of the city of London, called
Kensington. It had been formerly a palace, and had been surrounded by
a noble park miscalled a garden. The devastating hand of improvement
had however, as usual, waged war against all the sublimer charms of
nature, and the majestic beauties of Kensington fell victims to its
fury. Narrow, unwholesome streets now rose where spreading oaks had
once stretched forth their venerable arms, and verdant lawns had become
dirty causeways; whilst ponds were turned to water pipes, and Jacob's
well kept clean a common sewer. As Ferdinand and Edmund, however, had
never seen Kensington in its pristine glories, they could not now
regret the change: and it was to them neither more nor less than a
place of confinement, a spot very few people show any manifest relish
for.

Immediately upon their arrival, Prince Ferdinand and Lord Edmund had
their wounds dressed by the automaton steam surgeon belonging to the
prison, which, being properly arranged and wound up, staunched the
blood, spread the plasters, and affixed the bandages with as much skill
as though it had done nothing but walk a hospital all its life. As soon
as these operations were performed, the prisoners were locked up in
separate cells, and left to meditate upon their situations.

"Good Heavens!" cried Ferdinand, looking round with astonishment at
the elegant apartment he was shown into, adorned with a painted velvet
carpet, silk curtains, and chairs and tables inlaid with brass and
ivory; whilst a sumptuous canopy hung over a bed of down on one side,
and divers little Cupids supported lights, held back curtains, and
performed numerous other useful offices in different corners. "Can this
be a prison? Neither Paris nor Vienna possess palaces half so splendid!"

The surprise of Ferdinand was natural, as he was still almost a
stranger in England, and did not know that our happy island had
been long blest with a race of people who thought prisons should
be made agreeable residences, and had gone on improving them till
they had ended in making them temples of luxury. In spite of all the
conveniences of his prison, however, Ferdinand was perfectly wretched.
He could not imagine what reason Lord Edmund had had for fastening
a quarrel upon him; for, as his passion for Elvira, though violent,
had been quite as evanescent as that he had formerly entertained for
Rosabella, he had not the least idea of having excited Lord Edmund's
jealousy. Fatigued at length with forming fruitless conjectures, he
threw himself upon his bed of down, and soon lost the remembrance of
his cares in a refreshing slumber.

In the mean time, Clara was revolving in her mind the best method of
putting in practice a wild scheme that she had formed, of visiting
Prince Ferdinand in prison. She did not dare confide her plan to any
one, for she feared that anybody she might consult would either laugh
at her folly or betray her secret. Besides, to obtain any assistance,
she must give some motive for her conduct; and as Clara did not exactly
know her own reasons for thus acting, it was quite impossible she could
make out a case to satisfy another. To go, however, she was determined;
and when the family of her uncle were all retired, she wrapped herself
in a large mantle, and with some difficulty contrived to reach the
street. The night was cold and dark; a thick mist fell, and Clara
seemed chilled to the heart; yet a feeling she could not account for,
urged her on. Clara was young and romantic; she loved Prince Ferdinand,
and she fancied him in danger. How she was to save him she knew not,
and yet it was solely the hope of saving him that urged her forward.

She had discovered he was confined at Kensington, and thither she bent
her steps:--but as she passed the palace, she found a crowd of balloons
floating around it, laden with persons whose anxiety respecting
the Queen had kept them waiting, and induced them to besiege her
door personally with their inquiries; whilst the lighted flambeaux,
belonging to these aërial vehicles, flashed brightly in the air, and
looked like a multitude of dancing stars, as they rapidly crossed and
recrossed each other above her head.

This little incident completed poor Clara's bewilderment; and,
terrified lest she should be seen and recognized, she hurried on
without exactly knowing where she was going, till, perplexed by the
different appearance the streets seemed to assume in the darkness,
and her own fears, she found to her unspeakable dismay that she
had lost her road. In the greatest agitation and distress, she now
wandered to and fro, whilst her embarrassment was increased every
moment by the ill-timed raillery of the passers by. At last, she became
quite surrounded by a group of people, who assailed her with so many
questions and jokes, that the poor girl, quite overpowered, stopped
short, and burst into tears.

"Och! and what are ye about to be after disturbing a poor young cratur
like that," cried the well-known voice of Father Murphy, as the friar's
portly figure was seen bustling through the mob. "What are ye after
there? Don't you see the poor thing has lost her way in the darkness;
and if ye bother her so, how d'ye think she'll ever be able to find it?"

Never did any music sound so harmoniously in Clara's ears, as the
father's rich deep brogue; and darting forwards she threw herself at
his feet, and, clasping her arms round his knees, she exclaimed--"Oh!
save me! I am Clara! Clara Montagu!"

"Clara!" cried Father Murphy, in the utmost astonishment. "Clara! why,
what in the name of Heaven brings you out, child, at this hour of the
night?"

"Oh! don't ask me, father," returned Clara, gasping for breath; "that
is, I will tell you presently. But take me away; for the love of the
blessed Virgin, save me from these men!"

"Come here, my child," said the Father, drawing her arm within his
own, and walking away with her; "let us lave these people. And now,"
continued he, when they were already at some distance from the crowd,
"you must tell me, child, what brings ye here?"

This question, though it was a very natural one for the friar to
ask, was beyond Clara's power to answer. In fact, she trembled so
dreadfully that she could scarcely stand; and when she attempted to
speak, her teeth chattered in her head so violently, that she could not
articulate a syllable. "Poor thing," muttered the compassionate priest,
after waiting a few minutes in vain for an answer, "she'll be better
presently."

All now was dark, and they walked slowly on some paces without
speaking, when four bright flashes from a neighbouring clock announced
the completion of some hour, and the next instant the solemn deep-toned
bell distinctly pronounced the word "one," and then all again was
silent.

"I had no fancy it was so late," said the father, whose disposition was
naturally too cheerful to let him ever remain long silent.

"Did you think it was one o'clock, Clara? I little thought I should
ever be wandering with you, dear, in the streets at such a time of
night. I can't help fancying it's all a dream, any how: so speak,
darling, if you can, and tell me all about it."

Clara felt still more faint, and only replied by clinging yet more
firmly to the friar's arm. Father Murphy was frightened and thought
she was going to die.--"Oh murther!" cried he, "what will I do? she
brathing her last, sweet cratur, and nobody by to help her, and I not
knowing how to comfort her."

The delicate form of Clara seemed every instant to become more heavy,
as she still clung almost unconsciously to the friar's arm, and gasped
feebly for breath.

"Oh! what will I do? what will I do?" repeated the poor father,
looking eagerly around for aid: all however was dark, and gloomy and
silent as the grave. Suddenly, however, a bright meteor-like substance
appeared at the edge of the horizon, and the friar, to his unspeakable
transport, discovered it to be a patent night fire-stage balloon. He
hailed it, and in a few moments it was hovering over their heads; the
accommodation ladder was let down, and Clara and her companion having
ascended to the car, the balloon again rapidly sailed along.

"Where are we going?" asked Clara faintly.

"Och!" returned the friar, "and that's what I never thought of asking,
darling; but Heaven be praised that ye are so much better as to be able
to bother yourself about it."

"We are going to Kensington, miss," said the balloon conductor.

"Kensington!" repeated Clara, clapping her hands together in
transport--"thank God!"

"It's a very good thing to be thankful any how," said the father; "but
I own I don't see why you should cry out in such rapture, when you find
we are going the wrong road."

"Oh! no, no, father," returned Clara, "not the wrong road; for
Kensington is the goal of all my wishes."

"Poor thing! she is certainly distracted," thought Father Murphy. "The
loss of her cousin has deprived her of her senses; but I will let her
take her own way; perhaps she'll be better presently."

"Where will you like to be set down?" asked the man.

"Near the prison," cried Clara eagerly.

"Near the prison!" repeated Father Murphy, shrugging his shoulders.
"Ay, ay, I was right."

Not another word was spoken till the balloon stopped and the passengers
were set down: all still was dark, save a land-light that gleamed from
the battlements of the prison, and showed a tall, clumsy-looking figure
that marched with heavy, measured steps to and fro before the gates,
whilst at a little distance lay a party of soldiers bivouacking. Clara
shuddered as she looked at them, and hastily turning away, timidly
approached the figure, and begged it to let her into the prison. It
continued its march, but as it did not speak, she attempted to pass by
it.

"No admittance," said the figure, as she touched it, in trying to reach
the door.

"I implore you," cried Clara, wringing her hands in agony.

The figure did not reply, but continued its solemn tramp unmoved; its
hollow steps falling heavily upon the ear at regular intervals. Driven
to despair, Clara again endeavoured to rush past it; but she was again
repulsed as the figure reiterated its monotonous "No admittance!" Clara
threw herself upon her knees before it in agony.

"Clara! Clara dear!" cried Father Murphy, attempting to raise her, "you
are certainly quite beside yourself; don't you see it is an automaton?
nothing can stop it but the proper check-string, and that is in that
little guard house, round which you see the soldiers lying."

"Then _they_ can admit me," cried Clara wildly, "they _are men_, and
will surely listen to me:" then before the father could stop her, she
flew towards them, and throwing herself at the feet of the commanding
officer, implored his pity. The officer was a man of feeling, and,
touched with compassion at her evident anguish, had promised to grant
her petition ere Father Murphy, who was too fat to move with much
agility, could reach them. "Thank you! thank you!" cried Clara, kissing
the officer's hand. "God bless you!"

The officer smiled at her warmth. "Wait here a little," said he: "I
will soon return and admit you, if I obtain permission; but State
Prisoners are ordered to be guarded so closely, that I dare not take
any step respecting them, without consulting the governor."

"So then you'll get in after all," said Father Murphy, who had
approached near enough to hear this last speech. "Well, well, what a
world this is we live in! Here have been dukes and princes begging for
admission unsuccessfully, and yet a little saucy girl, only because
she happens to be half distracted, is let in at the very first word."

Clara did not reply; but wrapping herself in her cloak, sate down on
a large stone near the gates to wait the officer's return. The solemn
automaton had been stopped for a moment to allow him to pass, but it
had now resumed its slow measured step, and Clara's heart sickened at
the sound. The mist cleared away, and the night became fine, though
cold, whilst the moon having struggled through the clouds that rapidly
scudded across the sky, shed her pale feeble light upon the scene.
Clara shuddered as she looked at the dark heavy building behind her,
and, wrapping her cloak tighter round her, fixed her eyes anxiously
upon the sky, watching the varied shapes assumed by the clouds as they
drifted along, and sighing heavily as they passed.

"Now tell me, dear," said Father Murphy, seating himself beside her,
"what ye mane to say to yere cousin when ye get in to see him. Spake
freely, for the devil a word the spalpeens yonder shall hear of what
ye're going to say, by rason of their being all fast asleep."

"My cousin!" exclaimed Clara. "Who? what?"

"Your cousin Edmund, that ye're come so far to see," resumed the father.

"My cousin!" replied Clara; "Oh! ay, true. It was my cousin that fought
with him, you know. But I don't want to see my cousin."

"Not want to see your cousin!" reiterated Father Murphy, his eyes
almost starting from his head in the excess of his astonishment. "Why
did you come here then?"

"To--to see Prince Ferdinand," said Clara in a faltering voice, looking
down, and blushing.

Father Murphy's astonishment was now far too great for words, and he
could only look at her in speechless horror as he revolved some plan in
his mind for getting her quietly back to her friends.

"How wild she looks!" thought he: "she must be put in confinement;
there is no saying to what lengths, so strange a delusion may carry
her."

Whilst the poor father was thus cogitating and repeating to himself
divers coaxing forms of words, by the help of which he hoped to
persuade her to return, the automaton again stopped, and, the prison
door flying open, the officer beckoned Clara to advance. She flew
towards him. "Clara! Clara dear!" said Father Murphy, "had you not
better go home?" But Clara heard him not; she was already in the
prison; the doors had closed, and the automaton sentinel had again
resumed his measured, beaten track.

"Oh dear! oh dear!" cried the unhappy Father Murphy, "what will I do?
How will I get her out? Poor Sir Ambrose--he will break his heart. I
dare say he knows nothing about it. These kind of fits always come on
suddenly."

Thus lamenting, the worthy father walked up and down before the prison
in a state of pitiable distress, till a bright thought flashed across
his mind, and he set off as fast as his trembling limbs could carry him
to put it in execution.

In the mean time Clara had followed the officer into the prison,
and her heart beat faster as she advanced, for her undertaking now
appeared to her in a new light, and she trembled as she thought of
the interpretation the Prince might put upon her boldness. It was,
however, too late to repent; she had not even time for hesitation. The
officer is already at the door, the bolts are withdrawn, and Clara
finds herself in the presence of Ferdinand. Confused and horror-struck
at what she had done, she, however, scarcely knew where she was, every
thing seemed to swim before her eyes, and, gasping for breath, she
caught firm hold of the door-way for support.

For some moments, Ferdinand was not aware of her presence, as he sat
gloomily resting his head upon his hand, his elbow supported by a
table, upon which lay a variety of papers, whilst Hans, a favourite
servant, who had followed him from Germany, stood beside him.

Awed by his abstraction, and abashed by the presumption she had been
guilty of, in intruding, unsolicited, upon his presence, Clara still
stood irresolute, fearing alike to advance or to recede, till the
officer, impatient at her delay, cried, in a loud voice--

"Walk in, if you please, Ma'am, that I may re-lock the door. I shall
return to let you out in an hour."

The sound of the officer's voice caught the attention of Ferdinand, and
he looked towards the door-way, from the shade of which the trembling
Clara was now forced to advance.

"Miss Montagu," cried Prince Ferdinand, who had seen her at one of
Elvira's parties, and had thought her so pretty as to inquire her
name,--"this is an unhoped-for pleasure; I did not expect this."

"I came--I came--" stammered Clara: and here she stopped short, for
upon recollection she really could not tell why she did come.

"I am delighted to see you," said the prince, smiling, and taking her
hand, "whatever may be the cause that has procured me this honour."

"I--I--I--had--rather--sit--down," stammered Clara, without having the
least idea what she was talking about.

"Well then, we will sit down," said Ferdinand: and, gently placing her
upon a chair, he drew one to her side, and again took her hand. His
touch thrilled through Clara's whole frame. She felt his ardent gaze
upon her face, and dreadfully agitated, fearing she knew not what, she
turned away from him, and tried to withdraw her hand.

"I--I--I--believe--I must go," said she.

"So soon," cried Ferdinand, again smiling, for it was impossible to
mistake the cause of her confusion. "I thought the gaoler said he
should not come again for you in less than an hour."

"Did he!" repeated Clara, quite unconscious of what she said, and
without daring to look at him.

"My dear Miss Montagu, will you not bestow one look upon me?" cried
Ferdinand, in his most insinuating tone, sinking upon one knee before
her, and gently encircling her slender waist with his arm, as he
turned her towards him. Clara could not resist his imploring eyes; her
heart beat, she blushed, she trembled, she looked upon the ground;
when suddenly Ferdinand uttered a faint cry, and started upon his
feet. Clara gazed at him with wonder, for that countenance, so lately
beaming with love and tenderness, now seemed aghast with horror. She
followed the direction of his eyes, and beheld in the door-way the
giant form of Cheops; whilst the Mummy's appalling laugh resounded in
his ears. Involuntarily Clara shuddered, and hid her face in her hands.

"By the silver bow of Isis!" cried Cheops tauntingly, "I admire your
charity, Miss Montagu. Why do you hide your face? But so it is, true
merit is always bashful, and the beneficent spirit that prompted Clara
Montagu to visit the distressed, and even prefer a stranger to her own
cousin, makes her blush to avow her goodness."

"Mercy! mercy!" cried Clara, falling at his feet. "You know my heart,
and I implore your assistance."

"And you shall have it," returned Cheops. "As for you," continued he,
addressing the prince; "what is your wish?"

"Deliver me from this prison, and make Clara mine, and I will be your
slave."

"It is well," said the Mummy. "Clara, you must retire with me; this
is no place for you. As for you, prince, Lord Maysworth and Father
Murphy will be admitted to your presence in the course of a few hours,
to consult with you respecting your defence. Follow their advice, and
fear nothing. Rely upon me, and you shall be safe. Come, Clara! you
must return to the house of your uncle. He is prepared to receive you,
and will forgive your absence, as Father Murphy will, ere we reach him,
have fully explained its cause: and Sir Ambrose will overlook your
folly, in consideration of your youth. Adieu, Prince! we shall meet
again!"

The Mummy and Clara now withdrew, leaving the prince's mind much
relieved, as his confidence in his new friend was unbounded; whilst the
discovery he had made of the devoted love of Clara soothed his troubled
spirit, and robbed his confinement of half its bitterness.



CHAPTER XXVIII.


In the mean time, Lord Edmund's mind had been tortured by the bitterest
anguish, and his agitation, added to the pain of his wounds, had
produced a considerable degree of fever. The conduct of Elvira, and the
anxiety she had evinced respecting the prince, seemed to confirm his
worst suspicions. "O God! O God!" cried he, as he paced his prison in
agony; "I could have borne any thing but this--it is too, too much. By
Heaven! I could sell myself to everlasting perdition to be revenged."

As he spoke, he heard the key of his dungeon door grate in the lock,
and he shuddered, for he almost fancied some hideous spectre would
appear in answer to his call, and he felt indescribably relieved when
he heard the gentle, insinuating tones of Father Morris. Sweet is the
voice of friendship to the disappointed spirit, and soft falls the balm
of consolation from those we love, upon the wounded heart. Edmund's
bosom thus throbbed with transport when he saw the reverend father,
and, throwing his arms round his neck, he sobbed like a child.

"My dear Edmund," said the priest, also excessively affected, for he
really loved Edmund, "it breaks my heart to see you thus--cruel Elvira!"

"Oh, blame her not, father!" exclaimed Edmund; "I cannot bear that even
you should blame her. She is deceived--she is under the influence of
infatuation. We cannot control our hearts, you know, father."

"But that she should be capable of loving another, when your services,
your devoted affection--"

"Alas! alas! father, love is not to be bought by services. All she
could give she has given; I possess her friendship and esteem."

"And are you satisfied with those?"

"Satisfied! Oh heavens!"

"At any rate, I suppose you could bear to see her married to Prince
Ferdinand, if you thought it would contribute to her happiness."

"Married to him!" cried Edmund, gnashing his teeth in agony--"married
to him! Oh any thing but that: but I will never live to see it."

"You are not likely," calmly returned the priest; "for, as the state
requires a victim, and Elvira will certainly not resign her Endymion,
you will doubtless be sacrificed to save him."

"Hold, hold!" cried Edmund, driven to madness by the thought; "do
not dare to repeat those cursed words; I could die to serve her, but
I will not be sacrificed. What! am I to be made a tool, a child, an
idiot?--destined to labour for my rival, and denied even the poor
satisfaction of showing the extent of my devotion? But I will not
die so calmly; Elvira shall not forget me--I will see her--she shall
at least know my sentiments; and if she treats me with scorn, I will
die, it is true, but it shall be by my own hand, and at her feet. I
will not be sacrificed--I will not steal out of life like a common
criminal.--No; the world shall know my wrongs--I will be heard, I will
not fall unnoticed and unknown. Take this chain, Father Morris; give
it to her, and tell her I implore, by the recollection of the moment
when she bestowed it upon me, that she will grant me an interview. If
she refuse me--but no, no, she cannot."

Father Morris took the chain, and, promising to see the Queen,
withdrew, leaving Lord Edmund in a state of indescribable agitation.
He was not left long, however, to his solitary reflections, for, as he
paced with hasty strides his prison, and turned as he reached the wall,
the Mummy, Cheops, stood before him.

"Ah, wretch!" cried Edmund, "what brings you here? Came you to torment
your victims?"

"I came to help and comfort the unfortunate," said the Mummy.

"Begone!" cried Lord Edmund, "I do not want your pity, and your
proffered help I scorn."

"Spare your scorn, proud Lord," returned Cheops, "_it_ will not aid
you, though I might."

"I want no aid!" exclaimed Lord Edmund, "and, least of all, such help
as _you_ can give me. I despise alike your pity and your vengeance.
Come what will, I rely upon myself. Conscious of my own integrity, I do
not fear to fall, though demons should assail me. Avaunt then, fiend,
for over me thou hast no power!"

Cheops burst into one of his fiendish laughs, and exclaiming, "That
time will show," disappeared.

Edmund felt relieved by his absence, though, in spite of his boasted
firmness, and the sovereign contempt he expressed for the Mummy,
he could not prevent his mind from dwelling upon the circumstance.
The appearance of Cheops, indeed, never failed to excite a deep and
powerful interest in the minds of all who conversed with him, whilst
his appalling laugh struck terror to the firmest breast, and even those
who affected to despise his menaces could not prevent their minds from
dwelling upon his words. This irresistible power had its full effect
upon the mind of Edmund, and, though he endeavoured in vain to shake
it off and rouse his mind to think of other things, still the gigantic
Mummy seemed to stalk before him. In vain did he strive to picture to
himself his interview with the Queen; the hideous features of the Mummy
rose in his imagination instead of the lovely form of Elvira, till at
length, fatigued and exhausted, he threw himself upon his couch: yet
even in his dreams the same image haunted him, and the same words rang
in his ears.

Whilst these scenes were taking place in the prison, Elvira was
suffering all the torments of a burning fever; she was, indeed,
seriously ill: the excessive agitation of her mind, and the horror she
felt at the idea of being the murderer of Ferdinand, had overpowered
her reason; and by the time Dr. Coleman arrived, (he having been sent
for on the first alarm,) she was quite delirious. The thought that
she alone had caused the danger of Ferdinand, occupied her mind;
and, not being able to bear the idea that her folly might occasion
the destruction of a human being, she raved of him incessantly, and
repeatedly offered to sacrifice her life to preserve his.

Her ravings were heard by her domestics, and being neither exactly
understood, nor correctly repeated, their reports, aided by the artful
insinuations of Father Morris, soon produced rumours throughout the
city, that the Queen was violently in love with Prince Ferdinand, and
had gone mad because the law did not permit her to marry him. The
effect this idea produced was prodigious; it was implicitly believed,
for the lower classes are naturally fond of the marvellous, and,
when there are two sides to a question, are very seldom disposed to
err by judging too favourably; whilst the indignation it excited was
unbounded. In some cases, men are more tenacious of their prejudices
than of their rights. Thus, then, though the English, by consenting to
the marriage of their Queen, had deprived themselves of the important
right of electing their own Sovereign; they considered what they had
done as trifling, when compared with the horror they felt at the
thought of submitting to a foreign King: whilst the emissaries of
Rosabella, taking advantage of this feeling, by alternately playing
upon their fears, and magnifying their terrors, worked them up almost
to a state of desperation.

The party of Elvira, in the mean time, was quite unable to stem the
torrent opposed to it. The Queen and her father were both too ill to
leave their beds, and Lord Edmund was in prison.

"What will become of us?" whispered Emma to Dr. Coleman, one day in the
chamber of Elvira, when she fancied the Queen to be asleep. "To-morrow
Prince Ferdinand and Lord Edmund are to be tried, and, they say, not
even the Queen has power to pardon them if they are convicted."

"It is but too true," returned Dr. Coleman; "they must die, and the
punishment is horrid. The criminal is doomed to be burned by a slow
fire."

"Horrible!" cried Emma; "and this only for drawing a sword in the
vicinity of a royal palace."

"Alas! that is not all! Ferdinand is accused of wishing to marry the
Queen; and the laws that devote to a horrid death the man who shall
presume to address her in the language of love, yet hold good against
foreigners."

"I cannot believe Prince Ferdinand ever dared even think of the Queen,"
said Emma.

"God only can judge the heart," observed Dr. Coleman; "but, I am sorry
to say, the proofs are very strong against him: I have heard, from
undoubted authority, that persons will swear they heard him absolutely
make love to the Queen; and that she promised to marry him if she could
obtain the consent of her people."

"It is false!" cried Elvira, starting from her bed, and standing
suddenly between them--"false as hell! Prince Ferdinand never addressed
a single syllable breathing of love to me in his existence. He is the
victim of a mistake, or rather of my folly; but he shall not die--I
will save him, or perish in the attempt!"

The calm, decided tone in which Elvira spoke, and her spectral
appearance, produced an almost magical effect upon her auditors, and
they stood awestruck and aghast, whilst Elvira continued:--

"Dress me, Emma; I will see my people; I will appeal to them myself. It
is the day for receiving petitions in Blackheath Square: there will be
a multitude assembled. I will go there in person, and address them."

"It is the raving of delirium," whispered Emma to Dr. Coleman; "what
shall I do?"

"Do you dare to hesitate?" said Elvira, whose sense of hearing,
sharpened by her recent illness, enabled her to catch distinctly the
words of her favourite.

"Humour her," returned Dr. Coleman; "in her present state, opposition
would be fatal."

"It would indeed be fatal," said Elvira, seating herself in a large
arm-chair, whilst the temporary colour her previous exertion had given
her, faded from her cheeks, and she looked the image of death.

"She will faint!" cried Emma, flying for aid.

"It is impossible for her to go in this state!" said the doctor.

"Impossible!" cried Elvira, starting up wildly, and her cheeks again
glowing with the deepest crimson, whilst her eyes sparkled with
superhuman fire; "what is impossible to a determined spirit? Haste!
haste! Emma, and let me go, whilst I have yet strength; for go I will,
though death await me there. My rashness has endangered the life of
Prince Ferdinand, and I will die to save him!"

Farther opposition was useless, and the doctor retiring, Emma hastily
attired her mistress. The people were expected to assemble as usual
in the Square, though, from the illness of the Queen, a deputation of
nobles had been appointed to receive the petitions. The feelings of
Elvira were wrought up to an unnatural energy: every limb trembled with
agitation, and every nerve thrilled with impatience, whilst she was
dressing; and when she was ready, she descended the staircase, leaning
upon the arm of Emma, her cheeks flushed with a hectic glow, her lips
quivering, and her eyes shining with unusual brightness.

At the foot of the staircase they met Cheops. He stedfastly regarded
the Queen, and smiled at her agitated appearance with his usual calm
scorn.

"Oh!" cried Elvira, the moment she beheld him, "my pride is humbled. I
own I love Seymour. Aid me to save Ferdinand, and I am thy slave."

"Appeal to your people," said Cheops, his eyes flashing with proud
triumph; "your feelings will give you eloquence. But do not confine
yourself to obtaining the power to pardon Ferdinand. Demand to be free;
the people will refuse you nothing. Tell them, first, that they have
insulted you by giving you permission to marry, and then dictating whom
you shall choose. Require perfect freedom. They will comply, and bow
their necks beneath your footstool. But rest not satisfied with any
thing short of actual submission. Endure no conditions. This is the
moment to decide your future destiny. Act with energy, and you will be
happy. But if you falter, destruction is your portion."

"I will obey you to the letter," said Elvira, as she walked with a firm
step past him, and sprang into her balloon, followed by Emma.

"Oh, my dear, dear mistress!" said that faithful confidant, "do not
listen to that wretch; he is a serpent sent to wile you to destruction.
Do be advised; do return and relinquish this mad enterprize."

Elvira did not reply. Her feelings were too highly wrought to permit
her to speak, and bending eagerly forward, she watched, with an
impatient eye, the streets and houses they flitted over, scarcely able
to bear the agony of suspense during the time necessarily lost in the
transit, and seeming every instant to long to precipitate herself
forward to the goal of her wishes.

The balloon now rose unusually high, whilst masses of fleecy clouds hid
the town from their view, and looked like flocks of sheep beneath their
feet.

"We are going wrong!" cried Elvira, in agony; "we shall be too late."

"No, no," said Emma, "I feel we descend again--we are arrived."

And as she spoke, the balloon sank rapidly, whilst the clouds opening,
discovered the immense Square below them, apparently paved with human
heads.

"Thank God! we are not too late!" cried Elvira, clasping her hands
together, and sinking back upon her seat; whilst the balloon-conductor
directed the machine to the palace usually appointed for the reception
of the Queen. Elvira did not wait to arrange her dress; she did not
wait to take refreshment, or even to rest a single moment from her
fatigue, but she rushed upon the terrace the instant she quitted the
balloon, and presented herself before her astonished people, every limb
quivering from the violence of her agitation.

The crowd was immense. The extensive space looked one compact mass of
human heads; but Elvira's courage did not fail her. Though she had now
no Lord Edmund to support her, and no father or applauding friends
to listen as she spoke, yet the enthusiasm of the moment gave her
strength. She forgot every thing but the cause that brought her there;
and her mind, thrown back upon its own resources, rallied its energies,
and seemed to gather courage from the thought; whilst her sylphic
figure appeared to dilate in size, and assume an almost awful dignity
from the grandeur of the spirit that animated it, as she thus stood
before her subjects, her life or death hanging upon their will.

Her arrival had been hailed by the loudest shouts of wonder and of
joy; but when the multitude saw she wished to address them, the tumult
was hushed, and they waited in breathless silence for her speech. The
deep stillness that prevailed amongst this so lately bustling crowd
of human beings, and the thought that every ear and every eye were
turned towards her, slightly affected the nerves of Elvira, and her
lips trembled as she began to speak; but as she became warmed with
her subject, her voice gradually assumed its natural depth, melody,
and sweetness; whilst its full tones sank deep into the hearts of her
auditors, and carried conviction as she went on.

She first appealed to their gratitude; and, after alluding to all she
had done to secure peace and plenty to their domestic firesides, she
reverted to the misery of her own situation, before the laws had been
revoked that had condemned her to celibacy. She powerfully painted the
harshness of the destiny that debarred her from the blessings she had
so lavishly bestowed upon others. She alone, of all her subjects, had
been destined to the wretchedness of a solitary life, unsoothed by the
tender cares of a husband, uncheered by the affection of children. She
alone had been doomed to wither away her youth in cheerless widowhood.
Their fiat had changed her destiny; but was it the part of a noble
and generous people, whilst they conferred a benefit to encumber it
with restrictions? No; she was confident the liberal spirit of the
English would spurn the sordid thought, and shrink from such a manner
of obliging. "Make me free!" said she, "really, absolutely free, and I
promise solemnly you shall never have occasion to blush for your Queen."

As she spoke, her cheeks glowed, and her eyes sparkled with unwonted
fire; whilst the people, struck by the suddenness of her appearance,
and her enthusiasm, and carried away by the force of the sentiment
that could metamorphose the tender, gentle Elvira into the exalted
being before them, shouted applause; whilst cries rang loudly through
the air of "Long live Elvira!" "Marry whom you list, we shall still be
your slaves! Still be our Queen, and let your children and children's
children reign over us, when you shall be no more."

Delight danced in the bright eyes of Elvira, and a blush of pleasure
mantled on her cheek, as she gracefully thanked them. "And yet, my
friends," continued she, in a fainter voice, "there is another
privilege I would demand at your hands. I am called free and absolute,
yet I am chained by the laws. Unloose these bands; give me at least
the power to pardon. I know, that if I wished it, I might reverse
these laws at my will, as the power of the Queen that made them was
not greater than that which you have bestowed upon me. But I wish not
to do so: I would rather accept that from your hands as a favour which
I might exact as a right. Give me then, my people, the most blessed
attribute of royalty. Let me pardon. Can you refuse me this?"

"No, no!" shouted the people with enthusiasm; "we are your slaves! Do
with us as you list. The laws are yours; and though you change them at
your pleasure, we will obey! Long live Elvira! Elvira for ever! From
henceforth we own no law but her will!"

Elvira's rapture was unbounded; she forgot the unstable nature of
the vox populi, and triumphed in the devotion of her people; whilst
they, in return, shouted forth her praise, as she warmly expressed her
gratitude, in tumultuous transports. The air rang with acclamations;
and Elvira, looking proudly round upon her obsequious subjects, felt
herself indeed a Queen. There is perhaps no sensation in the world more
delightful than thus to feel oneself the idol of the multitude, to
see every eye beaming with admiration, to hear every voice resounding
praise, and to know every heart is devoted to one object. The human
mind cannot enjoy a higher gratification than in the consciousness of
power; whilst the man thus exalted, seems raised to the level of a
divinity, and triumphs in the worship of his fellow-creatures: but,
alas! such glory is too much for mortals, and nothing can be more
evanescent, or rather, nothing a more certain prelude to disgrace.

Elvira, however, knew not that her popularity was too great to be
lasting. She implicitly believed her people would continue to feel
what they now expressed, and, catching the spirit of the moment, she
persuaded them to sign an abolition of the laws, and a confirmation of
her absolute power. The people obeyed with rapture; the enthusiasm that
animated them had not yet abated; and even if Elvira had desired their
lives, they would have obeyed. They considered her inspired, and it
seemed sacrilege even to hesitate to comply with her commands.

So powerful was the energy of a woman's will, and so sure it is that
a determined spirit may overcome any difficulties when once roused
resolutely to exert itself. Such also is the influence of beauty and
eloquence upon the human mind, and so weak is judgment when attacked
through the medium of the senses.

In the mean time, the council of Elvira had met in their usual
apartment, and were holding a solemn consultation, previous to going to
receive the petitions, on the propriety of addressing the people whom
they might find assembled in the Square, respecting the illness and
consequent incapacity for reigning of the Queen.

"Thinking as I think, and as I am confident every one here must
think," said Lord Gustavus de Montfort, "there is no middle course to
be pursued: a regency must be appointed, or the government will be
overturned."

"Oh! there is no doubt, we cannot exist without a regency," said Lord
Noodle.

"Yes, yes! we must have a regency!" cried Lord Doodle.

"It appears to me, to say the least of it, premature," observed the
Duke of Essex, a highly respectable nobleman, who had hitherto observed
a cautious neutrality; "I think, before deciding upon so important a
question, we should at least examine her Majesty's physicians, and be
guided by their report."

"His Grace is quite right," said Lord Noodle.

"We ought to examine the physicians," said Lord Doodle.

"One of them has just entered the council-chamber," observed Lord
Gustavus; "I presume he brings the usual daily bulletin of her
Majesty's health: is it your pleasure, my lords, that he be examined?"

"By all means!" cried all the noble lords simultaneously, and Dr.
Hardman advanced.

"How is her most gracious Majesty?" asked Lord Gustavus, with his usual
solemnity.

"Alas! my lord," said Dr. Hardman, "her Majesty has slept badly, and
is much worse this morning."

"Is she still delirious?" asked the Duke of Essex.

"Quite, your Grace," returned the doctor, shaking his head.

"Then I fear there is no hope?" said the duke.

"None!" said Lord Noodle, shaking his head.

"None!" echoed Lord Doodle, shaking his.

"Thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one here must think," said
Lord Gustavus, "we must not suffer the interests of the people to be
invaded with impunity. The constitution requires watching over, and I
consider this a matter that ought to be inquired into."

"Then you think the senses of the Queen irrecoverable?" asked the Duke
of Essex, addressing Dr. Hardman.

"Not irrecoverable, I hope, my lord duke," replied the doctor; "though
I own her delirium is alarming."

"What does she rave about," asked Lord Doodle; curiosity being the
only mark he ever gave of his being a rational animal.

"It is a delicate subject," returned the doctor; "and if your lordships
will excuse me--"

"Oh, no! you must tell us," said Lord Doodle.

"Thinking as I think, and as I am sure every one else ought to think,"
said Lord Gustavus; "concealment in this case would be a crime."

"Since your lordships command me," replied the doctor, "however
reluctant I may be to betray her Majesty's secrets, it is my duty to
obey. The Queen raves incessantly of Prince Ferdinand."

"I feared as much," said the Duke of Essex.

"And do you think if she recovers she'll want to marry him?" asked Lord
Doodle.

"I fear it cannot be doubted, my Lord:" returned the doctor.

"Then, thinking as I think, and as every free-born Englishman ought to
think," said Lord Gustavus, "she will forfeit her crown."

A deep silence followed this daring speech, yet, though no one assented
to it, no one attempted to contradict it. In fact, every man seemed
afraid of committing himself; for, though every one thought Lord
Gustavus would not have ventured so far, had he not felt assured the
party against the Queen was strong, yet no one liked to be the first
to declare himself her opponent. This awkward pause was broken by the
entrance of Sir Ambrose and Father Morris, who came with a message from
the Duke of Cornwall, imploring them not to decide upon any measure
hastily, and informing them that on the following day his physicians
assured him he would be able to assist their deliberations in person.

"We all esteem and respect the duke," said Lord Gustavus. "But,
thinking as I think, and as I am confident every one who hears me must
think, not even our respect for him ought to induce us to consent that
the Queen should marry a foreigner! No, no, we must not let private
feelings make us risk the interests of the people."

"I dare say they will not be in any danger," murmured the soft,
insinuating voice of Father Morris--"I dare say they will run no risk.
Foreigners have sometimes been known to respect the interests of a
people, and reign as gloriously as native-born monarchs."

"Not often, I believe, father," said Sir Ambrose. "At any rate, I am
sure it would break the duke's heart to see his daughter married to
Prince Ferdinand, and I am sure it would break mine to see him King of
England. Weak, silly Elvira! I cannot account for her infatuation; and
I have no patience with her, for causing all this misery solely by her
folly."

"You use strong language, Sir Ambrose," said the Duke of Essex.

"Not stronger than the occasion requires, my lord duke," returned the
worthy baronet. "I have known the Queen from her childhood, and loved
her as a daughter; but now--"

"The matter must certainly be inquired into," said Lord Gustavus. "It
is the duty of every well-disposed patriotic Englishman not to suffer
the slightest invasion of the constitution. Our laws are our bulwarks;
we ought to die to defend our laws; and if the Queen be no longer in
a fit state to administer them, or if she even contemplate the design
of putting the administration of them into hands in which their
purity will be contaminated, then, thinking as I think, and as I feel
confident every individual who hears me must think, or, at least, ought
to think, there can remain only one course for us to pursue."

"Perhaps," said Father Morris, "we may be deceived, and the delirium of
the Queen may be transient, or, at least, her mentioning the name of
Prince Ferdinand in her ravings quite accidental. It is not well to be
too rash--"

"Oh, no, reverend father," replied Lord Gustavus; "you deceive
yourself. Your abstraction from the world, and the goodness of your
heart, lead you to judge too favourably of others. But we, who know the
world, see deeper. You, holy father, can form no idea of the folly of
human passions; you are above their weaknesses, and cannot suspect that
in another which you are incapable of feeling yourself: but, as I said
before, we, that know the world, see deeper. Elvira is in love with
Prince Ferdinand, and is quite capable of sacrificing her throne and
people to the caprices of a romantic passion."

"Impossible!" cried Father Morris, with well-acted astonishment.

"Is is very true, notwithstanding," said Lord Gustavus, shaking his
head sagaciously; whilst his attendant satellites, the Lords Noodle and
Doodle, shook theirs for sympathy.

"Impossible!" cried Sir Ambrose; "she cannot surely carry her
infatuation to such a height: she is too noble: but even if she be so
mad, will no one step forward and save her from destruction?"

"I do not see how any one can save her, if such be her intentions,"
said the Duke of Essex. "Women are proverbially self-willed; and, now
that the people have put the laws into her own hands--"

"The people were cajoled into consent," exclaimed Lord Gustavus; "but
if the Queen be so mad as to intend to marry the prince, she must lose
her throne and suffer death, for the laws against foreigners remain
inexorable."

"Yes, the laws are inexorable!" echoed the Lords Noodle and Doodle.

"Good Heaven!" cried Sir Ambrose, "is it possible I am in England, and
yet hear such barbarous sentiments openly avowed? No one has more
right to feel anger at the folly of Elvira than myself; but even I
cannot bear such cruelty. What! is a young and beautiful woman, in the
very flower of her age, to be doomed to destruction, merely for having
shown a susceptible heart? Forbid it, Heaven! And what are we that we
should dare to judge so harshly and refuse mercy to a fellow-creature?
Are we not all feeble? Do we not all err? And if we show such cruelty
in judging such a trifling offence, how shall we expect mercy for our
own more weighty ones? Have mercy, then. Let us show ourselves men! Let
us dare to exert our reason and throw off the shackles of prejudice. We
boast that the law in this case makes us free, and arms us with power
against our Sovereign. Let us use that power, then, and show that we
are really free by daring to act justly. If we do not, we are slaves!"

"It cannot be," said Lord Gustavus; "you talk well, Sir Ambrose,
but words are nothing against facts. If the Queen intend to marry
Prince Ferdinand, she must either be insane or intend to subvert
the constitution; and, in either case, thinking as I think, and as I
am sure every reasonable person in the kingdom must think, she is no
longer competent to reign, and is no longer worthy to live. Eloquence
is a fine thing, and I do not deny that the worthy baronet speaks
fluently; yet, notwithstanding all he can say, or indeed all that can
be said, upon the subject, law is law."

"Yes, law is law!" echoed the repeating lords.

"Sir Ambrose, I thank you from my soul!" cried the old Duke of
Cornwall, starting from the midst of the crowd. "You have, indeed,
proved yourself my friend; but I should blush to think that my
daughter was slandered in my presence, and that I left it to another
to undertake her defence. Yes, gentlemen, Elvira is slandered--I will
venture my life upon her innocence. Her heart is English, my lords,
thoroughly English; she will marry no German; no--no, my poor, dear
Elvira never dreamed of such a thing; she is innocent." And here the
poor old man, overpowered by his emotions, could not proceed, but,
leaning upon the shoulder of his friend Sir Ambrose, wept bitterly.
It is hard to see the tears of aged men; and every one was affected:
they had started at the sudden appearance of the duke amongst them; for
his gaunt looks and wasted form, aided by the belief of his serious
illness, gave him more the aspect of a spectre than a man: and now
his trembling voice, and grey hairs, as he attempted to vindicate his
child, came home to the hearts of his auditors.

"Alas! why is not Edmund here?" sighed Sir Ambrose; "he would not have
left the cause of Elvira to such feeble hands. But he is gone, and,
wretched father that I am! I may soon no longer possess my darling
boy. Six months ago, two brave sons were the pride of my heart, and
the admiration of every eye. Where are they now? the one wandering in
foreign climes, exposed to every misery of want, and the other confined
in a prison and doomed to suffer an ignominious death. Alas! alas! why
has my life been spared to endure such misery?"

Whilst the old man thus lamented, a bustle was heard amongst the
crowd, and the noble lords of whom it was composed, dividing, made way
for Elvira! With glowing cheeks and sparkling eyes, the Queen walked
proudly along the lane made for her, having a roll of parchment in her
hand, and with dignity took her seat upon the vacant throne. A solemn
silence prevailed: the conspirators were awed by the sudden appearance
of their Sovereign; and those who had hitherto remained neutral,
surprised, stood hesitating, unknowing how to act. Elvira paused a few
seconds, sternly surveying the crowd, and finding that no one attempted
to speak, she exclaimed, "How now, my Lords? what means this silence? I
came to assist your councils, not to interrupt them. Go on, I pray you;
for surely such enlightened senators can have no sentiments they fear
to breathe before their Queen."

"We were surprised at the sudden appearance of your Majesty," said the
Duke of Essex, "as, from the report of your Majesty's physicians, we
had feared your Majesty's illness--"

"My illness was of the mind, my Lord Duke!" said Elvira, "and this
is the medicine that has cured it. Look, my lords," continued she,
unrolling the parchment she carried, and suddenly flashing it before
their eyes--"behold my panaçea! Now I am, indeed, a Queen; for my
people have made me absolute, and, abolishing all laws, have placed
their lives and fortunes at my feet."

Lord Gustavus and his adherents stood aghast, gazing upon the Queen and
the parchment she held so triumphantly, without the power of uttering a
word.

"Ere this," continued the Queen, "the purport of this parchment has
received some thousand signatures; yet I do not wish to abuse my power.
Go, my lords; I have no longer occasion for your counsels; when I have,
I will summon you."

The dignified manner in which Elvira waved her hand as she said this,
prevented reply; and the lords of the council dispersed, without daring
to utter a single syllable. The duke and Sir Ambrose alone remained.
"My dear father," cried Elvira, throwing her arms round his neck,
whilst the overstrained feelings that had so long supported her gave
way, and she sobbed in agony upon his shoulder.

"Remove her to her chamber," said Dr. Coleman, who now appeared; "this
agitation will destroy her--her exhausted frame is not able to endure
it."

In fact, the Queen was now completely overpowered, and was carried off
by Emma and her attendants in violent hysterics.

Lord Maysworth had not been present at this scene, for his time had
been otherwise engaged; and, to explain what occupied him, it will
be necessary to go back to the prison of Prince Ferdinand. It may be
recollected, when Cheops removed Clara, he had informed the prince that
Lord Maysworth and Father Murphy would be with him in a few hours. The
Mummy's information was correct, for at the appointed time they came.

"Och!" said Father Murphy, "and where's Clara? So they've let me in
after all, ye see; for, knowing Lord Maysworth was your friend, I went
to consult him, and he talked to them and tould them how barbarous it
was to deny a poor fellow that was just going to be burnt alive, the
consolations of religion;--they hadn't the heart to refuse me."

"Oh!" groaned Prince Ferdinand; "is there no hope of escape?"

"I fear not," said Lord Maysworth; "for, notwithstanding the enormous
expense attending public executions, the people are so fond of them,
that it is necessary to indulge them now and then; and they are so
devoted to Lord Edmund that his adversary has no chance. Besides, they
say there are plenty of witnesses to prove that you have addressed the
most impassioned language to the Queen; your enthusiasm one night at
her singing--"

"I remember," cried Prince Ferdinand; "idiot that I was--oh! curses on
my folly."

"Ah, that's right," exclaimed Father Murphy; "indulge yerself a little,
my honey, and it will do ye good. I don't know a prettier amusement
than cursing and swearing, and finding fault when one's in trouble; and
I'd be far from denying ye a little harmless indulgence; for, as ye're
to die so soon, it would be cruel, ye know, not to let ye have all the
consolation ye can get hold of."

"Oh!" exclaimed Prince Ferdinand, "I am the most wretched of human
beings."

"And ye may say that, for I don't see any great hope ye have, in
respect that the people must have a victim, and they'd like you better
than Lord Edmund. But never mind that, for the worst that can happen at
all, is that ye'll be roasted alive!"

"Oh!" groaned Prince Ferdinand, not much consoled by this encouraging
speech.

"Wehe mir!" exclaimed Hans; "and can nothing be done?--for though
roasting alive may be the worst that can happen, I don't think my
master such an amateur in cookery as to wish to try the experiment."

"Och!" cried Father Murphy, "and I'm quite of your opinion; and so, if
the prince would just try, and get ready a word or two of defence--or
if some clever person that knows the world like yere lordship, for
instance, would just give him a word or two of advice--the thing would
be entirely done, and all right."

"Oh!" cried the prince, clasping his hands together, "save me! I
implore you to save me!"

"I will do all I can," said Lord Maysworth, smiling most graciously;
"rely upon me, prince; the suggestion of the holy father shall be
attended to. The gratitude I owe your father, demands my greatest
exertions--and I am most happy to have an opportunity of serving his
son. This worthy father's plan is excellent: I wonder it did not strike
me before. Confide securely in me, prince; a proper defence shall be
prepared, and I think by it you may escape."

So saying he retired, leaving Prince Ferdinand somewhat consoled by his
assurances, but by no means reconciled even to the possibility of being
roasted alive. The intermediate time between this conversation and the
day fixed for the trial of the prince, was spent by Lord Maysworth in
preparing, with the assistance of those "learned in the law," this
defence: and when it was finished, his rapture was beyond description.
Three times did he read it over with still increasing satisfaction,
for, as he considered it as his own production, he regarded it with
all the true, yet indescribable rapture of a doting parent. We are
all so fond of our own children, whether of the mind or of the body,
regarding them as emanations from ourselves, upon which we may indulge
our self-love without the grossness of undisguised vanity, that the
transport of Lord Maysworth is not surprising; though he actually
carried it so far, that, notwithstanding his professed attachment and
gratitude to the German Emperor, I believe if the means of procuring
the prince's escape had been offered to him, he would rather have let
him stay at the risk of being burned alive, than have lost the pleasure
he anticipated on hearing the delivery of his speech.

The important day arrived, and the prince, accompanied by his faithful
Hans and Lord Maysworth, proceeded to the court; the latter carrying
his beloved brief in his own pocket, rightly considering it far too
estimable to be entrusted into any other hands than his.

The court was crowded to an excess--for strange tales of the passion
and illness of the Queen had gone forth into the world, each edition
more wonderful than that which went before it, and the people now
thronged to see the prince with that extraordinary feeling, so common
amongst the English, which makes them stare at a great man in much the
same way as they would at a wild beast.

An automaton judge sat with great dignity upon a magnificent throne,
looking, though a little heavy, quite as wise and sagacious as judges
are wont to look. A real jury (that is, a jury of flesh and blood,) was
ranged upon one side of him, and some automaton counsel sate in front,
their briefs lying upon the table before them, and having behind each a
clerk ready to wind him up when he should be wanted to speak; it being
found that the profession of the law gives such an amazing volubility
of words, that it was dangerous to wind up the counsel too soon, lest
they should go off in the wrong place, and so disturb the silence of
the court. In different parts of these counsel were holes, into which
briefs being put they were gradually ground to pieces as the counsel
were being wound up, till they came forth in words at the mouth: whilst
the language in which the counsel pleaded, depended entirely upon the
hole into which the brief was put, there being a different one for
every possible tongue.

All now was ready; the prisoner with his friends placed themselves
at the bar, and the judge and jury prepared to hear and decide with
all due decorum. The signal to begin was given, and the brief for the
crown being put into the English department of the counsel appointed
to conduct the prosecution, the clerk began to wind away, and in a few
minutes the counsel burst forth in the following impassioned strain of
eloquence:--

"My Lord, and Gentlemen of the Jury,

"It is with feelings of the most unfeigned regret that I now rise to
address you. Sensible--oh! how deeply sensible, of my insufficiency!
and of the much greater competency of any one of my learned brethren
at the bar; how willingly would I resign the task to any one of those
eloquent gentlemen, feeling so indisputably convinced as I do, of their
eminent talents and of their merit; and of their great, oh! how much
greater fitness for an undertaking of this magnitude than myself!"

"Ach! Es ist aus mit uns! wir sind verlohren!" cried Hans; "if thou art
so unfit for the task, I wonder why the deuce they employed thee!"

"Peace, fool!" said the prince; "do you not see that this is only the
exordium--these are words of course."

The orator had paused for an instant from some error of his machinery;
but his clerk setting him in motion again, he went on as follows:--

"But having being deputed to act, I will not shrink from the arduous
duty imposed upon me; I will, therefore, state the principal points
of the case; prove my facts by witnesses; and then leave the decision
to the well-known judgment and penetration of the enlightened and
intelligent tribunal before me!"

It was here intended the counsel should bow to the court, but, owing
to his defective machinery, he only gave a kind of jerk, and then
continued:--

"My Lord, and Gentlemen,

"It sometimes falls to the lot of members of my profession to relate
astounding circumstances and soul-harrowing facts!--facts that pierce
into the inmost souls of their auditors, and rend their tortured
spirits by their iron fangs! as the teeth of the tangible harrow
pierce into and rend asunder the clods of inanimate earth over which
it is dragged! But what I shall have to tell you, gentlemen, will make
even facts like these hide their diminished heads, and run skulking
into corners like owls trembling, and flying hooting away on being
exposed to the scorching glare of the noon-day sun.

"Do you not tremble, gentlemen?--do not your hearts pant in breathless
expectation of what is coming? Indulge your anticipations--bid fancy
take her wildest flight, and let imagination conjure up all the
horrors of the infernal regions. Paint the angel of death hovering
upon leathern wings over a devoted city--and shrieking mothers
imploring mercy in vain for their murdered children! Paint all the
multiplied horrors of famine, fire, and carnage!--paint miserable
starving wretches screaming wildly for food, and, in the agonies of
despair gnawing the flesh from their own withering bones!--Paint flames
surrounding with their pointed arms an helpless family crying in bitter
anguish for the aid that cannot be afforded them!--paint witches
celebrating their detested sabaoth! Imagine demons indulging in their
infernal revels! Yes, paint and picture to yourself all these, and ten
thousand other horrors, each more frightful than the last;--dwell upon
them--let them haunt your imaginations; but whatever you may fancy,
picture, or paint, nothing can ever equal the horror you will feel when
you learn the crime of which the prisoner at the bar stands accused.
Know then--my tongue falters as I speak, and my quivering lips almost
refuse to give utterance to the appalling sounds--know that he has
dared, impiously and presumptuously dared, to fall in love with the
Queen!

"I see your indignation at such baseness--I feel the virtuous
shame that burns upon every cheek--yes, yes, my friends, I too am
an Englishman, and I, like you, spurn with disdain the thought of
submitting to a stranger. What do we want with a King? Has not the
country been happy, prosperous, flourishing--respected at home, and
honoured abroad, under the dominion of a Queen?--Yes, yes, my friends,
it has, and, under her gentle sway, the murderous weapon of war has
been converted into a ploughshare; the nodding helmet and ponderous
corslet into the peaceful wig and graceful gown; and the grim aspect
of frowning ruin and grinning desolation into the gentle smiles of
benignant peace and overwhelming plenty. Long, long may gentle peace
continue to shed her benignant smiles upon us.--Long, long may we sit
beneath the grateful shade of her olive branches; and long, long may
their feathery foliage hang in graceful festoons above our heads, and
their pale green wreaths encircle our brows; for in the arms of peace
lie joy, ease, and happiness--her smile gives health and contentment,
and her blessing wealth.

"And what threatens to affright this bewitching deity from our shores?
'Tis this audacious stranger, who deserves the bitterest punishment for
his unparalleled atrocity. But this is not all;--not satisfied with
endeavouring to destroy the happiness of the Queendom, and overturn
the laws enacted by the wisdom of our ancestors, he has done more:
yes, intolerable as his crimes have been, there is still one more
deadly behind. Shudder, my friends, and turn away your eyes as the
fear-inspiring words drop from my tongue.--He has dared to draw arms
within the precincts of the reginal palace.

"Insufferable audacity! Hear this, ye shades of former royalty, and
tremble in your Elysian groves, at the profane hand that has dared thus
to invade your august privileges. Can it be believed? Will after-ages
credit the report? Oh no, no! the fact will appear too monstrous for
even credulity itself to swallow!

"When the crime, the fatal crime was committed, earth trembled beneath
his feet: the winds hushed their murmurs, and all nature stood aghast.
The frightened ocean receded from its rocky bed. Pluto rushed shivering
from his nether throne, and Neptune waved in vain his tranquillizing
trident. The elements were convulsed; lightning streamed from the
swords of the combatants, and thunder rolled above their heads as they
stood like two heroes of Arabian fiction wielding the elements in their
wrath!

"But I have done, my lord and gentlemen. I say no more; for I scorn
to prejudice your minds against the prisoner, or make the slightest
appeal to your feelings to condemn him. However, this I must say, that
if ever a case could rouse every nerve of a true-born Englishman
against it, it is this. Does any man dread to be torn from the calm
delights of his comfortable fireside, where he was surrounded by his
adoring wife and attentive children, and doomed to incur all the
wretchedness of misery and want?--let him condemn the prisoner. Does
any man dread being dragged across burning sands, or forced to wade
up to the knees in water through marshy deserts?--let him condemn the
prisoner. Would any man shudder to be obliged to sleep upon the hard
cold ground, his limbs racked with rheumatism, and his body exposed
to all the vicissitudes of hunger, thirst, and inclement seasons,
whilst his life is endangered every instant?--let him condemn the
prisoner;--but if he prefer these horrors to the comforts of a warm
down bed, or if he enjoy the prospect of having his substance devoured
by tax gatherers, to support the expenses of a foreign war, then let
the prisoner be acquitted. But--unless--he--can--make--up--his--mind
to--undergo--privations--like--these--let--him--aid--by--his--vote--to
condemn--the--wretch--who--"

And here the orator stopt abruptly, being quite gone down. He had
indeed uttered the last words gradually slower and slower, and at
lengthened intervals, because the attendant clerk had unfortunately
given him a turn too little, and had not screwed him up quite
tight enough. The witnesses were now called. Several spoke to the
circumstance of the extravagant admiration expressed by the prince of
Elvira's singing; others deposed to the fact of the combat, and others
mentioned the Queen's sighing and abstraction; but the principal one
distinctly stated, that he had heard the prince make the Queen an offer
of his hand in the gardens of the Somerset House, and that she had
consented to marry him if she could obtain the consent of her people. A
general thrill of indignation ran through the Court at this evidence,
and it was with difficulty that silence was obtained for the pleading
of the defendant. At last all was still, and the attendant clerk began
to wind up the counsel for the prince. Lord Maysworth watched the
moment; but being afraid to trust his beloved brief into any hands but
his own, unfortunately in his agitation, he popt it into the wrong
hole, and when the counsel began to speak, he burst forth in French!
Words are wanting to express Lord Maysworth's unutterable consternation
at this unfortunate accident.

"Stop! stop!" cried he, "Hush! hush! Can nobody stop him?" but the
inexorable counsel would not stop:--for once wound up, and properly set
in motion, not all the powers of Heaven and earth combined could stop
him till he had fairly run down.

"What shall I do?" cried Lord Maysworth, in an agony of despair; "for,
if the judge and jury don't understand French, my fine oration will be
utterly lost."

"Oh, if that be all," said the clerk, "your lordship need not distress
yourself, for as soon as I found what was going on, I ran up to the
judge and pulled out his lordship's French stop!"

"And the gentlemen of the jury?"

"O, they all understand French."

"It is well," said Lord Maysworth, "though I am still sorry the hole
happened to be French, as I am afraid the verbosity of the language may
deteriorate the strength of my expressions."

Thus muttered the noble lord, not sorry, however, I believe, if the
whole truth were to be openly declared, that he had an excuse in the
change of languages for the failure of his speech, if it should not
happen to meet with that brilliant success that he felt so perfectly
confident it deserved.

The counsel, in the mean time, went on. The following is a translation
of his speech:--

"My lord, and gentlemen of the jury.

"It is with feelings of considerable diffidence and hesitation, that I
rise to address you, after the flood of eloquence that has poured from
my learned brother. I, gentlemen, am not gifted with such an enviable
facility of speech; nor is my imagination endowed with that creative
power he has so forcibly displayed. I cannot, gentlemen, like him

    Uprear the club of Hercules--For what?
    To crush a butterfly, or brain a gnat.

Nor have I the least intention of drawing either Neptune or Pluto from
the quiet nap they have been taking for so many centuries--to assist in
our debate. I assure you, also, gentlemen, that I shall neither disturb
the ocean from its rocky bed, nor make Nature stand aghast.--No, my
lord and gentlemen, my intentions are perfectly pacific, and your
harassed imaginations may repose tranquilly upon my speech, after the
tumultuous one of my learned brother, as the way-worn traveller rests
peaceably upon the soft green turf, after having been tossed about upon
the heaving billows of the tempestuous ocean.

    'Tis sweet to rest from dread of danger free,
    And mark the billows of the foaming sea;
    'Tis sweet, a little skiff to safely urge
    Through the tempestuous ocean's boiling surge;
    To hear the pattering rains against the roof,
    And feel your hospitable mansion proof.
    But sweeter far the troubled mind's repose
    When of a speech like this, it hears the close.

When I listened to the powerful exordium of my learned friend--and
I did listen to him with the most profound attention--I confess my
imagination was too highly excited to be satisfied with so lame and
impotent a conclusion.--'What!' cried I, 'have the laws of nature been
reversed--have demons been disturbed in their infernal revels, and
witches called from their dusky caverns, merely because a beautiful
woman has excited a tender passion in the breast of a youthful
stranger? Is this so extraordinary an occurrence that it should create
such excessive wonder? Are our hearts so dead to beauty that such a
catastrophe should occasion surprise? Forbid it, Heaven! No! whilst our
hearts still throb in our bosoms, may they ever beat responsive to the
attractions of the fair! May we never become insensible to the charms
of the loveliest objects of creation! May we ever own their witchery,
and bend beneath their magic sway! Or man, degraded man! would soon
sink below the level of the brutes. View man as he degenerates when
secluded from the influence of female society;--is he not rough,
brutal, and unpolished? Does he not want all those winning graces and
those delicate attentions that form so undeniably the charm and solace
of life? In proportion as our sensibility, as our goodness, and all
the best feelings of our nature are awakened, we become susceptible of
love. It is indeed, excessive sensibility, and a kindly feeling to our
fellow-creatures, that creates it. Does there exist a generous or noble
mind that has not felt this passion? No, not one! there is, indeed,
something generous and ennobling in it. We cannot prefer the welfare of
another to our own, nor be completely absorbed in another's being, with
the devotedness of true love, without becoming purified in our ideas,
and raised from that disgusting selfishness which is ever the inspirer
of base and mean actions.

    Yes, love indeed is light from Heaven,
      A spark of that immortal fire,
    With angels shared, by Alla given,
      To lift from earth our low desire.
    Devotion wafts the mind above,
    But Heaven itself descends in love.

And from this heavenly, this inspiring feeling, shall my unfortunate
client be debarred? Hear me, ye shades of heroic lovers, who, though
dying for the hopeless object of your passion, have still exclaimed,
with the enthusiastic devotion of a modern poet--

    Lead on, lead on, though horrors wait
    In awful fury round thy gate!
    And danger, death, and grim despair,
    Forbid my hopeless passage there!
    If love, still smiling, beckon on,
    The path is passed, the gate is won!

And ye poets and philosophers, who have painted love as the oasis of
the Desert, the green spot in memory's waste, where affection still
lingers even when hope decays; have you no compassion for my unhappy
client, whose only fault was 'that she was beautiful, and he not
blind?' And is this an offence for which a man deserves to be burnt
alive? Forbid it, humanity! forbid it, mercy! No, no! such inhuman
cruelty exists not in the breasts of Englishmen. I know, I feel that
you must acquit my client on this head. But this is not the only charge
brought against him; he is accused of having violated the sanctity of
a royal palace, by drawing his sword within its precincts. To describe
the enormity of this crime, my learned friend has brought forward
such an overwhelming torrent of eloquence, that unhappily his meaning
was swept away in the current of his words. At least I suppose so,
as, with all my industry, I have been totally unable to find it. As,
however, I cannot imagine my learned friend could have harangued so
long without having some meaning in what he said, I suppose it has
slipped undiscovered into some sly corner, where it lies, poor thing!
quite concealed, and almost crushed to death by the ponderous weight of
metaphors heaped upon it. Gentlemen, my client drew his sword in the
Royal Garden. This is the plain statement of the fact, when stripped
of the load of ornaments with which my learned friend has encumbered
it. My client, a stranger to the English laws and customs, chanced to
be walking in the public garden belonging to a Royal palace. He there
met a noblemen of the court; from causes irrelevant to the question
before us, high words took place between them. My client was grossly
insulted in a manner impossible to be borne by a man calling himself a
gentleman, or making the least pretensions to honour. He drew his sword
to defend himself. Can any thing be more simple? And yet for this,
all created nature is thrown into confusion, and Neptune and Pluto
called shivering from their beds. Gentlemen, my learned friend's brain
was teeming with a monstrous conception, and longing to be delivered;
he dragged it into the speech with which we have just been favoured.
Not satisfied with piercing us through with the fangs of a mental
arrow; plunging us into all the disasters of war, and distracting our
imaginations by exhibiting the combined effects of plague, pestilence,
and famine--he has entangled, in his snares, these unfortunate deities,
whom he has forced to upper earth to bear witness on his behalf, I am
afraid, very much against their wills. Nothing, indeed, can be more
distressing than to see an unfortunate thought thus hunted through
the meandering of a sentence; a crowd of unmeaning words, like a pack
of hungry dogs pressing close at its back, till at last worn out and
completely exhausted, it sinks feebly away, and gives up the ghost so
quietly, that no one can reasonably imagine what can possibly have
become of it.

"Thus it was with the argument of my learned friend, it has vanished
amidst the bustle he created around it. One thing more, my Lord and
Gentlemen, and I have done; for I shall not, like my learned friend,
after disclaiming all intentions of appealing to your feelings,
endeavour by an artful peroration to come home to your inmost souls. It
is simply this, that my client is a stranger, the son of a powerful
foreign monarch, and, of course, as he has never taken any oath of
allegiance to the English government, he is not amenable to the English
laws. After stating this fact, I sit down, confidently assured that
your verdict will be in my favour, and that, by it, you will again
vindicate that proud right you have so long and gloriously maintained
of acting always as enlightened and free-born Englishmen."

As the orator sat down, a tumult of applause rang through the hall,
and the delight of Lord Maysworth can be only justly appreciated by
an author who recollects what he felt when he first heard of the
success of a favourite work. But he had little time for exultation, as
the Judge, having been wound up in his turn, now began to sum up the
evidence. Slowly and heavily did he go on, the machinery that composed
him wanting oil, and creaking ominously as it moved, whilst, ere he had
half finished, a cry was heard through the outer court, and instantly a
rush of people announced the arrival of the Queen.

After the exertions made by Elvira the previous day, her fever
returned, and she lay insensible to every thing that passed till she
was restored to recollection by the tolling of a deep-toned bell,
which was always set in motion the moment a prisoner was put upon
his defence. She heard the solemn sound distinctly; the court where
state criminals were tried, adjoined the palace, in order that the
Queen might have an opportunity of hearing appeals, or deciding on any
difficult case that might arise; though as offences against the state
had been very rare in the female dynasty, (whether from the goodness of
the people or the severity of the punishment, I leave it for my readers
to determine,) the privilege had been seldom called in action, and the
bell now grated harshly as it tolled. Elvira, however, had heard of the
custom, and its cause flashed instantly upon her mind, as she started
from her bed, and listened to the solemn sound as it fell slowly and
heavily upon her ear, every knell seeming to strike upon the naked
nerve.

"Emma!" cried she, "let me go--quick, let me save him, or I shall be
too late." Emma obeyed; but whilst she was attiring her mistress every
moment seemed an age, and Elvira listened to the heavy tolling bell
till the sense of hearing became agony; and, unable to endure any more,
she pressed her hands firmly against her ears to shut out the dreaded
sound. At length she was ready, and hurrying to the court, arrived just
at the critical moment I have mentioned.

"Stop!" cried she, "I command you to stop proceedings. The prisoner is
free. My people have given me a right to pardon all offences, and I
thus first exercise it. Set him free!"

The guards obeyed; and it not being possible to stop the automaton
judge till he had run down, he was carried out of court, repeating,
(for it happened he was summing up the evidence at that moment,) "And
the Queen said she loved him, and would sacrifice even her life for his
sake."

"You are free, Sir," said Elvira to the prince. "I only blush that
a stranger should have been so inhospitably treated in my court. My
illness, however, must plead my excuse; and I can only now show my
sorrow by releasing you from the parole of honour you have given. You
are absolutely free, prince, not only from these chains, but also to
leave the kingdom whenever you shall think fit."

The prince, in a transport of gratitude, knelt and kissed her hand; and
then retired with his friends to the house of Lord Maysworth; whilst
Elvira, satisfied with herself, and hoping she had disarmed scandal by
desiring the prince to quit the kingdom, returned to her palace more
happy than she had before felt since the fatal combat in the garden.



CHAPTER XXIX.


The effect produced by the scene just described upon the minds of the
multitude was magical. It seemed a confirmation "strong as proofs of
holy writ" of all that had been urged against the Queen, and alienated
from her side even those who had remained neutral.

"I really could not have believed it possible," said the Duke of Essex,
as he retired slowly from the court.

"Thinking as I think, and as I am confident every one else must think,"
said Lord Gustavus, "she seems to have lost all sense even of common
decency."

"What do you say to this, Sir Ambrose?" asked Dr. Hardman triumphantly.

"Nothing," replied Sir Ambrose, sighing.

"Then the case is hopeless," said the Duke of Essex; "for I know Sir
Ambrose so well, that I am certain if a single word could be said in
the Queen's behalf, he would not remain silent."

"Your grace judges me too favourably," returned Sir Ambrose; "for there
is, on the contrary, much to be said for the Queen, if I had been
disposed to say it. You see the story of her wishing to marry Ferdinand
was evidently false, for she desired him in plain terms to quit the
kingdom."

"A mere blind," cried Lord Gustavus, who felt he had now gone too far
to recede; "an absolute farce; and I am only astonished a man of your
penetration, Sir Ambrose, could have been deceived by it."

"It has long been the proudest boast of the English law," said Sir
Ambrose, "that every one is presumed innocent till he be proved guilty;
and I confess I do not see why the Queen should alone be made an
exception to the rule."

Lord Gustavus made no reply, and the party proceeded to their several
homes. The following day was appointed for the trial of Lord Edmund,
and the court was, if possible, yet more crowded than before; for the
singular termination of Prince Ferdinand's trial had created the most
intense anxiety upon the part of the mob to know what would be the
result of that of Lord Edmund. It has been already stated that he was
the idol of the people, and now thousands of human voices shouted his
praises to the sky, and heaped curses and execrations upon his enemies.

The tumult, however, was hushed to breathless expectation when it
was announced that the officers of justice were gone in search of
the prisoner; and innumerable human beings stood craning their necks
over the lane made for his approach through the crowd, all eager to
catch the first glimpse of him. But what language can express their
disappointment and surprise when they saw the officers return, pale
and trembling, fear painted upon their countenances, and their teeth
chattering in their heads!

"He is gone," they cried: "the prison door was locked, and the windows
fast, but he is gone; and doubtless some evil spirit has carried him
off."

Great was the consternation excited by this unexpected news; every
one rushed to the prison, and each in turn was struck with horror on
finding it exactly in the state the officers had described.--"It is
the Mummy that has done this," said the people, whispering amongst
themselves: "some horrible event certainly hangs over us; and it is in
vain to attempt to resist our destiny! All is supernatural, and we are
merely blind instruments in the hands of Fate."

The disappearance of Lord Edmund had, however, nothing supernatural
in it; and, indeed was effected by very simple means, and mere mortal
agents. The agitation of his mind after his interview with Cheops
became excessive, and every hour seemed stretched to an unnatural
length as he anxiously awaited Father Morris's return; but the monk
came not. Lord Edmund's impatience increased every instant, till it
became absolute agony; yet still he was alone. He paced his chamber
with uncertain steps--his brain burning with incipient madness, till,
no longer knowing what he did, he dashed his head against the walls,
and tore off his hair by handfuls. In this state the gaoler found him;
and reporting his condition, his trial, which was to have taken place
previously to that of Ferdinand, was postponed a few days to allow time
for his recovery.

Bleeding and blistering reduced Lord Edmund's fever; but his soul was
still on fire. In the paroxysms of his disorder, no less than in his
lucid intervals, one sole idea seemed to have taken possession of his
fancy; and he inquired incessantly if Father Morris were returned? No,
no, was the continual answer to his queries; till the heart of the poor
prisoner sickened within him at the sound. At length, he appeared well
enough to take his trial, and the day was fixed, as we have already
stated. The mind of Edmund now seemed tolerably composed; but it was
the stillness of apathy, rather than that of resignation; and on the
night preceding the day fixed for his trial, some of his former anxious
and tormenting fantasies returned.

"I will shake off this weakness," said he; "I will read;" and, drawing
his chair near the fire, he took up a book: it was in vain, however;
for though he read over the same page repeatedly, he could not compose
his mind sufficiently to comprehend its meaning. He threw his book
aside, and, fixing his eyes upon the fire, was soon lost in gloomy
meditations: when a slight noise attracted his attention; and, looking
round, he saw a panel in the wall slowly detach itself, and Father
Morris appear in the aperture, followed by another figure, closely
wrapped in a large black cloak.

"Father Morris!" cried Edmund; "is it indeed Father Morris; or some
kind spirit that has assumed his shape?"

"It is indeed I, my son!" returned the priest; "and I come to rescue
and console you."

"Methinks you come somewhat late, father," said Edmund, rather coldly;
"for I have suffered much since I saw you!"

"Others have suffered also," resumed the monk, "and for your sake!
Notwithstanding you have fancied yourself neglected and forgotten by
all the world, there is one human being who has never ceased to watch
over you; who thinks only of you; who makes your happiness her only
care; and who would sacrifice her life to preserve yours!"

Edmund's heart beat, and his cheeks glowed as he exclaimed, "And this
kind friend is?"

"Now before you!" interrupted the monk; tearing aside the cloak that
shrouded his companion, and discovering Rosabella!

"Rosabella!" exclaimed Edmund; a slight shade of disappointment passing
over his features.

"Oh Edmund!" cried Rosabella, throwing herself at his feet, "can you
forget that I have overstepped the bounds prescribed to my sex: will
you not hate me?"

"I do not blame you. I were unworthy of the name of man if I could. But
father, what says Elvira? Have you delivered the chain?"

"She refuses either to see or hear from you."

"Cruel woman! But perhaps she dreads to see me?"

"I know not; but she treated your petition with contempt. 'Tell him,'
said she, 'it is not possible he can have aught to say that can
interest me. I will not hear his suit.'"

"Proud, haughty princess! But was this all?"

"No: I again entreated her to see you, when she turned from me in
scorn, and bade me leave her. 'Talk not to me of Edmund,' cried she,
with a look of ineffable contempt. 'Has he not wounded Ferdinand, and
would you have me forgive him?--a thousand deaths are not sufficient to
punish such a crime!'"

"What strange infatuation!"

"Strange, indeed--for she has interrupted his trial and set him free;
besides which, they say she has actually offered her hand and he
has refused it; yet still she dotes upon him to distraction. 'Go,'
continued she, when I had finished all I had to say, 'and tell Edmund,
that I neither hate nor despise him; for he is incapable of exciting
any emotion in my breast; however, if he wishes to make amends for his
past conduct, and be restored to my favour, his first step must be,
humbly to beg pardon of the prince.'"

"Damnation!" cried Edmund, starting up fiercely: "she did not, surely
she could not, say that?"

"Indeed she did, my lord."

"Then may ten thousand curses light upon me if I forgive her! Pardon
of that wretch! my slave! my prisoner! no, sooner would I expire in
horrid torments--sooner be torn asunder by wild beasts.--Pardon of that
boy!--oh! she could not mean it."

Whilst Edmund thus raved, Father Morris and Rosabella watched his
torments with much of the same coolness, as a French philosopher would
those of an unfortunate animal upon which he was trying experiments. No
feeling of compassion entered their souls, and they only waited to see
the effect their words would produce. It may easily be perceived that
the whole scene which Father Morris related as having passed between
him and Elvira, was a fabrication; but Lord Edmund saw not this, for
jealousy often throws a veil over the eyes of its victims, which
gives a delusive colouring to every thing they see. Thus, Lord Edmund
believed every word the father uttered, and his whole frame trembled
with agitation as he paced the room with hasty strides. At last,
he threw himself upon a chair--"Beg his pardon!" exclaimed he: "Oh
Elvira! Elvira!" and he hid his face in his hands, whilst the big tears
trickled through his fingers, and Lord Edmund, the stern, courageous
soldier, the philosopher, the hero, and the statesman, wept, actually
wept, like a feeble child.

"Oh Edmund!" exclaimed Rosabella, approaching him, and taking his
hand--"I cannot bear to see you in distress. Would to Heaven that by
the sacrifice even of my life I could relieve you!"

"Rosabella, you will drive me to distraction."

"Not for worlds, Edmund; on the contrary, were I mistress of worlds, I
would cast them at your feet."

"I know it--I know it; but spare me now."

"Spare you, Edmund! Spare what? spare my reproaches, mean you? Alas!
you need not fear them. Am I not devoted to you? Is it not for your
sake that I have thus passed the boundaries of my sex? Are you
disgusted with my boldness? But no: you will surely forgive me, for
my only motive has been to save you, and my only hope of happiness is
bound up in yours."

"Rosabella!" repeated Edmund, "I believe that you love me."

"Love you! Oh heavens! can you doubt my love?"

"I do not doubt it, and this last action proves it more than words. I
have long done you injustice; can you forgive me, Rosabella?"

"Oh Edmund!" exclaimed the princess, whilst her full heart heaved
almost to bursting and the tears streamed down her face.

"I have been the victim of infatuation," continued Edmund; "I have
loved a false, ungrateful woman, who has betrayed me. But I see
my folly; and if tears of penitence shed at your feet can earn my
pardon--if you will accept a broken, bleeding heart--"

"Oh Edmund!" interrupted Rosabella, throwing herself into his arms,
"say no more--I am yours--yours for ever--your devoted slave--"

"Not my slave, Rosabella," said Edmund, gently disengaging her from
him, and placing her upon a chair, "but my wife, my beloved wife."

"Your wife!" exclaimed Rosabella, "Edmund's wife! am I indeed so blest?
Oh no! surely it is a dream, a fond delusive dream! You cannot surely
be serious."

"Is this a moment for jest?" asked Edmund calmly.

"It certainly is not," said Father Morris, whose agitation had been
nearly equal to their own, and who had stood gazing upon them with
looks of the fondest affection. "We must immediately escape, or it will
be too late; it wants but two hours of daybreak, and, with the dawn,
Lord Edmund's trial will commence."

"True, true!" cried Rosabella, "I had forgotten. Dearest Edmund, you
must condescend to fly, or your precious life will be sacrificed."

"But how shall I escape?"

"Through this panel. A balloon waits at a little distance, and this
cloak will conceal your person from observation."

"Dear Rosabella!"

"Come, come," cried Father Morris, "we have no time to lose. Though
Ferdinand was acquitted you must fall, for the state requires a victim."

Lord Edmund waited for no more; the name of Ferdinand was torture to
him; and, hastily disencumbering himself of his chains, he followed the
father and Rosabella from the prison. He sighed, however, and looked
back for a moment with regret ere he quitted the outer walls, for he
thought of Elvira. Rosabella's quick ear caught the sigh and her subtle
spirit divined its meaning; but this was not a moment to complain, and
stepping into their balloon they were soon out of sight of London. They
proceeded to a palace of Rosabella's, a few miles out of town, and
there, the following day, Edmund became her husband.

In the mean time, the excessive agitation Elvira experienced on the
day of Prince Ferdinand's trial brought on a return of her fever, and
it was several weeks ere she was sufficiently recovered to leave her
bed. When she did so, however, she was really shocked at the state in
which she found her kingdom. When she first began to reign, carried
away by the enthusiasm of the moment, she had taken too much of the
executive part of the government upon herself; and as her illness had
been too sudden to allow her to appoint a regency, no one knew who
ought to supply her place. All therefore was confusion and disorder,
and Elvira shrunk disgusted from the chaos before her. She had now no
Edmund to smooth the way for her, and the native energy of her mind
was gone. Pale, heart-broken, and dispirited, she felt languid and
incapable of the slightest exertion. What had formerly been a pleasure,
was now become an overwhelming burthen, and the weight of life seemed
insupportable.

She was now weary also of the fatigue necessary to carry on the plans
she had projected for the benefit of her people. At first, when all
seemed new and delightful, she had devoted herself entirely to their
interests: she had denied herself even the most trifling pleasures,
and scarcely allowed herself the time absolutely necessary for food
and rest. This was all very well, whilst her plans had the charm of
novelty, and were supported by passion. But now that novelty had worn
off, and they had assumed the dull wearisome appearance of duties--when
repeated disappointments had extinguished almost the hope of success,
and when she found her people expected, nay, demanded as a right, that
which she had originally granted them only as an especial mark of
favour, she discovered, though too late, the folly of the toil she had
imposed upon herself.

She now also discovered that improvement to be effectual must be
slow: that people don't like to be forced out of old habits, till
they have seen the effect of new ones proved by experience, and that
nothing is so difficult as to improve people against their wills.
Increase the resources of a country, throw money into the hands of the
middling and lower classes, and they will improve themselves; but, at
least, nine-tenths of a population will never suffer themselves to be
improved. Those only who have attempted this thankless and painful
office can fully estimate the sufferings of the unfortunate Elvira,
who, disappointed in all she undertook, found life become tasteless and
insipid, and was completely wretched,--though surrounded by all the
gifts of beauty, power, and fortune.

Every thing seemed to conspire to increase her misery. Those whom she
raised from indigence to affluence treated her with the most provoking
insolence and discontent. A plan which had been opposed by the lords
Gustavus de Montfort and Maysworth, and which she had persisted in
having tried, had completely failed, and the noble Lords had triumphed
in the most provoking manner in her disappointment. In short, every
thing went wrong; and Elvira, disgusted with the world, felt mortified
and disgusted with herself.

"How hard it is," thought she, frequently, as she tossed upon her
sleepless couch, "that I who, since my accession to the throne, have
devoted myself entirely to the interests of my subjects, should be thus
wretched; whilst tyrants, who live but to oppress, sleep quietly upon
their beds of down. Alas! why cannot I be as they are? Why cannot I
divest myself of reflection, and enjoy the pleasures that surround me?
But what pleasures can I enjoy? alas! the world presents nothing that
can interest me; an insipid vacuum spreads through creation; my heart
is cold and desolate; my affections are thrown back upon myself, and I
am miserable."

Thus raved Elvira, and, absorbed in painful meditations, she neglected
the duties of her station, and resigned herself to despair, whilst
the people, attributing her evident wretchedness to her grief for the
absence of Prince Ferdinand, who had left London immediately after his
trial, and had not since been heard of, became every hour more and more
discontented with their Queen.

In the mean time, the marriage of Lord Edmund, though not openly
avowed, was generally suspected; and the party of Rosabella gained
strength every day, whilst mysterious rumours were whispered from mouth
to mouth, and divers hints given that many knew more than they chose to
say; though from the immense number of these mystery-mongers it seemed,
as in the celebrated scene in the Barber of Seville, that every one
was in the secret, though nobody was to divulge it. The listlessness
of Elvira soon produced the most serious effects. A kingdom without
a government, or rather a government without a chief, cannot long go
on well. It is like a ship at sea without a pilot, and it must founder
upon the first rock that impedes its course.

When the vigour of government is from any cause relaxed, there are
always plenty of persons ready to take advantage of the opportunity
afforded them to commit evil with impunity; and crimes of every
description multiplied so fast under the negligent sway of Elvira, that
the people became clamorous in their complaints. But to whom could
they address themselves? The Queen was rarely visible--Lord Edmund
was gone, and the lords of the council were too busy _talking_ about
the interests of the people to think of _really attending_ to them;
whilst the duke and Sir Ambrose seemed too old to be likely to trouble
themselves by intermeddling with an affair of state. To them, however,
the people looked as a dernier resort; and as it seemed indelicate
to apply to the duke when the person they complained of was his own
daughter, they entreated Sir Ambrose to present a petition to the
Queen in their behalf.

The worthy baronet acceded to their request, and though almost bent to
the earth by age and misery, prepared once more to appear at court.
The loss of his beloved Edmund had affected the old man deeply: he
considered his flight before trial as a confession of guilt, and the
thought of disgrace weighed down his grey hairs with sorrow to the
grave. The distress of the people, however, roused him from the apathy
into which he was fast falling; and when he waited upon the Queen, it
was with all the energy of his former years.

The Queen received him sullenly. "I cannot help it Sir Ambrose," said
she; "I am sorry for my people, but I cannot do any thing to relieve
them. I feel that I am fast sinking into the tomb; do not then disturb
my last moments by fruitless solicitations."

"Last moments!" cried Sir Ambrose, indignantly; "rally your energies,
and you may live half a century. You give way to a morbid sensibility
that oppresses you; and, because some of your hopes have been
disappointed, you shrink from the duties that you have imposed upon
yourself, and talk of your last moments. Shame! shame! Elvira! rouse
yourself from this lethargy, and be indeed a Queen. Remember, that
though Nature has ordinarily denied your sex the power of triumphing
in the field, she has yet left a far greater conquest for you to
achieve--the conquest of yourself; for it is far more glorious to
subdue the wayward desires of the human heart, than to lead scores of
monarchs captives in your chains. Struggle then with your feelings:
conquer those fatal passions that threaten to destroy you; show
yourself worthy of your crown, and be again the Elvira for whom even in
her childhood, I anticipated greatness."

"It is too late," interrupted the Queen impatiently--"it is now too
late. Urge me no more, Sir Ambrose, or you will drive me to despair."

Sir Ambrose was provoked at her obstinacy, and a pause ensued, which
was broken by a tumultuous noise and shouting. It was the people at
the gates of the palace, who, impatient at the length of Sir Ambrose's
stay, were now becoming clamorous for an answer.

"What shall I say to them?" asked the baronet.

"Tell them I deny their suit!" replied the Queen. "Away, away, away! I
would be quiet; go without reply; I will hear no more; I will not be
tormented:" and waving her hand for him to depart, she hurried to her
chamber. Finding there was no alternative, Sir Ambrose was compelled
to appear before the people and acquaint them with the will of their
Sovereign. The tumult became more violent as he spoke. An English mob
is proverbially impetuous; and now their rage rose beyond control.
"The Queen! the Queen!" they shouted; "we will see the Queen!" The
crowd increased every moment--the multitude heaved in tremendous waves
like the rolling billows of the sea, and the hum of thousands of human
voices filled the air. They threatened to storm the palace. A man in
complete armour, his face entirely concealed by his vizor, headed
their attempts; the outer gates were forced, and the throng rushed
tumultuously into the court of the palace.

All there was confusion: soldiers might have been summoned, and the
place defended; but there was no one to give orders; and the servants
ran to and fro in the greatest possible distress, without knowing
either where they were going, or what they intended doing. In the
midst of this bustle, Elvira sate burying her face in her hands, and
obstinately refusing to take the slightest interest in the scene.
The door opened violently, and Sir Ambrose and some of her principal
servants rushed in. "For God's sake, save yourself!" cried they. "If
your Majesty were safe, we care not for ourselves."

"Fly!" cried Sir Ambrose, throwing himself upon his knees before
her, his white hair streaming almost to the ground; "for God's sake,
fly!" It was too late, however, then, had the Queen been disposed to
obey him; for, as he spoke, the outer door burst open with tremendous
violence; the palace seemed to shake to its foundation with the shock;
and in an instant the chamber was filled by the infuriated populace.

"Seize the Queen, but do not injure her!" cried a voice that thrilled
through every nerve of Sir Ambrose. "Spare the old man; do not hurt
a hair of his head." Sir Ambrose looked up; the voice came from the
man in armour; but it was the voice of Edmund. A crowd of overwhelming
thoughts rushed through his mind, and, overpowered by their weight, he
sank senseless upon the ground. "Take him away!" cried Edmund; (for it
was indeed he;) "take him away! but see that ye hurt him not: he dies
that injures him."

"Edmund!" cried Elvira, struck also by his voice--

"To prison with her!" exclaimed he.

"To prison, Edmund! do you doom your Queen to prison? Is it thus you
treat your Sovereign?"

"I own no Sovereign here but Rosabella."

"But, by what right can she be called your Sovereign?"

"By that which made you Queen. The people's voice. It lies with them to
crown or to dethrone!"

"Oh Edmund! mercy!"

"Away with her! I'll hear no more."

The guards seized upon the unfortunate Queen, and, in spite of her
entreaties, hurried her away. Edmund did not trust himself to look at
her. For a moment he hid his face in his hands; then rousing himself,
he exclaimed, "Now to proclaim the Queen!" The people followed him
with shouts of applause, and before evening Edmund and Rosabella were
unanimously acknowledged as King and Queen of England.



CHAPTER XXX.


Notwithstanding the able manner in which the revolution had been
effected, England was still in a state of tumult. Though the army had
been seduced by the example of Edmund, and the people had been obliged
to submit, they were by no means perfectly satisfied with their new
government; and Rosabella found, too late, that though the throne
might be compared to a bed of roses, it was not without its thorns.
The discontented nobles who had aided her cause were also extremely
displeased by what they called the trifling value of the rewards
bestowed upon them; though, in fact, they rated their services so
high, that Rosabella found her whole kingdom did not possess the power
of repaying them to their satisfaction. It was also a considerable
grievance of these haughty nobles, to see Prince Ferdinand return to
the English Court immediately after the dethronement of Elvira, and
be received with open arms by Rosabella, who, with the anxiety to
conciliate the friendship of foreign powers, usually displayed by those
whose thrones feel far from secure at home, loaded him with favours,
and even gave him a post of honour in the command of her own body-guard.

Whilst the unreasonableness of her people thus embittered Rosabella's
political life, her domestic happiness seemed to rest upon a yet more
unstable foundation. She knew that though she possessed Edmund's hand,
his heart was still devoted to Elvira; and jealousy made her view all
his actions in a distorted light. If he were sad, she was sure he was
thinking of her rival; and if gay, she fancied it a masque put on only
to deceive her. She was thus completely miserable, and Edmund was as
wretched as herself. He felt that he had sacrificed himself to revenge,
and sold his peace for a bauble, which, when obtained, did not seem
worth the trouble of possessing. His father too--Sir Ambrose, his
doating father, was now entirely estranged from him, as he repeatedly
declared he would never forgive a traitor, who could forget his oath of
allegiance for his own aggrandizement.

"No!" exclaimed the old man, "I loved, I doted upon Edmund; but the
Edmund I loved is vanished. My darling son was brave and noble, not a
deceptive scoundrel. No, no, my old heart may break--nay, I hope it
will--but never whilst I live shall a deceitful traitor be pressed
against this breast."

Edmund was inconsolable; he passionately loved his father, and could
not bear his anger; besides, he felt that the reproaches of the old man
were seconded by those of his own heart. It is painful at any time to
bear the censures of the world, but they fall with double weight when
we know that they are deserved. Edmund was dissatisfied with himself,
and, consequently, disposed to quarrel with the world. He fancied it
looked coldly upon him, and, in return, he affected to despise it.
A hundred times a day he repeated that he was perfectly indifferent
to every thing that was said of him; whilst his nervous anxiety to
peruse the newspapers, and make himself perfectly acquainted with every
popular rumour, proved that he was only too sensible to every word
that was uttered. Edmund had made the mob his idol, he could not live
without its applauses, and wretched indeed are those who thus depend on
others for their hopes of happiness.

Edmund's disgust at his new rank and situation was soon still farther
increased by a visit from Lord Gustavus, who, with several other
lords, was deputed to present to his Majesty the complaints of the
Commons. They wanted to be enfranchised, they desired innumerable
rights and privileges, and in fact they wanted to be all kings; for if
half that they demanded had been granted, Edmund must have made them
more powerful than himself. He pointed this out to Lord Gustavus, and
condescended to reason with him upon the folly of their desires.

"Impossible!" cried Lord Gustavus. "Your Majesty must excuse me but I
cannot listen to such arguments; I came here to defend the liberties
of the people. Reform is necessary--without reform, nothing can go on
well. Evils must be torn up root and branch."

"Are not my subjects healthy, wealthy, and prosperous?" asked Edmund.
"Have they not been successful at home and abroad? Do not the English
peasants live as well as most foreign princes, and what more can they
require?"

"Liberty, Sire," returned Lord Gustavus. "What are all these pretended
advantages without liberty? mere toys; gaudy apples, but rotten at
the core. Of what use, indeed, are all the blessings of life, without
liberty to give them zest, and radical reform to purge them of all
impurities?"

"But listen to reason."

"Reason! Thinking as I think, and as I am sure every rational being
must think, your Majesty must forgive me if I assert, that even Reason
herself does not deserve to be attended to, when she is basely enlisted
upon the side of Tyranny."

"Nay, then," said Edmund, "it is useless to attempt to argue with
you. I thought you had made Reason your goddess; but if you worship
her only as long as it suits your own purposes, I have done. You may
retire. I shall take the petition into consideration, and give it an
answer when I may think fit."

Edmund, who, from being degraded and debased in his own opinion, no
longer possessed that confidence in himself that carried conviction
with all he said, had yet sufficient dignity in his manner to awe those
to silence who dared to dispute his commands; and Lord Gustavus and
his colleagues, not presuming to make farther remonstrance, retired
in dudgeon. This incident contributed to sicken Edmund of reigning:
he became disgusted with his Queen, his court, his kingdom, and his
country, and, secluding himself as much as possible from public life,
left the care of managing the affairs of state to Rosabella and Father
Morris, who now throwing off the disguise he so long had worn, appeared
openly as the dispenser of her favours, and the arbiter of her actions.

The spirit of poor Sir Ambrose was quite broken by these misfortunes.
The defection of his son, and the ingratitude of his confessor, stung
him to the core. He retired again to the country, where with his
friend the duke, Clara, and Father Murphy, he contrived to exist,
though but the shadow of his former self. The duke was also grievously
changed, and it was melancholy to see these two poor old men wandering
about their splendid gardens and magnificent palaces like roaming
ghosts, permitted to revisit for a time the scenes of their departed
happiness. Clara now became the sole stay that bound these old men
to life. Her character had developed itself wonderfully in the midst
of the striking events she had witnessed. Firm, courageous, and
enterprising, though still gentle--the lively girl seemed changed into
the intelligent woman, whose active mind and comprehensive spirit
foresaw every thing and provided against every emergency. Clara was
still young; but her spirit was mature beyond her years, and her
attention to the duke and Sir Ambrose was unremitting.

"Well!" would they often say, "though we have lost much, we ought
still to be thankful that Clara is spared to us:" and then with tears
trickling down their aged cheeks, they would join in imploring Heaven
to shower down blessings upon her head. In the mean time, however,
Clara herself was far from happy. She would, it is true, exert herself
to appear cheerful, but it was evident it was an exertion; and often,
when the duke and Sir Ambrose had seated themselves at a party at
chess, she would steal out unobserved and retire to a little pavilion
in the garden, near what were formerly the apartments of Father Morris,
as being the most secluded spot she could find; this part of the
mansion having been carefully shut up and avoided by every human being,
since the departure of the priest, as infectious; the indignation the
worthy and attached servants of Sir Ambrose felt towards Father Morris
for his desertion of their master, being extended even to the rooms he
had occupied.

In this secluded spot Clara often sate for hours, lost in meditation,
her head resting upon her hand, and her eyes fixed in vacancy. Winter
had now given place to spring, and all nature seemed to revive with
that gay and joyous season. The heart of Clara, however, was still
lonely; she fancied it could enjoy no second summer; and she felt
almost disposed to quarrel with all around her for displaying a gaiety
in which she could not participate. Nothing makes a broken heart feel
more gloomy than to see all other objects look gay. It turns from them
in disgust, and feels its own misery doubled by the sight of their
happiness.

One evening as Clara was sitting absorbed in melancholy reflections,
she was startled by hearing a deep-drawn sigh heaved heavily behind
her. She turned, and fancied she could distinguish a figure in the
midst of the twilight but, magnified by the obscurity, the figure
seemed of gigantic proportions. Uttering a faint scream, she attempted
to fly--when a hand of iron grasped her arm, and arrested her progress.
An icy chill shot to her heart, whilst the well-remembered voice of
Cheops sounded in her ears.

"Clara," said he, in his deep sepulchral tone, "would you save your
Queen?"

"With the sacrifice of my life, if necessary," replied Clara firmly.

"Clara," continued the Mummy, "I have marked you attentively,--and
as I do not know any individual possessing more strength of mind
and personal courage than yourself, I have fixed upon you to be my
assistant in this enterprize. The life of Elvira is in danger; and even
my influence cannot much longer save her, if she remain in the power
of Father Morris. Besides, the lesson she has already had, has been
sufficiently severe. I will aid her to escape, and you must assist
me. You shall go to Ireland; and there, if the warlike Roderick be
not deaf to the cry of beauty in distress, through his aid Elvira may
hope redress,--at least, she must implore his help.--Rosabella is now
at a palace near this, and she has brought her rival in her train;
for, with the usual jealousy and suspicion of tyrants and usurpers,
she scarcely dares to trust her from her sight. Besides this, her
diabolical revenge is gratified in making Elvira wait humbly near her
throne, and serve in those palaces where she once commanded. Moved by
this ungenerous conduct, and the patience with which the unhappy Elvira
bears her sufferings, the nobles and people of the realm begin to pity
her: and when they are disgusted with the haughtiness and intolerance
of Rosabella, they sigh for the return of the gentle Elvira. Father
Morris perceives this, and determining to rid Rosabella of her rival,
the fair Elvira fades beneath his arts, like a flower withering on its
stem."

"She must be saved!" said Clara, with enthusiasm; "she _shall_ be
saved!--Point but out the means, and I am devoted to her service."

"You must assume these weeds, and follow me," said Cheops, pointing
to a bundle in a corner of the pavilion, which Clara had not before
noticed. "In half an hour I will return for you."

"And my sudden disappearance," rejoined Clara, "will it not excite
suspicion?"

"The river is deep and rapid," returned Cheops; "some of your clothes
left upon its banks--"

"I comprehend," cried Clara eagerly; "but the poor old duke, and Sir
Ambrose?"?

"Their anxiety and distress may be great, but cannot be lasting: the
feelings of age are blunt, and--"

"Oh, no!" exclaimed Clara, "you are deceived;--nay, I think that
age feels grief more acutely than youth. The mind has lost its
elasticity--hope is dead within it, and the old brood over their secret
sorrow till they destroy their--"

"By Osiris! thou art a most extraordinary girl," said Cheops; "the old
do brood over grief, but why say this to me? Do I not know it well--too
well?" continued he, looking at her earnestly. Clara turned pale,
and trembled--he saw her agitation; and, hastily averting his eyes,
continued in a calmer tone,--"Whatever the sufferings of the old men
may be for the moment, I suppose even you will allow the life of Elvira
more than counterbalances them;--and, by inflicting this temporary
pain, you will save them from the more lasting agony they would endure
from her death: for Father Morris is so subtle, that it would be
dangerous to give them the slightest hint of our intention, lest he
should worm it from them. Be ready then, Clara; resign thyself to my
instructions, and, above all, fear not."

Clara bent her head in token of assent, and Cheops disappeared. Upon
examining the clothes, Clara found them to be the dress of a Greek
peasant boy, numbers of whom at this period were rambling over England
singing wild romances to their harps or lutes, and telling fortunes
in a kind of doggerel rhyme. Exposure to the air tanned most of these
wandering minstrels brown, and Clara found a bottle of liquid in the
parcel to stain her face and hands. She bound up her flaxen ringlets,
and, covering her head with curls of a jetty blackness, she found the
metamorphosis so complete that she scarcely knew herself as she saw her
figure reflected in a large mirror behind her. It was now nearly dark,
but Cheops had left the necessary implements for striking a light, and
Clara made her toilette without the least difficulty.

Anxious were the moments, however, that passed after her task was
completed, till the arrival of Cheops; and when he did come, she saw he
was attired as herself. He grasped her arm, and without speaking led
her to the banks of the river. Clara shuddered as she found herself
alone in the power of this mysterious being, and saw the river roll
deep and dark beneath her feet. Cheops felt her shudder, and cried
with one of his horrid laughs, which sounded fearfully amidst the
stillness of the night, "What! do even _you_ fear me? Is there _no_
courage in this degenerate race? None? What do you fear? If you dread
to trust yourself in my power, or think yourself unequal to the task
you have undertaken, retire: there is yet time, and I wish no unwilling
agents. Poor child!" continued he, looking at her with feeling; "thou
dost not know me, but for worlds I would not harm thee!"

"I will go with you," said Clara resolutely; "I do not shrink. Let what
will await me, I will not recede: though unheard-of torments may attend
me, I will endure them."

"By the Holy Gods of my forefathers," cried Cheops, "she is a brave
girl! Yes, Clara, I will trust thee; and though we should encounter
horrors fearful as those which menace the initiati in the dread Isian
mysteries, I will not doubt thy courage. A determined spirit, Clara,
may subdue even Fate."

As he spoke, he threw the clothes she had brought for the purpose
carelessly upon the banks of the river; and then again seizing her
arm, he dragged her forward with such rapidity, that in an incredibly
short time they approached the palace of Rosabella. The mansion looked
the region of enchantment. Brilliantly illuminated, light streamed
from every window; and through the colonnade of the great hall, groups
of elegantly dressed people were seen gaily moving to and fro, some
dancing, and others listening to harmonious music.

Clara, though terrified and exhausted, felt still irresistibly impelled
to proceed, and, still guided by her strange companion, entered,
unobserved, the outer court of the palace.

"Prince Ferdinand of Germany commands the guard to-night," whispered
Cheops, in a low, unnatural voice "it is well, he shall go with us."

"But will he?" asked Clara tremblingly.

"Will he?" returned Cheops, with his peculiar sneer: "dost thou doubt
my power, girl?"

Clara and Cheops had now reached a place from whence, unobserved, they
could survey the whole of the splendid apartment before them. They
had, in fact, entered the hall, and placed themselves in a kind of
recess shaded by projecting pillars, from whence they could see every
part of the saloon. Clara was astonished to find herself so easily in
the presence of the Queen, for she knew not how they had attained their
present situation; and she would have spoken to ask Cheops, but he laid
his finger upon his lips: and whispering--"Hippocrates was the only
son of Isis and Osiris!"--she comprehended he meant that Wisdom and
Knowledge produced Silence, and she did not dare to breathe a syllable.

Rosabella sate upon a splendid dais, gorgeously attired; her black eyes
flashing with added brilliancy from the deep rouge upon her cheeks;
whilst her raven hair was adorned with diamonds, and a splendid tiara
of the same precious stones sparkled on her forehead; a robe of crimson
velvet, bordered with ermine, fell in graceful folds over her fine
figure; whilst her swanlike neck and snowy arms, exposed perhaps more
than delicacy might strictly warrant, were also loaded with costly
jewels. Around her, stood the ladies of her court, and amongst the
rest, Elvira, plainly attired in a robe of dark grey silk. No ornaments
shone amongst her golden tresses, and her naturally fair complexion
seemed faded to a sickly and unnatural whiteness.

The indignation of Clara could scarcely be restrained at this sight;
but Cheops laying his hand upon her arm, they stood suddenly before the
Queen.

"Ah! who are these?" cried Rosabella, starting. Cheops took no notice
of her surprise; but, tuning his lute, began to sing.

    "Loveliest Queen! oh deign to hear
    The humblest of thy suppliants' prayer;
    Blandly on a stranger smile,
    Who has sought thy happy Isle,
    To feast his eyes upon that face,
    Where majesty combines with grace."

"What means this mummery?" asked Rosabella; "how came these minstrels
here?"

"It is doubtless a device of the King," returned some of her ladies,
"to amuse your majesty."

Rosabella smiled; attentions were now so rare upon the part of Edmund
towards her, that she felt gratified that it should even be supposed
he wished to please her, and, addressing the minstrel more graciously,
asked what brought him to England. He sung his reply:

    "Full often in my native land
    I've struck my lute with bolder hand;
    But with the liberties of Greece,
    Her minstrel's harmony must cease.
    Since Iwan with a soldier's frown
    Hath seized and worn th' imperial crown,
    Those hearts which spurn despotic power
    Must wander from their native bower,
    And in far distant lands must try
    The meaner arts of palmistry.
    Give then your hand, fair lady! give,
    And let the wandering minstrel live:
    So shall he tell the varied fate
    That may that lovely form await.
    To other strains his voice is mute;
    Broken his heart, unstrung his lute!"

"What say you, ladies," said Rosabella, again smiling, "shall we hear
our destiny?"

The ladies, delighted at any thing that promised an interruption to
the general gloom which hung over Rosabella's court, gladly assented;
and, to Clara's infinite surprise, the Mummy addressed a few doggerel
verses to each. When Elvira's turn came, Clara perceived her colour
was heightened, and that she trembled excessively, yet the Mummy's
verses to her were as unmeaning as to the rest. Whilst this scene was
passing, the King and Father Morris approached. The former stood silent
and abstracted, apparently quite unconscious of the group before him;
whilst Father Morris gazed at them intently, with a satirical sneer
upon his countenance, as though in thorough contempt for such folly.

"How can you endure such mummery?" said he to Rosabella, after a short
pause.

"Any thing for a change," said she, sighing. The father's dark eye
glanced upon the King, and then upon Rosabella, as with a gloomy frown
he stalked on. The Queen coloured, and hastily waving her hand to
the minstrel, as a sign that he might depart, she turned away, and
the disappointed ladies were reluctantly obliged to follow in her
train. In a few minutes, however, a page returned with a chain and a
purse of gold, which he gave the minstrels, and retired. Clara was
upon the point of refusing her share of this bounty, but a look from
the Mummy made her sensible of her error, and she took it without
uttering a syllable. Her hesitation, however, did not pass unnoticed,
and she found, to her infinite horror, when they quitted the palace,
that two of the Queen's servants had followed them. Clara trembled
excessively, and clung tightly to the Mummy's arm for protection; but
that mysterious being still stalked on with the same indifference as
before. Clara longed to give him some intimation of the danger that
awaited him, but she could not speak; the words seemed to swell in
her throat and almost choke her, whilst she found herself dragged
along by an irresistible influence, too powerful to admit of her even
struggling against it. Inexpressible agony, however, seized her as she
found herself hurried on towards the river; and when, as they reached
the brink, she beheld Cheops stamp, with almost supernatural force,
upon the fragile bridge which stretched across the water, and saw the
slender plank sink beneath his weight, she could bear no more, and,
screaming with horror, rushed forwards to save him. A strong arm,
however, pulled her back; she felt herself whirled round, and for the
moment her senses seemed to desert her. The next instant she found she
had been dragged under some bushes, and saw their pursuers rush down to
the place where the broken bridge had been.

"They are gone, by Jupiter!" said one; "I heard them fall into the
water. It was a tremendous crash."

"I heard them," returned the other; "they fell as heavy as lead; and
how they screamed!"

"The young one screamed," said the first; "but the old one groaned."

"What does it matter," resumed the second, "whether they screamed or
groaned? They are gone to the devil a little before their time, and so
we have only to go back as we came. Between ourselves, it was nonsense
to take the trouble to watch them. They were evidently only what they
seemed to be; and even Father Morris, suspicious as he is, gave us no
orders about them."

"Thy dull head cannot see," said the first. "The father's negligence
was the very motive of my vigilance. Things are not with him as they
have been--he wants to rule the Queen with a rod of iron, and Rosabella
will not endure control. Now, it struck me when I saw the youth's
hesitation, that all was not right, and, I thought, if I could discover
what had escaped him--"

"I see," said the other; "his lifeless trunk might have had the honour
of serving as a stepping-stone to enable _you_ to rise."

"It was possible," returned the other, laughing; and they retired,
their voices gradually dying away till they became inaudible in the
distance. Clara now perceived that the Mummy stood beside her. He did
not speak, but pressed his finger upon his lips in token of silence,
and for some minutes they stood fixed to the spot:--till, as the last
faint echo of the servants' footsteps died away, he again seized the
arm of Clara, and hurried her away towards a gloomy cave.

They stopped at the entrance; and though the poor girl was still
too much terrified to speak, yet she felt somewhat relieved by the
discovery that the Mummy had evidently saved her from danger, instead
of, as she feared, precipitating her into it. She still gazed with
awe, however, at his strange unearthly figure, as he stood with his
eyes fixed earnestly upon a star, and apparently occupied in muttering
prayers addressed to it.

"Clara!" at length said he, his deep, full voice echoing solemnly
through the vaulted cave; "Clara!" again he repeated, whilst the blood
of his terrified companion seemed to curdle in her veins at the awful
sound. She, however, slowly and tremblingly advanced--he grasped her
arm--she attempted to shrink back, but seemed fixed as though by
magic;--"Hear me," continued the Mummy, in a low, hollow tone, which
appeared to rise from the tomb,--"Elvira understood my signal, and she
will soon be here; but you must do the rest. Prince Ferdinand keeps
guard to-night. Pass through this cave; the outlet will bring you to
his station. Throw yourself at his feet, and appeal to his compassion
in whatever language the feelings of the moment may inspire. He will
readily listen to you, for he has not forgotten your visit to him in
prison, and will swear to devote himself to your service. Tell him
you accept his offers, and entreat him to convey yourself and the
Queen to Ireland--where Roderick will receive and protect you. He will
immediately comply; and his being the companion of your flight, will
induce the belief that you are gone to Germany, and will consequently
prevent the least danger of pursuit."

At this moment a slight figure, wrapped in a large mantle, appeared at
the entrance of the cavern. "Elvira!" cried Cheops, and the stranger
sprang forward. "Then I am right," exclaimed she, whilst her whole
frame trembled with agitation.

"This is your guide," said Cheops, in his deep sepulchral tone; "follow
her and you will do well. Farewell! but we shall meet again." Then
bending over her, he pressed his lips to her forehead, and to that of
Clara.

Both shuddered at the touch of those cold marble lips, and an icy chill
ran through their veins, as the fearful conviction that their companion
was no earthly being thrilled in their bosoms. Even the strongest minds
dread supernatural horrors, and our fair fugitives turned involuntarily
away. When they looked again, the Mummy was gone, and the darkness
appeared so profound that they were obliged to grope their way
cautiously along. Fearing alike to remain or to advance, they proceeded
with trembling steps slowly along a narrow passage; their minds filled
with that vague sense of danger that generally attends the want of
light, when Imagination pictures terrors which do not really exist, and
Fancy lends her aid to magnify those which do.

By degrees, however, the Queen and her companion became accustomed
to the darkness; and as the pupils of their eyes dilated, they were
enabled to discern the objects around them. Innumerable fantastic
shapes, however, now appeared to flit before them, and grim giants
to frown awfully from every corner of the gloomy vault they were
traversing. The dim and indistinct light threw a misty veil round the
projecting corners of the rocks that gave them a fearful and unnatural
grandeur; whilst the fair friends, overpowered with terror, gazed
timidly around, and stood a few moments not daring to advance into the
darker abysses of the caverns, and yet dreading alike to remain where
they were, or to return.

"We must go on," said Elvira at length, her voice echoing through the
cave, till she started at the sound.

"Oh God!" cried Clara; "hark! a thousand mocking demons seem to repeat
from every rock--Go on!--"

"Go on!" again rang in a thousand varied tones through the cavern.

"Let us proceed," whispered Elvira, shuddering; "this is a fearful
place!"

And they hurried on as fast as their trembling limbs could carry them,
along a dark and gloomy passage, leading in the direction pointed out
by the Mummy. In a few minutes, however, a bright though glimmering
light appeared afar off, like a star, which, gleaming through the
darkness, seemed a beacon of hope to guide them on to happiness. A
slight current of air, too, now blew freshly in their faces, and their
spirits rose, as with quickened steps they hastened onward in the
direction from whence it appeared to proceed.

The light now seemed rapidly to enlarge, and the wind blew more
freshly, whilst the Queen and her companion distinctly heard the heavy
stamping of horses, which vibrated fearfully on the hollow ground, and
grew louder and louder every moment as they advanced.

"Ah! what is that?" cried Elvira trembling, clinging closer to her
companion.

"It is the bivouack of Prince Ferdinand," replied Clara; "the Mummy
told me we should find him here, and that he would aid us."

"Ah, that fearful Mummy," murmured Elvira softly; "if he should deceive
us, and this should be only a plan to betray us to our enemies?"

"Fear not," said Clara; "come what may, we must dare the worst."

They had now reached the outlet of the cavern, and found an opening
large enough to admit of a single person. Cautiously advancing towards
it, they paused for a few moments ere they descended, to gaze upon
the scene below. A troop of soldiers were scattered round, in various
attitudes of repose, under a small grove of trees, whilst their horses
grazed at a little distance. The prince alone seemed awake, and he
lay apart from his companions, stretched upon a grassy bank, a thick
tree spreading above him, his head resting upon his hand, and his
eyes fixed upon the ground. The moon shone brightly, and played upon
the prince's polished armour, like summer lightning dancing on a lake.
His helmet was thrown aside, and his countenance looked pale and sad,
whilst his frequent sighs betrayed the uneasiness of his mind.

"Let us advance," said Clara, "and try to move him to compassion."

Elvira complied; and with light and timid steps, fearing almost to
breathe, lest they should break the slumbers of their enemies, they
approached the prince. All was still, save the hard breathing of the
sleeping soldiers, and the measured champing of the horses; their
stately figures strongly relieved by the dark grey sky beyond, and
their long manes and tails sweeping the ground. The prince was now
listlessly tracing figures in the grass with the scabbard of his sword:
he started as they approached, and hastily demanded the cause of their
intrusion.

"Mercy!" cried Elvira, sinking upon her knees before him; "mercy!" She
could say no more, but gasping for breath, she stretched out her arms
imploringly, whilst every thing around seemed to swim before her eyes,
and the figures of the prince, the trees, the horses, and the sleeping
soldiers, appeared all dilated to gigantic magnitude. She entirely
forgot the pathetic appeal she had intended making to the prince's
feelings, and every faculty seemed suspended in the intenseness of her
anxiety.

"For Heaven's sake, good youth," exclaimed the prince, addressing
Clara, "explain the meaning of this scene! Why does this lovely female
kneel to me, and why does she implore my mercy?"

"Because she has no other hope, save in that and Heaven," said Clara
solemnly; "it is the Queen."

"Elvira!" cried the prince: then raising her eagerly, he
continued--"Your Majesty may command my services; only tell me how I
can assist you."

A few words from Clara explained the urgency of their situation; and
the prince, promising to meet them with horses in an hour, persuaded
them to return to the cavern till he should join them. Heavily rolled
the minutes of this tedious hour, which seemed destined never to have
an end, till the nerves of Elvira and Clara were wrought up to such a
pitch of agony, that death would have appeared a blessing. At length,
the prince came, bringing with him only his faithful Hans.

The sight of him was sufficient to rouse the almost fainting spirits of
the Queen; and, without speaking a single word, she and Clara hurried
after their conductors, to the wood where the horses were waiting for
them.

They mounted, still in perfect silence, and hurried through the most
intricate paths they could find; for, as morning dawned, they feared
inevitable destruction. Before it became quite light, however, they
had reached a thick wood, near the centre of which, they found a half
ruined hut; and here did the ci-devant Queen of England and her suite
try to obtain a few hours' repose. But, alas! sleep fled from Elvira's
eyes; she could not forget she was a fugitive in her own kingdom,
flying with terror from those very people who, but a few months before,
had almost worshipped her as a goddess; and not even the exhaustion of
her body could overcome the hurry of her spirits, whilst every time
she closed her eyes, and felt a soft doze creeping over her troubled
senses, she started up again in horror, fancying her pursuers had
overtaken her.

Consternation reigned in the palace when the flight of Elvira, and the
defection of Prince Ferdinand were made known there. "She is gone to
Germany!" was the universal cry, and troops were directly dispatched
to all the sea-ports, whilst a whole fleet of balloons were ordered
to scour the air in all directions, and arrest every aërial vehicle
they should meet with, whose passengers could not give a perfectly
satisfactory account of themselves. These commissions were executed
to the letter, as the guards now sought by extra diligence to excuse
the negligence with which they had suffered the Queen to escape; and
numerous were the wandering lovers, absconding clerks, and unfaithful
wives, who were brought before the Council instead of Elvira and the
German Prince, of whom, however, nothing could be heard, their measures
having been taken too well to expose them to detection.

In the mean time, the hat and mantle of Clara having been found upon
the banks of the river, the duke and Sir Ambrose were inconsolable; and
dispatched emissaries every where in search of her. Amongst the rest,
Father Murphy and Abelard were sent to the summer palace of the Queen,
to inquire if she had there been heard of. Rosabella and her Court,
however, had removed to London immediately upon the flight of Elvira
being discovered, and the disconsolate searchers having inquired of
every one they met in vain, wandered through the gardens, restless and
forlorn, till at last they found the mysterious cavern. The aspect of
the place was dreary in the extreme: a few stunted shrubs grew upon the
banks of a dark, dull rivulet; and Father Murphy shivered and crossed
himself as he looked around.

"Och, murther! and this is an awful place, Mr. Abelard," said he; "and
I'm after thinking the sooner we get out of it the better."

"Ah, what is that?" cried the butler, springing forward eagerly, and
snatching at something in the bushes that looked white.

"It is Clara's pocket-handkerchief, poor darling!" said the friar;
"see, here is her name worked upon it by her own pretty fingers:" and
as he turned to examine it, his foot slipped, and he rolled into the
water, floundering about like a huge porpoise.

"Oh dear! oh dear!" cried Abelard, "he will certainly be drowned.
Submersion in an aqueous fluid is almost always destructive of animal
life, and I see little chance that he has of escape."

"Och! and will ye let me drown while ye're talking?" asked the
indignant priest. "Before it's the good-natured thing ye'd be doing in
pulling me out, will ye let me be suffocated?"

"No, no, certainly not!" returned Abelard; "my agony is unspeakable at
your distress. I only doubt how I shall be able to raise you without a
lever or pulley. The application of the mechanical powers--"

"May go to the devil," cried Father Murphy, as he crawled out without
assistance; "and so you would have let me drown, whilst you were
talking of the mechanical powers?"

"Excuse me, father," returned Abelard; "friendship is a powerful
affection of the human mind; it invigorates, it warms."

"Does it," said the priest, shaking himself like a water-spaniel; "then
I should be very glad to have a little of it at present, for I am
shivering with cold; to say nothing of being so hungry that I could eat
my fingers."

"I am surprised to hear you talk of being hungry, father," said
Abelard; "you are surely too fat to feel any craving for food. Fat,
you know, is a kind of intermedium through which the nutritive matter
extracted from the food, must pass before it is assimilated to repair
the loss of the individual. It thus forms a kind of magazine to supply
his wants; and a fat man may abstain from food much longer than
another, because, during this abstinence, the collected fat is rapidly
re-absorbed."

Father Murphy did not speak, but his look was sufficient, and his teeth
clattering in his head afforded an ample commentary upon the text.

"You seem cold also," said the pedantic butler; "but that must be a
mistake, for animal oil is universally allowed to be a bad conductor of
caloric."

"The devil take your caloric," cried Father Murphy, again forgetting
his holy office in his anger; "I suppose you'll want to persuade me
that I have no feeling next."

"That is far from impossible," replied Abelard, with the most provoking
gravity; "for fat, by surrounding the extremities of the nerves, always
obviates inordinate sensibility. At the same time, pray do not let me
be misunderstood:--I do not say that fat people can do entirely without
eating, for the indivisibility and individuality of the living body can
only be maintained by an incessant change of the particles which enter
into its composition; though merely part--"

"Hold, hold, for Heaven's sake!" groaned Father Murphy.

"--Part of the animal food is reduced into chyle," resumed Abelard;
"and, as you doubtless know, another part becomes bones; in fact, the
bones are merely secretory organs encrusted with phosphate of lime. The
lymphatic vessels remove this salt--"

"Oh!" groaned Father Murphy, "all this is very fine, but it does not
make me one whit less hungry. O that I had a broiled rump-steak at
this moment, smoking hot and swimming in gravy, with a lump of fresh
butter!"

"Hark!" cried Abelard, "the vibration of the air that strikes upon the
tympanum of my ears, gives intimation of the approach of some tangible
object."

"Alas! alas!" cried the priest, "it is certainly the spirits returned,
that carried away poor Clara. Poor dear girl! that was certainly her
pocket-handkerchief."

"I despair of finding her," said the butler.

"Despair is sinful, my son," replied the friar; "misfortunes are sent
to try us, and we ought to bear them with resignation, and without
uttering a single murmur."

"But I thought you were even now complaining of being hungry, father?"
said Abelard with the utmost simplicity.

"True, true!" replied the priest, a little disconcerted by this remark;
"but--but--"

"It is one thing to preach, and another to practise," resumed the
butler, smiling; "is it not, father? However, I certainly heard a
noise; and if any one finds us here, we shall be ruined."

"Och! never mind that," said Father Murphy; "for that we are already,
ye know."

"Who have we here?" cried some soldiers, who now descended into
the cave; and who as before-mentioned, were particularly alert in
performing their duty in examining all strangers.

"And is it me ye are asking that?" demanded Father Murphy--"for if it
is, it's of no manner of use; for if I were to set about telling you,
it's a hundred to one if ever ye got to the bottom of it."

"Is it possible?" cried one of the soldiers; "surely my ears deceive
me, or that is the voice of Father Murphy!"

"Sure and it is!" said the reverend father; "and whose should it be but
my own? D'ye think I'd use that of another person?"

"No, no!" returned the soldier, laughing; "but my astonishment was, to
find the owner of the voice so near me. Though, now I think of it, it
is not at all surprising, as the Duke of Cornwall is at the palace hard
by, and you of course are with him."

"And how can I be with him," asked the literal Father Murphy, "when I
am here? Now if an Irishman had said such a thing, they'd have called
it a bull."

"Well, well, my good friend," said the soldier, "we will not quarrel
for words. I suppose you came down with the duke?"

"And if you do, you never were more mistaken in your whole life!"

"I cannot in the least comprehend you."

"I don't know how ye should, for I hav'n't begun to explain myself yet:
nor should I finish if I were to work at it all day; and so, as the
duke is here, we'll just go to him, if ye plase."

The duke, already miserable at the loss of Clara, had no sooner heard
of the escape of his daughter, than he had determined to visit the
place where she had been, principally from that restless desire of
change which generally haunts the unhappy; and he was now as much
surprised as the soldier to see Father Murphy there. He felt grateful,
however, to the priest for his assiduous search for Clara; but as
the adventure of the handkerchief rested entirely upon the father's
conviction of its identity--the handkerchief itself having been lost
in the holy father's unfortunate tumble into the water--the duke
considered the whole adventure as rather apocryphal. He felt, however,
consoled by it, though he scarcely knew why; and returned to his friend
Sir Ambrose in much better spirits than he had left him.

In the mean time, the party of Elvira did not dare to leave the hut
in which they had remained pent up the whole day; their horses being
crowded within its walls, as well as themselves, to prevent the
possibility of discovery. At length, the shades of evening began to
fall, and they again set forward at a rapid pace. The agony they had
suffered all day from fear of detection--the narrow space in which
they had been cooped up, together with want of food, had exhausted the
Queen so much, that the morning found her unable to proceed without
refreshment, and about daybreak they were obliged to approach a cottage
to implore assistance.

The cottager and his son were out at work; but the woman of the house
agreed to give the fugitives the shelter they requested. The prince,
delighted at receiving this permission, flew back to the Queen to lift
her from her horse; but, alas! Elvira was not in a state to enjoy even
the most welcome tidings. Pale and livid as a corpse, her head hung
upon the prince's shoulder as he bore her into the house, and her
terrified friends thought she had expired. A little warm milk, however,
revived her, and she opened her eyes.

"I am ready--quite ready--to go on," said she, gasping for utterance,
and again sinking back in a fainting fit.

"It is impossible she can proceed in this state," said the prince to
Clara, in a whisper; "what will become of us?"

"We must remain here quietly, till she is better," said Clara.

"But if we should be pursued and taken?"

"We cannot die better than in such a cause," said the heroic girl.

"It is strange," said the prince, looking at her earnestly, "that the
Queen has been able to inspire such enthusiastic devotion in such a
mere boy."

Clara blushed, and cast her eyes upon the ground, whilst the prince
gazed upon her blushing cheeks still more earnestly, till she turned
away from him abashed. He took her hand; "I cannot be mistaken," said
he, "it is, it is Miss Montagu!"

Clara's agitation betrayed her. "I must attend the Queen," said she,
breaking from him; and the prince, respecting the awkwardness of her
situation, forbore to urge her farther: he felt, however, completely
happy. Clara was too artless to conceal the interest he had excited
in her breast, and it was not in the nature of man to be indifferent
to the devotion of so young and lovely a creature. His eyes, however,
alone expressed his happiness; and Clara, who felt his delicacy in
refraining from making any farther observations on her disguise, found
her love for him increased tenfold by his forbearance.

A few hours' repose restored Elvira so much, that she wished to pursue
her journey immediately, and it was with the greatest difficulty that
the prince persuaded her to wait till nightfall. "You must recruit your
strength," said he, "or you will never be able to plead your cause
with Roderick. He is too stern a hero to be won as I was."

"Oh, it is impossible to describe how I dread to meet him," cried
Elvira; "I tremble at his name. A being so fierce and stern as he is,
will perhaps not even condescend to listen to a woman's prayer, and he
will spurn me from him."

"Impossible!" cried the prince; "though, I own, I wish we could do
without him."

Whilst the principals were thus employed, the cottager's wife was
endeavouring to learn from Hans who and what they were. "That poor lady
seemed dreadfully tired," said she. "When she came, she looked just
like a drooping daffadowndilly; when the gentleman lifted her from her
horse--oh! it was quite moving to see her!"

"Ja!" said Hans.

"However, though her illness should occasion a little delay," continued
the cottager; "I opine that you must be unreasonable to grumble, when
you consider the delightful occasion it affords you of refreshing
your olfactory nerves by partaking of a little of this odoriferous
atmosphere."

"My what nerves?" asked Hans.

"Your olfactory nerves," replied the learned cottager, with a look of
the greatest possible contempt: "that is, the nerves that line the
membrane of the nasal organ. Every child knows that the nasal fossæ are
formed to receive sensations, as by their depth and extent a larger
surface is given to the pituitary membrane, and these soft sinuses,
or cavities, are enabled to retain a greater mass of air loaded with
odoriferous matter."

Poor Hans stood aghast at this explanation, which he found something
like that said to be given by Dr. Johnson, when he called network a
complicated concatenation of rectangular angles; and afraid to speak,
lest he should draw upon himself a new volley of words as astounding as
the last, he remained silent, staring at his companions with much the
same kind of feeling as that with which a wild man of the woods just
caught, might be supposed to gaze upon enlightened Europeans.

"Can you give me some more warm milk?" asked Clara, who now descended
in search of refreshments for the Queen.

"Do you think so much of the tepid lacteous fluid good for the lady?"
asked the cottager, as she put some milk into a saucepan.

"She can take nothing else," returned Clara. "How delightfully that
girl sings!" continued she, listening with rapture to a milk-maid, who
was chanting an Italian bravura as she was milking her cow.

"Yes," replied the cottager; "Angelica sings well. The parieties of
her larynx are in a very tense condition, and her trachea is quite
cartilaginous. But here comes my good man," continued she; "he has been
hard at work all day in the roads, and I am sure he must want some
refreshment."

"I do indeed feel excessive lassitude, missis," said the cottager, as
he came in; "and I want something to eat. What have ye got? Do see,
will you, for it's dreadful hard work breaking stones; most we had
to-day were primitive limestone, but I found a few fine specimens of
quartz. The crystals were quite rhomboidal, and I stopped at least half
an hour admiring them."

"Rock crystals are often found amongst quartz," said his wife; "so I
don't think you had any occasion to lose your time in admiring them,
when, you know, you break stones by measure, and your wife and children
are starving for want of bread."

"Do not distress yourself upon that head, my good woman," said Clara;
"we have money, and our gratitude will not permit you to want any thing
that we can give you."

"Thank you, thank you," cried the woman; "it's a pleasure to serve a
generous gentleman like your honour."

"What a charming voice you have!" said Clara, turning away to avoid the
woman's praises, and addressing herself to the milk-maid; who, having
finished her task, now stepped over the stile that divided the field
from the garden of the cottage, with a pail of milk upon her head, and
advanced gracefully in measured steps towards them.

"I am very happy to have pleased you, Sir," replied the girl, dropping
her foot into the fourth position, as she made an elegant curtsy, and
then glided gracefully on.

"Stay, stay!" cried Clara; "won't you give us another song before you
go?"

"You must excuse me, Sir," said the girl, again gracefully curtsying;
"I am exceedingly sorry to be obliged to refuse a gentleman of
your appearance; but singing requires an alternate enlargement and
contraction of the glottis, an elevation and depression of the larynx,
and an elongation and shortening of the neck, very difficult to be
performed with a pail of milk upon one's head."

"Set down the pail, then," said Clara.

"Indeed I can't, Sir; for I have not a moment to spare. I just met some
gentlemen of my acquaintance on the hill, and as I expect them here
every moment, I must snatch an instant or two to arrange my toilette."

"Gentlemen of your acquaintance!" cried the mother; "what gentlemen can
you have met with here, child, that know you?"

"My cousin John that went for a soldier some time since, and a party of
his companions."

"And what brings them in these parts? No good, I fear; for John was
always a wild good-for-nothing lad."

"It is no evil, I assure you, mother," said Angelica pertly; "but you
are always fancying the worst. John is become a man of consequence now,
and he is at the head of a party of soldiers, searching for some state
prisoners. He'll be made a captain if he finds them: and I hope he
will, with all my heart."

"Where are they now?" asked the mother.

"In the wood," replied the girl; "and my brother is gone to help
them to search, as he'll get a share of the reward if they find the
fugitives whilst he is with them."

"And you'd go too, if you'd any wit," said the wife to her husband,
who had now seated himself comfortably before the fire, and seemed
very unwilling to be disturbed. Inspired, however, by his wife's
remonstrances, he roused himself, and, stretching his heavy limbs,
rolled rather than walked away. Angelica had also retired, and Clara
was left alone with the woman. It has already been mentioned, that
presence of mind was one of Clara's distinguishing characteristics;
and, perceiving the danger of the Queen, she was aware not a moment was
to be lost. The observations of the woman to her husband, and, in fact,
her whole manner, showed that avarice was her master passion, and upon
this hint Clara spoke. She offered her abundance of gold; she enlarged
upon the greediness of the soldiers, who, if she waited for their
approach, would perhaps cheat her of her share in the promised reward,
or, at least, give her such a trifle as would not to be worth having;
and at last drew forth the glittering metal and spread it before her
eyes. Gold softens the hardest heart, and the cottager's wife could
resist no longer, but promised to connive at their escape.

Clara instantly ordered Hans to prepare the horses; and, informing the
prince and Elvira of what had passed, the whole party again set forward
on their eventful journey.



CHAPTER XXXI.


In the mean time, Roderick had been completely victorious in Spain. He
had reached Madrid and established Don Pedro as King; and was now on
his return to Seville, where he had left M. de Mallet and his charming
daughter. Edric, of course, accompanied him; but the rest of the army
had marched to Cadiz to embark, the Greek page only attending upon his
master.

"Well, Edric!" said the King, laughing, as they approached Seville,
"does not your heart beat with pleasure at the thought of quitting
Spain?"

"How can you torment me so, Roderick?"

"Torment you! why I thought you would be in raptures; though I must
own, if you are, they are the most melancholy raptures I ever beheld
in my life."

"This raillery is not generous. It is unworthy of you. I own I love
Mademoiselle de Mallet--but I despair."

"And why?"

"Alas! how can I ask her to share the fortunes of a banished man?"

"Am not I your friend?"

"I know it; but I cannot brook dependence even upon you."

"I do not wish you to be dependent; but what can I do to serve you?
Shall I make war upon this cross old father of yours?"

"Oh, do not speak of him so lightly! Say what you please of me, but
spare my father!"

"I respect your feelings; and as I can say no good of him, I will have
the discretion to be silent."

Edric felt no inclination to reply to this remark, and they travelled
on in perfect silence till they reached Seville. Here they found every
thing changed: the town had been partially re-built, and the lovely
groves of orange and myrtle trees in the vicinity, glowing with all
the rich luxuriance of a southern spring, gave no idea of the scene
of ruin and desolation it had before presented. They inquired for
the house of M. de Mallet, and upon entering the inner square, or
court-yard, they found him seated under the piazza that stretched round
it, enjoying the evening breeze, whilst his fair daughter was occupied
in reading to him.

A fountain played in the centre of the court, its sparkling spray
descending in silvery showers; whilst innumerable orange trees and
flowering shrubs, which were placed around, perfumed the air with their
delicious fragrance; and a light awning, spread over the roof of the
court, mellowed the light to a soft though glowing tinge, which gave an
air of voluptuous languor to the whole scene.

The delight felt by M. de Mallet and his daughter at again seeing their
deliverers was enthusiastic; and though it was most openly expressed
by the father, the burning cheeks and sparkling eyes of Pauline spoke
quite as intelligibly her silent transport.

"We have long expected you," said M. de Mallet; "for I cannot describe
how anxious we are to leave this country. Pauline has wearied Heaven
with prayers for your safety, and as I have felt my strength decay
daily, I too have prayed for your return, for I have a secret to
confide to you that weighs heavily upon my spirits."

"To confide to us?" cried Edric.

"Yes, to you," said M. de Mallet. "It is true I have not known you
long; but some circumstances make men better acquainted in a month than
the ordinary routine of life does in years. Thus, the kindness with
which you have treated me, and the important events in which I have
seen you engaged, have made me consider you as old and tried friends,
and have induced me to confide to you a secret which I have hitherto
guarded with the utmost scrupulous fidelity."

"What can you mean?" asked Edric in astonishment; whilst Pauline gazed
upon her father with a look of the most intense anxiety.

"Pauline is not my child!" said the old man impressively. Pauline
uttered a cry of agony that thrilled through the souls of her auditors,
and threw herself at his feet, looking up in his face with an
expression of the bitterest anguish, as though she implored him not to
desert her. M. de Mallet's agitation was equal to her own, and, as he
fondly regarded her, he continued:

"Yes, miserable being that I am! I am not her father. Alas! often when
I have beheld her enduring hunger and thirst for my sake; when I have
seen her delicate frame exhausted with fatigue or shivering with cold,
whilst still with angelic sweetness she has seemed to forget her own
sufferings, and to think only of alleviating mine--oh, then, how I have
burned to tell her that I did not deserve her kindness, and that I was
an alien from her blood!"

"Oh father! my dearest father!" cried Pauline, her eyes streaming with
tears; "what do you not deserve from me? What is there that I could do,
that could half express my love and gratitude? Alas! though I am not
your child, the tender care you took of my infancy--your kindness, your
affection--" Pauline could not continue, her sobs impeded her utterance.

"My dear child!" said M. de Mallet: and folding her in his arms, he
mingled his tears with hers; whilst Roderick and Edric were both too
powerfully affected to interrupt their sorrows, and stood gazing upon
them in silence, though both ardently desired an explanation of this
seeming mastery. After a short pause, M. de Mallet resumed: "I see the
astonishment I have caused you, and my heart bleeds for the pain I have
been compelled to inflict upon Pauline, but I could not die in peace
without disclosing the truth."

"Oh, do not talk of dying!" cried Pauline, still clinging to him with
the fondest affection.

"And who are the parents of Mademoiselle de Mallet?" demanded Roderick.

"Alas! I know not," returned the Swiss. "About twenty years ago, I was
travelling in England with my wife, who, afflicted with an incurable
disease, had been advised to try the skill of English physicians,
they being considered the most able in the world. One night, my poor
wife being exhausted with fatigue, we stopped at a small inn in a
village near the sea coast. The night was tempestuous, and a blazing
light in the kitchen tempted us to wait there whilst the parlour was
prepared for us. A woman sate near the fire, with a lovely little
girl, about two years old, playing at her feet. My poor wife was always
passionately fond of children, though Heaven had never blest us with
any; and attracted by the exquisite beauty of the little cherub, she
took it in her arms and began to caress it.

"'Is your honour fond of children?' asked the woman with an evident
affectation of vulgarity.

"'I dote upon them,' replied my wife. 'Oh Louis,' continued she,
addressing me in French, 'if I could have such an angel as this to
supply my place to you, I think I could be resigned to die.'

"'If your honours like the child, you may have her,' said the woman.

"I started: but recollecting that, from the over education of the
lower classes in England, they were all linguists; the circumstance of
the woman's understanding what we said, did not appear extraordinary.
'She is my child,' continued the woman; 'I live hard by--and have only
taken shelter here from the storm. The landlady knows me very well.
My husband has been dead some months; and, as I find it hard work to
maintain myself and the child too, I own I shall be glad to place her
in hands where she is sure to be taken care of.'

"The woman's tale seemed plausible; and my wife and I were easily
induced to conclude the bargain that gave us possession of Pauline!
We visited the cottage of this woman the next morning, and found her
story true, excepting that she had only lived there a few weeks. This,
however, appeared immaterial; as indeed she had not fixed any definite
time for the period of her residence, and gave some reason which I
have forgotten for having left her former abode when her husband died.
Soon after this, we left England, taking Pauline with us: her beauty
increased with her years; and when my poor wife died, which she did a
few months after our return to Switzerland, Pauline formed the sole
consolation of my life. Two or three years afterwards, a friend of
mine visiting England called by my desire upon the reputed mother of
Pauline. He found the cottage deserted, and the landlady of the inn
told him, that the woman had left the place a few hours after we had
done so ourselves.

"This circumstance, combined with the evidently affected vulgarity of
the woman, and the elegance and delicacy of Pauline, has always induced
me to suspect I was the dupe of a deception, and that the child had
been stolen from parents in a superior rank of life to that in which I
found her. Whether my conjectures are correct, I know not; but when I
have surveyed the beauty and graces of my child, my breast has smote
me for confining her to my own humble station, and I have determined,
whenever circumstances would permit, to take her to England, and
endeavour, if possible, to elucidate the mystery that hangs over her
destiny."

"Accompany me then to Ireland," said Roderick, "and when you have
stayed there till you are tired, if you still wish to prosecute your
researches, I will give you letters of introduction to the English
Court, and I sincerely hope we may find our fair friend to be a
princess of the blood at least."

In the mean time, M. de Mallet's narrative had caused the greatest
agitation in the breasts of Edric and Pauline. "Not his daughter!"
thought the former; "whose can she be, then?" and his imagination ran
wild amongst a variety of dreams and fancies, each more extravagant
than the last: for, to suppose the elegant and accomplished Pauline
the daughter of a mere peasant was impossible; and the transporting
hope that she might yet be his, with the consent of his father and the
approbation of all his friends, danced before him; whilst Pauline,
uncertain what to think, and unable to analyze her own sensations,
felt, even amidst the desolation in which the avowal of M. de Mallet
had involved her, a faint emotion of pleasure still throb at her heart,
when she reflected that now her country was that of her lover's, and
that it was possible--she dared go no farther, for her senses seemed
unable to support the intoxicating thoughts of what might follow.

It had been agreed that our friends should remain a few days at
Seville, to give the army at Cadiz time to recover from the fatigue of
their march previous to their embarkation; but the morning after their
arrival, a courier arrived with despatches from England, which made
Roderick impatient to leave Spain immediately. He was at breakfast when
these letters, which had been forwarded to him from Cadiz, were put
into his hands. He changed colour, and, starting from his seat, begged
Edric to follow him into the garden.

"Good God, what is the matter?" asked M. de Mallet.

"Nothing, nothing!" replied Roderick; "but that I must return to
Ireland immediately."

And waving his hand as though to repel farther inquiry, he left the
room; Edric followed in silence. "Edric," said the Irish Monarch,
throwing himself into a garden-seat and burying his face in his hands;
"Elvira is dethroned, and perhaps murdered, all owing to my cursed
folly in remaining so long in Spain."

"Elvira!" exclaimed Edric, looking at his friend in the most profound
amazement; for he could not imagine why he took so deep an interest in
her fate.

"I see your astonishment, Edric," resumed the King; "but I have not now
time to explain whys and wherefores. Suffice it to say, that I adore
Elvira, and if she perish, I will not survive her."

A piercing shriek burst from the thicket as he uttered these words,
and both Edric and Roderick sprang involuntarily to the spot--it was
vacant; they searched the wood, but no creature was to be seen.

"It was fancy," said Edric.

"It was the Mummy," murmured the King, "come to chide me for doubting
his promises for an instant."

"The Mummy!" cried Edric; "good God! what do you mean?" and he gazed
with horror upon the wild and haggard countenance of his friend, who
he seriously believed had become distracted. His look recalled the
fleeting senses of Roderick, and with a ghastly smile he replied, "I am
not mad, though I have enough to make me so. We must return to Ireland
without a moment's delay, and there reinforce my army. Elvira must be
restored immediately, for her life is in danger from every moment's
delay."

"I hope not," said Edric; "for, though I detest Rosabella, I do not
think her capable of assassination."

"If she be not, Father Morris is," returned Roderick, in a low voice,
with a look of intense feeling.

Edric turned pale.--"In the name of God, tell me who and what you are?"
said he earnestly; "and how you have obtained this close knowledge of
the English Court."

"I am called the Devil's favourite, you know," returned Roderick,
smiling, in spite of his distress, at his friend's embarrassment, "and
it would be very hard if my patron did not give me a hint now and then
upon subjects of importance."

"How _can_ you jest upon such a topic?" asked Edric reproachfully.

"True," returned Roderick; "as you say, the subject is not one to joke
upon: for we must quit Seville in a few hours, and leave M. de Mallet
and the pretty Pauline to follow us under the escort of my Greek page;
or rather, what perhaps you would prefer, you shall stay behind to take
care of them, and Alexis and I will proceed alone."

"Oh Roderick!" exclaimed Edric, "how can you imagine I could leave you?"

"Not even for Pauline?" asked the King, smiling.

"Not even for Pauline," repeated Edric firmly; "my love for you
surpasses even the devoted love of woman; and whilst I breathe, neither
peril nor pleasure shall tear me from your side."

"My dear Edric!" said Roderick; the tears glistening in his eyes: the
next instant, however, he dashed them away, and added gaily, "But come,
we must go and make our bows, and take our leave like pretty behaved
cavaliers; and you may trust my discretion, Edric, that I will not tell
Pauline of your want of gallantry."

The Greek page looked the image of despair, when he heard his master's
commands that he should remain behind; and passions, dark as the
lowering heavens before a storm, hung upon his brow. He offered no
opposition, however, to his master's will; and crossing his arms upon
his breast, bent his head in token of obedience.

The voyage of Edric and Roderick to Ireland was rapid and favourable in
the extreme; and on their arrival, their reception was enthusiastic.
The Irish are proverbially warmhearted, and the rapture with which they
now greeted their victorious Monarch defies description. Triumphal
arches were erected, the walls were hung with tapestry, and the streets
strewed with flowers, to greet his entry into his capital. Roderick did
not refuse these honours; but it was evident to all who knew him well,
that his mind was occupied with other things; and, in fact, he took
his measures so promptly and so decidedly, that, by the time his army,
with M. de Mallet and his daughter, Dr. Entwerfen, and the Greek page,
arrived from Spain, he had assembled a force quite sufficient for the
restoration of the Queen.

The very day that Elvira fled in terror from the power of her rival,
the combined army of Roderick began its march to hasten to her
assistance; and it had nearly advanced through the whole of the tunnel
under the sea, which separates the two kingdoms, without opposition.
Orders were now given for the soldiers to rest for the night, and tents
were rapidly pitched for that purpose. Roderick, however, could not
sleep; and he stood with his arms folded, gazing at the singular scene
before him, the innumerable torches fixed against the dark sides of the
tunnel shedding their lucid light around, and showing distinctly the
long line of white tents that stretched as far as the eye could reach;
whilst the distant roaring of the sea above their heads, sounded like
the hoarse murmur of gathering thunder.

Whilst Roderick was thus engaged, Edric perceived a group of people
enter the cavern from the English side, and eagerly inquire for the
King. They were brought before him; they were four in number: but one
stayed behind, holding their horses, which looked dreadfully jaded and
distressed; whilst the other three, a man and two women, approached
and threw themselves at Roderick's feet: "Good God! it is Elvira!"
exclaimed he.

"Henry Seymour!" screamed the Queen, and fell senseless upon the ground.

In the mean time all was anarchy in England. Disgusted with the
world and with himself, the King secluded himself from society, and
passed his time entirely upon a small estate adjoining the chateau
of his father. Sir Ambrose and he often met; but they never spoke,
though their hearts yearned towards each other. With all his good
qualities, Sir Ambrose was prejudiced and obstinate; he loved his son
passionately, but he could not endure a rebel, and the poor old man was
fast sinking into the grave, for want of the very consolation he would
not condescend to receive.

Edmund also was wretched: the habits of respect in which he had been
always brought up towards his father, prevented his daring to intrude
upon him against his will, though he would willingly have relinquished
his empty title of King, and have exposed himself to all the miseries
of absolute want, to have obtained the privilege of throwing himself
upon his father's neck, and receiving his forgiveness. The title of
Edmund was, indeed, now only an empty one. Rosabella alone exercised
the power of a Sovereign, and her haughty temper and capricious tyranny
made her universally detested. Monarchs to be respected must be firm;
and whilst they continue to inspire respect, they may sometimes venture
to be tyrants. But Rosabella was no longer respected; he was despised;
and the Commons finding themselves oppressed, and their complaints
completely unattended to, began to regret the gentle sway of Elvira.
"She, at least," said they, "treated us with kindness; and if she did
refuse our petitions, it was with gentleness. But now we are treated
with scorn, and trampled beneath the feet, not only of the Queen, but
of her confessor. We will not, we cannot bear it."

Sad and mournful also was the life of the Duke of Cornwall: for days
and hours he would wander in the gardens of his chateau with his friend
Sir Ambrose, and lament sorrowfully over the complete destruction of
his hopes.

In these walks they often saw Edmund, gliding at a distance like a
solitary ghost, and plunging amongst the trees when he thought himself
observed. "How changed Edmund is become!" said the duke. "Alas! how
guilt corrodes the heart! He has destroyed my daughter, and he is now
suffering the penalty of his crime."

"Say not so," rejoined Sir Ambrose, who could not bear to hear his son
blamed by any one but himself; "if Elvira had not eloped with Prince
Ferdinand--"

"Eloped with Prince Ferdinand!" cried the duke,--"I did not expect
this. What! can you, Sir Ambrose, join in the general voice? Will you
slander poor Elvira? Elvira, whom you have known from her cradle--whom
you have loved and fondled as your own child?"

"Patience! patience! my good friend."

"I have no patience, I can have no patience, when I hear my daughter
scandalized--my poor motherless girl. Remember, if she should err, she
lost her mother in her childhood--she has been always brought up with
me, and as she has been the playfellow of your sons, from her earliest
infancy, perhaps she may not act according to those rigid restraints
imposed upon her sex, by those who have been always secluded from the
society of men. But she means well, Sir Ambrose, she means well always,
and I'd answer for her virtue with my life. Besides, you know, she has
always been used to have an intimate friend of the other sex;--You know
Edmund--"

"No one ever blamed her whilst Edmund was her friend."

"And who dares blame her now? No one, I trust, whilst I have an arm and
a sword ready to defend her."

"My good friend, you reason like a fond father; who, though he sees,
is willing to excuse the faults of his offspring: your judgment
condemns Elvira, even more than mine."

"No, no,--if I thought her wrong, I should not blame her as you do.
Your partiality to Edmund blinds you, and you fancy my poor child has a
thousand faults, because she was not sensible to the merit of your son."

"You mistake me quite; my opinion of Elvira would be just the same if
Edmund were not in existence: though I acknowledge frankly, that every
time I see his fine noble countenance, worn with care--his pale cheeks
and sunken eyes--I feel a pang through my inmost soul. It is a strange
infatuation that she should repulse my noble boy, and yet elope so
readily with a youth she scarcely knew."

"Take care what you say, Sir Ambrose--take care what you say,--I will
not have my child insulted."

"I do not wish to insult her--I speak but the truth--I do not even
think her guilty, though the whole Court rings with her shame."

"Guilt! shame! And this to me? Oh God! Oh God! I have lived too long!
To hear my child thus basely slandered, and be unable to resent it!"

"Base! and is this the conclusion of our long friendship--Base! and
have I lived to be called base, for merely blaming a coquettish wanton?"

"Wanton!" cried the duke, and transported by his passion he struck
Sir Ambrose violently. The aged baronet could not endure this insult;
his sword flew from his scabbard, and in a few seconds these ancient
friends were engaged in mortal combat.

It was a shocking thing to see these two old men, their white hair
streaming in the wind--their venerable features wrinkled with age,
and their feeble frames tottering for support--fighting with all the
vindictive fury of youth. How fearful is the storm of passion! How
vile the human heart when left to its own workings! Every gentler
feeling was extinguished in the breasts of the two veterans, and only
brutal rage remained. For some time victory was doubtful; but at last
Sir Ambrose fell, and in another moment the sword of his antagonist
would have passed through his bosom, had not a powerful arm arrested
the stroke. It was Edmund! he had heard the clashing of swords at a
distance, and, rushing to the spot, arrived just in time to prevent the
fatal blow.

"Oh my father!" cried Edmund with a thrill of horror, "for God's
sake, do not die till you have forgiven me! He hears me not!" cried
he, wringing his hands in unutterable anguish. "Oh, for mercy's sake,
speak! Do not destroy me."

Sir Ambrose feebly opened his languid eyes: "Farewell," said he,
faintly: "God bless you!"

"Oh, do you forgive me!" shrieked Edmund, falling upon his knees.

"I do," said Sir Ambrose: "and--the--duke;" the words feebly ebbed from
his lips; and, as he spoke, the fearful rattle of death gurgled in his
throat, and with a convulsive sob he expired.

Sadly did the duke now gaze upon his fallen foe, but when he found him
dead he was distracted. Madly he tore his hair, and threw himself upon
the corpse; but his agonies were in vain, the vital spark was extinct.
Edmund stood also for some seconds gazing upon the body, without any
distinct idea existing in his mind; but when the whole sad reality
rushed upon him, he could not endure his own thoughts, and darted away
with the velocity of lightning. The duke heeded not his departure; he
had thrown himself upon the body of his departed friend, and the whole
universe seemed to contain for him only that bloody corpse. "I have
killed him! I have killed him!" cried he, "I have killed him!"

His fearful shrieks soon drew many persons to the spot. "I have killed
him!" screamed the duke, in answer to all interrogations; "I have
killed him!" Abelard was one of the first collected round this mournful
spectacle. "What can we do?" said he to Father Murphy,--"the case seems
desperate."

"I've killed him!" again screamed the duke in agony.

"He's entirely mad," said Father Murphy, "and there's no doubt of it."

"I've killed him!" repeated the duke, with a still more piercing
shriek: "I've killed him!"

"Oh he is mad," cried all the spectators, whilst they attempted to
remove him from the spot. With infinite difficulty they succeeded, he
still clinging to the corpse, and screaming "I've killed him!" till his
voice was lost in the distance.

Whilst these scenes were transacting at the English Court, the army of
Roderick marched through the kingdom without opposition, for the people
every where, tired of the tyranny of her rival, received Elvira with
open arms, and the chief nobility vied with each other in opening their
houses to entertain her and her suite as she passed along.

It was a fine evening in March, and the night was clear, though cold,
when Elvira, with hurried steps, paced the fine terrace belonging to
the castle of one of these noblemen. The Queen was evidently lost in
reflection, and as she occasionally stopped, she threw back her long
hair and looked up to the sky with an air of intense anxiety. "It is
a lovely night!" murmured she: "Heaven grant that peace may still
attend us! yet, I fear I know not what of danger. Oh, if the forces of
Rosabella should resist--and Roderick should fall--and for me--"

She paused, for the thought seemed too dreadful for endurance. The
moon shone brightly in the heavens, and the stars sparkled like
diamonds on the clear blue sky; whilst Elvira, raising her eyes to
heaven, and clasping her hands together, seemed lost in silent prayer.
Her fair face, shaded by her long black veil, looked even more lovely
than usual, in the soft light thrown upon it; and, as she stood thus
apparently quite absorbed in inward devotion, she seemed almost a
celestial being descended for the moment upon earth, and about to
remount to her native skies.

A figure, wrapped in a dark long cloak, now appeared at the extremity
of the terrace, and advanced slowly towards the Queen. Two other
figures also emerged from the shade, and followed, though at a
considerable distance. Elvira was not aware of their approach till the
first figure stood behind her, and seizing her arms, threw a cloak
over her head to stifle her cries; and then, with the help of the
others, was hurrying her off. At this moment, Roderick sprang actively
upon the terrace, and with one blow from his vigorous arm, felled the
first assailant to the ground. Then, drawing his sword, the enraged
Monarch would have instantly dispatched him, had not the supposed
assassin uttered a piercing scream, and, clinging round his knees,
implored mercy. The moon shone full upon the boy's face, and disclosed
to Roderick's astonished eyes the features of the dumb page. "Alexis!"
cried he.

The boy sprang from the ground.

"Roderick!" screamed he; "then I am ruined!"

"Stay!" returned the King, grasping his arm, and preventing his escape;
"who, and what are you? Speak, or dread my vengeance."

The boy's heart beat almost to suffocation; every nerve throbbed with
the most violent emotion, and drawing a dagger from his belt, he
attempted to plunge it into the heart of Roderick. "Ah!" cried the
King, starting aside in time to prevent the blow; whilst ere he could
prevent it, the page had buried the weapon in his own bosom.

"Good God!" exclaimed Roderick, "what can this mean?"

The whole of this scene had passed with such rapidity, that Elvira had
scarcely time to recover herself, or to be aware of what had happened.
The two assistants had fled the moment they perceived the King; and
Elvira, with trembling steps and pallid cheeks, approached the spot
where Roderick knelt beside the bleeding page.

Kneeling beside him, she attempted to staunch the blood which flowed
rapidly from the wound, but in vain; for the boy's life was evidently
fast ebbing.

Brian, a servant of the King, who had followed his master to the
terrace, aided her endeavours; but Roderick remained fixed and
immoveable, his eyes chained as by the power of fascination upon the
page, who now slowly unclosed his eyelids, and heaving a deep sigh,
fixed his languid eyes upon those of Roderick.

"Zoe!" cried the King.

"Yes," returned the page, gasping for breath, and speaking with
difficulty; "Zoe! I am indeed that wretch. I loved you, Roderick; I
would have died for you. I do die for you; but--but--Elvira--"

"What meant your outrage upon her?"

"What did it mean?" cried Zoe, her eyes flashing fire, and her whole
frame supported by a supernatural energy; "did I not see that you
loved her, and could I endure to resign you to another? No," continued
she, starting from the ground; "I would have killed her, and, had she
perished, I should have died contented."

The violence of the action made the blood gush in torrents from her
wound; and, pale and feeble, her failing eyes closed. She staggered a
few paces, fell, heaved one convulsive struggle, and Zoe was no more!

Sadly did Roderick gaze upon that form which had so lately thrilled
with feeling--now cold and inanimate at his feet: the victim of passion
lay before him. Her hopes, her fears, her rage, and her love, had
passed away, and there her body remained a senseless clod of clay, till
it should be resolved into its original elements. By this time, some of
the servants of the castle, who had been summoned by Brian, approached;
and the old Earl of Warwick, in whose castle the fatal scene had taken
place, rushed upon the terrace, calling wildly upon his people to save
the Queen.

"Is it the Lady Elvira that ye mane?" asked Brian; "Och an't plase
yere honour, and she's safe, every inch of her."

"And what has been the matter?" asked the Earl.

"Och and your lordship may well ask that; but the divil a bit any body
can tell you but one, and that's myself. Ye see, my master, his most
gracious Majesty, and me were walking in the garden; that is, he was
walking and I was watching, for fear any harm should happen to him;
for the life of such as he isn't to be trusted to chance in a strange
country, and I guess he was thinking of the Queen, though he never
said nothing about it. And so when we came near the terrace, it was so
dark, ye couldn't see yere hand before you. And then the moon peeped
through the clouds, like a pretty face looking through a ground-glass
window. And then she came out as bright as a silver mirror; and the
Queen looked so pretty as she stood praying, that my master couldn't
find it in his heart to interrupt her; and for me, I wasn't the man to
be even thinking of such a thing. And then two black-looking spalpeens,
bad luck to them! stole out behind her, and there wasn't two, for
there were three of them--with never a livin' soul beside, to be seen
in respect of being near her: but God never would suffer a rale lady
like herself to want a friend to comfort her when she'd be in naad--and
my master wouldn't let her be after coming to harm, for he jumped upon
the terrace entirely like a hound springing at the deer--and saved her,
which nobody but himself could have done like it, for the very life
of 'em. And when I came, there was the man lying dead that would have
killed the princess, and it turned out he wasn't a man at all, but a
woman."

The story of Zoe is soon told. Bred in a warm climate, and naturally
enthusiastic in her disposition, she was the child of passion. The
misfortunes she had experienced in Greece, by depriving her of all she
loved, had thrown her affections back upon her own bosom, and they had
preyed upon themselves.

To give vent to the feelings that oppressed her, she created an image
of perfection in her own mind, and this she worshipped in secret.
When she saw Roderick, however, all was changed; a new world seemed
to open upon her. The idol of her fancy, indeed, stood before her;
for Roderick realized all her wildest dreams. He became her god.
His heroism, his person, his talents, caught her imagination, and
the violence of her passions completed the delirium of her soul.
Notwithstanding, however, the intensity of her feelings, no thought of
grosser texture contaminated her mind. Her love was as that of angels,
pure and undefiled:--she regarded Roderick as a thing enshrined, almost
too holy for mortal vows to worship; and she would have considered it
sacrilege to dare even to think of him as a husband.

With these feelings, she had watched over him, with almost a mother's
love; and when she informed him of the conspiracy against him, she
resolved, with all the romantic self-devotion of a fond woman, to
follow him unknown and in disguise; without any plan, however, but
that of being near him, or any hope but that of contributing to his
happiness. Money, and the assistance of one or two devoted servants,
who contrived to follow in Roderick's train, had enabled her to
accomplish this. She had felt a momentary jealousy at his anxiety
for Pauline, and she had been half induced to favour the plots of
the Spanish general, to take Roderick prisoner; but that feeling had
worn away, when she discovered the mutual passion of Edric and the
fair Swiss. Now the case was different, and, maddened by the thought
of Roderick's devotion to Elvira, she had determined to destroy her.
Her trusty Greeks would have assisted her plan, but they fled at her
detection.

Inexpressibly shocked at what had taken place, Roderick could scarcely
bear again to separate himself, even for an instant, from Elvira.
"Do not bid me leave you," said he, looking at her with the fondest
affection; "You shall accompany me, even to the field. Oh! would to
Heaven you would give me a right to be near you for ever."

"Alas! alas!" replied Elvira; "I tremble for the result of this fatal
contest. Oh that I were but a humble peasant!"

"Would to Heaven you were!" cried Roderick, with enthusiasm; "for
happy as I always am in your presence, never do I feel so much so,
as when we seem, as at present, secluded from the world. Then I could
forget your rank, and all the artificial restraints grandeur has thrown
around you; and without remembering that I am Roderick, and you Elvira,
think only of a pair of simple lovers, whose weightiest care was their
attendance upon their flocks, and whose only happiness consisted in
loving and being beloved."

"Alas, Roderick!" replied Elvira; "do not speak of love. After the
dreadful scene we have just witnessed, I tremble at the passion. No,
be my friend, Roderick. Friendship is more sure than love. On that, we
may confidently rely; but passion destroys itself with what it feeds
upon--intense feelings cannot last."

"Oh Elvira! say not so," cried Roderick, fixing his eyes earnestly upon
her blushing countenance--whilst she, trembling and agitated, betrayed
by her confusion the passion she would have fain concealed.

How feeble are words to express the transports of such a moment! 'Tis
the oasis in the desert of life--the bright gem that casts a radiance
even upon the dross with which it is surrounded. Man is born to
misery--thick clouds hang over him, and obscure his path--dangers
await him at every step. One single ray alone breaks through the
gloom--bright as the fairy dreams of childhood; but, alas! equally
fleeting. 'Tis love--pure, passionate, unsophisticated love--the only
glimpse of heaven vouchsafed on earth to man. And this was what was now
felt by Roderick and Elvira, as he, throwing himself at her feet, vowed
eternal constancy, and persuaded her to acknowledge that her hopes of
earthly happiness centered in him alone.

But why do I profane such a scene, by attempting to describe it? Those
who have loved, have only to recollect what they felt upon a similar
occasion; and to those who have not,--Heaven help them!--not all the
eloquence of Cicero himself could give the least idea of any thing of
the kind. Suffice it to say, that before Roderick and Elvira parted,
she consented, if success should crown their efforts, to become his
bride.

The state of England, at this moment, defies description. The death
of Sir Ambrose and the insanity of the Duke of Cornwall were events
so shocking in themselves, that it was not surprising they produced a
violent effect upon the minds of the people. Edmund had disappeared,
and Rosabella, instigated by Father Morris and Marianne, became every
day more rapacious and tyrannical; whilst even they quarrelled amongst
themselves, and wretchedness prevailed throughout the kingdom.

This was the state of the public mind, when the news of the invasion of
Roderick first reached the ears of Rosabella.

"Marianne!" she exclaimed, "summon Father Morris. We are ruined,"
continued she, as the reverend father entered--"absolutely ruined.
Roderick is invincible, and he supports Elvira! Where is Cheops?"

"Ay!" returned Father Morris, "where _is_ Cheops? It is that accursed
fiend that has led us on to destruction! His counsels have destroyed
us; for, though plausible in appearance, they have been as deceitful as
the oracles of old."

"Yet you trusted him!" said Rosabella. "I hated him from the first;
but you trusted him. You thought him all perfection: he flattered your
vanity, and you weakly believed every thing that he asserted."

"Weakly!" cried Father Morris, his lips quivering with rage.

"Yes, weakly!" returned Rosabella; "for a child would have seen through
his artifices; but you were deceived by them, and have been his dupe,
his tool, his plaything."

"This to me!" cried Father Morris, gnashing his teeth together with
passion.

"Yes, to you," returned Rosabella coolly; "for why should I longer
conceal my sentiments? I will no longer be your slave. You have made me
deserted by my husband--hated by my subjects--and detested by myself.
I will, therefore, no longer follow your councils; from henceforward I
will act for myself. Adieu, we meet no more as friends!"

And as she spoke, she walked out of the room, leaving the priest
motionless with astonishment.--"This to me!" cried he to Marianne, as
soon as he recovered himself sufficiently to speak--"to me, who have
sacrificed every thing for her! Did I not place her on the throne?
Have I scrupled even to imbrue my hands in blood for her sake? Have I
not committed crimes for her that weigh heavily upon my soul? Did I not
poison Claudia? and should I not also have destroyed Elvira, if Cheops
had not saved her? Oh, Marianne, am I awake? Is it not a cruel dream?
Is it possible it can be Rosabella! Rosabella! _my_ Rosabella! _my
child!_ my own Rosabella! that uses me thus?"

"Hush! hush!" cried Marianne; "'tis but the passion of a moment. Be
composed. Rosabella still loves you; but, irritated by the desertion of
Edmund, and the news she has just heard--"

"Oh, Marianne!" interrupted the friar in agony, "you may easily reason,
for you never had a child; but if Heaven had blessed us with one, you
might have felt for my anguish."

"I do feel for you," returned Marianne; "but does she not treat me with
equal scorn? Since the absence of Edmund she has become distracted,
and I, who know the agonies a woman endures when she finds herself
deserted by the man she adores, can feel for her."

"And who first gained her Edmund? Would he ever have become her
husband, had not I induced him?"

"I believe not; neither would she have been Queen but for you."

"No--no. Oh! how I have toiled for that ungrateful girl! How I have
adored her!"

"You have been a devoted father."

"Have I not, Marianne? I have at least endeavoured to expiate my sin.
I have done penance--I have spent nights unnumbered in painful vigils.
I have scourged my body, till the feeble flesh has shrunk beneath the
torture; yet still my mind remains unappeased. Remorse still gnaws my
vitals! Oh, Marianne! how poor is earthly grandeur to a mind diseased!"

In this manner did these companions in iniquity confer; till at length,
hating each other and themselves, they gave vent to mutual upbraiding,
and parted with undisguised hatred and contempt. Such, indeed, is the
disgusting nature of sin, that though a man may shut his eyes to his
own defects, or rather, see them through the magic prism of self-love;
yet he almost always abhors them when he sees them reflected in another.

Thus it was with Father Morris.--Marianne had been his associate in
many scenes of vice; he had, in fact, first led her from the paths of
virtue, and, as usual in such cases, he now hated the creature he had
made.

Father Morris was indeed that brother of the Duke of Cornwall,
whose crimes and punishment have been before slightly hinted at. He
had married in early life a beautiful and accomplished woman; but,
instigated by the machinations of Marianne, whom he had previously
seduced and abandoned, he had become jealous of her, and, in a paroxysm
of rage, had deprived her of life. This was the crime he had since
endeavoured to expiate by the penance of his whole life. Vain, however,
had been his endeavour! The mortification of the body avails little,
where the humiliation of the spirit is wanting; and Father Morris,
notwithstanding his apparent repentance, was proud, envious, and
intolerant.

In a fit of remorse, after the death of his wife, he had embraced a
monastic life, and in order to subject himself to a perpetual penance,
had placed himself as father confessor to Sir Ambrose. No situation,
in fact, could have been more painful to a proud spirit than this; yet
this daily misery Father Morris felt a pride in supporting without
murmuring.

It is strange, but true, that haughty spirits sometimes feel almost
pleasure in trying their powers of endurance to the utmost; for there
is a self-satisfaction in thinking we have borne what seems almost too
much for mortals, that often consoles a man under the acutest agonies.

This was the case with Father Morris, and the daily tortures which he
endured without shrinking, almost reconciled him to himself. Ambition,
however, was still his master-passion, and as his monastic vows
prevented its indulgence in his own person, he devoted himself to the
advancement of his child. How he succeeded, and how he was rewarded,
has been already shown.



CHAPTER XXXII.


"Have you heard the news?" asked Lord Maysworth one morning, bustling
into the breakfast-room of Lord Gustavus de Montfort.

"What is it?" demanded that noble lord, who was sitting at breakfast
with his usual satellites.

"The King of Ireland has arrived at Oxford with an immense army,
intending to re-establish Elvira."

"Impossible!" cried Lord Gustavus.

"Impossible!" echoed the satellites.

"Something must be done," said Lord Maysworth.

"Thinking as I think, and as I am confident every one who hears me
must think, or at least, ought to think," said Lord Gustavus; "no
government can be worse than the one we have at present."

"The Queen has not performed one of her promises," subjoined Dr.
Hardman; "and her caprice and cruelty are beyond endurance."

"Her extravagance is unbounded," said Lord Maysworth.

"And her arrogance extreme," rejoined Lord Gustavus.

The satellites shook their heads in chorus.

"In my opinion," said Lord Maysworth, "we had better seek Elvira and
try to propitiate her. She was used to be mild and gentle."

"But will she not be too much exasperated with our former desertion, to
listen to us?" asked Dr. Hardman.

"I think not," said Lord Gustavus pompously.

The result of this conference may be easily imagined. Rosabella found
herself deserted; many who would not have had courage to abandon her
cause, had they not found precedents for their conduct, fled in the
suite of the rebel lords. Roderick rapidly advanced, and his army was
every day augmented by the discontented English.

"I am lost, Marianne!" cried the Queen, when she found the enemy was
within a day's march of her capital; "I am ruined past redemption."

"Do not desert yourself," said Marianne, "and you may yet be saved. If
you despair, it is a virtual acknowledgment of the weakness of your
cause."

"What will become of me?" continued Rosabella, wringing her hands; "no
earthly help can save me."

"But courage may," said the deep voice of Cheops, who had entered the
room unobserved.

"Ah!" screamed Rosabella; "it is the fiend!"

Cheops laughed, and the unearthly sound rang hoarsely in the ears of
his auditors.

"Speak, demon! or whatever thou art," cried Marianne; "shall we perish?"

"You shall meet with your reward!" said the Mummy calmly: "Are you
satisfied?"

"Oh, Rosabella!" screamed Father Morris, rushing into the room in an
agony of despair; "save her! save my child!"

"Your child?" cried Rosabella; "can it be possible that _you_ are _my_
father?"

"I am--I am;--but fly--fly--and I forgive every thing; only let us fly!"

"Alas!" cried Marianne; "he has but too much reason for his agony. The
enemy have entered the city."

"What will become of us?" ejaculated the friar. "Fiend! monster!
barbarian!" cried he, addressing Cheops, and seizing him roughly by the
arm; "deliver us! It was thy accursed counsels which involved us in
ruin. Save us!"

"My counsels that led you to ruin!" returned Cheops, with one of his
bitter laughs; "say rather, your own passions. Did I urge you to murder
Claudia? Nay, did I not save Elvira? Did I not warn you that the throne
and misery were inseparably connected? And have not all my promises
been fulfilled to the very letter?"

"Yes, yes; to the letter," returned Father Morris; "but not in spirit."

"By the sacred hawks of Osiris kept at Edfou! I swore Rosabella should
be Queen, and you her favourite minister."

"Talk not of what is past," cried the priest impatiently; "tell me how
to act. The foe is at the gates of the palace."

"Did you not say there was a secret passage, leading from this chamber?"

"There is! there is!" cried Father Morris, with rapture; "we will there
lie concealed, and may surprise them."

Cheops laughed:--"Am I still your foe?" asked he, with his usual
bitterness.

"Name it not, name it not!" cried Father Morris; "we have not an
instant to lose. Hurry into the subterranean passage. I hear the horses
of the enemy in the court of the palace!"

"Thebes was perforated with passages, yet she has fallen," muttered
Cheops, as he followed the friar and Rosabella through the opening into
the secret chamber; Marianne joined them, and the spring pannel closed.

Nothing could be more flattering than the reception Elvira met with
from her people. Roderick had placed her at the head of his army, and
the people hailed her appearance with rapture. Not a blow had been
struck, for the army of Rosabella had joined her banners; and Elvira
advanced to London without opposition. Too mild and forgiving to
indulge a single feeling of revenge, she felt rejoiced that her rival
had escaped, and wished no pursuit to be instituted.

Edric, however, was not so quiescent. A thousand circumstances flashed
upon his mind, to prove that the accession of Rosabella had been long
planned by Father Morris, and he felt convinced he had been the dupe of
the plans they had laid to induce him to quit the kingdom.

"I will find him," said he, "and expose his infamy. He shall not escape
me thus."

Vain, however, was his search, and he returned to the room so lately
occupied by Rosabella restless and dispirited. Elvira was now in this
splendid chamber, surrounded by her friends; and, trembling with
agitation, was awaiting the expected arrival of her father.

"Oh, Heavens!" exclaimed she, as the poor old man was led in;
"Roderick! my beloved Roderick! can we not save him!"

"Alas," returned Roderick, "I fear--but compose yourself, my dearest
girl; all may yet go well."

"Where is Elvira? my child, my darling Elvira!" cried the old man:
"I did not kill her! No," whispered he, drawing near to Roderick; "I
killed _him_, it is true, but it was for her sake. He slandered my
child, and I could not bear that."

"Oh God! oh God!" cried Elvira! "have mercy upon him! It breaks my
heart to see him thus. Leave us, I implore you," she continued,
addressing her friends; "I cannot bear that even you should see the
extent of his malady. Leave him with me, and perhaps my presence may
recall his lost recollection."

Finding opposition only increased her anxiety, her friends at length
consented; and Elvira was left alone with her father. Kneeling by
his side as he lay stretched upon a sofa, the Queen endeavoured to
console him; but he knew her not, and wrung her heart by calling
vehemently upon Elvira. "If I could see my child," said he, "I should
die contented. Call my child! where is Elvira? Yes, yes, I know she is
a Queen, and cannot come to me! Yet I think even a Queen might look at
her poor old father: I only want her to look at me!"

Whilst this scene was passing, Rosabella and her friends lay concealed
in the secret chamber; and, through the moveable pannel, watched every
thing that passed.

"Now is the time," cried Father Morris; when he saw that Elvira,
exhausted by her grief, had hidden her face in her hands, to indulge
her tears unrestrainedly.

"You ensure your own destruction if you kill her!" said Cheops.

"I care not," returned Father Morris; and removing the pannel, he
approached. Elvira saw him not: and the shining dagger already
was aimed at her breast, when it caught the eye of the maniac; and
returning reason flashed through his mind.

"Edgar!" cried he, with a piercing scream, "spare my child!"

The cry roused the friends of Elvira, who had remained in the
antechamber, and they rushed in. In an instant the room was crowded;
Father Morris was secured; and his confederates (from his having left
the pannel open) discovered.

"Edgar!" cried the duke; "yes, it is Edgar! my brother! my only
brother! and this is Elvira. She is not fled; I knew she was not! She
is safe!"

"And is it possible," cried Edric, "that you can be Duke Edgar!"

"I am that wretch!" said Father Morris.

"Then Rosabella is--"

"My child! and for her I have become the wretch I am! Yet to her I have
done my duty; and if she be spared?"

"Ah!" cried M. de Mallet; "it is, it is--yes, I am not deceived,
_that_ is the woman who sold us Pauline."

"Who, which--" exclaimed Edric eagerly.

"There," cried the Swiss, pointing to Marianne.

"Marianne!" exclaimed Edric.

"Yes," said she, "Marianne! He is right; it was I, and now is the
moment of my vengeance. Seduced and deserted by this man," pointing to
Father Morris, "my passions, always impetuous, panted for revenge. _I_
instigated him to murder the wife for whom he had abandoned me--_I_
stole his child and sold her to a stranger--and _I_ substituted my own
wretched offspring, whom I had had by a man he abhorred, in its place."

"What!" cried Father Morris, his livid lips quivering with anguish; "is
not Rosabella my child?"

"No," said Marianne; "twenty years ago I sold your child to this
gentleman," pointing to M. de Mallet. "He was a foreigner, and I
believed, by placing her in his hands, you would never see her more."

"Then who is Rosabella?"

"_My_ child, and by your servant Jacques."

"Curses on thee, woman! What! have I then destroyed myself here and
hereafter for the offspring of that wretch? A man I detested, abhorred,
despised!"

"Yes," said Marianne, with a fiendish laugh. "You abandoned me, and I
swore to be revenged: he heard my oath, and by promising to assist me
obtained my consent to be his paramour. By his aid I effected all the
rest. He has long been dead, but still I have pursued my plan; and when
I saw you risking body and soul for Rosabella, I have gloried, for I
was revenged."

"Fiend!" cried the priest; and rushing upon her before any one
could prevent him, he stabbed her to the heart, and then instantly
withdrawing the dagger buried it in his own bosom. "Still I am
revenged!" cried Marianne, as heaving a deep sigh she expired. Father
Morris never spoke again.

My tale is nearly closed, for dull must be the mind that cannot picture
all the rest. The duke recovered his reason, and enjoyed all the
happiness his bosom was yet capable of, in witnessing the union of his
daughter and Roderick, whom he had loved as Henry Seymour, and now
adored as the hero of Ireland. He gave Pauline a noble fortune, as
his niece, and she married Edric; who, in the absence of his brother,
took possession of his father's wealth, and fixed his residence in his
former dwelling, where, after all his troubles, Dr. Entwerfen found
himself comfortably re-established in his ancient chamber; whilst
Clara, by becoming the bride of Prince Ferdinand, enchanted her mother,
and secured her own happiness.

The coronation of Roderick and Elvira, as King and Queen of the United
Kingdoms of Great Britain and Ireland, was superb, and far excelled
that in which Elvira had previously been an actress. Taught wisdom by
experience, however, she no longer placed implicit reliance upon the
shouts of applause that followed her footsteps;--yet, even with the
reflection that all the promises she received might be evanescent, she
could not resist the emotion of pleasure that swelled her breast,
when, after the priest had pronounced the nuptial benediction, she
walked with Roderick, the chosen of her heart, through a long line of
kneeling subjects, and heard every mouth implore blessings on their
heads, and bestow praises on her choice.

Proudly did Elvira look around as she reached the entrance of
Westminster Hall; yet, ere she entered it, a rush and bustle in the
crowd attracted her attention, and a man, clad like a monk, threw
himself before her. Elvira screamed; when the man, throwing back his
cowl, fixed his heavy eyes upon her and exclaimed, "Do you not know me,
Elvira?" It was Edmund.

"Alas! alas!" cried he, "the demon was right; I trusted in my own
strength, and I have fallen, miserably fallen. Though I knew it not,
ambition was my god--and every thing else weighed lightly in the scale.
Yet, even when my ambition was gratified, I was wretched; for I loved
you, Elvira, even whilst I plotted against you;--and as my own heart
reproached me, I felt every wrong you suffered far more poignantly
than you could yourself. My poor father too!--but all is over now, and
I am doomed to bitter expiation of my sins,--bitter indeed, for oh,
how far beyond all other sufferings are the never-dying tortures of
remorse. One thought alone haunted my mind,--one image alone floated
before my senses. I could not die till I had obtained your pardon.
Pardon me then, Elvira! See! thus humbly, at thy feet I implore thy
forgiveness; crouching in the dust, and bending my neck to be thy
footstool!"

"Rise, I entreat you, rise!" said Elvira; "and be assured I forgive
you--nay, that I pity you from my inmost soul."

"She pities me!" cried Edmund; "yet I can bear even this: even pity.
And am I indeed fallen so low as to be pitied! Yes, yes, I am indeed to
be pitied."

"I did not mean to wound your feelings," returned Elvira, "believe me,
Edmund. Tell me, what is there I can do for you?"

"Nothing!" cried he wildly; "the world is nothing for me now. Pity that
unhappy woman that was my wife; and as for me, forget me!"

"Never!" said Elvira; "for never can I forget your disinterested love
and your devoted affection. The heart, however, is capricious; and
mine, though sensible to your merits, was destined for another."

"And well does that other deserve your love;--for even jealousy itself
must own that Roderick is worthy to be your husband. Yes, to him I
_can_ resign you. Farewell, Elvira! you shall never see me more! Let my
brother take my inheritance! May you be happy! God bless you! God bless
you!"

And starting from his knees, he disappeared, before she could reply.

The spirits of Elvira were agitated by this event, which threw a
damp over the remaining festivities of the day; and, trembling and
unnerved, she proceeded to the magnificent hall, where a sumptuous
banquet was prepared for her reception. For some days after this event,
the attention of Roderick and Elvira was occupied in arranging the
different affairs of the kingdom; whilst Edric and Pauline, with the
old Duke of Cornwall, M. de Mallet, and Father Murphy retired to the
house of the former in the country, where Dr. Entwerfen was already
comfortably established.

A thousand emotions swelled in the heart of Edric as he approached this
venerable mansion, and saw again its well-known turrets peeping through
the trees. Strange, indeed, are the feelings that oppress the mind,
when the wanderer returns, after a long absence, to the habitation
of his forefathers. A mingled crowd of contradictory sensations, of
disappointed hopes, of undefined fears, float through his fancy;
and, as well-remembered objects recall the visions that formerly
delighted him, he starts at the difference the experience of their
fallacy has made in himself, and he sighs in vain for a return of the
blissful ignorance he formerly despised. All too appears changed! As
the human mind judges only by comparison, the eyes become dazzled by
distant splendours, and that which to the eyes of youth had appeared
superb, seems to the maturer judgment of manhood, tame, vapid, and
insipid,--whilst the imagination which had fondly cherished the
favourite dreams of childhood, and decked them in all the vivid colours
of fancy, feels disappointed and disgusted, though it scarce knows why,
to find the reality so different from the image it had pictured to
itself.

Such were the feelings of Edric as he entered the grand hall of this
residence of his ancestors, and gazed upon the well-remembered faces
of the crowd of servants assembled to meet him. At the head of these
was Davis; his tall thin figure waving to and fro, and his long thin
white hair floating upon his shoulders; and the more spruce and gallant
aspects of Abelard and his devoted Eloisa, the late Mrs. Russell, who
had blest him with the possession of her fair hand a few days before,
and now stood blushing and simpering, with all the affected modesty of
a bride of sixty, to receive the congratulations of those around her.

"Welcome! welcome, my dear Edric!" cried Dr. Entwerfen, rushing
down-stairs to meet them, his sleeves tucked up, and his wig thrown
back, in a very experimental-philosophic manner; "rejoice with me
too, for I have recovered my balloon! My darling caoutchouc bottle
of inflammability! My immortalizing snuff, and, more than all, my
adored galvanic battery! Yes, my compendium of science, my epitome of
talent, and my most inestimable treasure, is safe! Not, indeed, that
which was employed in galvanizing the Mummy, but its counterpart, its
duplicate, its prototype. The Mummy came to England, and the balloon
being recognized to be mine, it was placed in my apartment, where it
has remained ever since, stowed up in safe but inglorious obscurity,
till my return."

"Och! and that's a clear case!" said Father Murphy; "and there's no
doubt of it."

Leaving the delighted doctor to show the treasures of his laboratory
to M. de Mallet, Edric retired to his chamber, and after surveying
again and again the well-known objects it contained, he hurried to his
favourite grove.

It is singular how inanimate objects, which have been long unseen,
recall the thoughts and train of feelings indulged in when one last
beheld them: thus, the house, the groves, the walks, the gardens,
and the river, recalled all its former longings to Edric's mind; and
he again burnt to converse with a disembodied spirit, as he entered
the grove where he had formerly so often ruminated, and indulged
dreams wild and improbable as the delusions of delirium. The day was
beautiful; it was one of those bright glowing mornings in April, when
dew drops hang upon every thorn, when the sun shines brightly through
the clear pure air, and all nature seems awaking to new life and vigour
from repose.

Edric entered the grove, and threw himself upon that very bank where he
had reclined only a few months before, under such different feelings.
The river, the grove, the bank, were all the same; he only was changed.
"And yet," said he, "is not my mind still as unsettled as before? Am I
not still wandering in a labyrinth of doubts? Unknowing where to turn;
and yet tormented with a restless desire to discover my way. What can
have become of the Mummy, I so strangely resuscitated? It is strange,
that since the restoration of Elvira it seems to have vanished, and yet
all here speak of it as of a living animated being. Would that I could
see it. O Cheops! Cheops--"

Suddenly a strange unearthly voice seemed to murmur harshly in his
ear--"Go to the Pyramid! There and there only can thy hopes be
gratified." Edric started upon his feet--no one was near him, and not
a sound broke the awful stillness that reigned around, save the gentle
rippling of the river that flowed at his feet. He gazed wildly on every
side, hoping, yet fearing to behold the ghastly being, he fancied
his words had conjured up. It was in vain; no dark figure interposed
between him and the clear bright sunshine; no gloomy shadow stretched
along the plain; all looked gay as youth and happiness; yet still that
awful voice rang in his ears, and thrilled through every nerve.

"I _will_ go the Pyramid," cried he energetically; "I will again enter
that horrid tomb--but I will go alone."

In pursuance of this sudden, but irresistible desire, Edric hastily
prepared to return to Egypt; and feigning that he was called to London
by business of importance, to satisfy the anxious curiosity of Pauline,
he departed. Indescribable emotions throbbed in his bosom as he
took his seat in the stage balloon which was to convey him to Egypt;
but when he saw the towers and temples, and, above all, the pyramids
of this mysterious country, lying beneath his feet, his agitation
increased almost to agony. It was with infinite difficulty that he
obtained permission again to visit the objects of his journey; as,
since the mysterious disappearance of the Mummy, the tomb of Cheops had
been closed from mortal eyes. The interference of the British consul,
however, at length obviated all objections, and Edric (whose impatience
had become absolute torture from the delay) once more entered that
awful receptacle of fallen greatness.

Scarcely a twelvemonth had elapsed since he had last trodden those
solemn vaults, yet what a change had taken place in his destiny! When
he considered the number and variety of the events that had befallen
him, he could scarcely fancy it possible that they had been crowded
into so short a space of time; and, instead of a year, centuries seemed
to have rolled over his head. His feeling of personal identity seemed
confused--his senses became bewildered, and he mechanically followed
his conductor almost without knowing whither he was going.

At last the guide stopped--"This is the tomb of Cheops," said he; "I
suppose, Sir, you will enter it alone."

Edric started--the words of the guide seemed to ring in his ears as the
knell of death, and he shuddered as the thought crossed his mind that
some horrid and appalling punishment might even now await him for his
presumption. Desperately he snatched the torch from the hands of his
guide and advanced ALONE.

Darkly did those gloomy vaults seem to frown at his approach, and
fearfully did his footsteps resound as he slowly penetrated into their
deep recesses. At length, he reached the tomb, but the brazen gates
were closed, and he attempted in vain to open them. He placed the
torch upon the ground, and again tried to unclose the fatal portal;
he exerted his whole strength, but still it resisted his efforts.
Rendered desperate, he now threw himself against the gates with almost
superhuman force. Suddenly a hollow sound murmured through the cavern,
and a current of wind rushed by with mighty and resistless fury. The
brazen gates flew open with a fearful clang, and the torch fell and was
extinguished. The next moment the sepulchral lamp shot forth a faint
gleaming light, which brightened by degrees into a steady flame, whilst
heavenly music sounded faintly upon the ear, dying gradually away in
murmurs, soft as those of the Æolian harp.

The brilliant light of the lamp now glowed with noon-day radiance,
and showed distinctly every corner of the fatal chamber. Edric looked
timidly around, and shuddered as each well-remembered object met his
eyes; but what was his horror and surprise when, glancing at the marble
sarcophagus of Cheops, he beheld the gigantic figure of the Mummy
standing erect beside it! It was again simply wrapped in the garments
of the tomb, and its glassy eyes, rigid features, and statue-like form,
chilled Edric to the heart. He looked at it a few moments in silence,
till it raised its arm and seemed about to address him; when, shrinking
back with indescribable horror, he uttered a faint shriek, and hid his
face in his hands.

"Why dost thou tremble?" asked the Mummy in a deep hollow voice that
thrilled through Edric's very soul. "Didst thou not come here to seek
me, and dost thou shudder to behold my form? I am now before thee. Ask
what thou wilt, I am permitted to reply. Why art thou silent? Why does
thy heart seem to wither in my presence? Alas! alas! is no mortal to be
found free from the debasing influence of fear? Thou art called bold,
courageous, and noble. Thou hast dared to soar above thy fellow-men,
and thou hast ardently wished to see me. Behold I am here, and now,
weak, fearful, and inconsistent as thou art, thou shunnest my approach."

"I do not shun thee," said Edric, removing his hands, and endeavouring
to look calmly on the fearful being before him, though the flesh seemed
to quiver on his bones with the effort--"I do not shun thee; but the
nerves will shrink though the mind be firm. I did wish to see thee;
for ardently do I still desire to know the secrets of the tomb."

Cheops burst into one of his fearful laughs. "Weak, silly worm! are
you not satisfied then? How would this knowledge avail you? Has any
thing but misery attended your former researches? And can any thing but
misery attend the knowledge you now covet? Learn wisdom by experience!
Seek not to pry into secrets denied to man! If you wish still, however,
to be resolved of your doubts, behold me ready to satisfy them; but, I
warn you, wretchedness will wait upon my words."

"Then I no longer seek to hear them; for, even weak as you esteem me,
I can learn wisdom from experience. Thus, then, I tear the tormenting
doubts, that have so long haunted me, from my mind, and bid them
farewell for ever!"

"It is well," said Cheops, his eyes beaming with joy. "Then my task is
accomplished. I have at last found a reasonable man. I honour you, for
you can command yourself, and now you may command me."

"I wish it not," said Edric.

"Have you no curiosity?" asked the Mummy, with a ghastly smile.

"None," returned Edric; "unless it be that I would fain know your
history, and the meaning of the sculptures upon your tomb."

"What are they?" demanded Cheops.

"A youthful warrior is bearing off a beautiful woman in his arms,
whilst an old man laments bitterly in the distance."

"I was the warrior," said Cheops; "and the beautiful female was
Arsinoë. I loved her, and to gratify my impetuous passion I tore her
from the arms of her father by force."

"The warrior is afterwards contending with the old man who falls
beneath his blows--"

"He did, he did," cried Cheops; "he died by my hand; and eternal misery
haunts me for the deed."

"And this old man was--"

"My father!" cried the Mummy, writhing in agony.

"And Arsinoë--"

"My sister--my own, my beloved sister!"

A solemn pause followed this speech, for Edric was too much shocked to
speak again to the awful being who had avowed such crimes, and upon
whose face were traced passions too horrible to be imagined. After a
short silence Cheops again exclaimed--

"Yes, yes; I see your horror, and it is just; but think you that I
do not suffer? know that a fiend--a wild, never-dying fiend rages
here," continued he, pressing his hand upon his breast. "It gnaws my
vitals--it burns with unquenchable fire and never ceasing torment.
Permitted for a time to revisit earth, I have made use of the powers
entrusted to me to assist the good and punish the malevolent. Under
pretence of aiding them, I gave them counsels which only plunged them
yet deeper in destruction, whilst the evil that my advice appeared to
bring upon the good was only like a passing cloud before the sun: it
gave lustre to the success that followed. My task is now finished;--be
happy, Edric, for happiness is in your power; be wise, for wisdom may
be obtained by reflection; and be merciful, for unless we give, how can
we expect mercy? Rely not on your own strength--seek not to pry into
mysteries designed to be concealed from man; and enjoy the comforts
within your reach--for know, that knowledge, above the sphere of man's
capacity, produces only wretchedness; and that to be contented with our
station, and to make ourselves useful to our fellow-creatures, is the
only true path to happiness."

The Mummy ceased to speak, and his features, which had appeared wild
and animated during his conversation with Edric, became fixed--the
unearthly lustre that had flashed from his eyes, faded away, and gave
place to a glassy deadness--his limbs became rigid, and as the light
of the lamp gradually sunk to less distinctness, the ghastly form of
the Mummy seemed rapidly changing into stone. Edric felt that the
moment when it was possible for him to hold communion with this strange
being was rapidly passing away, and almost shrieked as he exclaimed,
"One question! only one ere it be too late." The Mummy feebly raised
his languid eyelids, but Edric felt his blood freeze at the unnatural
glare. With a violent effort, however, he roused himself to speak.
"Was it a human power that dragged you from the tomb?"

"The power that gave me life could alone restore it," replied the Mummy
in slow measured accents, as it sank gradually back into its former
tomb. Edric shuddered, and involuntarily rushed forward, but the Mummy
no longer lived or breathed. Cold, pale, and inanimate it lay, as
though its sleep of two thousand years had never been broken.

    "Oblivion laid him down upon his hearse!"

and no mortal ever more could boast of holding converse with THE MUMMY.


THE END.





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Mummy! - A Tale of the Twenty-Second Century" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home